Location via proxy:   [ UP ]  
[Report a bug]   [Manage cookies]                

Foundations of Pentecostal Theology

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 358

FOUNDATIONS OF PENTECOSTAL THEOLOGY

Table of Contents
CONTENTS BOOK

Chapter One THE DOCTRINE OF THE SCRIPTURES - Bibliology


Chapter Two THE DOCTRINE OF GOD - Theology
Chapter Three THE DOCTRINE OF MAN - Anthropology
Chapter Four THE DOCTRINE OF SIN - Hamartiology
Chapter Five THE DOCTRINE OF SALVATION - Soteriology
Chapter Six THE DOCTRINE OF THE HOLY SPIRIT - Pneumatology
Chapter Seven THE DOCTRINE OF DIVINE HEALING
Chapter Eight THE DOCTRINE OF THE CHURCH - Ecclesiology
Chapter Nine THE DOCTRINE OF ANGELS - Angelology
Chapter Ten THE DOCTRINE OF LAST THINGS - Eschatology

1
CHAPTER ONE
THE DOCTRINE OF THE SCRIPTURES
Bibliology

Introduction
I. The Names of the Scriptures
A. The Bible
B. Other names
II. The Divisions of the Scriptures
A. The two Testaments
B. Divisions in the Old Testament
C. Divisions in the New Testament
D. Chapters and verses
III. The Writers of the Scriptures
IV. The Canon of the Scriptures
A. The canon of the Old Testament
B. The Apocrypha
C. The canon of the New Testament
D. Tests used to determine canonicity
V. The Inerrancy of the Scriptures
A. Definition of inerrancy
B. The testimony to inerrancy
VI. The Inspiration of the Scriptures
A. Definition of inspiration
B. Revelation, inspiration and illumination distinguished
C. Meaning of inspiration
VII. The Symbols of the Scriptures
VIII. The Holy Spirit and the Scriptures
IX. How the Scriptures came to us
A. Ancient writing materials
B. A Codex
C. Ancient writing instruments

2
D. Languages used
E. Manuscripts
F. Versions
G. Biblical criticism
H. Evidences for the Biblical text
X. The Scriptures in English
A. The earliest beginnings
B. John Wycliffe
C. William Tyndale
D. Other Sixteenth Century translations
E. Recent Translations of the English Bible

3
The Doctrine of the Scriptures
Bibliology

INTRODUCTION
God is a God Who desires to reveal Himself. He does not remain silent like the gods of the heathen, both
ancient and modern. The Lord takes pleasure in making Himself known to His creatures. He is pictured as a
God of love; love must always communicate itself, and that revelation must come from God Himself. The
thoughts of a man can only be disclosed by the man himself. Likewise, only God can make Himself known.
The God of the Bible is a God Who speaks. From Creation, all down through history, God revealed Himself
by speaking. He spoke and the universe sprang forth. "By the word of the Lord were the heavens made; and
all the host of them by the breath of his mouth" (Ps. 33:6). Through the years He had conveyed His Will and
purposes by speaking to chosen men, with the greatest of all revelations in the Person of Jesus Christ, the
Word Incarnate: "In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God ... And
the Word was made flesh and dwelt among us .... 11 (in. 1:1-14). "God, who at sundry times and in divers
manners spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in these last days spoken unto us by [lit., in]
his Son. . ." (Heb. 1:1,2).
It has pleased God that all these revelations of Himself should have been preserved for Mankind today in
the book we call the Bible. Many naturalists have claimed that the only revelation of God they need can be
found in nature, and they do not need the special revelation contained in the Bible. It is true, that if God is the
Creator of all nature, as the Bible declares that He is, then nature will reveal much about the One Who
brought it into existence. But nature's revelation of God is very limited. Certainly the God Who created this
amazing world, to say nothing of the vast universe of which it is a minute part, must be a God of great
Wisdom and Power. But here the revelation stops. Nature tells us nothing of the marvelous Love of God, nor
of His Holiness, nor of the Grace that has provided salvation through the Lord Jesus Christ. All of God's
great purposes and plans for Mankind are revealed only in the written word, the Bible. There is a view, held
rather widely in some intellectual circles, that the Bible is the account of Man's age-long efforts to find God.
If this were so, there would be in it no authority or sense of Divine revelation, but merely the account of
Man's groping for truths far above his abilities to obtain. Rather than the Bible containing Man's efforts to
find God, it is the account of God's efforts to reveal Himself to Man. It is of the greatest importance, then,
that we understand something concerning its origin, its formation, its authority, inerrancy and Divine
inspiration. These will be considered under the study of Bibliology.

I. THE NAMES OF THE SCRIPTURES


A. The Bible.
Our English word "Bible" comes from the Greek word biblos meaning "a book." "The book [biblos] of
the generation of Jesus Christ" (Mt. 1:2); also from biblion, a diminutive form of biblos, meaning "little
book." 'And there was delivered unto Him the book [biblion] ... and when he had opened the book [biblion]"
(Lk. 4:17). The word biblos comes from the word given to the inner pulp of the papyrus reed on which
ancient books were written.

B. Other Names.
The Bible is also called 'The Scripture" (Mk. 12:10; 15:28; Lk. 4:21; Jn. 2:22; 7:38; 10:35; Rom. 4:3; Gal.
4:30; 2 Pet. 1:20), and 'The Scriptures" (Mt. 22:29; Mk. 12:24; Lk. 24:27; Jn. 5:39; Acts 17:11; Rom. 1:2; 1
Cor. 15:3,4; 2 Tin. 3:15; 2 Pet. 3:16). These terms signify "Holy writings." Once Paul uses 'the holy
scriptures" (Rom. 1:2), and once 'the sacred writings' (2 Tin. 3:15 RSV), and once 'the oracles of God" (Rom.
3:2). One of the most descriptive and satisfying names is "The Word of God' (Mk. 7:13; Rom. 10:17; 2 Cor.
2:17; 1 Thes. 2:13; Heb. 4:12).

4
II. THE DIVISIONS OF THE SCRIPTURES
A. The Two Testaments.
The Bible is divided into two sections known as the Old and the New Testaments. The word "testament"
was originally translated "covenant," and signifies the thought that each is a covenant which God made with
His people. There are thirty-nine (39) books in the Old Testament and twenty-seven (27) in the New
Testament. An easy way to remember these numbers is to take the number of letters in either "Old
Testament" or 'New Testament." In either case you have three and nine letters. Three placed beside nine gives
the number of books - 39 - in the Old Testament, while three multiplied by nine - 27 - gives the number of
books in the New Testament.

B. Divisions in the Old Testament.


The Hebrew Old Testament was commonly divided into three sections:
The Law (Torah), 5 books:
Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, Deuteronomy.
The Prophets (Nebhiim), 8 books:
Former Prophets - Joshua, Judges, Samuel, Kings, and
Latter Prophets - Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, The Twelve.
he Writings (Kethbhim), 11 books:
Poetical Books - Psalms, Proverbs, Job;
Five Rolls (Megilloth) - Song of Songs, Ruth, Lamentations, Esther, Ecclesiastes;
Historical Books - Daniel, Ezra-Nehemiah, Chronicles.
These divisions are in keeping with Jesus' words, 'These are the words which I spake unto you, while I
was yet with you, that all things must be fulfilled, which were written in the law of Moses, and in the
prophets, and in the psalms, concerning me" (Lk. 24:44). Sometimes the Old Testament is more briefly
referred to as "the law and the prophets" (Mt. 5:17 RSV; 11:13; Acts 13:15). Even more briefly, the term
'law' seems to include the other divisions (Jn. 10:34; 12:34; 15:25; 1 Cor. 14:21).

C. Divisions in the New Testament.


Biographical (4 books): Matthew, Mark, Luke, John
Historical (1 book): Acts
Pedagogical (21 books): Romans, 1 Corinthians, 2 Corinthians, Galatians, Ephesians, Philippians,
Colossians, 1 Thessalonians, 2 Thessalonians, l Timothy, 2 Timothy, Titus, Philemon, Hebrews, James, 1
Peter, 2 Peter, 1 John, 2 John, 3 John, Jude
Prophetic (1 book): Revelation.
Sometimes the following alternate divisions are suggested:
1. The Gospels: Matthew, Mark, Luke, John
2. The Acts of the Apostles
3. The Epistles of Paul (including Hebrews)
4. The General Epistles
5. The Book of Revelation

D. Chapters and Verses.


The Bible was not originally divided into chapters and verses as we know it today. For convenience of

5
reference, these were added at comparatively recent dates. It used to be assumed that the chapter divisions
were first introduced by Cardinal Hugo, who died in A.D. 1263. Later investigations have attributed them to
Stephen Langton, Archbishop of Canterbury, who died in 1228. The New Testament was first published with
verse divisions by Robert Stephans in 1551. The first Bible to be published entirely divided into verse was
the Geneva Bible of 1560.
It is of considerable importance that the student realize that these divisions were not in the original texts
and were not inspired. Most of the divisions are very helpful, but some have proven to be quite misleading in
that they have come right in the middle of the subject being dealt with; and there is the tendency to think that
a new subject is being introduced when a chapter ends and a new one begins. One must, many times,
completely ignore the chapter division. Two simple examples of this areas follows: In Acts chapter twenty-
two, Paul's address is cut off from the events that lead up to it as recorded in the previous chapter. John 7:53
and 8:1 read together, without the chapter break, present a significant contrast: 'And every man went unto his
own house. Jesus went into the mount of Olives."
According to figures given by William Evans, the English Bible, KJV: contains 1,189 chapters, 31,173
verses, and 773,692 words. Of these, 929 chapters, 23,214 verses, and 592,439 words occur in the Old
Testament, and 260 chapters, 7,959 verses, and 181,253 words in the New.

III. THE WRITERS OF THE SCRIPTURES


The Bible is one Book, but it is also many books written by at least forty (40) different authors, over a
period of not less than 1,500 years, many of whom never saw each other. Yet it's unity and continuity are so
apparent it is easy to think of it having just one author - and that none other than God Himself.
Of the sixty-six different books in the Bible, the authors of fifty-five (55) are well identified by history
and tradition. The eleven (11) books whose authors are not known are: Judges, Ruth, 1 & 2 Samuel, 1 & 2
Kings, 1 & 2 Chronicles, Esther, Job and Hebrews. Some books, such as Genesis, Judges, 1 & 2 Kings, and 1
& 2 Chronicles, cover such long periods of history it is possible that they are collections of ancient records
brought together and edited by some individual chosen by God, toward the end of the historical period
described in the book. For instance, Moses could be the compiler of the book of Genesis. If this is so, then
the actual number of writers contributing to the Bible, may be considerably more than forty. Psalms and
Proverbs each have several authors. The superscriptions which appear at the head of many of the Psalms
suggest at least seven different writers. In addition to Solomon, as the author of Proverbs, Agur is mentioned
in 30:1 and King Lemuel in 31:1.
All of the authors, possibly excepting Luke, were Jews and wrote in the context of the Jewish religion.
Yet, the words they wrote have the most universal appeal and interest, to people of all nations, of any words
ever written.
It is most interesting to note the variety of occupational backgrounds which are represented by those
authors who are known:
Two of the writers were kings - David and Solomon
Two were priests - Jeremiah and Ezekiel
Luke was a physician
Two were fishermen - Peter and John
Two were shepherds - Moses and Amos
Paul was a Pharisee and a theologian
Daniel was a statesman
Matthew was a tax collector
Joshua was a soldier
Ezra was a scribe

6
Nehemiah was a butler.
The background and occupations of the others are largely unknown.

IV. THE CANON OF SCRIPTURES


The word "canon" comes from the Greek kanon, meaning "a measuring rod or reed," and signifies a rule,
a standard. Hence, the Canon of the Bible consists of those books considered worthy to be included in the
Holy
Scriptures. According to authors Selby and West:
'Canonization was the result of a centuries-long development, whereby only those writings that
proved useful for faith and worship were elevated to such a decisive role. The Canon, that is to say, was
determined not so much by Rabbinic or Church decree as by the intrinsic merit of each separate book and
its reception by the worshiping community for the inspiration or edification it offered.'
Another author expresses it this way: "The various books possessed and exercised divine authority long
before men ever made pronouncements to that effect. Ecclesiastical councils did not give the books their
divine authority but merely recognized that they both had it and exercised it."

A. The Canon of the Old Testament.


Any consideration of the actual times when the canon of the Old Testament was closed leads to a variety
of opinions among Biblical scholars. The Old Testament says nothing on the subject; although, it does give
many suggestions of the beginnings of the writings of God's laws that they might be kept for the people.
Exodus chapter seventeen tells of the victory of the children of Israel over Amalek as Moses' hands were held
aloft before the Lord, and verse fourteen reads: "And the Lord said unto Moses, Write this for a memorial in a
book, and rehearse it in the ears of Joshua. . . ." Exodus 24:3,4 records the writing of God's words and
judgments: "And Moses came and told the people all the words of the Lord, and all the judgments: and all the
people answered with one voice, and said, All the words which the Lord hath said will we do. Moses wrote
all the words of the Lord. . . ." Deuteronomy chapter thirty-one gives the account of Moses writing the Law,
which was to be kept and read to the people of Israel every seven years:
And Moses wrote this law, and delivered it unto the priests of the sons of Levi ... and Moses
commanded them, saying, At the end of every seven years, in the solemnity of the year of release, in the
feast of tabernacles, when all Israel is come to appear before the Lord thy God in the place which he shall
choose, thou shalt read this law before all Israel in their hearing (vv.9-11).
This occasion could well mark the very earliest beginning of the Old Testament Canon, for we read: "And
it came to pass, when Moses had made an end of writing the words of this law in a book, until they were
finished, that Moses commanded the Levites ... saying, Take this book of the Law, and put it in the side of the
ark of the covenant of the Lord your God, that it may be there for a witness against thee" (Dt. 31:24-26).
Joshua, Moses' successor, also wrote words, "in the book of the law of God." (Jos. 24:26). Samuel
recorded certain events of his day in a book. We read: "Then Samuel told the rights and duties of the kingship
and he wrote them in a book and laid it up before the Lord' (1 Sam. 10:25 RSV).
Prophets in later times engaged in writing books. God speaks to Jeremiah, and says: "flake a scroll and write
on it all the words which I have spoken to you against Israel and Judah and all the nations, from the day that I
spoke to you, from the days of Josiah until today' (Jer. 36:2 RSV). Later generations are found consulting the
writings of their predecessors. Daniel searches 'in the books' and finds the prophet Jeremiah limited the
duration in which Jerusalem was to be ravaged by the enemy to seventy years (Dn. 9:2). Later, when the
people were assembled back in Jerusalem after the Babylonian captivity, it was the Law of Moses that was
read and honored (Neh. 8:1-8). During the reign of Josiah in Judah, the book of the Law of the Lord, which
had been lost, was found: 'And Hilkiah the high priest said unto Shaphan the scribe, I have found the book of
the law in the house of the Lord' (2 Kgs. 22:8). Josiah gathered the elders of Judah and Jerusalem together,

7
'and he read in their ears all the words of the book of the covenant which was found in the house of the Lord"
(2 Kgs. 23:2). Thus, we see the beginnings of what later became the Old Testament Scriptures.
George L. Robinson, in his article in the International Standard Bible Encyclopedia, after careful
consideration of the many evidences available, concludes (following the Hebrew's threefold division of the
Old Testament) that the books of the Law were recognized as canonical during the time of Ezra (444 B.C.);
that the Prophets were recognized as such sometime later (around 200 B.C.) and that the Writings received
authorization around 100 B.C. Robinson is not saying that there were three separate canons, but that "there
were three separate classes of writings, which between 450 B.C. and 100 B.C. doubtless stood on different
bases, and only gradually became authoritative.
Other scholars hold to the belief that there were only two periods of canonization corresponding to "the
law and the prophets,' and that the Old Testament Canon was completed about 400 B.C. Which of these
positions is correct, is difficult to say. What is important is that the Old Testament Canon was, no doubt,
complete at the time of Christ. Jesus referred to it as "The Scriptures," saying,'Search the scriptures; for in
them ye think ye have eternal life' (Jhn. 5:39). We read: 'And beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he
expounded unto them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself' (Lk. 24:27). In Luke 11:51 (RSV)
there is an interesting statement of Jesus in which He spoke of the time 'from the blood of Abel to the blood of
Zechariah, who perished between the altar and the sanctuary.' Jesus was referring to the martyrs of the Old
Testament. Abel was the first, as recorded in Genesis chapter four and Zechariah was the last, recorded in 2
Chronicles 24:20,21. In the Hebrew Bible, 2 Chronicles is the last book, while Genesis is the first. Thus,
Jesus not only put His stamp of approval upon the entire Old Testament, from Genesis to 2 Chronicles, but
gave indication that these books were in existence, and were approved at the time He was here on earth.
As further evidence of the completeness of the Old Testament Canon at this time, we have the testimony
of the celebrated Jewish historian Flavius Josephus. In his writings, Against Apion, he states:
For we have not an innumerable multitude of books among us, disagreeing from and contradicting
one another, (like the Greeks have) but only twenty-two books, which contain the records of all the past
times; which we justly believe to be divine.... and how firmly we have given credit to these books of our
own nation is evident by what we do; for during so many ages as have already passed, no one has been so
bold as either to add any thing to them, to take any thing from them or to make any change in them; but it
is become natural to all Jews immediately, and from their very birth, to esteem these books to contain
Divine doctrines, and to persist in them, and, if occasion be, willingly to die for them.

In our Christian Bibles, there are thirty-nine (39) books in the Old Testament, while the Jewish Old
Testament counts only twenty-four (24). This is explained by the facts: the twelve books of the Minor
Prophets (Hosea through Malachi) are only one book; also the following are only one book each - 1 and 2
Samuel, 1 and 2 Kings, 1 and 2 Chronicles, Ezra-Nehemiah. Thus, though there is no difference in the
wording, the Hebrew Old Testament lists nine fewer titles. Josephus counted twenty-two (22), because he
joined Ruth to Judges and Lamentations to Jeremiah.

B. The Apocrypha.
The word 'Apocrypha,' as usually understood, means 'Apocryphal Books' and refers to fourteen books
which have been added to the Old Testament, and held to be part of the sacred canon, particularly by the
Roman Catholic Church. Protestants generally do not include these in the Bible. The word literally has come
to mean 'hidden' or 'concealed.' The Septuagint (LXX), the translation of the Old Testament into Greek made
between 280 B.C. and 180 B.C., contained the apocryphal books. Jerome included them in his Latin
translation of the Old Testament, called the Vulgate. These books are not a part of the Hebrew Bible. The
Reformers were largely responsible for eliminating the Apocrypha from the Bible, because they contain
things which are inconsistent with Protestant doctrine (e.g. the doctrines of prayer for the dead, and
intercession to the saints). The following are the fourteen books which are in the Apocrypha, sometimes

8
scattered throughout the Old Testament, and sometimes printed at the end of the Old Testament: 1 Esdras, 2
Esdras, Tobit, Judith, The Rest of Esther, The Wisdom of Solomon, Ecclesiasticus, Baruch, with the Epistle
of Jeremiah, The Song of the Three Holy Children, The History of Susanna, Bel and the Dragon, The Prayer
of Manasses, 1 Maccabees, and 2 Maccabees. Although parts of almost all the books of the Old Testament
Canon are either quoted or directly referred to in the New Testament, there is no quotation or reference to any
of the Apocryphal books.

C. The Canon of the New Testament.


It is much easier to trace the canonization of the twenty-seven (27) books of the New Testament than that
of the Old Testament. There is much more evidence available. The books of the New Testament were
written during the last half of the first century A.D. The newly formed Christian church had the Old
Testament Scriptures as the basis for their faith but, in addition to this, great importance was placed on the
words of Jesus and the teachings of the Apostles. Thus, it was not long until the Gospels were being placed
alongside of the Old Testament. The authority of the Apostles is fully attested. John declares, 'That which we
have seen and heard declare we unto you' (1 Jn. 1:3); Peter says they "were eyewitnesses of his majesty" (2
Pt. 1:16); and of the early believers we read: "And they continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and
fellowship" (Acts 2.42).
Because the epistles of Paul were written to meet a specific need of a local church or individual, these
would be cherished for their spiritual value and would be read in the churches. On several occasions, Paul
gave definite instructions that his letters should be read and circulated. Th the Thessalonian church he wrote:
'I charge you by the Lord that this epistle be read unto all the holy brethren' (1 Thes. 5:27). To the church at
Colosse he admonished: "And when this epistle is read among you, cause that it be read also in the church of
the Laodiceans; and that ye likewise read the epistle from Laodicea" (Col. 4:16). In order that this might be
done, it is conceivable that a copy of the Colossian and Laodicean letters would have to be made. As this
practice spread, it is easy to see that before too many years, compilations of Paul's letters would be available.
The New Testament suggests a rather widespread distribution of these writings. John was instructed:
'What thou seest, write in a book, and send it unto the seven churches which are in Asia' (Rv. 1:11). James
was addressed 'to the twelve tribes which are scattered abroad" (Jas. 1:1). Peter's first epistle was written 'to
the strangers scattered throughout Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia and Bithynia' (I Pt. 1:1). There is a
strong suggestion of an early compilation of a canon of the New Testament to be recognized with the Old
Testament Scripture:
And account that the long-suffering of our Lord is salvation; even as our beloved brother Paul also
according to the wisdom given unto him hath written unto you; as also in all his epistles, speaking in them
of these things; in which are some things hard to be understood, which they that are unlearned and
unstable wrest, as they do also the other scriptures, unto their own destruction (2 Pet. 3:15,16).

During the early years of the second century, the effect of the Church Fathers began to be felt. These
were gifted students, teachers and church leaders. In their letters to the early churches they quoted profusely
from the books which were to become the New Testament Canon. These letters bear distinct witness to the
value of the book from which they quoted, placing them above their own words. Strange to say, a noted
heretic, the Gnostic Marcion (140 A.D.) was used to inspire the recognition of some of the New Testament
books, particularly the Epistles of Paul. Marcion complied his own canon, which included Luke's gospel and
ten of the Pauline epistles. He rejected the Pastoral Epistles, Hebrews, Mark, John, Acts, the General Epistles
and Revelation. His actions brought forth much criticism, and a closer study of the books which he rejected.
By the end of the second century, all but seven of the twenty-seven books of the New Testament were
recognized as canonical. The seven books which were not fully recognized at that time were: Hebrews, 2 and
3 John, 2 Peter, Jude, James and Revelation.
Additional impetus toward the formation of a definite canon of the New Testament came from the

9
persecutions ordered by Emperor Diocletian (302-305), at which time he ordered that the Scriptures should be
burned with fire. Thus, it became necessary that a determination be made as to which books were Scripture.
Christians must decide which books were worth suffering and dying for. The question of the canon had an
earnest, practical significance. Within twenty-five years of the Dioclesian persecutions, Constantine, the new
emperor, had embraced Christianity and ordered Eusebius, bishop of Caesarea and church historian, to
prepare and distribute fifty copies of the New Testament. Thus, it was necessary to decide which books
should be included.
It is not difficult to understand that, at the time the canon was being considered, there were many books in
existence which would lay claim to consideration. These writings were generally divided into what has been
called the pseudepigrapha and the apocrypha. In the former are included a group of spurious and heretical
books which are considered false writings. They were virtually never recognized by any council nor quoted
by the Church Fathers. Many heretical doctrines, such as those held by the Gnostics, who denied the
Incarnation of Christ; the Docetics, who denied the reality of Christ's humanity; and the Monophysites, who
rejected the dual nature of Christ are found in these books. Over 280 of these have been listed, grouped under
the headings: Gospels, Acts, Epistles, Apocalypses and Others. Geisler and Nix state: "Whatever fragments
of truth they preserve are obscured both by their religious fancy and heretical tendencies. The books are not
only uncanonical but are not of much value for religious or devotional purposes. Their main value is
historical, revealing the beliefs of their composers."
The books listed as the New Testament Apocrypha were those which were held in high esteem by at least
one of the Fathers. Though they contain much helpful information concerning the history of the Early
Church, they have never been accepted into the canon of the New Testament. Some of the most popular of
these are: The Epistle of Pseudo Barnabas (70-79), The Epistle to the Corinthians (96), Shepherd of Herroas
(115-140), The Didache Teaching of the Twelve (100-120), Epistle to the Laodiceans (4th century ?), Epistle
of Polycarp to the Philippians (108), and The Seven Epistles of Ignatius (110).
Athanasius (born about 298 A.D.), in one of his pastoral epistles, lists all twenty-seven books of the New
Testament as Scripture. At the third council of Carthage (397) the Western Christian churches settled on the
final form of the New Testament Canon. Thus, by the end of the fourth century all twenty-seven books were
received. So, Geisler and Nix conclude: "Once discussions resulted in the recognition of the twenty-seven
canonical books of the New Testament canon there have been no moves within Christendom to add to it or
take away from it."

D. Tests Used to Determine Canonicity.


The following principles were used to determine a book's place in the canon:
1. Apostlicity. Was the book written by an Apostle, or one who was closely associated with the
Apostles? This question was especially important in relation to Mark, Luke, Acts and Hebrews; inasmuch as,
Mark and Luke were not among the original twelve and the authorship of Hebrews was not known.
2. Spiritual content. Was the book being read in the churches and did its contents prove a means of
spiritual edification? This was a most practical test.
3. Doctrinal soundness. Were the contents of the book doctrinally sound? Any book containing
heresy, or that 4. Usage. Was the book universally recognized in the churches, and was it widely quoted
by the Church Fathers?
5. Divine inspiration. Did it give true evidence of Divine inspiration? "This was the ultimate test;
everything finally had to give way to it."

10
V. THE INERRANCY OF THE SCRIPTURES

A. Definition of Inerrancy.

The inerrancy of the Scripture means that in its original autographs the Bible contains no mistakes. In the
original languages in which it was written, it is absolutely infallible - without error whatever. This has been
the position of all the confessions of the great evangelical churches down through the years.
In contrast to this, atheists, agnostics and liberal theologians have declared the Bible to be full of errors.
Indeed, there are those who teach a "limited inerrancy," claiming the Bible to be inerrant in matters of faith
and practice, but not necessarily so in scientific and historical matters. The problem with this position is, who
is going to decide what is true and what is not? If one cannot have a positive faith in the infallibility of this
Book, how can he speak with final authority when it comes to matters of eternity? Why is this question so
vitally important? Why cannot one come to the Bible as he does any other book? When he reads any other
book, a man will take what he believes and leave that with which he is not in accord. Why cannot he do the
same. as many are advocating, with the Bible?

B. The Testimony to Inerrancy.


1. From whence does this doctrine of inerrancy come?
From the Scriptures themselves. It claims to be inspired by God. 'All scripture is given by inspiration of
God' (2 Tm. 3:16). "For the prophecy came not in old times by the will of men, but holy men of God spake as
they were moved by the Holy Ghost" (2 Pt. 1:21).
a) Old Testament Writers. The writers of the Old Testament are most explicit in claiming they were
speaking the Word of God. They claim 3,808 times to be transmitting the very words of God. Moses
declared: 'Ye shall not add unto the work which I command you, neither shall ye diminish from it' (Dt. 4:2).
The Psalmist cried: 'The law of the Lord is perfect ... the testimony of the Lord is pure' (Ps. 19:7 NASB).
Samuel declared: 'The spirit of the Lord spake by me, and his word was in my tongue' (2 Sm. 23:2). Isaiah
wrote: "Hear, 0 heavens, and give ear, 0 earth, for the Lord hath spoken" (Is. 1:2). Jeremiah quotes the words
of the Lord to him: "Whatsoever I command thee thou shalt speak ... behold I have put my words in thy
mouth' (Jer. 1:7,9). Ezekiel tells of his commission: 'Thou shalt speak my words unto them" (Ez. 2:7), and
'Speak with my words unto them' (Ez. 3:4). Each and all of these declared that they were speaking God's
words. Thus the Old Testament testifies concerning itself.
b) New Testament Writers. The New Testament writers also bear witness to the fact that the Old
Testament was God speaking.
(1) In the Gospels. 'All this was done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the
prophets' (Mt. 1:22). "As he spake by the mouth of his holy prophets, which have been since the world
began" (Lk. 1:70). 'For David himself said by the Holy Ghost. . ." (Mk. 12:36).
(2) In the Epistles. The Apostles also gave their witness to the perfections; of the Old Testament
Scriptures. Paul said of the Law that it was holy, and 'the commandment, holy and righteous and good' (Rom.
7:12 NIV). The writer of Hebrews regarded the Word of God as living and effectual, going so far as to judge
even our feelings and innermost thoughts. (Heb. 4:12). James describes the Word as 'the perfect law of
liberty' (Jas. 1:22-25). He regarded its complete authority when he issued the warning: 'Think ye the scripture
saith in vain?" (Jas. 4:5). John brings the written revelation to a close with the words:
For I testify unto every man that heareth the words of the prophecy of this book, If any man shall add
unto these things, God shall add unto him the plagues that are written in this book: and if any man shall
take away from the words of the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of the book of
life, and out of the holy city, and from the things which are written in this book (Rv. 22:18,19).
Thus, toward the beginning, (Dt. 4:2; 12:32), in the middle (Prv. 30:6), and at the end of the Scriptures

11
(Rv. 22:18,19), God warns against tampering with His Word, by adding to or taking from its message.
C) Jesus Christ. Jesus Himself bore witness to the Scripture. Christ specifically confirmed the whole
of the Old Testament. He did not find one error or inconsistency in it. He continually based His arguments
and exhortations on it. He declared, ". . . one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass from the law, till all be
fulfilled" (Mt. 5:18). Discussing just one word with the Jews, He said, 'The scripture cannot be broken' (Jn.
10:35). In Luke 24:44 Jesus said, 'These are the words, which I spake unto you, while I was yet with you, that
all things must be fulfilled, which were written in the law of Moses, and in the prophets, and in the psalms
concerning me.' These three sections comprise all of the Old Testament.
Jesus referred to many Old Testament persons and events, and thus bore testimony to the authenticity and
authority of the Old Testament. It is interesting to note, from the following list, that Jesus put His stamp of
approval on some of the events and miracles of the Old Testament which have always been under greatest
question by the critics. He approved the account of the following:
· Creation and marriage - Matthew 19:5
· The Deluge and Noah's ark - Luke 17:26,27
· The destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah - Luke 17:28,29
· The destruction of Tyre and Sidon - Matthew 11:21,22
· Circumcision -John 7:22
· The Passover - Matthew 26:2
· The Law - John 7:19
· The Commandments - Matthew 19:7-9
· The Jewish law of divorce - Matthew 19:7-9
· The fact of the burning bush - Mark 12:26
· The type of Jonah and the great fish - Matthew 12:40
· The repentance of Ninevah - Matthew 12:41
· The glory of Solomon - Matthew 6:29
· The wisdom of Solomon - Matthew 12:42
· The Feast of Tabernacles - John 7
· David eating the shewbread - Matthew 12:3
· The priests profaning the Sabbath - Matthew 12:5
· The heavens shut up in Elijah's day - Luke 4:25
· The story of Naaman the leper - Luke 4:27
· The record of the brazen serpent - John 3:14,15
· The murder of Abel and Zacharias - Matthew 23:35
· The mission of Messiah - Luke 4:16-21
· The mission of John the Baptist - Matthew 17:10-13
· The mission of Elias - Matthew 17:10-13
· Daniel and his great prophecy - Matthew 24:15.

2. The Bible is a unique revelation of truth.


The Bible is a revelation of truths about which Man can never know apart from what it tells him. Man
asks: Who am I? From where did I come? Where am I going? What about immortality, Heaven, Hell,
judgment, eternity? What does Man know, what can he know apart from the Bible? Many are virtually
making their own god. What good is a god that a man can make himself? He does not need such. If he can

12
make him, then man is bigger than his god, and so does not need him. No one, or no nation, has ever revealed
a god such as the God of the Holy Scriptures. Chafer says the Bible is infinite because it discloses truth
concerning the Infinite God, infinite holiness, infinite sin, and infinite redemption. It seems to prove itself
infinite, for "no human mind has fully comprehended its message or measured its values." The Christian is
not embarrassed in the least that he cannot explain everything about God. God would not be God if this were
possible. One never worships what he can understand. It is only when he gets beyond the realm of his own
comprehension that he bows his head and lifts his hands in worship.
Who is Jesus? What is He like? Can He do anything for the human soul? Does He have anything vital to
say to Mankind? Does, indeed, Man's eternal soul's welfare depend upon Him? Some would advocate that
we do not worry about the infallibility of the Bible - just follow Jesus! Some liberal teachers have said,
"Christ alone is the Word of God! We believe without reservation in the Word of God, but it is Jesus alone
Who is the Word." This sounds very pious, but what does Man know about Jesus apart from what is revealed
in the Bible? Our total source of information about Him is in this Book. If one cannot depend upon the Word
for information about other things, then how can he be sure it is correct in what it tells us about Jesus?

3. The Bible is an unchanging revelation


Much of the uncertainty and unbelief in the Bible have come from the so-called scientists. Because the
inerrancy of the Bible is on the level of observable facts, it is most open to attacks from the skeptical and
unbelieving scholars. Science has assumed an aura of authority and almost infallibility. Many have made a
virtual god out of it. The word 'science' simply means 'knowledge,' and is to be neither worshiped nor feared.
The significant thing about science is that it is constantly having to change its conclusions as fresh facts come
to life. Scientific textbooks only a few years old are virtually out of date today, while the Bible has not had to
be altered in the least degree over the thousands of years since it was written. Why should one doubt a Book
that has withstood the centuries, and every attack leveled against it, for sciences that have to be revised every
few years? The Bible is not a textbook of science, but it has never been proven wrong in any scientific fact.
The Genesis account of Creation still stands.

4. The Bible is right morally and spiritually.


Most important of all, the Bible is right morally and spiritually. It is not in the scientific realm that the
Bible demonstrates its greatest accuracy, but in the moral and spiritual realm. Myer Pearlman concludes his
section on Bibliology with the words: "Intellectual defenses of the Bible have their place; but after all, the best
argument is the practical one. The Bible has worked. It has influenced civilizations, transformed lives,
brought light, inspiration and comfort to millions. And its work-continues." And Scripture declares: "For this
cause also thank we God without ceasing, because, when ye received the word of God which ye heard of us,
ye received it not as the word of men, but as it is in truth, the word of God, which effectually worketh also in
you that believe' (1 Thes. 2:13).

VI. THE INSPIRATION OF THE SCRIPTURES


The Bible is an inerrant, infallible book - a Book of words, phrases and sentences which, as it was
originally written, contains no errors whatsoever. This Book was written by man - fallen, weak, sinful man.
Man with all the potential of misunderstanding, misinterpretation, lack of memory, even the possibility of
malicious falsehood. Yet it is claimed the Book he wrote contains no evidence whatever of all these natural
weaknesses. In fact, it is claimed that not only was all that he wrote perfectly right - nothing must be removed
from the record - but he left nothing out that should have been written - nothing must be added to it. It is not
easy to believe that such a thing could be possible for one man of a fallen race. But this was accomplished
through more than forty (40) different men, who lived over a span of more than 1,500 years; and many of
them never saw nor conversed with each other, yet their writings in no way disagree. Only a miracle, and that
a long-extended miracle, could bring this to pass. How could such a thing be possible? Through the mystery

13
and miracle of Divine Inspiration!

A. Definition of Inspiration.
The Bible reveals the source of its magnificence: 'All Scripture is God-breathed." This does not mean that
the writers were 'breathed into by God," but that the Word was produced by the creative breath of God.
The Greek word in this passage theopneusbas very distinctly does not mean "inspired of God.". . . [it
has] ... nothing to say of inspiring or inspiration: it speaks only of "spiring" or"spiration." What it says of
Scripture is, not that it is 'breathed into by God" or is the product of the Divine 'inbreathing' into its
human authors, but that it is breathed out by God, 'God-breathed', the product of the creative breath of
God. In a word, what is declared by this fundamental passage is simply that the Scriptures are a Divine
product, without any indication of how God has operated in producing them. No term could have been
chosen, however, which would have more emphatically asserted the Divine production of Scripture than
that which has been employed. The 'breath of God' is in Scripture just the symbol of His almighty power,
the bearer of His creative word.

Just as God breathed into Adam the "breath of life," so He breathed into the body of Scripture the breath
of His life. We also read, in 2 Peter 1:21: 'Holy men of God spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost.'
This verse literally reads: "For the prophecy was not borne [or brought] by the will of man at any time, but
men spoke from God, being home [or brought] by the Holy Spirit.' Benjamin Warfield says:
The term here used is a very specific one. It is not to be confounded with guiding, or directing, or
controlling, or even leading in the full sense of that word. It goes beyond all such terms, in assigning the
effect produced specifically to the active agent. What is "borne" is taken up by the 'bearer," and conveyed
by the 'bearer's' power, not its own, to the "bearer's" goal, not its own. The men who spoke from God are
here declared, therefore, to have been taken up by the Holy Spirit and brought by His power to the goal of
His choosing. The things which they spoke under this operation of the Spirit were, therefore, His things,
not theirs.

B. Revelation, Inspiration, and Illumination Distinguished.


It is important to distinguish between revelation, inspiration, and illumination. Revelation is that act of
God by which He directly communicates truth not known before to the human mind - truth which could not
have been known in any other manner. Inspiration has to do with the communication of the truth. Evans
says: 'Revelation discovers new truth, while Inspiration superintends the communication of that truth."
All that is in the Bible was not directly revealed to men. There is much history and many personal
observations recorded there. What we are assured of is that the record is true. The Holy Spirit directed and
influenced the writers so that, by inspiration, they were kept from every error of fact and doctrine. The Bible
records the words and acts of God, men and the Devil. It is very important to take careful note of who is
speaking. Dr. Wm. Evans has expressed it well:
Though all Scripture is inspired, it does not stamp with divine authority every sentence which it
reports as uttered by the men of whom it speaks, nor does it mark with divine approval every action
which it relates as performed by those with whose biographies it deals. In the book of Job, for example,
Inspiration gives with equal accuracy the language of Jehovah, the words of Satan, and the speeches of
Job and his three friends; but it does not therefore place them all on the same level of authority. Each
speaker is responsible for his own utterances. Neither Satan, Job nor his three friends spoke by
inspiration of God. They gave utterances to their own opinions; and all that Inspiration vouches for is
that no one of them is misrepresented, but that each one spoke the sentiments that are attributed to him in
Scripture.
Some confuse inspiration with illumination. Illumination refers to the influence of the Holy Spirit,

14
common to all Christians, which helps them grasp the things of God. 'But the natural man receiveth not the
things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because they are
spiritually discerned' (1 Cor. 2:14). This illumination of spiritual things is promised to all believers and can
be experienced by them. 'In that hour Jesus rejoiced in spirit, and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven
and earth, that thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes: even
so, Father; for so it seemed good in thy sight' (Lk. 10:21). Peter speaks of an interesting example where
prophets were given inspiration to record great truths, but were not given illumination to understand the exact
meaning of what they prophesied.
Of which salvation the prophets have enquired and searched diligently, who prophesied of the grace that
should come unto you; searching what, or what manner of time the Spirit of Christ which was in them did
signify... Unto whom it was revealed, that not unto themselves, but unto us they did minister the things, which
are now reported unto you ... (1 Pt. 1:10-12).
Some try to explain the inspiration of the Scriptures as the result of this experience of illumination. They
assert that within Man there is this spark of divine light which only needed to be fanned, as it were, to enable
men of old to write the Bible. Myer Pearlman points out two specific differences between illumination and
inspiration:
(1) As to duration, illumination is, or can be, permanent. Me path of the just is as the shining light,
that shineth more and more unto the perfect day' (Prov. 4:18). The anointing that the believer has
received of the Holy One abides in him, says John. 'But the anointing which ye have received of him
abideth in you, and ye need not that any man teach you: but as it hath taught you, ye shall abide in him' (I
John 2:27). On the other hand Inspiration was intermittent; the prophet could not prophesy at will, but
was subject to the will of the Spirit. 'For the prophecy came not in old time by the will of man,' declares
Peter (11 Peter 1:21), 'but holy men of God spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost.' The
suddenness of prophetic inspiration is implied by the common expression, "The word of the Lord came to
such an one." A clear distinction is drawn between the true prophets, who speak only as the word of God
comes to them, and the false prophets who speak a message of their own devising. (Jer. 14:14; 23:11, 16;
Eze. 13:2,3). (2) Illumination admits of degrees, Inspiration admits of none. People vary as to the degree
of their illumination, some possessing a greater degree of insight than others. But in the case of
Inspiration, in the Bible sense, a person is either inspired or he is not.

C. The Meaning of Inspiration.


What does this word 'inspiration' really mean as it is applied to the Bible? Unfortunately, not all
churchmen are agreed. Therefore, we have various theories of inspiration:
1. Liberal views of inspiration.
The liberal theologian's view is expressed particularly in the statement: 'The Bible contains the Word of
God.' This suggests that it also contains a varied admixture of the words of men. Their position may be stated
as follows: From place to place within the Book are to be found revelations which God at times gave to pious
men, much as He illumines men's minds today with insights into Divine truth. The Bible is a sort of religious
scrap book in which are recorded stories, legends, genealogies, and love poems, classified, arranged and
rearranged without any regard to chronological or literary perfection. The dangerous part of this view is that
it places into the hands of finite, feeble and fallible Man the power to determine what and where God is
speaking. Thus, Man is given power over Infinite Truth rather than taking a place under it.
2. Neo-orthodox views of inspiration.
These may be summarized by the statement that: 'The Bible becomes the Word of God.' Let us consider
two of these neo-orthodox views:
a) The existential view popularized by Barth. This teaches that there are many human errors and
imperfections in the Bible - even in the autographs. But the Bible becomes the Word of God when He
chooses to use this imperfect channel to confront man with His perfect Word. This is accomplished by a

15
personal encounter by God with man in an act of revelation. In this existential experience - crisis encounter -
the meaningless blobs on the page leap from the Bible to speak to man concretely and meaningfully. At this
"moment of meaning" the Bible becomes the Word of God to the believer.
b) The demythologizing view of Bultmarm and Neibuhr. The Bible must be stripped of religious
myth in order to get at the real meaning of God`s self-giving love in Christ. One must look through and
beyond the historical record, with all its myth and error, to the super-historical. Events, such as the Fall of
Man, the Crucifixion and Resurrection, are not necessarily the objects of verifiable and factual history.
Hence, the Bible becomes a revelation when, by the proper (demythological) interpretation, one is confronted
with absolute Love as set forth in the 'myth' of God's self-less love in Christ.
How, we ask, can the gospel writer be wrong in an area we can check him, history, and right in an area,
doctrine, where no checks are possible? These men refuse to believe that God performed the miracle of
giving us, by inspiration, an infallible Bible, but are ready to believe that God daily performs the greater
miracle of enabling men to find and see, in the fallible words of men, the infallible words of God. It is very
difficult to see why God would make use of error to teach us truth.
Again, how can a simple believer have faith in a book when he is told only parts of it are true? He is told
to sort it out and keep what is good. But how will he go about classifying the pages of the Bible as inspired,
partially inspired, or not inspired? By what authority can he say this, or this, is not the mind of God? 'In
attempt to decide what is not is to put oneself above the Scriptures and to lose the Divine message entirely.
As has been suggested before, in these views there is a confusion between revelation and illumination. The
Bible is not merely God's word when Man hears and understands it. It is God speaking, whether Man is
listening or not. The Bible declares itself to be the Word of God. Any other position is wholly unbiblical.
There are some, claiming to be evangelicals today, who teach that there are many historical and scientific
errors in the Bible. Yet, they quickly assure us that in matters pertaining to the plan of salvation it is
completely inerrant. How can one be so certain that the Bible is correct in soteriological matters when it is in
error in historical and scientific facts? It sounds very much as if it is men, not God, who are telling us what to
believe. If the Bible is not completely inerrant, fully infallible, then there is no-final authority to its message.
While the Liberal contends the Bible merely contains the word of God, and the Neo-orthodox asserts the
Bible becomes the word of God in an existential 'moment of meaning,' the Orthodox or Conservative position
is that the Bible is the word of God.

3. The conservative views.


The Bible is the Word of God. Yet, within the conservative school there is a divergence of opinion
regarding what is involved in inspiration. Thus there are the following conservative theories of inspiration:
a) The Verbal Dictation Theory. This theory states that every word, even the punctuation, is dictated
by God, much as a business executive would dictate a letter to his secretary. This is often called "mechanical
inspiration" or "verbal dictation." Fundamentalists are often accused of subscribing to this method of
inspiration, but only a small percentage of them actually do. The great weakness of this theory is that it
eliminates any possibility of a personal style in the writings of the divinely chosen author - a phenomenon
which is clearly observable.
b) The Inspired Concept Theory. In an endeavor to compensate for the dangers of the Verbal
Dictation Theory, some conservatives have adopted the idea that God gave the thoughts to the men chosen,
and left them to record these thoughts in their own words. Thus, only the thoughts, not the words, are
inspired. This has been called "dynamic inspiration." This explains the Bible's humanity, but weakens its
divinity. The mechanical theory deifies the human aspect of the Bible while the dynamic theory humanizes
the divinity.
c) The Verbal, Plenary Inspiration View. This view holds that all the words written are God-breathed
(2 Tm 3:16). 'Verbal" signifies the words, and 'plenary' means 'full," or "complete,' as opposed to partial.
Thus it is held that the words themselves, and all of them, are inspired. God gave full expression to His

16
thoughts in the words of the biblical record. He guided the very choice of the words used within the
personality and culture-complex of the writers; so that, in some inscrutable manner, the Bible is the Word of
God, while being the words of men.
Charles Hodge has expressed the meaning of verbal inspiration well: It is meant that the Divine
influence, of whatever kind it may have been, which accompanied the sacred writers in what they wrote,
extends to the expression of their thoughts in language, as well as the thoughts themselves, - the effect
being, that in the original autograph copies, the language expresses the thought God intended to convey
with infallible accuracy, so that the words, as well as the thoughts, are God's revelation to us.
Inspiration, then, is the process whereby Spirit-moved men (2 Pt. 1:21), produced Spirit-breathed writings (2
Tm. 3:16). L. Gaussen gives us an excellent definition of inspiration in the following; it is: 'that inexplicable
power which the divine Spirit put forth of old on the authors of the Holy Scripture, in order to their guidance
even in the employment of the words they used, and to preserve them alike from all error and from all
omission."
It is recognized that here we are in an area of mystery. Just how infallible inspiration was brought about
is something finite minds cannot comprehend. That there is a Divine side to the process cannot be denied.
But that there is a human aspect is equally clear. God used men. We recognize both elements, but we cannot
reconcile them. Perhaps the best illustration is the Incarnation of Jesus Christ. Christ has both a Divine and
human nature. The Scripture also has a heavenly and earthly aspect. In both Christ and the Scripture the
human side is perfect, as is the Divine. It is wrong to try to explain away the Divine Nature of Christ in order
to understand His human nature, as the Arians did. It is equally wrong to sacrifice His true human nature in
order to explain that He is Divine, as the Docetics did. So it is wrong to deny that the words of Scripture are
both human and Divine in their nature.
The mistake is to try to explain the unexplicable, and to fathom the unfathomable. The means, or process,
of inspiration is a mystery of the providence of God, but the results of this process is a verbal (the words),
plenary (extending to all the parts equally), inerrant (errorless) and authoritative record.

VII. THE SYMBOLS OF THE SCRIPTURES


Many times the Bible uses symbolic language in order to teach. Often spiritual truth can be conveyed
more realistically by the employment of symbols, which bring a picture to the human mind. Thus, there are a
number of symbols used throughout the Scripture for this purpose. We list those which are most apparent.

A. A Mirror.
"For if any one is a hearer of the word and not a doer, he is like a man who looks at his natural face in a
mirror...' (Jas. 1:23-25 NASB). This illustrates the revealing power of the Word.

B. A Critic.
'For the word of God ... is a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart' (Heb. 4:12). 'The Greek of
Heb. 4:12 reads,'The Word of God is ... a critic of the thoughts and intents of the heart.'

C. Seed.
'Being born again, not of corruptible seed, but incorruptible, by the word of God, which liveth and abideth
forever' (1 Pt. 1:23). (See also: Lk. 8:5-15, note especially v.11, 'The seed is the word of God'; Is. 55:10,11;
Jas. 1:18.) This symbol suggests the generative power of the Word. It is a life-giving Word.

17
D. Laver and Water.
"That he might sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the word ... " (Eph. 5:26). 'Unto him
that loved us, and washed us from our sins in his own blood" (Rev. 1:5b). (Also: Ps. 119:9; Jn. 15:3.) The
laver stood between the worshiper and the tabernacle, providing a means of cleansing. The same Word that
reveals one's defilement. also provides a means of cleansing.

E. A Lamp and Light.


"Thy word is a lamp unto my feet, and a light unto my path" (Ps. 119:105). (See also v.130.) "For the
commandment is a lamp; and the law is light.." (Prv. 6:23). These symbols speak of the illuminating, guiding
influence of the Word in a darkened world. The Word is that'... more sure word of prophecy; whereunto ye
do well that ye take heed, as unto a light that shineth in a dark place" (2 Pt. 1:19).

F. A Fire.
'Is not my word like as a fire? saith the Lord . . . ." (Jer. 23:29); 'Then I said, I will not make mention of
him, nor speak any more in his name. But his word was in mine heart as a burning fire shut up in my bones,
and I was weary with forbearing, and I could not stay" (Jer. 20:9). As the word "fire" is used here it seems to
suggest a consuming impulse and energy. 'My heart was hot within me, while I was musing the fire burned:
then spake I with my tongue" (Ps. 39:3).

G. A Hammer.
'Is not my word ... like a hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces?' (Jer. 23:29). This figure suggests the
power of the Word, constantly applied, that will eventually break the heart that is as hard as a rock. (H. A
Sword.)
"And take ... the sword of the Spirit, which is the word of God . . . (Eph. 6:17). 'For the word of God is
quick and powerful, and sharper than any two-edged sword..... (Heb. 4:12). This is the believer's one
offensive weapon in his contest with the 'principalities' and 'powers' and 'rulers' of the darkness of this world
... [and] 'spiritual wickedness in high places' (Eph. 6:12).

I. Food.
"I have esteemed the words of his mouth more than my necessary food' (Jb. 23:12b).
1. Milk ... 'As newborn babes, desire the sincere milk of the word, that ye may grow thereby. . ' (1 Pt.
2:2). (See 1 Cor. 3:1,2).
2. Bread. .. 'Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of
God' (Mt. 4:4).
3. Meat. .. For when for the time ye ought to be teachers, ye have need that one teach you again which be
the first principles of the oracles of God; and are become such as have need of milk, and not of strong meat.
For every one that useth milk is unskillful in the word of righteousness: for he is a babe. But strong meat
belongeth to them that are of full age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to discern
both good and evil (Heb. 5:12-14).
4. Honey. 'How sweet are thy words unto my taste! yea, sweeter than honey to my mouth!" (Ps.
119:103).

VIII. THE HOLY SPIRIT AND THE SCRIPTURES


Inspiration accounts for inerrancy, and inerrancy proves inspiration. This miracle of infallible inspiration
is said to be the ministry of the Holy Spirit. This might well be the very greatest ministry in which the Spirit

18
is engaged. All Spirit-filled believers have known, to some degree, the miracle of Divine inspiration by the
Holy Spirit, but never to the extent experienced by the writers of Scripture.
The Pentecostal Movement has been accused of being an experience centered movement, and indeed it is!
But it is also a Bible-centered movement. It is beautiful to see how the Holy Spirit and the written Word are
always in perfect agreement. This must be so, because the Word is the result of the inspiration of the Spirit.
The following list of references, where the Holy Spirit and the Word are mentioned together, illustrate the
importance of recognizing the ministry of both the Spirit and the Word, and demonstrate the harmony
between the Word and the Spirit:
2 Samuel 23:2 The SPIRIT of the Lord spoke by me and His WORD was in my tongue.
Proverbs 1:23 I will pour out my SPIRIT unto you, I will make known my WORDS unto you.
Isaiah 40:7,8 The grass withereth, the flower fadeth: because the SPIRIT of the Lord bloweth upon it
... The grass withereth, the flower fadeth: but the WORD of our God shall stand forever.
Isaiah 59:21 My SPIRIT that is upon thee, and my WORDS which I have put in the mouth, shall not
depart out of thy mouth.
Zechariah 4:6 This is the WORD of the Lord ... not by might, nor by power, but by My SPIRIT saith
the Lord.
Matthew 22:29 Ye do err, not knowing the SCRIPTURES, nor the POWER of God.
Mark 16:20 Confirming the WORD with SIGNS following.
Luke 12:12 The HOLY GHOST shall teach you in the same hour what ye ought to SAY.
John 3:34 He ... speaketh the WORDS of God: for God giveth not the SPIRIT by measure unto Him.
John 6:63 It is the SPIRIT that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing: the WORDS that I speak, . .
they are SPIRIT, and they are life.
John 14:26 The HOLY GHOST,. . . shall ... bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have
SAID unto you.
Acts 1:16 SCRIPTURE must needs have been fulfilled, which the HOLY GHOST by the mouth of
David spake.
Acts 4:31 They were all filled with the HOLY GHOST, and they spake the WORD of God with
boldness.
Acts 6:10 They were not able to resist the wisdom and the SPIRIT by which he SPAKE.
Acts 10:44 While Peter yet spake these WORDS, the HOLY GHOST fell on them.
Acts 10:37,38 The WORD ... which was published throughout all Judea ... how God anointed Jesus of
Nazareth with the HOLY GHOST ...
Acts 11:15 As I began to SPEAK, the HOLY GHOST fell on them. Acts 11:16 Then remembered I
the WORD of the Lord ... ye shall be baptized with the HOLY GHOST.
Acts 13:4,5 Being sent forth by the HOLY GHOST... they preached the WORD of God.
Acts 15:7,8 That the Gentiles... should hear the WORD... giving them the HOLY GHOST.
Acts 16:6 They ... were forbidden of the HOLY GHOST to preach the WORD in Asia.
Acts 18:25 Being fervent in the SPIRIT, he SPAKE and TAUGHT diligently...
Acts 28:25 Paul had spoken one WORD, Well spake the HOLY GHOST by Isaiah ...
Romans 15:18,19 To make the Gentiles obedient by WORD and deed through mighty signs and
wonders by the power of the SPIRIT of God.
1 Corinthians 2:13 We speak the WORDS which the HOLY GHOST teacheth.
I Corinthians 12:8 For to one is given by the SPIRIT the WORD of wisdom.
1 Corinthians 12:8 To another the WORD of knowledge, by the same SPIRIT.

19
2 Corinthians 6:7 By the WORD of truth, by the POWER of God.
Ephesians 1:13 After that ye heard the WORD of truth ... ye were sealed with that HOLY SPIRIT of
promise.
Ephesians 6:17 The sword of the SPIRIT, which is the WORD of God.
1 Thessalonians 1:5 Our Gospel came not unto you in WORD only, but also in power, and in the
HOLY GHOST.
1 Thessalonians 1:6 Received the WORD in much affliction, with joy in the HOLY GHOST.
1 Timothy 4:12 Be thou an example of the believers in WORD ... in SPIRIT...
Hebrew 2:3,4 First began to be SPOKEN ... God bearing witness with ... gifts of the HOLY GHOST.
Hebrews 6:4,5 Partakers of the HOLY GHOST, and have tasted the good WORD of God.
1 Peter 1:12 That have preached the GOSPEL unto you with the HOLY GHOST.
2 Peter 1:21 The prophecy came not ... by the will of man: but holy men of God SPAKE as they were
moved by the HOLY GHOST.
I John 5:7 There are three that bear record in heaven, the Father, the WORD, and the HOLY GHOST.

If any people should be people of the Word of God, it should be those who believe in the Pentecostal
Baptism with the Holy Spirit. They have an inspirational ministry. They believe in prophecy, in speaking
with other tongues with interpretation, in inspirational revelations. How can one tell if these come from God
or not? Just because one claims to have a revelation from the Lord does not mean it should be accepted as if
it was from God. There needs to be a norm, a final court of appeal, by which all manifestations of the gifts of
the Spirit can be judged. In fact, the Scripture admonishes the judging of all prophecy, which Paul recognizes
as perhaps the greatest of the gifts. 'Let the prophets speak two or three, and let the other judge' (1 Cor.
14:29). "In the law and to the testimony: if they speak not according to this word, it is because there is no
light in them" (Is. 8:20). There is such a 'court of appeal' to which one can come. It is the written Word,
which the Holy Spirit inspired. Peter calls it 'a more sure word of prophecy; whereunto ye do well that ye
take heed, as a light that shineth in a dark place' (2 Pt. 1:19). Those who minister, in any capacity whatever,
are never so fully 'in the Spirit' as when they are doing so in full accord with the clearly revealed teaching of
the Bible, the Word of God. 'He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith unto the churches,' is an
admonition which is given seven (7) times in the book of Revelation (2:7,11,17,29; 3:6,13,22) and each time
it follows a written epistle from the Lord Jesus Christ Himself

IX. HOW THE SCRIPTURES CAME TO US


The story of how our Bible came to us, in the form with which we are familiar, is a long and fascinating
one. It begins with the original manuscripts, or as they are sometimes called, 'autographs.' These original
writings were penned by men of old who were moved upon by the Holy Spirit. (2 Tim. 3:16; 2 Pt. 1:20,21).
For years, skeptics claimed that Moses could not have written the first part of the Bible because writing
was unknown at that time (1500 B.C.). The science of archaeology has since proven that writing was known
thousands of years before the time of Moses. The Sumerians were adept at writing in about 4000 B.C., and
the Egyptians and Babylonians almost as far back in history.

A. Ancient Writing Materials.


1. Stone. Many famous inscriptions have been found in Egypt and Babylon inscribed on stone. God gave
Moses the Ten Commandments written on tables of stone (Ex. 31:18; 34:1,28). Two other examples are the
Moabite Stone (850 B.C.), and the Siloam Inscription found in Hezekiah's tunnel by the Pool of Siloam (700
B.C.).

20
2. Clay. The predominate writing material in Assyria and Babylonia was clay, formed into small tablets
and impressed with wedge-shaped symbols called cuneiform writing, and then baked in an oven or dried in
the sun. Thousands of these have been uncovered by the spade of the archaeologists.
3. Wood. Wooden tablets were used quite extensively by the ancients for writing purposes. For many
centuries, these were the common writing surface in Greece. Some believe that this type of writing material
is referred to in Isaiah 30:8 and Habakkuk 2:2.
4. Leather. The Jewish Talmud specifically required that the Scriptures should be copied on the skins of
animals, on leather. It is most certain, then, that the Old Testament was written on leather. Rolls were made
by sewing skins together that were from a few feet to 100 or more feet long. The text was written in columns
perpendicular to the roll. The rolls, 18-27 inches high, were rolled on one or two sticks.
5. Papyrus. It is almost certain that the New Testament was written on papyrus, inasmuch as it was the
most important writing material at that time.
Papyrus is made by shaving thin sections of the papyrus reed into strips, soaking them in several baths of
water, and then overlapping them to form sheets. One layer of the strips was laid cross ways to the first, then
these were put in a press that they might adhere to each other. The sheets were made 6-15 inches high and 3-
9 inches wide. Rolls of any length were made by pasting sheets together. These usually averaged about 30
feet long, although one has been found which is 144 feet in length
6. Vellum or parchment. Vellum came into prominence through the efforts of King Eurnenes H of
Perganumun (197-158 B.C.). He endeavored to build up his library; but the King of Egypt cut off his supply
of papyrus, so it was necessary for him to secure some new type of writing material. This he did by
perfecting a new process for the treatment of skins. The result is known as vellum or parchment. Though the
terms are used interchangeably now, originally vellum was made from the skins of calves and antelopes,
while parchment was from the skin of sheep and goats. From these is secured a fine quality leather specially
and carefully prepared for writing on both sides. This was used several hundred years before Christ, and
about the fourth century A.D. it supplanted papyrus. Almost all the known manuscripts are on vellum.

B. A Codex.
A codex is a manuscript in book form, rather than a roll. About the first or second centuries A.D. the
sheets of writing material were put together in a book form instead of joining them side by side to make a roll.
The codex was easier to carry and made it possible to have much more scripture in one place.

C. Writing Instruments.
Black ink for writing was made from soot or lampblack and gum, diluted with water. The Essenes, who
wrote the Dead Sea Scrolls, used burned lamb bones and oil. It is remarkable how well the writing has been
preserved to this day. The writing instruments were a chisel for use on stone, and a stylus made of metal or
hard wood for use on the clay tablets. For use on the papyrus or vellum, pens were devised. These were
made from the hollow stalks of coarse grass or reeds. The dry reed was cut diagonally with a knife and
shaved thin on the point, which was then split. In order to keep these in good condition, scribes carried a
knife with them. Thus, the derivation of our word "penknife."
It must be understood that, as far as we know, none of the original manuscripts are in existence. Some
may yet be discovered, but it is doubtful. No material biblical object has yet been found.

D. Languages Used.
The Bible was originally written in three languages: Hebrew, Aramaic, and Greek. These languages are
still spoken in some parts of the world today. Hebrew is the official language of the State of Israel.
Aramaic is spoken by a few Christians in the environs of Syria. Greek, though quite different from New
Testament Greek, is spoken by millions of people today.

21
1. Hebrew. Almost all the thirty-nine (39) books of the Old Testament were written in Hebrew. The
block-like letters were written in capitals, without vowels, without spaces between words sentences or
paragraphs, and without punctuation. Vowel points were added later (between 500 A.D. and 600 A.D.) by the
Masoretic scholars. Hebrew is known as one of the Semitic languages.
2. Aramaic. A kindred language to Hebrew, Aramaic became the common language of Palestine after the
Babylonian captivity (c. 500 B.C.). Some portions of the Old Testament were written in this language: one
word as a place-name in Genesis 31:47; one verse in Jeremiah 10:11; about six chapters in the book of Daniel
(2:4b-7:28); and several chapters in Ezra (4:8-6:18; 7:12-26).
Aramaic continued to be the vernacular of Palestine for several centuries, so we have some Aramaic
words preserved for us in the New Testament: Talitha cumi ("little girl, get up") in Mark 5:41; Ephphatha
("be opened") in Mark 7:34; Eli eli, lama sabachthani ("My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?") in
Matthew 27:46. Jesus habitually addressed God as Abba (Aramaic for "father"). Note the influence of this in
Romans 8:15 and Galatians 4:6. Another common Aramaic phrase of early Christians was: Maranatha,
which means "Our Lord comes" (1 Car. 16:22).
3. Greek. Though the spoken language of Jesus was Aramaic, the New Testament was written in Greek -
Koine Greek. The hand of God can be seen in this, because Greek was the universal language of the first
century, and this made possible the spread of the Gospel throughout the then-known world.

E. Manuscripts.
1. Definitions.
The word 'manuscript' , as it is used today, is restricted to those copies of the Bible which were made in
the same language in which it was originally written. At the time the Bible came to be printed (1455 A.D.),
there were over 2,000 manuscripts in possession of certain scholars. Each is by no means complete. Some
contain only small portions of the original text, but put together a full text can be secured. At present, there
are some 4,500 manuscripts of the New Testament.
This number is significant when it is considered that scholars are willing to accept ten or twenty
manuscripts of classical writings to consider a work genuine. Virgil, for instance, lived and wrote about the
time of Christ. No original of his work is in existence. In fact, the earliest copy of his work is dated 300
years after his death. Yet if ten or twenty manuscripts are found to agree, scholars will accept the work as
genuine. Contrast ten or twenty with thousands of manuscripts of the Bible. The manuscripts, of course,
were made by hand.

2. Classifications.
They are divided into two classes:
a) Uncials (from Latin uncia - inch). These are so called because they were written in large capital
letters on fine vellum. These are the older manuscripts.
b) Cursives. Later came the cursive manuscripts, so called from being written in a 'cursive' or running
hand. These date from the tenth to the fifteenth centuries A.D. Of the 4,500 manuscripts extant, about 300 are
uncials and the remainder cursives. There probably would have been a great many more, had it not been for
Diocletian's order to destroy these in 302 A.D. Of the 300 uncials in existence today, about 200 of them are
manuscripts copied on vellum, which date from the fourth to the ninth centuries. In addition to these there are
about seventy papyri documents which date from the second to the fourth century. Broken pieces of pottery,
known as "ostraca,' were often used in olden days for writing material, and about thirty of these have been
found on which portions of Scripture were written. These papyri and ostraca have only recently come to
light, and serve to add considerably to our knowledge of the New Testament text.

3. Sinaitic Manuscript - Codex Aleph.

22
One of the earliest of the uncial manuscripts (340 A.D.), the Sinaitic was discovered in 1844 by Dr.
Constantine Tischendorf, a German Biblical professor and scholar, at the monastery of St. Catherine at Mt.
Sinai. Written in Greek, it contains a part of the Septuagint translation of the Old Testament into Greek, and
all of the New Testament, plus about half of the Apocrypha; also the Epistle of Barnabas and much of the
Shepherd of Hermas. It contains 364 1/4 leaves of excellent vellum, 13 ½ inches wide and 14 7/8 inches
high. Each page has four columns about 2 ½ inches wide, except the Poetical Books where there are two
wider columns. Each column has forty-eight (48) lines.
Dr. Tischendorf discovered the pages of the manuscript at the monastery where the monks were using
them to light their fires. He rescued forty-three leaves of the vellum; but it was not until fifteen years later
that he was able to procure the remaining pages, with the help of the Czar of Russia, in return for some gifts
to the monastery at Sinai. In 1869, the work was deposited in the Imperial Library at St. Petersburg (now
Leningrad). In 1933, the Union of the Socialist Soviet Republic (USSR) sold it to the British Museum for
100,000 English pounds (about $500,000). There it resides today. A formerly unknown room was discovered
in the monastery of St. Catherine in 1975, and thirteen more pages of Sinaiticus were found in it. Along with
the Vaticarms, the Sinaitic is considered to be one of the two most important manuscripts in existence. It is
the only one which contains the complete New Testament.

4. Vaticanus Manuscript - Codex B.


This famous uncial is dated from the fourth century (350, possibly 325 A.D.). It is in Greek, and contains:
the Septuagint translation of the Old Testament, the Apocrypha, (with the exceptions of the books of
Maccabees and the Prayer of Manasses), and the New Testament. Genesis 1:1-46:28; 2 Kings 2:5-7, 10-13;
and Psalms 106:27-136:6 are missing from the Old Testament. Mark 16:9-20; John 7:53-8:11 and Hebrews
9:14 to the end of the New Testament, including the Pastoral Epistles, (1 and 2 Timothy, Titus and Philemon)
and Revelation, (but not the General Epistles: James, 1 and 2 Peter, 1, 2, and 3 John and Jude), are missing
from the New Testament.
As the name suggests, this manuscript is now in the Vatican Library in Rome where it was first
catalogued in 1481. It contains 759 leaves, 617 of the Old Testament and 142 of the New. The pages are 10
inches wide and 10 ½ inches high. Each page contains three columns of forty-two (42) lines, except the
Poetical Books which have two columns. It is considered to have the most exact copy of the New Testament
known. It is interesting to note that it does not contain Mark 16:9-20, but the scribe left more than a column
blank at this place; as though he knew of these verses, but was undecided whether to include them or not.

5. Alexandrian Manuscript - Codex A.


This, the last of the three greatest uncials being considered here, dates back to the fifth century (around
450 A.D.). While it is of both the Old and New Testament, some parts are missing. From the Old Testament:
Genesis 14:14-17; 15:1-5, 16-19; 16:6-9; 1 Kings 12:18-14:9; and Psalms 49:19-79:10. From the New
Testament: Matthew 1:1-25:6; John 6:50-8:52; 2 Corinthians 4:13-12:6.
This manuscript is comprised of 773 leaves, 639 of the Old Testament and 134 of the New. The size is
101/4 inches wide and 123/4 inches high. Each page has two columns of fifty (50) or fifty-one (51) lines. It
was probably written in Alexandria, Egypt. It is said to have been presented to the Patriarch of Alexandria
and has won for itself the name "Codex Alexandrinus." It is now in the National Library of the British
Museum in London, England. It does not quite measure up to the high standard of the Vatican and the
Sinaitic Manuscripts.
Only two more of these old uncials manuscripts will be mentioned here. There are many others - mostly
smaller portions of the Old or New Testament. However small these portions may be, each adds its testimony
to the accuracy of the present Scriptures.

23
6. Ephraem Manuscript - Codex C.
This contains portions of both Old and New Testaments. There are now only sixty-four (64) leaves of the
Old Testament and 145 leaves of the New Testament. The pages are 9 ½ 121/4 inches. Each page has one
wide column of 40-46 (usually 41) lines. It is thought to have been written in Egypt, probably Alexandria,
and is dated back to the fifth century (around 450 A.D.).
This manuscript is what is called palimpset, meaning 'rubbed out.' Vellum parchment was scarce and
expensive, so sometimes writings were rubbed out and other writing was inscribed over, or as in this case,
between the original lines. In the twelfth century the original writings of this manuscript were partially erased
and the sermons of the Syric Father Ephraem (299-378) were written between the lines. For this reason it is
called the 'Ephraem Manuscript.'
Near the end of the seventeenth century, a student of the library thought he saw traces of an older writing
under the sermons of Ephraem. In 1834, by means of a strong chemical solution, the original writings of the
Greek Bible were partially restored. In 1840, Tischendorf brought out the underlying text more fully and was
the first to read it successfully. In 1843-45 he edited and published it.

7. Beza Manuscript Codex D.


This dates from the sixth century (around 550 A.D.). With some omissions, it contains the Gospels, 3
John 11-15 and the Acts. It is located in the library at Cambridge University, England. It is made up of 406
leaves, each 8 x 10 inches, with one column of thirty-three (33) lines to a page. This is the oldest known
manuscript to be written in two languages. The left hand page is in Greek, while the corresponding text in
Latin is on the right side opposite. In 1562, it was found in the monastery of St. Irenaeus at Lyons, France, by
Theodore Beza, the great French Biblical scholar who went to Switzerland and became assistant to, and
successor of, John Calvin, the famous Protestant reformer in Geneva. In 1581, Beza gave the manuscript to
Cambridge University.

8. Lectionaries.
One further word needs to be added in order to make the story of the New Testament manuscripts
complete. Included in the manuscripts is a group of material known as the 'lectionaries.' The term 'lection'
refers to a selected passage of Scripture designed to be read in public services. Thus a lectionary is a
manuscript especially arranged and copied for this purpose. Some were uncials and some cursives. Most of
them are from the Gospels, but some are from Acts and the Epistles. Studies have shown that these were
copied more carefully than an ordinary manuscript; therefore, they provide excellent copies for comparisons.
More than 1,800 lectionaries have been enumerated.

F. The Versions.
After the manuscripts, the next most important form of the Scriptures, which bears its ancient witness, is
the versions. A version is a translation from the original language of a manuscript into another language.
There are many, many versions; but only a few will be considered as examples spread over the years to the
present time.

1. The Septuagint.
This is perhaps the most important of the versions because of its early date and its influence on other
translations. The Septuagint Version is a translation of the Hebrew Old Testament into Greek. It was begun
about 200 B.C. and finished around 180 B.C. It is probably the oldest attempt to reproduce a book of any
language into another language. This is the oldest scriptural document which we have.
'Septuagint' means 'seventy.' The abbreviation of this version is LXX. It is sometimes called the
"Alexandrian Version,' because it was translated in the city of Alexandria in Egypt. This notable work is

24
called the "Septuagint" because of an old legend that seventy-two scholars came from Palestine (six from each
of the twelve tribes of Israel) to Alexandria, where they are said to have completed the work in seventy-two
days. According to the story, which is certainly pure fiction, the scholars were isolated from each other,
placed one or two to a cell, and when their translations were compared they were identical!
It is now believed that the translation was done by Alexandrian Jews rather than Palestinian. The work
was done in Alexandria. The Pentateuch represents the best of the translation. Other portions of the Old
Testament are excellent, but some are more of an interpretation or commentary. In addition to the thirty-nine
(39) books of the Old Testament, it contains all, or part, of the fourteen (14) books known as the Apocrypha.
The Septuagint was commonly used in New Testament times and has been of great use in subsequent
translations.

2. The Samaritan Pentateuch.


The Samaritan race came into being after the Assyrians conquered the Northern Kingdom of Israel, in 721
B.C., and carried most of the ten tribes into captivity. Sargon, king of the Assyrians, sent many idolatrous
people from his eastern provinces into Israel (2 Kgs. 17:5,6,24). These inter-married with the Israelites who
were still in the land, thus forming the Samaritan race, a mixture of Israelites and heathen. They set up a rival
worship to the Jews, building a temple on Mt. Gerizim. The Samaritans accept only the Pentateuch.
The Samaritan Pentateuch is a Hebrew Pentateuch written in Samaritan letters. It is not a translation, but
a form of the Hebrew text itself. The date for its writing is about 430 B.C. Second Kings 17:26-28 tells of a
priest, from among the Jews taken captive in Assyria, being sent back to Samaria to teach the people. It is
believed he took with him a copy of the Hebrew Pentateuch and that the Samaritan Pentateuch was made
from this.
In the work, there are said to be about 6,000 variations from the Hebrew text. Most of these are of minor
importance, except where the Samaritans deliberately made alterations to suit their particular beliefs. There
are probably around 100 copies of this version in different places in Europe and America. The oldest known
dated manuscript (1232) is in the New York Public Library, There is a Samaritan roll at Nablus (ancient
Shechem) in Israel, which appears to be very old.
As the message of Christianity spread beyond Palestine, the need for translations of the Scriptures into the
languages of those being evangelized became apparent. Thus we have many versions, of which only a few
will be dealt with. Compared to the manuscripts, they are of secondary value, but they do help some in the
understanding of the original text.

3. Syriac Version.
The Syriac language was the chief language spoken in the regions of Syria and Mesopotamia. It is almost
identical with Aramaic.
a) The Old Syriac. This has only been known to exist for a little over 100 years. There are two chief
manuscripts of this work:
(1) The Curetan Syriac is a fifth century copy of the Gospels consisting of eighty (80) leaves. It is
named after Dr. Curetan of the British Museum who edited it.
(2) The Sinaitic Syriac was discovered at St. Catherine's Monastery at Mt. Sinai. It is a palimpset and
only about three-fourths of it is decipherable. The date assigned is the fourth or the beginning of the fifth
century A.D.
b) The Peshitta. The word 'peshitta' means 'simple,' or "common." Thus it has been known as the Syric
Vulgate, or Authorized Version of the Church of the East. It has been in use since the fifth century A.D. It
contains all of the New Testament, with the exceptions of 2 Peter, 2 and 3 John, Jude and Revelation. There
are about 250 manuscripts in existence. It has been a valuable aid to textual criticism and has had a wide
circulation, even in China. There is an English translation done by George Lamsa.

25
4. The Latin versions.
It is of interest to us to note that the first English Bible was made from the Latin.
a) The Old Latin. This goes back to a very early date, possibly as far as 150 A.D. There are about
twenty copies in existence. It is of primary importance as a witness to the genuineness of the Bible text,
because of its antiquity and its faithfulness to the text which it translates.
b) The Latin Vulgate. The 'vulgate' means 'common," or "current." This is the great version of the
Bible in the Latin language. Because of the many mistakes of the copyists of the Old Latin Version,
Damascus, bishop of Rome, secured the services of Jerome to produce a revision as an authoritative standard
for the Latin-speaking churches. This he did in Bethlehem: the New Testament (382-383 A.D.) and the Old
Testament (390-405 A.D.).
It is scarcely possible to over-estimate the influence of Jerome's Vulgate on our Bible. For more than a
thousand years every translation of the Scriptures in Western Europe was based on this work. Eventually the
Vulgate was made the official Bible of the Roman Catholic Church and is such to this day. Actually, the
Roman Catholic Bible in English is a translation of a translation; and is not, as the Protestant Bible, a
translation from the original Greek language. After the invention of printing in 1450, the Vulgate was the
first book ever printed from moveable type (1455).

G. Bible Criticisms
1. Higher criticism.
There are two types of Biblical Criticism which come under the topic of Bible Introduction. The first of
these has often been called "Higher Criticism" or"Historical Criticism." This has to do with the examination
of the various books of the Bible from the standpoint of their history. For instance it deals with age,
authorship, genuineness and canonical authority. It traces their origin, preservation and integrity. It shows
their content and general character and value. It is a discipline which has rendered valuable service to the
ascertaining of a genuine canon of Scripture. Sometimes the expression 'Higher Criticism,' has been
considered extremely detrimental to a proper and reverent attitude toward the Holy Scriptures. This is true
where the scholar has lost sight of the inspiration of the Word and has inserted his own attitude of skepticism
and unbelief.

2. Lower criticism.
The second type of criticism has been referred to as 'Lower Criticism.' This has for its object the
ascertaining of the exact words of the original texts of the Bible. Its method is to gather together and compare
ancient manuscripts, ancient versions, and ancient quotations of Scripture and determine the true reading of
every doubtful passage.

H. Evidences for Biblical Text


The sincere Biblical critic uses three main sources of evidence for the determining of the true wording -
that closest to the original manuscripts. Two of these have been referred to previously: the manuscripts and
the versions. A third valuable source needs to be considered. It is that of the writings of the Early Church
Fathers.

1. The Church Fathers.


These men were called 'fathers', which is synonymous to 'teachers'. These were the great leaders,
theologians, teachers and scholars of the first few centuries after Christ. These men were dedicated Christians
who wrote sermons, commentaries, and harmonies. They earnestly contended for the Faith against the
inroads of paganism.

26
The following are some of the better known names from a group that is said to number about 200 men
during the first seven centuries:
· For the period 96-150 A.D.: Clement of Rome, Hermas, Ignatius, Polycarp.
· For the period 150-325 A.D.: Justin Martyr, Irenaeus, Clement of Alexandria, Origen, Tertulian, Cyprian,
Tatian.
· For the period 325 A.D. on: Eusebius, Athanasius, Jerome, Augustine.

These men quoted freely from the Bible, not only citing all twenty seven books of the New Testament,
but virtually every verse in those twenty-seven books. Geisler and Nix assert: "Five Fathers alone, from
Irenaeus to Eusebius, possess almost 36,000 quotations from the New Testament".
Some years ago Sir David Dalrymple was at a dinner with a group of scholars, when the question was
asked, if the whole New Testament were destroyed in the fourth century, would it be possible for it to be put
together from the writings of the Church Fathers of the third and second centuries? Two months later he said
to one of the company, 'The question aroused my curiosity, and having all existing works of the Fathers from
the second and third centuries, I commenced to search. Up to this time I have found all the New Testament
except eleven verses.'
The testimony of the writings of the Church Fathers to the genuiness of the text is of so great importance,
first, because of their devotion to God and His Word, they were careful in their copying of the Scriptures.
And, secondly, because they lived so close to the apostolic days. It is probable that they had access to
manuscripts not in existence today. There is the possibility some had access to the very originals.

2. The Dead Sea Scrolls.


First discovered in March of 1947, by a young Bedouin goat-herder in a cave near the northern end of the
Dead Sea, the Dead Sea Scrolls, about 350 rolls in all, have been considered one of the greatest archaeological
finds of the twentieth century. Written by the Essenes, between the first century before and the first century
after Christ, the Scriptural portions of these scrolls give us manuscripts hundreds of years older than any
other. Portions of every book of the Old Testament, with the exception of Esther, have been found. Of
especial interest are the scrolls of the book of Isaiah, because one of the two which has been found gives the
entire book of this great prophet. Here is a Hebrew manuscript of Isaiah 1,000 years older than any other that
has come to light. In a remarkable way, the Scrolls confirm the accuracy of the Masoretic text of the Old
Testament.

3. The Papyri.
Of great interest to Bible scholars are a number of quite recent discoveries (1931) of papyri found in
graves in Egypt. These have been often called the most important gain for New Testament text-criticism
since Tischendorf announced the discovery of the Sinaitic Codes. These papyri have been acquired by a
noted manuscript collector, A. Chester Beatty. Others are in the possession of the University of Michigan and
private individuals. They contain parts of the Old Testament in Greek: considerable portions of Genesis,
Numbers and Deuteronomy, and parts of Esther, Ezekiel and Daniel. Three manuscripts in the group are of
New Testament books: portions of thirty leaves of the Gospels and Acts, eighty-six leaves of the Pauline
Epistles and ten leaves out of the middle section of the book of Revelation. This material is of greatest
importance, for it dates from the third century or earlier. The text is of such high quality that it ranks with the
Vatican and Smaitic Codices.
The John Rylands Fragment is a small piece of papyrus only 3 ½ by 2 ½ inches in size. Though it is so
small, it is recognized to be the oldest manuscript of any part of the New Testament. It is written on both
sides and contains a portion of the Gospel of John: 18:31-33,37,38. It was obtained in 1920.
Papyrus Bodmer II - in 1956, Victor Martin, a professor of classical philology at the University of

27
Geneva, published a papyrus codex of the Gospel of John. This included chapters 1:1 through 14:26. It is
dated 200 A.D. and is probably the oldest book of the New Testament in substantial condition.

4. Encouraging statements.
a) The doctrines of Scripture. Whatever variant readings the textual critics have discovered, it is a
recognized fact that none of these in any way alter any doctrine of the Christian faith.
b) Purity of the text. "Wescott and Hart, Ezra Abbot, Philip Schaff, and A.T. Robertson have carefully
evaluated the evidence and have concluded that the New Testament text is over 99 percent pure.

X. THE SCRIPTURES IN ENGLISH


A. Earliest Beginnings.
The beginnings of the English Bible go back to the seventh century, when an uneducated laborer by the
name of Caedmon arranged stories from the Bible in verse form. In the next century, the first actual
translation into English was done by Aldhelm, who translated the Psalms in 705 A.D. The Venerable Bede,
early English historian, finished translating the Gospel of John with virtually his last breath (735). Toward
the close of the ninth century, King Alfred, a godly king, translated the Ten Commandments, other laws of the
Old Testament, the Psalms and the Gospels, though these were unfinished at his death. About 1000 A.D.,
Aelfric, Archbishop of Canterbury, translated the Gospels, the first seven books of the Old Testament, Esther,
Job and a part of Kings.

B. John Wycliffe.
John Wycliffe, Oxford teacher and scholar, is one of the really important names in the story of the Bible
becoming available in the English language. With the help of some of his students, he translated the entire
Bible into English from the Latin Vulgate. The work was finished in 1382, the first translation of the entire
Bible into English. A revision of this work, to harmonize the different styles of those who did the translating,
was done by John Purvey who thoroughly corrected and revised Wycliffe's translation in 1388. This revised
edition held sway until the sixteenth century.

C. William Tyndale.
William Tyndale has been called "the true father of the English Bible." In 1516, the monk-scholar
Erasmus published the first printed New Testament in Greek. Tyndale sought to translate this into English,
but he found so much opposition from the Roman Catholic Church that he had to flee to Hamburg, Germany.
Here he finished the translation and sought to have it printed in Cologne. By this time Tyndale had become
associated with Martin Luther and the Reformation. Thus, the enemies of the Reformation became Tyndale's
enemies also. He had to flee from Cologne with the sheets of his partially printed New Testament.
It should be noted that in 1450 Johann Gutenberg, of Mainz, Germany, invented the printing press, though
it had been known for many centuries in China. In 1454, he invented printing from moveable type and the
first book from his press was the Latin Vulgate (1455), known as the "Mazarin Bible" because copies of it
were found in the library of Cardinal Mazarin at Paris.
Tyndale found a more friendly environment at Worms, Germany, where the printing of his translation of
the New Testament was completed in 1525. Early the next year, copies of his translation were smuggled into
England and bought up with enthusiasm. However, the Romish authorities condemned the translation as
heresy and copies were bought up and publicly burned. In the meantime, Tyndale continued his work of
translating the Old Testament into English. He finished the Pentateuch in 1530, the book of Jonah in 1531,
and revised Genesis in 1534. Tyndale was betrayed and imprisoned in 1534. After sixteen months in prison,
he was strangled and burned at the stake. His dying words were, "Lord, open the King of England's eyes."

28
The King James, Authorized Version, is practically a fifth revision of Tyndale's work. It can be seen what a
debt is owed to him.

D. Other Sixteenth Century Translations.


1. The Coverdale Bible.
In 1535, the Coverdale Bible was printed. It has the distinction of being the first complete Bible printed
in English. It was the work of Miles Coverdale, a personal friend of Tyndale. It was a translation of a
translation, from the German and Latin. It was the first Bible to have the King of England's approval.

2. Matthew's Bible.
This appeared in 1537. This is the work of Tyndale's friend, John Rogers. It was a combined edition of
both Tyndale and Coverdale. Actually, Matthew's Bible is Tyndale's Bible complete, as far as his translation
went, supplemented by Coverdale's work. It was the first Tyndale revision and forms the basis of all future
revisions: the Great Bible, the Geneva Bible, the Bishop's Bible and the King James Version. It bears the
name 'Matthew's Bible,' because Rogers was afraid that if Tyndale's name were attached to it there might be
greater opposition.

3. The Great Bible.


Published in 1539, it is actually a revision of Matthew's Bible, which was a revision of Tyndale's. The
work was done by Coverdale, a very careful reviser. It was called the 'Great Bible' because of its large size,
13 1/4 by 7 ½ inches. This has been called the first 'Authorized' Bible, because King Henry VIII approved of
it and issued a proclamation that it be read publicly in every church, and that it be placed in every church
throughout the land so that all might have the opportunity to read it. It was chained to the desk of the
churches so that none could steal it; thus, it has been called the "Chained Bible." It seems that Tyndales'
prayer had been answered and the Lord had opened the King of England's eyes.

4. The Geneva Bible.


Published in 1560, this was destined to become the most popular Bible of the century. Called the
"Geneva Bible," because it was printed in Geneva, in small size and legible type with appropriate illustrations
and commentaries, it became the popular Bible of the homes; as the Great Bible had been the popular Bible of
the churches. It was the first entire Bible to be divided into verses. The New Testament had been printed
with the verse divisions by Robert Stevens in 1551. Some attribute the chapter divisions to Cardinal Hugo
(1248), others to Stephen Langton, Archbishop of Canterbury, in 1227. The Geneva Bible was the Bible of
Shakespeare, and of the Pilgrims who came to America.

5. The Bishop's Bible.


Published in 1568, by authority of Bishop Parker and other bishops who felt that the Geneva Bible
undermined their authority, it was never a popular edition, being too cumbersome in size and too stiff, formal
and difficult for the common people to appreciate.

6. The Rheims-Douai Bible.


As a result of the great activity of Bible translation on the part of the Protestant Church, the Roman
Catholics were influenced to produce an English translation of their own. Accordingly, in 1582, an edition of
the New Testament was produced at the English college at Rheims, France. In 1609-10 the Old Testament
was issued at the same college which had moved to Douay, France. The Rheims-Douai thus became the first

29
Roman Catholic edition of the English Bible. It was translated, not from the original languages, but from the
Latin Vulgate.

7. The King James Version.


Published in 1611 A.D., it is better known as the Authorized Version. At a conference, known as the
Hampton Court Conference, which was comprised of religious leaders from various and diverse groups,
called to discuss the question of religious tolerance, a proposal was made to produce a new translation of the
Bible. King James received the suggestion with enthusiasm and laid down the rules that no comments, which
had divided the churches, should be included. About forty-eight (48) Greek and Hebrew scholars were
selected and divided into six working groups: two to meet at Westminster, two at Oxford, and two at
Cambridge. Each group was given certain books to translate, and then the work of each was sent to the other
two groups; so, the translation is indeed the work of all, rather than any individual. Actually, it was a revision
of the Bishop's Bible, which in turn was a revision of Tyndale's work. The Authorized Version is actually the
fifth revision of the Tyndale translation. Begun in 1607, after two years and nine months, it was sent to the
printers and was first presented to the public in 1611, seven years after the convening of the Hampton Court
Conference. It has been the most popular and widely accepted version of the Bible for over 370 years.

E. Recent Translations of the English Bible.


1. English Revised Edition.
As fine a work as it is, and as popular as the King James Version continued to be, it was recognized that
the King James Version had certain weaknesses. The most valuable witnesses to the original autographs, the
Vatican, the Sinaitic, the Alexandrian and the Ephraeum Manuscripts were not available to the King James
translators. Many archaic expressions are found in this translation and some, though not serious, mistakes
were observed.
Accordingly, in February 1870, a motion to consider a revision of the King James was passed by the
Convocation of the Province of Canterbury. Men of unimpeachable scholarship were chosen in England, and
these were joined by the finest men in America. On May 17, 1881 the New Testament was issued, followed
by the Old Testament on May 19,1885. The whole work is known as the English Revised Edition.

2. The American Standard Version.


Published in 1901, it is recognized that an improved textual base, than that available to the translators of
the King James, was used, along with an advanced knowledge of the original languages. Many of the
archaisms of the King James were cleared up. Yet, it was not without criticism. What it cleared up in the
understanding of the Greek, it lost in the beauty of the language. Charles Spurgeon is quoted as saying of it,
"Strong in Greek, weak in English."

3. The Revised Standard Version.


In 1929, the Thomas Nelson and Sons Company had given the expiring copyright to the American
Standard Version to the International Council of Religious Education, which appointed a committee of
scholars to consider the advisability of revising the American Standard. It was agreed to do so, but funds
were hard to get; and it was not until September 30, 1952 that the entire Bible was presented. The purpose of
the revisors was to take advantage of many new manuscripts and papyri which had come to light since the
1901 Version had been published, yet to retain the beauty of the King James language. It has been widely
received, though has not been without its critics, chiefly among conservative scholars.

30
4. The New American Standard Bible.

Published on July 31,1970, it has received the endorsement of many conservatives. It is based on the
American Standard Version of 1901.

5. The New International Version.


This completely new translation has been enthusiastically received. The New Testament was published in
1973 and the complete Bible in 1978. The work was done by scholars from the United States, Great Britain,
Canada, Australia, and New Zealand; thus giving it its international flavor. Scholars from more than thirteen
denominations participated in the work of translation.

6. Many others.
During the past decade or two there has been a flood of new translations, too numerous to mention here.
Some have endeavored to be literal renderings of the originals, while others are definitely paraphrases into
what is considered to be more modern English usage. Still others are in the making and will, no doubt, be
seen in the near future.

Conclusion: Does this flurry of 'experts' to give us the exact language of the original autographs indicate
that we cannot depend upon our present English Bible to declare the true message God would proclaim to
Mankind? Perhaps the following quotation from Sir Frederic Kenyon, director of the British Museum, will
answer the question best: 'It is reassuring at the end to find that the general result of all these discoveries and
all this study is to strengthen the proof of the authenticity of the Scriptures, and our conviction that we have in
our hands, in substantial integrity, the veritable Word of God.

31
Chapter Two
THE DOCTRINE OF GOD
Theology

Introduction: The importance of the study of Theology


I. The knowability of God
A. Incomprehensible
B. But knowable
II. The existence of God
A. The value of argument for God's existence
B. Arguments for God's existence
III. The Nature of God (Theism)
A. God is Spirit
B. God is Perfect
C. God is Personal
D. God is ONE (unity)
E. Erroneous theories about God
IV. The names of God
A. Elohim, (plural, Gn. 1:1), Eloah, (singular)
B. Adonai, (plural); Adon (singular)
C. Jehovah
D. Ha Tsur, The Rock
E. Compound names of Jehovah
F. New Testament names of God
V. The Attributes of God
A. Absolute Attributes
B. Moral Attributes
VI. The works of God
A. Divine purpose
B. Creation
C. Providence
VII. The Trinity of God (the doctrine)
A. Its definition: The Athanasian Creed
B. Its scriptural presentation
VIII. The Persons of the Trinity
A. God the Father (see above)
B. God the Son
C. God the Holy Spirit

32
The Doctrine of God
Theology

INTRODUCTION
"Theology is the study of God and the relations between God and the universe; the study of religious
doctrines and matters of divinity, 2. a specific form or system of this study."
Theology comes from two Greek words: theos meaning "God," and logos meaning "discourse or reason,"
therefore discourse or reasoning about God. Generally speaking, there are three categories of theology:
(1) Natural Theology - the study of God as revealed in the universe and in nature.
(2) Biblical Theology - the study of God as He has revealed Himself to us in the Scriptures.
(3) Systematic Theology - the study of God from nature, from philosophical reasoning and from
Scripture made to fit into a preconceived mold or system.
While the Christian believer bases his knowledge of God primarily upon the Holy Scriptures and upon the
revelation of God through His Son Jesus Christ, he welcomes confirming evidence from the universe and
from nature. Any attempt to study God and Divine truth will of necessity, if it is to be grasped and retained,
take some form and system.
The study of God is of very great importance, for God is man's highest good; He is the source of life and
sustenance, "For in Him we live, and move, and have our being...." (Acts 17:28a). The Apostle Paul, in his
sermon to the Athenians said: "And hath made of one blood all nations of men for to dwell on the face of the
earth ... that they should seek the Lord ... and find Him, though he be not far from every one of us..." (Acts
17:26,27). John Calvin said, "Nearly all the wisdom we possess, that is to say, true and sound wisdom,
consists of two parts: the knowledge of God and of ourselves.112 There is serious doubt that we can really
know ourselves and our purpose in life without some degree of knowledge of God and His Will.
The term "theology" is used in two ways: (1) it may describe the study of all biblical truth or (2) it may
more specifically describe the study of God, His existence, nature, names, attributes and works. In this book
the term "theology" will apply to the second use of the term.

I. THE KNOWABILITY OF GOD

A. Incomprehensible.
God is the Infinite One. In one sense He is incomprehensible; how can finite beings comprehend the
Infinite, Limitless God? Zophar, in the book of Job said, "Canst thou by searching find out God? canst thou
find out the Almighty unto perfection?" Jb. 11:7). Zophar was not an inspired prophet, for some of his
reasoning was proved false; but his words are echoed by Paul in Romans: "O the depth of the riches both of
the wisdom and knowledge of God! how unsearchable are His judgments, and His ways past finding out!"
(Rom. 11:33). (See Is. 40:18,25; Ps. 36:6.) Obviously, we cannot comprehend the fullness of God's Nature,
nor can we know completely all His plans and designs.

B. But knowable.
On the other hand, Scripture affirms the "knowability" of God. "God, who at sundry times and in divers
manners spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in these last days spoken unto us by His Son
. . . who being the brightness of his glory, and the express image of His person. . ." (Heb. 1:1-3). The NIV
renders the latter clauses: "The Son is the radiance of God's glory and the exact representation of His being . .
." (Heb. 1:3, NIV). The Apostle John, in his gospel declares: 'No man has ever seen God, but God the only
Son, who is at the Father's side, has made Him known" Un. 1:18, NIV). While man, unaided, cannot come to
know the Infinite God, it is clear that God has revealed Himself and that He can be known to the extent of His

33
self-revelation. In fact, it is essential for man to know God in order to experience Redemption and to have
eternal life: "And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom
Thou hast sent" (Jn. 17:3). 'And we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us an understanding,
that we may know Him that is true. . . ." (1 Jn. 5:20). During this life, we can and must know God to the
extent essential to salvation, fellowship, service and maturity, but in Heaven's glory we will come to know
God more fully: 'For now we see through a glass darkly; but then face to face: now I know in part; but then
shall I know even as also I am known" (1 Cor. 13:12). (See also 1 Cor. 1:21; Eph. 1:17, Phil. 3:10; Col. 1:10;
Rom. 1:19-23,28; 2 Pt. 1:2,3.)

II. THE EXISTENCE OF GOD

A. The Value of the Argument for God's Existence.


Some people, with good reason, will question the value of arguments for the existence of God. Nowhere
does the Bible argue for God's existence, everywhere the Scriptures assume His existence as an accepted fact.
The first verse of Holy Writ affirms: "In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth" (Gn. 1:1). The
Psalmist, further exclaims: 'The fool hath said in his heart, 'there is no God"' (Ps. 14:1a). The Christian and
all worshipers of God have accepted God's existence as an act of faith. Some theologians, such as Soren
Kierkegaard and Karl Barth reject all general or natural theology and claim that God can be known only as an
act of faith. However, the believer's faith is neither blind nor unreasonable. Faith is a gift of God (Rom.
10:17); however, it is supported by evidences clear to the unbiased mind. The Psalmist states as a comfort for
believers: 'The heavens declare the glory of God; and the firmament showeth His handiwork" (Ps. 19:1). Paul
points out in Romans chapter one, that even those without a scriptural revelation are without excuse for
unbelief:
Because that which may be known of God is manifest in them; for God hath shown it unto them. For
the invisible things of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen, being understood by the things
that are made, even His eternal power and Godhead; so that they are without excuse: because that, when
they knew God, they glorified Him not as God.... (Rom. 1:19-21)

By this, it can be seen that the Bible supports the validity of a natural theology. We must remember,
however, that while a natural theology may point to a Powerful, Wise and Benevolent Creator, it says nothing
to solve the problems of Man's sin, of pain and suffering, and his need of a Redeemer; nor can it affirm with
John the Baptist, "Behold the Lamb of God which taketh away the sin of the world" (Jn. 1:29). Furthermore,
it is important to keep in mind that arguments for the existence of God, such as those supplied by a natural
theology, fall short of absolute demonstration. Finite beings cannot demonstrate the existence of an Infinite
God.
J. 0. Buswell says:
There is no argument known to us which, as an argument, leads to more than a probable (highly
probable) conclusion. For example, most of us believe that the sun will rise tomorrow morning, but if we
were to analyze the evidences, the arguments that lead to such a conclusion, we should be forced to admit
that the arguments, good as they are, are characterized by probability. The theistic arguments are no
exception to the rule that all inductive arguments about what exists are probability arguments. This is as
far as the arguments, qua arguments, claim to go.

The arguments for God's existence that will follow are not a substitute for scriptural revelation of God,
nor can they lead to saving faith. They are a comfort to the believer and they may serve the preacher of the
Gospel to awaken the hearers and obtain for him an attentive hearing. Only the Holy Spirit will supply true
faith in God.

34
B. Arguments for God's Existence.

1. The argument from reason.


The first phase of the argument from reason is that of "cause and effect." All around us there are effects
such as matter and motion. For their explanation there are three alternatives: (1) they exist eternally, (2) they
emerged from nothing, or (3) they were caused. Let us examine these alternatives in order. First, it is not
likely that the universe has existed eternally, for all evidence points to a universe that is running down.
According to the second law of thermodynamics, the sun and the stars are losing energy by a measurable rate;
if they had existed from eternity they already would have been depleted. Radioactive materials are losing
their radiation. Spectrographic studies of the stars show that all bodies are traveling outward from the center,
indicating a beginning. Second, that matter and motion emerged from nothing is a contradiction; "from
nothing, nothing comes." Third, the most reasonable explanation is that matter and motion were created at a
point of time. Most scientists presently date the universe variously, between five and twenty billion years old.
Some posit a series of emergences or an impersonal creator, but considering the existence of intelligences,
and the great complexity of creation, it is most likely that the universe is the work of an Intelligent Creator as
set forth in the Bible. It is not likely that a fountain will rise higher than its source, or that rational beings will
arise from an irrational source.
Another phase of the argument from reason is that man has an innate knowledge of God. This is
evidenced by universal belief in a supreme being of some kind. A tribe can hardly be found without a faith in
a higher being or force. "Man is incurably religious." This does not mean that all men have a full-formed
belief in God. It does seem to indicate that religious belief and the propensity to worship a deity are natural to
Man. Even the atheist who denies God's existence demonstrates that he is confronted with the idea of God,
and must in some way actively put away the concept.

2. The argument from nature.


For almost everything in nature, we find a designed purpose; the universe everywhere displays precise
and orderly movement. "He who planted the ear, shall He not hear? He who formed the eye. shall He not
see? He who instructs the nations, shall He not correct?" (Ps. 94:9,10; NKJB). All things seem to be a part of
the balance of nature. The earth is tilted on its axis in relation to the sun, and thereby provides the seasons
and the best distribution of light and heat during the year. The earth is at an ideal distance from the sun to
avoid searing heat and freezing cold. The chemical composition of the atmosphere is at an ideal balance for
animal and vegetable life. The ratio of land and water on the earth's surface gives proper rainfall and
humidity. Wind and sea currents provide air conditioning and warm coastlines. Blessings like musical sound
for the ears and the beauty of color show a design not needed for mere utility, and speak of a Creator who
designed ears and eyes as receptors. Now, can intelligent beings believe that an impersonal force or process
brought this marvelous universe into being?
An illustration is in order. One of the most common substances is water. Most of the other substances
become more dense with lowered temperature. Water, fortunately, expands and becomes less dense when
frozen. In the form of ice, water floats on top of lakes, rivers and seas. If water, when frozen, became more
dense and sank to the bottom; many rivers, lakes, and seas would never thaw, and much of the earth's surface
would become glacial and unlivable. Did a wise Creator give to water its different characteristics?

3. The argument from history.


The argument from history rests upon the foundation of the Divine providence. Students of history,
unless they are blind or biased, will discover the working of Divine providence. This does not mean that a
wise purpose is visible in all events. It must be taken into account that Man is sinful and rebellious, and to a
degree, a free moral agent. God does not cause every individual event, but God is in control of the stream of
events, carrying out His purposes. He fulfills His inspired prophecies that are recorded in His Word. If one

35
will study the Bible together with history, one will discern a Divine pattern focused upon Christ Jesus, the
Son of God. This focus is not only upon the earthly life of Jesus. God's purpose in Christ is seen in Israel's
history and in their hope of a redeemer (Gn. 12:1-3; Is. 52:10-53:12); in Christ's incarnation, life, death and
resurrection; in the Church's triumph through manifold opposition, and in Israel's indestructibility throughout
the centuries.
Christ's uniqueness is well expressed by Napoleon in a letter to General Bertrand:
Divine effects compel me to believe in a divine cause. Yes, there is a divine cause, a sovereign
reason, an infinite being. That cause is the cause of causes ... There exists an infinite being. compared
with whom you, General, are but an atom; compared with whom I. Napoleon, with all my genius, am
truly nothing, a pure nothing. I perceive Him - God. I see Him, have need of Him, I believe in Him. If
you do not believe in Him, well, so much the worse for you. But, you will, General, yet believe in God. I
can pardon many things, but I have a horror of an atheist and materialist ... The gods, the legislators of
India and of China, of Rome, and of Athens, have nothing which can overawe me ... It is not so with
Christ. Everything in Him astonishes me. His spirit overawes me, and His will confounds me. Between
Him and whoever else in the world, there is no possible term of comparison. He is truly by himself. His
ideas and His sentiments, the truths which He announces, His manner of convincing, are not explained
either by human organization or by the nature of things.
His birth, and the history of His life; the profundity of His doctrine, which grapples with the mightiest
difficulties, the most admirable solution; His Gospel ... His march across the ages and the realms, everything
is for me a prodigy, a mystery insoluble, which plunges me into a reverie from which I cannot escape, a
mystery is there before my eyes, a mystery which I can neither deny nor explain ... I search in vain in history
to find the equal of Jesus Christ.4

4. The argument from the human soul.


The argument from the human soul has two parts: (1) that of God's image in Man and (2) that of Man's
moral nature. The Word of God declares that Man is created in the image of God:
And God said, Let us make man in our image, after our likeness: and let them have dominion over the
fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the cattle, and over all the earth, and over every
creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth. So God created man in His own image, in the image of God
created He him; male and female created He them (Gn. 1:26,27).

We are not to look for God's image in the physical man, for God is Spirit (Jn. 4:24); rather, we are to look
for the image of God in the spiritual man: "And have put on the new man, which is renewed in knowledge
after the image of Him that created him...." (Col. 3:10). God's image in Man is seen in his having dominion
over the lower creatures and especially in his capacity for and yearning for fellowship with God. The other
mark of the Divine image is seen in Man's moral nature, his sense of duty and responsibility, and in his
possession of a conscience: "Which show the work of the law written in their hearts, their conscience also
bearing witness, and their thoughts the mean while accusing or else excusing one another. . ." (Rom. 2:15
NKJV). C. S. Lewis says:
These then are the two points I wanted to make. First, that human beings, all over the earth, have this
curious idea that they ought to behave in a certain way, and cannot really get rid of it. Secondly, they do
not in fact behave in that way. They know the Law of Nature; they break it. These two facts are the
foundation of all clear thinking about ourselves and the universe we live in.

A personal God holds us responsible for our conduct and our attitude. We must surrender to His Will or
live with a guilty conscience. One may succeed in searing his conscience or quieting it by self-deception, but
he will then invariably work out his own value system. Experience has shown that the Bible system of ethics,
after all, best suits Man's God created moral nature.

36
5. The argument from Scripture.
The argument from Scripture rests upon its claims and upon its accuracy. The Bible claims to be the
inspired Word of God (2 Tm. 3:16,17; 2 Pt. 1:20,21; 1 Cor. 2:12,13; Jer. 1:1-13). No book on earth has been
as widely embraced as a message from God. Its opponents and the skeptics have launched every conceivable
attack against it, but its popularity remains. Its accuracy has been repeatedly impugned, but every turn of the
archeologists spade confirms the accuracy of some doubted passage. Dr. W. F. Albright, the renowned
archeologist writes: "Nothing tending to disturb the religious faith of Jew or Christian has been discovered ...
Discovery after discovery has established the accuracy of innumerable details, and has brought increased
recognition of the value of the Bible as a source book of history."6 No other book compares with the Bible for
elevated moral and spiritual teaching; written centuries ago, it is more modern than today's periodicals. It
never ceases to speak with power and healing to the deepest problems of the human soul and spirit.

III. THE NATURE OF GOD


The study of the Nature of God must be approached with humility and reverence. Who can define the
nature and essence of the Infinite God? Not only are His ways "past finding out" (Rom. 11:33), His Nature
and Being surpass our comprehension. However, God has revealed as much of His essential Nature to us as is
needed to serve and worship Him. It is especially important to understand the Nature of God, as it is revealed
in the Bible, for many different concepts of deity are held by those who reject the God of the Scriptures. The
Bible does not give us a single comprehensive definition of God; if "the heaven of heavens cannot contain
thee' (1 Kgs. 8:27), how can a sentence or paragraph of human words define His Being? The following is a
theological definition, which serves as well as any: "God is a Spirit, Infinite, Eternal, and Unchangeable in
His Being, Wisdom, Power, Holiness, Justice, Goodness and Truth." (Westminster Catechism)
Several statements about God in Scripture define various aspects of His Nature, such as: "God is Spirit"
(Jn. 4:24), "God is light" (I Jn. 1:15), "God is love" (1 Jn. 4:8), and "God is a consuming fire" (Heb. 12:29).
In this section we will focus our attention upon four aspects of the Divine Nature.

A. God is Spirit.
1. Positive - scriptural affirmation.
The statement that God is Spirit means that He cannot be confined to a physical body, nor to dimensions
of space and time. He is the Invisible, Eternal God: "No man hath seen God at any time; the only begotten
Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, He hath declared him" (Jn. 1:18). Because God is Spirit, He can
say, "Lo, I am with you always even unto the end of the world" (Mt. 28:20); "For where two or three are
gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them" (Mt. 18:20); and "I will never leave thee, nor
forsake thee" (Heb. 13:5). Jesus pointed out that man must be "born of the spirit" in order to enter the
kingdom of God, in order that he may have fellowship with God who is Spirit Jn. 3:5).

2. Negative - not corporeal, not localized.


Two problems arise in connection with the affirmation that God is Spirit. First, some Bible passages
represent God as having eyes, ears, or an arm (Is. 52:10; Ps. 34:15). These are figures of speech called
"anthropomorphisms" (meaning man-like). Living in a material world, Man has difficulty thinking of God as
perceiving or acting without human members; therefore, the Scriptures condescend to our limitation by
attributing to God (figuratively speaking) "ears" to hear our cry, or an "arm" to help us. God, speaking
through Isaiah the great prophet, and thinking of our human limitation said,
To whom then will ye liken me, or shall I be equal? saith the Holy One. Lift up your eyes on high, and
behold who hath created these things, that bringeth out their host by number: he calleth them all by names by
the greatness of his might, for that he is strong in power; not one faileth. Why sayest thou, 0 Jacob, and
speakest thou, 0 Israel, My way is hid from the Lord, and my judgment is passed over from my God? Hast

37
thou not known? hast thou not heard that the everlasting God, the Lord, the Creator of the ends of the earth,
fainteth not, neither is weary? there is no searching of His understanding. (Is. 40:25-28).
The Eternal Spirit does not need eyes to see our need, nor is He wearied in His redeeming activity.
The second problem with the representation of God's spirituality is that He is sometimes represented as
appearing in human form (See Gn., chs. 17,18,19; Jos. 5:13-15). Although God is in essence Spirit, He Who
made all beings and things can, for His wise ends, assume any form that suits His purpose. There are a
number of instances where God appeared in visible form; for instance, as unto Abraham to assure him of the
promised son through whose descendants all nations would be blessed. These appearances are called
"theophanies." Such appearances, however, do not contradict God's spiritual nature. How wonderful it is that
God the Son took upon himself human form in order to become our Redeemer, High Priest, and Eternal King!
"Philip saith unto Him, Lord, show us the Father, and it sufficeth us. Jesus saith unto him, . . he that hath
seen me hath seen the Father. . . ." Un. 14:8,9). Furthermore, in I Corinthians 15:38-54, Paul states that
spiritual beings may have spiritual bodies. After the Resurrection, Jesus had a spiritual body not subject to
physical limitations Un. 20:19-29), and there is some indication that He may, in His spiritual body, eternally
bear the marks of Calvary's ordeal.

B. God is Perfect.
Jesus said to His disciples, "Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect"
(Mt. 5:48). It is almost impossible to think of the Creator, who is at the same time Righteous and Loving,
Holy and Merciful, Eternal Judge and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, as being anything but perfect. The
Scriptures affirm this, declaring Him to be PERFECT. God's perfections will be seen in sharper focus when
we study His Attributes.

C. God is Personal.
A personal being is one that is self-conscious, who possesses intellect, feeling, and will. It is popular
among sophisticates today to believe in an impersonal God, who is something like a life principle who can be
referred to as "Nature." Such a God neither answers prayer, nor is displeased with evil doing; he is just the
universe itself, including its laws. Such an impersonal "god" may not confront our selfishness, but neither can
he help us when our troubles are more than we can handle. The God of Holy Scripture is a PERSONAL,
Transcendent God, who stands apart from the universe as its Creator; but Who, at the same time, is an
Immanent God who resides within His creation preserving it and caring for it as a Heavenly Father.
The personality of God is revealed in His dealing with Moses, when He declared His name: "And God
said unto Moses, I AM THAT I AM: and He said, Thus shalt thou say unto the children of Israel, I AM hath
sent me unto you" (Ex. 3:14). Then in Exodus 6:2,3 ". . . I am the Lord; and I appeared unto Abraham, unto
Isaac, and unto Jacob by the name of God almighty [El Shaddail, but by my name, JEHOVAH was I not
known unto them." The Hebrew word, Jehovah or Yahweh is derived from the verb "to be." "I AM THAT I
AM" may be a kind of interpretation of the name Jehovah. Jehovah God is the One Who was, Who is, and
Who eternally shall be. As a PERSON, God is here revealed to have a personal name; He speaks and enters
into a covenant as an intelligent being; He answers the inquiries of Moses as one who responds to human
anxiety, and feels his concern with him. He chooses a man to carry out His WILL to lead Israel as a witness
nation among nations. He declares that He has heard the groanings of His people in Egypt, whose anguish
mattered to Him. This is a Personal God, and not a mere impersonal soul of the universe.
In the New Testament, the Son of God (who was a Person) said, "For as the Father hath LIFE in
HIMSELF; even so gave He to the Son also to have LIFE in HIMSELF. . ." (Jn. 5:26). This infers that the
Father is the same kind of Person as the Son to whom He gave His LIFE. Since Man as a creature of God has
intellect, emotion, and volition, and he is able to intelligently contemplate God and His universe as a rational
person, surely he is not superior to God in capacities. God has Divine personality, far beyond His creatures,
but if He made Man to commune with Him and to worship Him, He must certainly have endowed him with

38
like characteristics to His Nature when He made him in His own IMAGE.
The Bible's gospel is God's message to the sinner who has disobeyed a Personal God, whom he has
offended by his rebellion. This sinner bears a burden of guilt which only a new relationship with God, made
possible by the Redeeming Work of the Son of God, will alleviate: "There is therefore, now, no condemnation
to them which are in Christ Jesus" (Rom. 8:1); "But God commendeth His love toward us, in that, while we
were yet sinners, Christ died for us" (Rom. 5:8). Love cannot come from an impersonal principle, LOVE is a
personal characteristic.

D. God is One.
The Law of God given on Sinai begins with the declaration: 'Hear 0 Israel: the Lord our God is ONE
Lord. . . ." (Dt. 6:4). Nothing is condemned in Scripture more than the worship of other numerous gods: "Ye
shall not go after other gods, of the gods of the people which are round about you. . . ." (Dt. 6:14). The
nations worshiped many gods who corresponded to the forces of nature, gods who were the creation of their
own imagination, who were represented by images and idols. These idolatrous nations were a constant thorn
in the side of Israel. The downfall of Israel was their continual flirtation with these deities of nature. When
Israel's King Ahab had opened the door to the worship of Baal, a false nature god, Elijah spectacularly
challenged the priests of Baal and Ashtoreth to a contest with Jehovah, the living God. (1 Kgs. 18:21-40). He
then prayed, "Hear me 0 Lord ... that this people may know that Thou art the LORD God...... (1 Kgs. 18:37).
When Jehovah, not the false deities, answered by fire, the people in one accord cried, ". . . The LORD He is
the God" (1 Kgs. 18:39). It was important for the man of God to halt the catastrophic trend toward
polytheism. The Bible, therefore, uncompromisingly calls for the worship of ONE true God. The prophet
Isaiah sounded the same trumpet call: "Thus saith the Lord, the King of Israel, . . the Lord of hosts, I am the
first, and I am the last; and beside me there is no God' (Is. 44:6). Championing the same great truth, our
Savior said in prayer to the Father, 'And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the only true God. . . ."
(Jn. 17:3). The Apostle Paul commends the Thessalonians because they "turned unto God from idols, to serve
the living and true God'(1 Thes. 1:9).
It used to be widely taught that religion evolved from an original animism and polytheism (many gods) to
a monotheism (one God). More recent archeological evidence, together with the finding of modern
missionaries, indicates that Man was originally monotheistic (from God's revelation of Himself to the first
parents), and that the religions of the nations became increasingly corrupted with the passing of time. There
will be a section on the TRINITY of God later on (Section VII), but it is important first to establish the
UNITY of God.

E. Erroneous Theories About God.


The Bible's teaching about God is that He is the All-powerful, All-wise Creator of all things who is Just
and Holy and at the same time Loving and Merciful; He is Transcendent (above and distinct from the
creation) while, at the same time, He is Immanent (resident in and involved with His creation). He is a
Personal God who seeks fellowship with His redeemed people; He punishes ultimate rebellion with eternal
death; He rewards faith and obedience with eternal life through His Son and Mediator, Jesus Christ. He is the
Supreme Being, who is also the Heavenly Father. He spoke into being the immeasurable universe, yet He
notes the sparrow's fall, and hears the faintest cry. He made the galaxies, but He stooped to Bethlehem's
manger. We tremble before His Majesty, but we seek solace in His unconditional Love. He dwells beyond
the remotest galaxy, but He is no farther from us than the reach of faith. This is the Christian's God. There
are, however, different views held by those who ignore the scriptural doctrine of God.

1. Atheism.
The Atheist denies the existence of any deity. He believes that the universe came about by chance, or that
it has always existed, sustained by resident, impersonal laws. But, is any earth-bound man reasonable who

39
denies the existence of a maker for a universe, whose vast expanse he can no more explore than a mole can
explore St. Paul's Cathedral? There are two kinds of atheists: (1) the philosophical atheist who denies that
God exists, and (2) the practical atheist who lives as if God did not exist.

2. Agnosticism.
The Agnostic does not deny God's existence; he denies the possibility of the knowledge of God.
Professor Huxley, who coined the word "agnostic," took the term from the Greek altar in Athens referred to
by Paul in Acts 17:23 which had the inscription "Agnosto Theo" (the unknown god). But Prof Huxley
misunderstood the intent behind the inscription; the Athenian "unknown god" was the real God above all the
lesser deities, who were really only the human heroes from the dawn of history, whom the Greeks had
elevated to the status of gods. Socrates and Plato gained some insight into the existence of a Supreme Being,
they just did not know what to call Him. Agnosticism is popular today; it is a comfortable refuge for those
who think of themselves as intellectuals, but who do not want to take a position of faith in the God of the
Scriptures. A sincere and humble seeker after God will sooner or later find Him, for He is not far from any of
us.

3. Materialism.
The Materialist denies the existence of spirit, or spiritual beings. 'lb him all reality is merely matter in
motion. The human mind and soul are only functions of the physical brain developed over billions of years
by gradual evolution. There is no life after death; "heaven" or "hell" are only earthly states of pleasure or
pain, success or failure. If the Materialist is consistent, he has no real basis for morality; doing good is only
doing what brings the greatest pleasure to the greatest number, but there is no reason why he feels deep
obligation to be moral other than his own loss of esteem. According to the Materialist, there is no judgment
above the human level, sin is only imperfection.

4. Pantheism.
This is the religion of Hinduism. God is simply Nature, the sum total of the universal system. The term
comes from theos meaning "god," and pan meaning "all." The philosophers Spinoza and Hegel were the best
known European pantheists. Some prominent liberal "Christian" theologians of today are really pantheists,
and are among those who do not believe in a Personal Transcendent God. The turn of many to Eastern
religions has revived pantheism in America. The Bible makes no room for this ancient but dreary religion; its
best hope is nirvana, the desireless, passionless, soulless state.

5. Polytheism.
This word again comes from the two Greek words, poly meaning "many," and theos meaning "god," the
belief in many gods. Among ancient nations, every facet of nature was ruled over by a god or goddess; this
arose from the worship of the forces of nature. Later tribal heroes were elevated to the position of deities and
ruled over rivers, rainfall, agriculture, human passions, various planets, seasons of the year, etc. Israel's
neighbors were polytheists and often corrupted Israel's worship. The Bible strongly condemns this paganism
with its idolatry (Is. 44:9-20). However, after the Babylonian captivity, Israel was virtually cured of
idolatrous worship.

6. Deism.
Deism, comes from the Latin deus which means "god." The Deist believes in a transcendent but
"absentee" God. His God made the universe and Man, but left His creation to sustain itself by natural laws.
Deism denies Man's sinful nature and therefore the need of an atonement or a redeemer. Deism rejects all
miracles as well as the Divine inspiration of Scripture. This view of God is irrational, for why would a

40
Personal God create the world and Man and have no revealed purpose for Man? Deists are not numerous
today.

7. Dualism.
Dualism is the doctrine of the existence of two opposite realms opposed to one another: one of spirit and
one of matter, opposed to one another, or the rule of the world by two gods: one of evil and darkness, and one
of good and light. Zoroaster, a Persian philosopher of Moses' time, first advanced the idea of two gods of
equal power, neither of whom ultimately triumphs. The Bible teaches us of good and evil, of Satan and of
God. But God and His kingdom at the end of the age will triumph over Satan and evil: "And the seventy
returned again with joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are subject unto us through thy name. And he said unto
them, I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven. Behold I give unto you power ... over all the power of the
enemy.. . ." (Lk. 10:17-19). The book of Job gives us a picture of a kind of dualism, or conflict between the
forces of God and Satan, but again God and virtue triumph. The Gnostics and Manicheans in post Apostolic
times were dualists, teaching that all matter was evil and that only spirit was good. In the New Testament,
"the world" does not refer so much to physical things, but to the spirit of sin and evil in an unregenerate
society dominated by Satan. Material things may be good and useful to God's kingdom when managed with a
dedicated stewardship. All things are ours when laid at the feet of Jesus: ". . . For all things are yours;
whether ... the world, or life, or death, or things present, or things to come; all are yours; And ye are Christ's
and Christ is God's" (1 Cor. 3:21-23), and ". . . be not high-minded, nor trust is uncertain riches, but in the
living God, who giveth us richly all things to enjoy. . . ." (1 TM. 6:17)
There is another dualism that teaches that all affliction, calamity, adversity, poverty, and trouble come
directly from Satan. No doubt, much of such does derive from Satan's realm, and in fact all such is the result
of the Fall; but the theory that all adversity is Satanic is contradicted by the experience of almost all the
Apostles and martyrs and great leaders of the Church, who made adversity glorify God. Adversity is evil only
if we permit Satan to defeat us with it. On the other hand, there is victory in Christ out of all life's
experiences. Paul said, writing to the Corinthian church:
For we would not, brethren, have you ignorant of our trouble which came to us in Asia, that we were
pressed out of measure, above strength, insomuch that we despaired even of life: but we had the sentence
of death in ourselves, that we should not trust in ourselves, but in God which raiseth the dead: who
delivered us from so great a death, and doth deliver: in whom we trust that He will yet deliver us.... (2
Cor. 1:8-10).

This is an example of trouble in Paul's life that God used for His purpose, but three times the Apostle uses
the word "DELIVER." There are opposing forces in the world and the believer is in the midst of the battle, but
we are on the winning side: ". . . greater is he that is in you, than he that is in
the world" (I Jn. 4:4). Amen!

IV. THE NAMES OF GOD


Webster defines "name" as "that by which a person or thing is known .117 The Hebrews thought of
names as being revelatory, as disclosing some attribute or characteristic of the person named. For instance,
the name "Adam" means "of the earth" or "taken out of the red earth"; his name revealed his origin. A
number of names for God are found in the Scriptures, for no one name, or even multiplicity of names, can
reveal all His Attributes. But, we need only know God's Attributes to the extent that He is pleased to reveal
them, and those that pertain to the relationships we have with Him. It is assuring to know that there is some
relationship with God, revealed by one of His names, that corresponds to every need of His children. It is the

41
goal of theology to define, as far as possible, what those relationships are. The study of the names of God
will significantly help us to attain that goal.

A. Elohim (pl.), Eloah (sing.).


The name ELOHIM is the first word used in Scripture to designate "God." "In the beginning ELOHIM
created the heaven and the earth" (Gn. 1:1). This name is used around 2,500 times in the Old Testament. Its
probable root meaning is "strong and mighty one." E. B. Sick, writing in the Zonderuan Pictorial
Encyclopedia of the Bible says: 'There are many suggestions for the meaning of the root but no consensus,
perhaps related to El meaning 'mighty' or 'strong'. A most commonly used Heb. word for God, god, angels, or
magistrates." The singular form ELOAH, in the same reference work, is defined as follows: "('God,'singular
of Elohim, q.v.). It is used forty-one times in Job (replacing Elohim) and sixteen times elsewhere. These
occurrences are mainly poetic and refer to the true God except in 11 Chronicles 32:15; Daniel 11:37-39; and
Hab. 1:11 (cf. Job 12:6)." The name Elohim, like the word "God" in English, may refer to the true God or to
any object of worship, or even to human dignitaries. Almost always, when used together with the definite
article, it is applied to the one true God of Israel.
The use of the plural form for God (Elohim) with the singular article needs some explanation. Some
scholars define the word as the plural of majesty or completeness. There may be some truth in this
explanation, but it falls short of being a fully satisfactory accounting of its use in the whole of Scripture. To
most conservative scholars, it gives a clear indication of the Trinity in Unity. From an up-to-date Bible
reference work: "The plural ending is usually described as a plural of majesty ... but a better reason can be
seen in Scripture itself where, in the very first chapter of Genesis the necessity of a term conveying both the
unity of the one God and yet allowing for a plurality of persons is found (Gen. 1:2,26)." And again, "More
probable is the view that elohim comes from eloah as a unique development of the Hebrew Scriptures and
presents chiefly the plurality of persons in the Trinity of the godhead."9 (More will be said about the Trinity
in Section VII).

1. EL: meaning "God, god, mighty one, strength" (Dt. 32:4).


This is a very ancient name for God (probably related in origin to eloah and elohim, but on this scholars
are not agreed) which is found in some form in all of the Semitic languages. It can have several meanings,
but in the Bible, it usually refers to the true God of Israel. El, as a Divine name, does not frequently appear
alone, but most often it is used in compound with other terms as: El Elyon, El Shaddai, etc. It also occurs in
common names, as in Daniel, meaning "God is my judge." It is interesting that this name, as well as most of
the common Divine names, are found in the 32nd chapter of Deuteronomy.

2. EL ELYON: (Dt. 32:8): "The Most High" (from alah which means "to ascend").
And Melchizedek king of Salem brought forth bread and wine: and he was the priest of the most high
God [El Elyon]. And he blessed him, and said, Blessed be Abram of the most high God [El Elyon 1,
possessor of heaven and earth, and blessed by the most high God [El Elyon ] which hath delivered thine
enemies into thy hand. (Gn. 14:18-20).
It was the Most High God who so loved the world that He sent His Son to redeem us, who is our High
Priest forever after the order of Melchizedek (Heb. 6:20). The Savior lowered Himself to the level of the
guiltiest sinner: "Wherefore God hath highly exalted him, and given him a name above every name. . . ."
(Phil. 2:9). He is at the right hand of the Most High God.

3. EL OLAM: "The Everlasting God."


The thought conveyed by this name was not only the eternal duration of God, but also His everlasting
faithfulness. As recorded in Genesis, Abraham calls on Jehovah, "the Everlasting God," who keeps His

42
covenants (Gen. 21:33). The Psalmist, thinking of the Lord as a perpetual dwelling place, said, "Lord, thou
hast been our dwelling place in all generations. Before the mountains were brought forth, or ever thou hadst
formed the earth and the world, even from everlasting to everlasting, thou art God [Ell" (Ps. 90:1-2). Isaiah,
the messianic prophet, exhorted the people in a time of wavering: "Trust in the Lord [Jehovah] forever, for in
God Yah, the Lord [Jehovah], we have an everlasting Rock" [lit., "Rock of Ages"] (Is. 26:4, NASB). Adam
Clarke remarks on Isaiah 26:4: "Does not this refer to the lasting streams from the rock in the desert? and that
rock was Christ."

4. EL SHADDAI: "The Almighty God."


"And when Abram was ninety years old and nine, the Lord [Jehovah appeared to Abram, and said unto
him, I am the Almighty God [El Shaddail walk before me and be thou perfect" (Gn. 17:1). (See also Gn.28:3;
35:11; 43:14; 48:3; Ex. 6:3; Ez. 10:5.) The compound form, El Shaddai, is found seven (7) times; the single
word shaddai meaning"the Almighty" is found forty-one (41) times, thirty-one (31) times in Job alone. Some
older commentators took the word shaddai as being derived from a word shad meaning " breast," giving to the
Divine name the meaning of "The Satisfier" or "All Sufficient One." This opinion seems to have been derived
from an incorrect translation in the Greek Septuagint Version. Almost all scholars now derive the word shad
from a word meaning "mountain," thus "The Almighty," which is its obvious meaning in Genesis 17:1, where
the name first occurs. The emphasis derived from this name is God's Omnipotence.

B. Adonai (pl.); Adon (sing.) - Lord, lord, master, owner, ruler.


This name is expressed in the following Scriptures: "After these things the word of the Lord [Jehovah]
came unto Abram in a vision, saying, Fear not Abram: I am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward. And
Abram said, Lord God [Adonai Jehovah], what wilt thou give me, seeing I go childless ... T' (Gn. 15:1,2).
The word adonai is used in the Old Testament in very much the same way as the word "kurios" is used in the
Greek New Testament, and in much the same sense as we use the English word "Lord". It can refer to a
person who is a master, owner or ruler; or it can refer to the Lord God, because He is the Master and Owner
of everything: "And the servant took ten camels of the camels of his master [adonai I, and departed. . . .' (Gn.
24:10). "Therefore Sarah laughed within herself, saying, After I am waxed old shall I have pleasure, my lord
[adonail being old also?" (Gn. 18:12). Peter refers to this verse: "Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him
lord [kurion]. . . ." (1 Pt. 3:6). The believer should be reminded that when we call Jesus "Lord" we are
recognizing Him as our Master; to call Jesus Lord and not obey Him is a contradiction in language and in
conduct.

C. Jehovah.
JEHOVAH is the personal NAME of God in His relationship as Redeemer.

And Moses said unto God, Behold, when I come unto the children of Israel, and shall say unto them, The
God of your fathers hath sent me unto you; and they shall say to me, what is His name? what shall I say unto
them? And God said unto Moses, "I AM THAT I AM:" and he said, "Thus shalt thou say unto the children of
Israel, I AM hath sent me unto you." And God said moreover unto Moses, "Thus shalt thou say unto the
children of Israel, the LORD [Jehovah] God of your fathers, the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the
God of Jacob, hath sent me unto you: this is my NAME for ever, and this is my memorial unto all
generations." (Ex. 3:13-15).
This personal name also appears in Exodus 6:2,3: "And God spake unto Moses, and said unto him, I am
the LORD [Jehovah I And I appeared unto Abraham, unto Isaac, and unto Jacob, by the name of God
Almighty [El Shaddai I, but by my name JEHOVAH was I not known to them."
Jehovah is the name for the Lord God occurring most frequently in the Old Testament (5,321 times). The

43
actual Hebrew form of the word was YHWH (the Hebrew alphabet does not have vowels). We really do not
know how the Hebrews pronounced the name (probably Yahweh, the Greek transliteration is iaoue). Because
they were forbidden by the Commandments to take the name of the Lord in vain, they feared to pronounce the
name of Yahweh, therefore they substituted in reading the word Adonai. After centuries transpired, they
forgot how to pronounce Jehovah or Yahweh; and when scholars finally invented "vowel points" for written
Hebrew, they gave to Jehovah the vowel points for A dona I, not knowing what the original vowel sounds had
been.
Scholars differ over the etymology of the name JEHOVAH (YHWH), but quite certainly, it comes from a
form of the verb "to be." This seems clear from the Lord's statement to Moses that "I AM" had sent him. "I
AM THAT I AM" seems to amplify the name in a way that it could mean "the eternally existing One."Jesus
seemed to identify with the name when he said to the Jews, "Before Abraham was, I AM." (Jn. 8:58). Could
it mean: "I AM the Way, the Truth and the Life" (Jn. 14:6), 1 AM the Light" (Jn. 8:12), "I AM the Bread of
Life (Jn 6:35)", and "I AM the Resurrection and the Life" (Jn. 11:25)? With joy we sing, 'He's everything to
me." An abbreviated form of Jehovah, JAH is found forty-eight (48) times in the Old Testament (first in Ex.
15:2). It has the same meaning as Jehovah. It occurs mostly in the Psalms and it is always used in a context
of PRAISE: ". . . extol him that rideth upon the heavens, by His name JAH. . . ." (Ps. 68:4)

D. Ha Tsur - "The Rock."


The metaphorical name for Jehovah, Ha Tsur, is found five (5) times in Deuteronomy chapter thirty-two:
'He is the Rock, his work is perfect. . . ." (Dt. 32:4). The term stresses the Immutability of God, the Rock of
Ages. (See also Dt. 32:15,18,30,31; Is. 17:10; 26:4; 32:2; 51:1; Ps. 19:14.) Paul said, 'And did all drink the
same spiritual drink: for they drank of that spiritual Rock that followed them, and that Rock was Christ." (1
Cor. 10:4). (Also Ex. 17:6).

E. The Compound Names of Jehovah.


Since Jehovah is the covenant name of God expressing personal relationship (Ex. 19:3-6), it is natural that
His name would be compounded with other terms that identify and make specific those relationships.
1. JEHOVAH ELOHIM.
"These are the generations of the heavens and the earth when they were created, in the day that the Lord
God [Jehovah Elohim] made the earth and the heavens ... (Gn. 2:4). This name identifies Jehovah with the
creation of all things. The Triune God of Creation is also the Redeemer of His people.
2. JEHOVAH JIREH.
"And Abraham called the name of that place The Lord Will Provide [Jehovah Jireh I, as it is said to this
day,'In the mount of the Lord it will be provided'(Gn. 22:14, NASB). God PROVIDED a substitute for Isaac,
that he might go free; He has likewise provided for us, once for all, a substitute, the Lamb of God. "He that
spared not his own Son, but delivered him up for us all, how shall he not with him also freely give us all
things?" (Rom. 8:32)
3. JEHOVAH RAPHA.
"And He said, 'If you will give earnest heed to the voice of the Lord your God, and do what is right in His
sight, and give ear to His commandments, and keep all His statutes, I will put none of the diseases on you
which I have put on the Egyptians; for 1, the Lord, am your HEALER"' (Ex. 15:26, NASB). Jehovah here
reveals His personal relationship as the HEALER of His people. Since the promise related to physical
diseases, the healing must also be physical healing. There are a significant number of physical hearings in the
Old Testament which exemplify this attribute. The promise is conditional upon obedience however, which
explains why the physical hearings were not more common. A very large part of the ministry of Jesus and
His Apostles was given to physical healing. The Church has been given "gifts of healing," (1 Cor. 12:9) and
the conditions of obedience still apply to God's people.

44
4. JEHOVAH NISSI.
'And Moses built an altar, and named it The Lord is My Banner. . . (Ex. 17:15, NASB). The Israelites had
just been victorious in the battle with Amalek. Aaron and Hur had held up the hands of Moses until sunset,
and while they did so Israel prevailed. To commemorate the victory, an altar was built and named Jehovah
Nissi (Ex. 17:8-15). The Lord is our banner of victory in the battle, "and His banner over us is love." (See Sg.
2:4.)
5. JEHOVAH SHALOM.
'Then Gideon built an altar there to the Lord and named it The Lord is Peace [Jehovah Shalom]" (Jgs.
6:24, NASB). When God was calling Gideon to lead Israel to victory over the Midianites, an angel appeared
to him and wrought a miracle. Gideon supposed that he would die as a result. Jehovah assured him that he
would live and lead Israel to triumph. Jehovah was PEACE to him, even before the battles began. Shalom
(peace) means more than freedom from conflict; it means prosperity, health, well-being, and faith in the face
of conflict. Jesus said, "My peace I give unto you." (Jn. 14:27). (See also Eph. 2:15,16).
6. JEHOVAH RAAH.
'The Lord is my shepherd, I shall not want" (Ps. 23:1). It was consoling to Israel to think of Jehovah as
the great Shepherd of their flock, who provided such rich pastures that none needed to suffer want. What
assurance there is to the Christian believer in the words of Jesus, "I am the good shepherd: the good shepherd
giveth his life for the sheep" (Jn. 10: 1 1). And, 'When the chief Shepherd shall appear, ye shall receive a
crown of glory that fadeth not away" (1 Pt. 5:4).
7. JEHOVAH TSIDKENU.
"In his days Judah shall be saved, and Israel shall dwell safely: and this is his name whereby he shall be
called, THE LORD OUR RIGHTEOUSNESS" (Jer. 23:6). Paul wrote concerning Jesus our Savior: "But of
him are ye in Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us wisdom, and RIGHTEOUSNESS, and sanctification,
and redemption...... (l Cor.1:30).
8. JEHOVAH SABAOTH.
"Who is this King of glory? The Lord of hosts [Jehovah Sabaoth], he is
the King of glory" (Ps. 24:10). (See 1 Sm. 1:3). Elisha found that the Lord of
hosts surrounded His people in times of attacks by the enemy. (2 Kgs. 6:13-17).
9. JEHOVAH SHAMMAH.
"It was round about eighteen thousand measures; and the name of the city from that day shall be, The
LORD is THERE" (Ez. 48:35). How strengthening it is to know that the Transcendent God who created the
vast universe is also the Immanent God ever present with His people! The writer of Hebrews declared: ". . .
for he hath said, I will never leave thee nor forsake thee. So that we may boldly say, The Lord is my helpers
and I will not fear what man shall do unto me" (Heb. 13:5,6).

F. New Testament Names of God.


1. THEOS.
"In the beginning was the Word [logos], and the Word was with God [Theos 1, and the Word was God
[Theos ]" (Jn. 1:1). The Greek word theos, like elohim can mean "God" or gods." It is the usual word for
"God" in the New Testament.
2. KURIOS.
"And that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord [Kurios], to the glory of God [Theos] the
Father [Pater]" (Phil. 2:11). All three New Testament Divine names are used in the verse above. Kurios is
like adonai in the Old Testament.

45
3. PATER.
"After this manner therefore pray ye: Our Father [Pater] which art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name" (Mt.
6:9). Also, ". . . but ye have received the Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry, ABBA, FATHER" (Rom. 8:15).
Abba was the Aramaic word for "father"; it was the word Jesus used in prayer in the garden of Gethsemane.
What a privilege that, because of Christ's work of Redemption, we may call upon the Omnipotent One as our
heavenly FATHER!

V. THE ATTRIBUTES OF GOD


To write about the Attributes of the Infinite God is a sobering undertaking. However, one can only search
the Word of God with the assurance that in the inspired Scriptures we have God's revelation of Himself to us.
God has revealed to us those perfections and excellencies of His Nature that He deems essential to our
redemption, our worship, and our fellowship with Him. This can be one of the most interesting studies in the
realm of Bible doctrine. Who is not awed and thrilled at reading words such as the following from the
inspired pen of the prophet Isaiah:
To whom will you compare me? Or who is my equal? says the Holy One. Lift your eyes and look to
the heavens: Who created all these? He who brings out the starry host one by one, and calls them each by
name. Because of His great power and mighty strength, not one of them is missing. Why do you say, 0
Jacob, and complain, 0 Israel, My way is hidden from the Lord; my cause is disregarded by my God? Do
you not know? Have you not heard? The Lord is the everlasting God, the Creator of the ends of the earth.
He will not grow tired or weary, and His understanding no one can fathom. (40:25-28, NIV).

Such expressions extol Him as both Creator and Provider; they reveal His Power, Wisdom, Providence
and Immutability. This is but a part of one chapter from the Old Testament. When we add the New
Testament and the revelation of God as seen in His Son Jesus Christ, we have a rich and living source from
which to understand the "properties" and "virtues" of our God.
It is not easy to categorize the Attributes of God. There are clearly two general kinds, but proper words to
distinguish them are hard to find. One kind, only God possesses; another kind, man may possess to a limited
degree. The kind that only God has I will call Absolute Attributes; the kind that can be shared with us I will
call Moral Attributes.

A. Absolute Attributes.
1. SELF-EXISTENCE.
'For as the Father hath life in himself; so hath he given to the Son to have life in himself. . . ." (Jn. 5:26).
God is the Absolute Source of all life and being, the Uncaused Cause. He is not one in a series of
emanations as some have mistakenly taught. He is the Eternal Living God, Creator of all beings and all things
that have ever existed: "And he is before all things, and by him all things consist" (Col. 1:17). God is not
dependent for being or essence upon any source outside Himself, thus He is Self-existent.

2. IMMUTABILITY.
'For I am the Lord, I change not ... (Mal. 3:6). 'Every good gift and every perfect gift is from above, and
cometh down from the Father of lights, with whom is no variableness, neither shadow of turning" (Jas. 1:17).
Of our Lord Jesus Christ we love to quote: "Jesus Christ the same yesterday, and to day, and for ever"
(Heb. 13:8). The clauses, "with whom is no variableness" and "Jesus Christ is the same," are unqualified;
therefore, the unvariableness and sameness apply to all the Divine attributes. It is very comforting to the
believer to know that the covenants and promises of God are as reliable as the foundations of Heaven. In
Solomon's prayer at the dedication of the temple, he declared, "Blessed be the Lord, that hath given rest unto

46
His people Israel, according to all that he promised: there hath not failed one word of all His good promise,
which He promised by the hand of Moses his servant" (1 Kgs. 8:56).
Man changes from day to day; his obedience is not constant. Man's negative actions and attitudes may
diminish the experience of conditional blessings for him, but this does not gainsay the Faithfulness of God.
Through the mouth of Malachi, God spoke with both reproach and entreaty: "Even from the days of your
fathers ye are gone away from my ordinances, and have not kept them. Return unto me, and I will return unto
you, saith the Lord of Hosts [Jehovah Sabaoth]" (Mal. 3:7). Paul, perhaps more than anyone, expresses the
Unchanging Love of Christ: "For I am persuaded, that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities,
nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able
to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord" (Rom. 8:38,39).

3. ETERNITY.
'Now unto the King ETERNAL, immortal, invisible, the only wise God, be honor and glory for ever and
ever. Amen" (1 Tm. 1:17).
God's majestic NAME given to Moses in Exodus 3:14, "I AM THAT I AM," reveals Him as above time.
The Psalmist exclaimed, ". . . even from everlasting to everlasting, thou art GOD" (Ps. 90:2b). His Existence,
to express it from a human perspective, is from everlasting past to everlasting future. John the Apostle quotes
the Lord: "I am Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the ending, saith the Lord, which is, and which was, and
which is to come, the Almighty" (Rv. 1:8). The same claims of eternity are from the mouth of Jesus in
Revelation 22:13. The Eternal God is the giver of eternal life through His Eternal Son: "He that hath the Son
hath life.. . . " (1 Jn. 5:12).

4. OMNIPRESENCE.
"Am I a God at hand, saith the Lord, and not a God afar off? Can any hide himself in secret places that I
shall not see him? saith the Lord. Do not I fill heaven and earth? saith the Lord" (Jer. 23:23, 24).
Solomon was aware of the immensity and Omnipresence of God when he prayed, "Behold, the heaven
and the heaven of heavens cannot contain thee; how much less this house that I have built!" (1 Kgs. 8:27b).
God is Everywhere Present. However, He is in some specific places in manifestation. He met Moses at the
burning bush and on the mount. He is in His temple, yet it cannot hold Him. He is in Heaven, yet He fills
heaven and earth. He is on His throne where Jesus intercedes at His right hand; yet He has promised, "Lo, I
am with you always...." (Mt. 28:20). He is everywhere, yet He promised to be wherever two or three were
gathered in His name. God is everywhere, but not at all points in the same sense. He is not in everything
(that is Pantheism), but He is Everywhere Present. What a wonderful blessing it is that everywhere believers
pray, worship or serve, He is there. It is equally true that whoever shall call upon the Name of the Lord shall
be saved, no matter where he may be on the face of the earth.
The Presence of God is in His Church in a special way through the work of the Holy Spirit: "And I will
pray the Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, that He may abide with you forever ... he dwelleth
with you and shall be in you" On. 14:16,17). Everywhere the Church goes, there the Holy Spirit is present.
Wherever the Gospel is preached, the Holy Spirit will ". . . reprove the world of sin, and of righteousness, and
of judgment. . . ." (Jn. 16:8).

5. OMNISCIENCE.
0 Lord, thou has searched me, and known me. Thou knowest my downsitting and mine uprising, thou
understandest my thoughts afar off. Thou compassest my path and my lying down, and art acquainted with
all my ways. For there is not a word in my tongue, but, lo, 0 Lord, thou knowest it altogether (Ps.139:1-4).
Two aspects of God's All-knowledge are emphasized in the Scriptures. First, nothing happens anywhere
of which He is ignorant. Man cannot hide either his actions or his thoughts from God. If Gehazi's dishonesty

47
and deceit were known to the prophet of God, they were certainly not hidden from the Omniscient One (2
Kgs. 4:20-27). God brought to light in judgment the deceitful schemes of Ananias and Sapphira (Acts 5: 1-1
1). In the letters to the seven churches of Asia, the Lord clearly describes not only their actions, but also their
inward spiritual condition (Rv. 2:1-3:22). All things are present to Him.
Secondly, God is also All-wise in His plans and purposes. He knows all things from the beginning. He
has, in His wisdom, planned the redemption of His people, the building of His Church, and the triumph of His
kingdom. For example:
Wherein he hath abounded toward us in all wisdom and prudence; having made known to us the mystery
of His will, according to His good pleasure which he hath purposed in himself-, that in the dispensation of the
fullness of times he might gather together in one all things in Christ.... (Eph. 1:8-10)
And to make all men see what is the fellowship of the mystery, which from the beginning of the world
hath been hid in God, who created all things by Jesus Christ: to the intent that now unto the principalities and
powers in heavenly places might be known by the church the manifold WISDOM of God, according to the
eternal purposes which He purposed in Christ Jesus our Lord.... (Eph. 3:9-11)
It is encouraging to know that God in His Wisdom has made plans that He will carry to completion, in
spite of the freedom of will and choice He permits Man to exercise. And when we love Him, in His Wisdom
He works all things together for good (Rom. 8:28).

6. OMNIPOTENCE.
'Ah Lord God! behold, thou has made the heaven and the earth by thy GREAT POWER and stretched
out arm, and there is NOTHING TOO HARD for thee. . . ." (Jer. 32:17).
Some have tried to find a contradiction in God's Omnipotence because it is stated that there are some
things that He cannot do, such as: to lie, to sin, to deny Himself, and humorously, to make a rock so big that
He cannot lift it. This is not a limitation of His Power, but a self-limitation of His Will. God will not do what
is contrary to His Nature, nor what is a contradiction in terms.
a) The greatness of God's Power is seen in His created works. The vastness of the universe staggers
our imagination, and the microscopic and sub-microscopic realms are almost equally complex. If we think
how fearfully and wonderfully the human body is made, we stand in awe before the Omnipotent God. His
creative Power is both immeasurable and incomprehensible. But, beyond this is the eternal and unseen world
The things which are seen are temporal [will pass away]; but the things which are not seen [spiritual reality]
are eternal" (2 Cor. 4:18).
b) God's Power is also seen in His Sovereign Rule over all. "Behold, the nations are as a drop of a
bucket, and are counted as the small dust of the balance. . . ." (Is. 40:15). Biblical prophecy concerning the
destinies of nations has had marvelous fulfillment, showing that God indeed rules the affairs of kings and
human rulers. "And all the inhabitants of the earth are reputed as nothing: and he doeth according to his will
in the army of heaven, and among the inhabitants of the earth: and none can stay His hand, or say unto him,
What doest thou?" (Dn. 4:35). The book of Daniel is an eloquent commentary on the Sovereignty of God
over earthly kingdoms, which are represented as beasts or as parts of an image. The Lord's bringing of His
people out of Egypt into the land of promise again demonstrates that nothing is too hard for the Lord (Gn.
18:14).
c) Another demonstration of Divine power is the Church of Jesus Christ. God took twelve
seemingly ordinary disciples, filled them with His Holy Spirit, and with them "turned the world upside down"
(Acts 17:6). That Church is alive and well twenty centuries later and on the verge of world-wide revival.
d) The Resurrection of Jesus from the dead shows the Power of God over the realm of death and
the grave. Together with Jesus, God has raised us up and seated us together with Him in heavenly places
(Eph. 1:19-2:6): "that ye may know ... what is the exceeding greatness of his power to us-ward who believe,
according to the working of His mighty power, which He wrought in Christ, when He raised Him from the
dead" (Eph. 1:18-20a).

48
e) Finally, God is Sovereign over angels, principalities and powers, demon spirits and Satan
himself. God rules in heaven, on earth, and under the earth. He Who made all things and rules all realms,
can handle any problems that beset His people.

7. SOVEREIGNTY
We have already, under the previous heading, discussed God's Sovereignty over nations and the unseen
realm. Some treatment, at this point, should be given to the age-long controversy over God's Sovereignty
versus Man's free will. Paul writes in Ephesians: "According as he hath chosen us in him before the
foundation of the world, that we should be holy and without blame before him in love: having predestinated
us unto the adoption of children by Jesus Christ to himself, according to the good pleasure of His WILL.. . ."
(Eph. 1:4,5). This passage seems to infer that everything results from the WILL of God. On the other hand,
John, in Revelation chapter twenty-two, quotes Jesus in His final appeal to Man: "And whosoever WILL, let
him take the water of life freely" (Rv. 22:17b). This passage clearly says that the water of life is available to
any on the basis of choice and human free will. Unquestionably, the doctrines of Election and Predestination
are in the Bible. On the other hand, we have the words of Jesus while He wept over Jerusalem, "O Jerusalem,
Jerusalem ... how often would I have gathered thy children together ... and ye WOULD not!" (Mt. 23:37).
Again, "And ye WILL not come to me, that ye might have life" (Jn. 5:40). And again, "Whosoever believeth
in him should not perish, but have everlasting life" (Jn. 3:16).
In truth, the Bible teaches both positions. God is Sovereign, but not arbitrary; Man has freedom of choice
and will, with certain limitations. Our inability to reconcile the two positions does not make one position or
the other untrue. Our inability to see how both can be true at the same time is due to our finite human
comprehension. God can be Sovereign without violating Man's essential freedom. All Divine truth is in a
sense paradoxical to us, because our vision of reality is only in parts, at the most 180 degrees. Divine truth is
a full circle, 360 degrees. Samuel Fisk quotes Charles Spurgeon as saying: "Brethren, be willing to see both
sides of the shield of truth. Rise above the babyhood which cannot believe two doctrines until it sees the
connecting link. Have you not two eyes. man? Must you needs put one of them out in order to see clearly?""
Dr. R.A. Torrey, in the following, sets forth "foreknowledge" as the basis for reconciling predestination
with man's freedom of choice. He writes:
The actions of Judas and the rest were taken into God's plan, and thus made a part of it. But it does
not mean that these men were not perfectly free in their choice. They did not do as they did because God
knew that they would do so, but the fact that they would do so was the basis upon which God knew it.
Foreknowledge no more determines a man's actions than afterknowledge. Knowledge is determined by
the fact, not the fact by the knowledge ... God knows from all eternity what each man will do, whether he
will yield to the Spirit and accept Christ, or whether he will resist the Spirit and refuse Christ. Those who
will receive Him are ordained to eternal life. If any are lost it is simply because they will not come to
Christ and thus obtain life (John. 5:40). Whosoever will may come (Rev. 22:17), and all who come will
be received (John. 6:37).

B. Moral Attributes.
Certain attributes we will call MORAL, because they are shared to a limited degree with redeemed man,
and pertain to character, and conduct. They all speak of the Goodness of God.

1. HOLINESS.
For I am the Lord your God: ye shall therefore sanctify yourselves, and ye shall be holy; for I am
holy: neither shall ye defile yourselves with any manner of creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth.
For I am the Lord that bringeth you up out of the land of Egypt, to be your God: ye shall therefore be
holy, for I am HOLY (Lv. 11:44,45).

49
God is a Holy God, He requires holiness of His people.
Webster defines holiness as follows: "Dedicated to religious use; belonging to or coming from God;
consecrated, sacred; spiritually perfect or pure; untainted by evil or sin; sinless, saintly."
The Hebrew word for "holy" is quadosh; it is defined in Old Testament Word Studies as follows:
"Ascribed to all those things which in any way pertain to God, or His worship; sacred; free from defilement of
vice, idolatry, and other impure and profane things.
The Greek word is hagios, which is defined as follows by the Greek Lexicon: "Dedicated to God, holy,
sacred; reserved for God and His service; pure, perfect, worthy of God, consecrated."
The basic idea of Holiness, as applied to God, is that of separation and exaltation, absolute perfection of
character. Isaiah's vision of God accents these qualities:
... I saw also the Lord sitting upon a throne, high and lifted up, and His train filled the temple. Above
it stood the seraphims ... And one cried unto another, and said, Holy, holy, holy is the Lord of Hosts: the
whole earth is full of His glory ... Then said I, Woe is me ! ... because I am a man of unclean lips ... . for
mine eyes have seen the King, the Lord of Hosts (Is. 6:1-5).

The Holy God was above all, ruling as King and Owner of all things, Jehovah Sabaoth in majestic glory,
receiving the worship of the seraphim who extol His Holiness; before Whose perfections the prophet cried out
in awe and repentance of sins. Before we contemplate God's other Moral Attributes, this is the concept we
should have of God. Far more mention is made in Scripture of God's Holiness than of His All-power,
Wisdom and Omnipresence combined. The Scriptures establish the Holiness of God long before they picture
His Love. Exodus, Leviticus, and Numbers repeatedly portray the God of Holiness; it is not until we come to
Deuteronomy 4:37 that we find an outright declaration of His Love, and that is given in a context of awe-
inspiring Holiness.
As applied to men or things, the primary meaning of holiness is dedication and consecration, the quality
of being separated to God. Things are holy that are dedicated exclusively to God or His worship and service.
Anything is holy which wholly belongs to God, as His temple with its utensils and furnishings. People were
holy who were God's people. Israel is called a holy nation. In the New Testament, the Lord's people are
called "saints" meaning "holy ones" (Rom. 1:7).
Later, holiness also meant separation from all defilement and from all forms of idolatry. By Isaiah's day
injustice became as great a breach of holiness as delinquency in worship and sacrifices (Is. 1:1-20). A Holy
God was most provoked at Israel for the adultery of worship to pagan deities.
In the New Testament times, the emphasis has shifted more to inward purity of life and separation from
the world. (See Rom. 6:19,22; 12:1,2; 2 Cor. 7:1; Eph. 4:24; 1 Thes. 3:13; 4:7; Ti. 2:3; Heb. 12:10,14; 1 Pt.
1:15,16; 2 Pt. 3:11.) The believer throughout his Christian life is being sanctified through the Word, and the
Holy Spirit, for it is the purpose of God to present us unto Himself and to the Father unblamable in holiness.
A Holy God will have a holy people: "But as He which hath called you is holy, so be ye holy in all manner of
conversation [conduct]; because it is written, Be ye holy for I am holy" (1 Pt. 1:15:16).

2. RIGHTEOUSNESS (JUSTICE) (Gn. 18:25; Dt. 32:4; Rom. 3:25,26).


"That be far from thee to do after this manner, to slay the righteous with the wicked ... Shall not the
JUDGE of all the earth DO RIGHT. " (Gn. 18:25). Closely related to the Holiness of God are His
RIGHTEOUSNESS and JUSTICE. To simplify, it might be said that God's Righteousness is His Holiness in
action, and His Justice is His Righteousness in rule and government.
The Hebrew word for "righteous" is tsedek, which is defined as follows: "Rightness, straightness,
rectitude; justice of a judge, of a king, of God exhibited in punishing the wicked, or in avenging, delivering,
rewarding the righteous.1116 Another Hebrew word is mishpat which means righteous judgment as a judge.
The Greek word for "righteous" is dikaios, a definition of which is: "1. of God - "just, righteous, with

50
reference to His judgment of men and nations, a righteous judge; 2. of men -"upright, just, righteous
conforming to the laws of God and man, and living in accordance with them."
God is a Righteous God, because He acts at all times in complete conformity with His Holy Nature and
Will. One of the greatest chapters of the Bible about God is the 32nd chapter of Deuteronomy. In verse four
we have a definition of God's righteous actions: "He is the ROCK [Ha Tsur], his work is perfect: for all his
ways are judgment [mishpat -just judgment], a God of Truth [amunah - faithfulness in fulfilling promises] and
without iniquity [avel - injustice in dealing with men], just [tsadik righteous] and right [Jashar - upright] is he"
(Dt. 32:4). God's Righteousness is Immutable, He is a Rock. God is referred to as a Rock five (5) times in
Deuteronomy chapter thirty-two. His Righteousness never changes, His Justice is unfailing; He is Faithful in
dealing with His people according to His Nature and His revealed Law and covenants. He will punish in
awful judgment as well as reward bountifully, but always according to His promises and covenants. He is
completely above any unjust or deceitful treatment, all His ways are "upright."
As Righteous God, He lays down just laws to govern the dealings men have with one another in society.
The first four commandments have to do with the worship and service of God, but the last six pertain to the
people's treatment one toward another. Our God deals with us injustice; we must deal one with another in
righteousness. God, through the mouth of Isaiah, admonished Israel: ". . . put away the evil of your doings
from before mine eyes ... Learn to do well; seek judgment [mishpat -justice], relieve the oppressed, judge
[righteously] the fatherless, plead for the widow. Come now, and let us reason together, saith the Lord. . . ."
(Is. 1:16-18).
In the New Testament, the English words "righteousness" and "justice" are translations of the same Greek
word. This is seen in the definition of the word "justification," which means the act of declaring one
"righteous." In the book of Romans, we learn about a righteousness of Man apart from the Law. God requires
perfect righteousness from Man, but Man in his fallen state falls short of perfection. In the Law, provision
was made for cleansing through the sacrificial system. Paul declared concerning a new basis for
righteousness:
But now the righteousness of God without the law is manifested, being witnessed by the law and the
prophets; even the righteousness of God which is by faith of Jesus Christ unto all and upon all them that
believe; for there is no difference: for all have sinned, and come short of the glory of God [the glory of
God is His Holiness]; being justified freely by His grace through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus:
whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation through faith in His blood, to declare his righteousness for
the remission of sins that are past, through the forbearance of God; to declare, I say, at this time His
righteousness: that He might be just, and the justifier of him which believeth in Jesus. (Rom. 3:21-26)

Our Righteous and Holy God is also a God of Mercy and Forbearance, but He will not act inconsistent
with His Holiness. In His Righteousness He made a way to justify the sinner, by sending His Infinite Son to
be, once for all, the Perfect Sacrifice for sin. Since as the last Adam He lived in perfect obedience to the Holy
Will of the Father, God could bestow upon the believer Christ's Righteousness without ceasing to be
Righteous. The believing sinner becomes righteous in Christ, at the same time God's Righteousness has not
been compromised. We must remember, however, that we are righteous in Christ: 'Therefore being justified
by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ. . . . " (Rom. 5: 1).

3. LOVE (MERCY, GOODNESS).


He that loveth not knoweth not God; for GOD IS LOVE. In this was manifested the love of God
toward us, because that God sent His only begotten Son into the world, that we might live through him.
Herein is love, not that we loved God, but that He loved us, and sent His Son to be the propitiation for our
sins. Beloved, if God so loved us, we ought also to love one another ... And we have known and believed
the love that God hath to us, GOD IS LOVE; and he that dwelleth in love dwelleth in God, and God in
Him. (I Jn. 4:8-11,16)

51
Perhaps all God's Moral Attributes are encompassed in these two: His Holiness and His Love. In His
Holiness He is unapproachable; in His Love He approaches us. In His Holiness He is Transcendent, in His
Love He is Immanent. But, there are not two Lords, but One Who is both Holy and Loving. For fallen Man
these two apparently irreconcilable attributes are brought together in the Finished Atoning Work of Christ, in
which the demands of Holiness are satisfied and the outpouring of Love is realized.
The Hebrew word for 'love" is aha b, which has about the same range of meanings as our English word,
can express both the Divine love and the carnal love of man. The Old Testament does not reveal God's Love
in words until the book of Deuteronomy. Perhaps it was necessary to establish the Holiness of God in
advance of the revelation of His Love. In Exodus 19:12, we read: ". . . whosoever toucheth the mount shall be
surely put to death. . . ." But in Deuteronomy 7:6-8 God expresses His LOVE as the basis of His covenant
with the nation Israel:
For thou art an holy people unto the Lord thy God: the Lord thy God hath chosen thee to be a special
people unto himself above all people that are upon the face of the earth. The Lord did not set His LOVE
upon you, nor choose you, because you were more in number than any people; for ye were the fewest of
all people: But because the Lord loved you, and because he would keep the oath which he had sworn unto
your fathers, hath the Lord brought you out with a mighty hand, and redeemed you out of the house of
bondmen ...

God's Love can be seen constantly in Israel's history, in His Patience and Longsuffering in dealing with
His people, even in times of their backslidings and calamities: "Whom the Lord loveth, He chasteneth." (Heb.
12:6).
In the New Testament, there are several Greek words for love, but when reference is made to God's
LOVE, the word used is always agape. The lexicon defines agape and the verb agapao as follows: "Th love,
value, esteem, feel or manifest generous concern for, be faithful towards, to delight in, to set store upon;
whence - love, generosity, kindly concern, devotedness.""' The noun agape is scarcely found in classical
Greek. It is one of the words given a new Christian meaning in the New Testament. The Apostle John gives
us the two greatest statements about the LOVE of God: "For God so loved the world, that he gave his only
begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have everlasting life" (Jn. 3:16); and,
"God is LOVE" (1 Jn. 4:8).
The following are proofs of God's Love for the believer: a) securing our salvation and eternal life (Jn.
3:16), b) desiring and providing for us all needed things (Rom. 8:32; Jas. 1:17; Phil. 4:19), c) sending the
Comforter, the Holy Spirit (Jn. 14:15,16; 16:7), d) placing us in His Body (Eph. 5:25-27), e) making us sons
of God (1 Jn. 3:1,2), f) providing means for bodily healing (Jas. 5:14-16; Mt. 8:16,17), and g) providing
means for a victorious Christian life (Rom. 8:35-39).
Under the category of Love there may be included other virtues such as: Mercy, Longsuffering,
Goodness, Forgiveness, Compassion, etc.

4. TRUTH (Dt. 32:4).


"In hope of eternal life, which God, that cannot lie, promised before the world began..." (Ti. 1:2). "And
the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us,... full of grace and TRUTH"(Jn. 1:14)."... I am the way the
TRUTH, and the life. . . ." (Jn 14:6). '. . . Let God be TRUE, but every man a liar. . . ." (Rom. 3:4). The Truth
of God is a part of His Holy Nature and could be considered under the heading of Holiness and
Righteousness; but for practical reasons we will treat it apart as a distinct attribute.
Three reassuring applications may be made of the fact that God is TRUTH:
a) Because God is Truth, His Word is true. It is the true revelation of His Nature, His Will and
purpose for Man, and His plan of salvation. His promises and covenants are made in truth and are unfailingly

52
dependable. (Ps. 119:89, Jn. 17:17).
b) God is Truth because He is the only True God, Creator of all things, and the only true object of
Man's worship. All idolatry, therefore is a lie and deception. God is the only Being or goal worthy of top
priority in Man's life. (Jn. 4:23,24).
c) Because God is Truth, He is FAITHFUL to keep all His promises and covenants. God cannot
(will not) lie. We know that all His promises will be fulfilled, because: (1) God by Nature cannot promise
what He does not intend to keep and, (2) furthermore being Omnipotent, He is able to do what He promises.
We must understand, however, that many promises are conditional upon certain obedience on our part; if we
disobey, God is not unfaithful in withholding the promised blessing. It may sometimes appear that God is
unfaithful to a promise because of delay. When God delays, it is always in our best interest. In His time,
dictated by His Wisdom, He will faithfully fulfill His promise. (Heb. 10:23, 2 Cor. 1:20, 2 Pt. 3:4, 1 Kgs.
8:56, 2 Pt. 1:4).

VI. THE WORKS OF GOD


A. Divine Purpose (Is. 14:26,27; Eph. 1:11).
"This is the PURPOSE that is purposed upon the whole earth: and this is the hand that is stretched out
upon all nations. For the Lord of hosts hath PURPOSED, and who shall disannul it? and his hand is stretched
out, and who shall turn it back?" (Is. 14:26,27).
"In whom also we have obtained an inheritance, being predestinated. according to the PURPOSE of him
who worketh all things after the counsel of his own WILL...." (Eph. 1:11).
It seems clear from the teaching of Scripture that all events of nations and individuals are known to God
from the beginning and that they are taken into account in His plan and purpose. This does not mean that God
causes and is responsible for all acts and events, but that they are a part of His purpose in the sense that He
works all things to His ultimate Glory. 'Declaring the end from the beginning, and from ancient times the
things that are not yet done, saying, My counsel shall stand, and I will do all my pleasure ... I have purposed
it, I will also do it" (Is. 46:10,11).

The overruling purpose of God in the affairs of Mankind is expressed by Paul in his sermon to the
Athenians: '. . . he [God] giveth to all life, and breath, and all things; and hath made of one blood all nations of
men for to dwell on all the face of the earth, and hath determined the times BEFORE APPOINTED, and the
bounds of their habitation...." (Acts 17:25,26). This "before appointed" Divine purposing, however, does not
deprive them of their freedom of choice nor personal responsibility; 'because," as Paul goes on to say, "he
hath appointed a day, in which he will JUDGE the world in righteousness, by that man whom He hath
ordained. . . ." (v.31).
The great miracle of Bible prophecy demonstrates two things: (1) that God is Omniscient and knows all
things from the beginning, and (2) that He has a plan and purpose which in His Power and Wisdom He carries
out for His glory and for the redemption of His people. It would be a confusing world if every act and
happening surprised God and required Him to improvise to rescue His program from disaster. Not even
Man's original sin surprised God; He created Man with freedom of will to obey or disobey. Why God
permitted sin and evil, we cannot perfectly explain, but we have strong intimations that a redeemed people
will ultimately contribute to God's glory vastly more than a race of conforming automatons. God is not the
author of sin; He, in His Infinite Wisdom which we cannot fully fathom, made Man a free moral agent
capable of obedience or disobedience. Depravity, pain, and crime resulted from Man's disobedience, but God
purposed to overrule these. The three Hebrew children in the fiery furnace, Daniel in the lion's den, and
Joseph sold cruelly into Egypt, demonstrate the working of Divine purpose: "Ye meant evil against me, but
God meant it for good" (Gn. 50:20, NKJV). All of the above events turned out to the blessing of His people
and to His own glory. Furthermore, before He created Man, He had already purposed to bring Redemption by
Christ Jesus: "But with the precious blood of Christ, as of a lamb without blemish and without spot: who

53
verily was foreordained before the foundation of the world, but was manifest in these last times for you. - - ."
(1 Pt. 1:19,20), and"In hope of eternal life, which God, who cannot lie, promised before the world began. . ."
(Ti. 1:2).
That God's purpose includes His Church, as a definite number known to Him from the beginning, is a
Scriptural teaching. "According as he hath chosen us in him before the foundation of the world, that we
should be holy and without blame before him in love: having predestined us unto the adoption of children by
Jesus Christ to himself, according to the good pleasure of His will. . . ." (Eph. 1:4,5). "For whom He did
foreknow, He also did predestinate to be conformed to the image of His Son. . . ." (Rom. 8:29). We must not
read into this, however, the idea of an arbitrary predestination that elects some and excludes others. This
predestination is based upon the Foreknowledge of God, as Paul states in the above passage in Romans, and
as Peter confirms in his first epistle: "Elect according to the foreknowledge of God the Father. . . . " (1 Pt.
1:2). God, knowing from the beginning who would accept salvation and who would disobey the Gospel offer,
elected those whom He foreknew would obey. J. Sidlow Baxter, world renowned Bible teacher writes: "It is
in the light of His perfect foreknowledge that He preadapts and prearranges and predetermines. Thus, while
He never leaves His ultimate purposes at the mercy of human uncertainty ... He recognizes the free will of
man all through, and prearranges according to His foreknowledge of what man will do." Herbert Lockyer
remarks about Predestination: "What must be borne in mind is the fact that 'predestination' is not God's
predetermining from past ages who should and who should not be saved. Scripture does not teach this
view.1120 In his Lectures in Systematic Theology, Henry C. Thiessen, discussing Predestination says: "God
foreknew what one would do in response to His common grace; and He elected those whom He foresaw
would respond positively."
It seems clear that the Divine PURPOSE culminates in God's Son, Christ Jesus, and that it involves the
Church, the Body of Christ:
And to make all men see what is the fellowship of the mystery, which from the beginning of the world
hath been hid in God, who created all things by Jesus Christ: to the intent that now unto the principalities and
powers in heavenly places might be known by the CHURCH the manifold wisdom of God, according to the
eternal PURPOSE which He purposed in Christ Jesus our Lord.... (Eph 3:9-11)

B. Creation (Gn. 1:1; Heb. 11:3; Neh. 9:6; Col. 1:15-17; Jn. 1:3).
"In the beginning GOD created [baral the heaven and the earth" (Gn. 1:1). "Through faith we understand
that the worlds were framed by the word [rhemal of God, so that things which are seen were not made of
things which do appear" (Heb. 11:3). "All things were made by him; and without him was not anything made
that was made" (Jn. 1:3). The Bible represents the original Creation, Genesis 1:1, as an immediate creation.
The physical universe as we know it was spoken into being by God. It had not existed previously in some
other form as the Pantheists, Dualists, and some modern Theologians would have us think.

Dr. A. H. Strong defines the Creation as follows: "That free act of the triune God by which in the
beginning and for His own glory He made, without the use of pre-existing material, the whole visible and
invisible universe."
That God created rather than remade everything is borne out by the use of the Hebrew verb bara, indeed,
to judge from its use in Joshua 17:15,18, where it occurs in the piel (to hew out), means literally 'to cut, or
hew," but in kal it always means to create, and is only applied to divine creation, the production of that which
had no existence before. In this verse ... the existence of any primeval material is precluded by the object
created: "the heaven and the earth ."
We will not endeavor here to explain the first chapters of Genesis beyond the fact that they chronicle the
creation of the heaven, the earth, and the human race. Whether Genesis 1:2 represents a catastrophic "gap"
with verse three relating a recreation; whether the days of Creation are literal days, or indefinite periods;
whether the details can be reconciled with modern science's theories of origin are better left to commentaries

54
and books devoted to the discussion of Science and the Bible. It suffices to say that Conservatives of equal
scholarship are divided in their interpretation of the details of the Creation account. Many reverent men of
science will admit that there is no basic conflict between the Genesis account of Creation and the known facts
of science. Many modern materialistic scientists begin with a hypothesis that all phenomena can eventually
be explained by laws of matter and motion. That is their "faith." We believe the Bible record that states that
all things had a Divine origin. We believe that more FACTS support our view than support a materialistic,
evolutionary hypothesis. Furthermore, we believe that faith in the Creator God of the Bible establishes a
foundation for a better, more morally sound, more socially concerned, and more ethically responsible society
than one based on a godless, materialistic, purposeless "faith."
A word should be said about what existed before Genesis 1:1. God, the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Spirit already existed, as all Three were active in the Creation (Jn. 1:1; Gn. 1:2; Col. 1:16). Jesus prayed as
recorded in John chapter seventeen: "And now, 0 Father, glorify thou me with thine own self with the glory
which I had with thee before the world was;' and 'Father, I will that ... they may behold my glory, which thou
has given me: for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world" (vv.5,24). Before the world was, the
Trinity was, and Love was among the Persons of the Triune God. John 3:16 speaks of the Love of God that
commissioned His Son to His work of Redemption before Creation, before Man, and before the Fall. God's
Redeeming Love was not an afterthought. Peter said about Jesus: "Who verily was foreordained before the
foundation of the world, but was manifest in these last times for you...... (1 Pt. 1:20).

Francis A. Schaeffer writes on this subject:


The impersonal answer at any level ... does not explain these two basic factors - the universe and its form
- But the Judeo Christian tradition begins with the opposite answer. The universe had a personal beginning on
the high order of the Trinity. That is, before "in the beginning" the personal was already there. Love and
thought and communication existed prior to the creation of the heavens and the earth.
The result of Creation, ultimately, will be a redeemed multitude that no man can number, forever
worshiping and serving and glorifying God. The earth, redeemed and remade into a new earth, will be the
scene of God's kingdom; and in the new heavens and the new earth, with sin and Satan cast into the Lake of
Fire, God and the Lamb will reign whose right it is to reign (Is. 2:1-5; Rv. 19-22).

C. Providence (Mt. 5:45; Acts 14:17; Ps. 37:1-3; Ps. 105).


". . . For he maketh his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the
unjust" (Mt. 5:45). "Nevertheless he left not himself without witness, in that he did good, and gave us rain
from heaven, and fruitful seasons, filling our hearts with food and gladness" (Acts 14:17). "Trust. in the Lord,
and do good; so shalt thou dwell in the land, and verily thou shalt be fed' (Ps. 37:3). Included together with
Providence, is God's PRESERVATION of His creation, which can be viewed as an aspect of His Providence.
To the Lord Jesus Christ has been given the operation of the preservation of all things. "For by him were all
things created, that are in heaven and that are in earth, visible and invisible ... all things were created by him
and for him: and he is before all things, and by him all things consist [hold together]" (Col. 1:16,17).

Preservation has been defined as: "That continuous agency of God by which He maintains in existence the
things He has created together with the properties and powers with which he has endowed them.1125
Thiessen says of Providence: 'The Christian view affirms that God has not merely created the universe
together with all its properties and powers, and that He is preserving all that He has created, but that as a holy,
benevolent, wise, and omnipotent Being, He also exercises sovereign control over it. This sovereign control
is called providence. "
Preservation and Providence are denied by the Pantheist, who views the universe as eternal and operating
by unchanging fates; and by the Deists, who teach that after God created the universe and endowed it with
intrinsic laws, He left it to run by its own built-in capacities. The modern materialist does not accept the

55
existence of a Personal God, therefore he rejects the idea of a personal providence. On the other hand, the
Scriptures everywhere give evidence of the continual working of a Divine providence and preservation,
Most people today are deeply concerned about the matter of God's care and providential oversight of- our
lives, our society, our families, our businesses and our possessions. Men may not want God to inspect their
conduct too closely, but they hope, somehow, that He protects their lives and properties. No doubt, much
ordinary prayer, day by day, is for Divine protection and provision. A common question in times of adversity
and national calamity is, 'Is God still on the throne?" Let us examine the Word of God to see the areas of
God's providential care.

1. He governs the physical universe.


"The Lord hath prepared his throne in the heavens; and his kingdom ruleth over all" (Ps. 103:19). "He
causeth the grass to grow for the cattle, and herb for the service of man: that he may bring forth food out of
the earth. . . ." (Ps. 104:14). God maintains continual active rule over the nations of the earth; He is not
responsible for all the individual actions of men who are free agents. Some leaders like Hitler and Stalin have
done unimaginably evil things, but God in His greater Providence finally makes the wrath of men praise Him,
and fit into the Divine plan of prophecy. While God has given the earth natural conditions such as the right
proportion of sea and land, trade winds and sea currents, evaporation and precipitation to maintain weather
congenial to life and agriculture, He still preserves these processes by His oversight. That nature does not
always distribute benefits to every man's convenience is a part of the curse upon the earth accompanying the
Fall of Man (Gn. 3:17-19). But even an earth under the curse displays God's design and care to those who are
not blinded by unbelief.

2. He cares for the animal creation.


"Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your
heavenly Father feedeth them" (Mt. 6:26a). "The young lions roar after their prey, and seek their meat from
God" (Ps. 104:21). The animals have been given instincts by God, which enable them by nature to care for
themselves, but they also, like Man, depend upon the Creator and Sustainer of the earth to provide rain,
vegetation, oxygen, and a stable climate.

3. He providentially governs the nations.


"For the kingdom is the Lord's: and he is the governor among the nations" (Ps. 22:28). "He ruleth by his
power forever; his eyes behold the nations.... (Ps. 66:7). The book of Daniel read together with ancient
history will demonstrate how completely the nations, even the "world powers," are subject to Divine purpose
and follow the prophetic Word. Isaiah's naming of Cyrus, a century before he walked on the stage of history
to expedite God's plan for Israel, proves that God foreknows and orders the human drama. Still, the free will
of Cyrus was not violated. (Is. 44:28,45:1-4; Ez. 1:1-6)

4. God cares for our birth and place in life.


Before I formed you in the womb I knew you; Before you were born I sanctified you; and ordained you a
prophet to the nations. (Jer. 1:5, NKJV)
I will praise thee; for I am fearfully and wonderfully made: marvelous are thy works; and that my soul
knoweth right well. My substance was not hid from thee, when I was made in secret, and curiously wrought
... Thine eyes did see my substance, yet being unperfect; and in thy book all my members were written, which
in continuance were fashioned, when as yet there was none of them. (Ps. 139:14-16)
But the very hairs of your head are all numbered. (Mt. 10:30)

56
The Lord's Providence embraces not only our occupations and major choices of life, but even the smallest
details such as the "hairs of your head" and "our daily bread."

5. God is concerned about our successes and failures.


"He hath put down the mighty from their seats, and exalted them of low degree" (Lk. 1:52). When we
have dedicated our lives to the Lord, we can trust Him to oversee our progress and promotion in service.
Perhaps we should be less anxious about the relative prestige of positions; God in His Wisdom knows just
where we belong. Promotion comes from the Lord (Ps. 75:6,7).

6. God provides protection for the righteous.


"I will both lay me down in peace, and sleep: for thou, Lord, only makest me to dwell safely" (Ps. 4:8).
"For we know that all things work together for good to them that love God, to them who are the called
according to his purpose" (Rom. 8:28).

7. God supplies the needs and wants of His people.


"Charge them that are rich in this world, that they be not high-minded, nor trust in uncertain riches, but in
the living God, who giveth us richly all things to enjoy. . . ." (I Tm. 6:17). (Also Phil. 4:19).

8. God provides the answer to our prayers.


"But when ye pray, use not vain repetitions, as the heathen do.... Be not ye therefore like unto them: for
your Father knoweth what things ye have need of, before ye ask him. After this manner therefore pray ye. . .
." (Mt. 6:7-9) "But seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness; and all these things shall be added
unto you" (Mt. 6:33).

9. The Lord governs the reward of the righteous and the punishment of the impenitent.
"Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and afterward receive me to glory" (Ps. 73:24). "For the Lord
knoweth the way of the righteous; but the way of the ungodly shall perish" (Ps. 1:6).
The average man is greatly prone to anxiety; worry lands too many in a sick bed or an early grave. John
truly said, "Fear hath torment' (1 Jn. 4:18). He also said, "Perfect love casteth out fear" (1 Jn. 4:18). But,
when we have a strong confidence in Divine providence, we are relieved of the tormenting anxiety to which
Man is so inclined. "Are not two sparrows sold for a cent? And yet no one of them will fall to the ground
apart from your Father ... Therefore, do not fear, you are of more value than many sparrows" (Mt. 10:29-31,
NKJV). GLORY TO GOD!

VII. THE TRI-UNITY (TRINITY) OF GOD


A. Definition.
We approach the study of the TRINITY with a deep sense of awe. All study of the Nature of God defies
our full comprehension, but the tri-unity of God is the greatest of all the Divine mysteries. In it we stand on
holy ground. Because it is a mystery, we do not expect to reduce it to logical formulas anymore than we
would attempt to transfer the Pacific ocean into a teacup. We do study the doctrine, however, because it is the
center gem of Divine revelation. To the finite human mind the Unity of God and the Trinity of God are
contradictions, but both doctrines are clearly taught throughout the New Testament. The Tri-unity of God is,
in fact, the foundation stone of the Christian faith. Every time in Church history that the doctrine of the
Trinity has been compromised, the other major Bible tenets have also been compromised or abandoned.

57
Those who have denied the`Trinity have also denied the Deity of Christ, the Virgin Birth, the Vicarious
Atonement, the Personality of the Holy Spirit; or else, they have made God a stage player wearing three
different masks.
The Apostle Paul, in his sermon to the Ephesian elders, said:

Take heed therefore unto yourselves, and to all the flock, over the which the Holy Ghost has made you
overseers, to feed the church of God, which he hath purchased with His own blood. For I know this, that after
my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you, not sparing the flock. Also of your own selves shall
men arise, speaking perverse things, to draw away disciples after them.
Therefore watch ... (Acts 20:28-31a)
Observe the Trinitarian statements in the above passage: "Holy Spirit has made you overseers"; "church
of God, which He purchased with His own blood." Paul's prediction of heresies and divisions in the Church
very soon began to come to pass. In the second century two separatist groups denied the doctrine of the
Trinity; one came to be called "Monarchianism," the other "Sabellianism." The first denied the Deity of Christ
and the Personality of the Holy Spirit; the second denied separate identities of the Three Persons, declaring
that Jesus and the Holy Spirit were only different modes of the one Person, or different guises by which He
manifested Himself. Both of these, reasoning humanly, thought they were guarding the Unity of God. Today
we have offspring of these heresies in Unitarianism and in the "Jesus Only' or "Oneness" doctrines.
The main stream of the Church has persistently rejected these false teachings. By the beginning of the
fourth century it became incumbent upon the church to convene a council of leaders and pastors to formulate
the Apostolic doctrines to which they held. They felt the need for a formal creed to which the Church at large
could subscribe. The first council met at Nicea in 325 A.D., where Athanasius prevailed against Arius and
the Deity of Christ was confirmed. Controversy continued and other councils were held: at Chalcedon in 351
A.D. and at Constantinople in 381 A.D. At this last council, the doctrines of the Deity of Christ and that of the
Trinity were upheld and formulated into what we call the Nicene Creed:
We believe in one God - And in one Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God, begotten of the Father, light of
light, very God of very God, begotten not made, being of one substance with the Father - And we believe in
the Holy Ghost, who is the Lord and giver of life, who proceedeth from the Father, who with the Father and
Son, is worshiped and glorified, who spake by the prophets.
The major Protestant bodies have closely followed this ancient creed of the fourth century. The best
known of the reformation creeds is the Westminster Confession, which reads as follows:
There is but one living and true God. In the unity of the Godhead there are three persons, of one
substance, power, and eternity God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Spirit. The Father is one,
neither begotten or proceeding; the Son is eternally begotten of the Father; the Holy Ghost eternally
proceeding from the Father and the Son.
These creeds and confessions rightly do not attempt to remove the mystery of the Trinity or to reconcile
the scriptural statements with finite reasoning. The compilers tried to include all that Scripture teaches about
the Three Persons of the Trinity without any effort to show how God can be both One and Three. The creeds
are human documents, and are not infallible; nevertheless, the main stream of the Church has followed the
wording of the Nicene and Athanasian creeds with very little variation.

B. Its Scriptural Presentation.


1. In the Old Testament.
It was absolutely essential that, in the Old Testament, the UNITY of God should be clearly revealed and
emphasized. Israel was surrounded by tribes and nations which had departed from the original knowledge of
God Almighty, the Creator, to embrace polytheism. The Gentile nations worshiped a variety of gods and
goddesses represented by images. God revealed Himself to Abraham as God Almighty (El-Shaddai). To

58
Moses, God revealed Himself by His redemptive personal name of Jehovah or Yahweh, and in His Law
declared: "Hear, 0 Israel: The Lord our God is ONE Lord..." (lit: Jehovah our Elohim is One Jehovah) (Dt.
6:4). The Law further admonished: "Thou shalt have no other gods before me" (Ex. 20:3). `To have
introduced the Trinity perceptually at that juncture would have been premature and confusing to a nation in
infancy. The Old Testament gives us intimations of the Triune Nature of God, but they are clear only in the
light of the New Testament's fuller revelation in Christ.
Revelation is of necessity progressive, and having received the deeper insight provided by the Incarnation
and the outpouring of the Spirit at Pentecost, we can recognize the repeated intimations of the Trinity in the
Old Testament.

a) In the Old Testament, there are PLURAL NAMES for God, and plural pronouns are used to
refer to Him. The names Elohim and Adonai are plurals. Elohim, when used of the True God, has a singular
form of the verb. The plurality of the name is explained away by some as a "plural of majesty"; but in
Genesis 1:26, we read: ". . . Let US make man in OUR image. . ." (plural pronouns). Plural pronouns are also
found in Genesis 3:22 and 11:7. God said to Isaiah, "Whom shall I send and who will go for us?" (Is. 6:8).
The very verse that declared God's Unity to all Jews, Jehovah our Elohim is one Jehovah," contains God's
plural name, Elohim. Here we have plurality in unity - would not this be an intimation of the Trinity?
b) The Angel of Jehovah is called God. The Angel of Jehovah appears a number of times in the book
of Genesis and from time to time throughout the Old Testament. A distinction is made between the Angel of
Jehovah and Jehovah, yet they are one. In such events when God appears as an angel or as a man, we call the
appearance a "theophany," from the Greek words theos; (God) and phaino (to appear). (See Gn. 16:7-13, God
appears to Hagar.) In Genesis 18:1-19:29 the Lord appears to Abraham as "three men," yet Abraham
addresses them as Lord in the singular. Two of the men appear to Lot in Sodom, but he addresses them as
Jehovah. In Genesis 22:1-19, Abraham is ordered to sacrifice Isaac, but the Angel of the Lord speaks from
heaven releasing him from the order. In verse sixteen, the angel calls Himself Jehovah. In Genesis 32:22-32,
Jacob wrestles with an angel and prevails to receive a Divine blessing, then says, "I have seen God face to
face" (Gn. 32:30). The Angel of the Lord appeared to Moses at the burning bush giving him the promise He
would lead them out of Egypt; in the conversation the terms 'Angel" and "Jehovah" are used interchangeably.
c) Jesus is the Prophet like unto Moses. In Deuteronomy 18:18,19 (NASB), God prophesies through
Moses:
I will raise up a prophet from among their countrymen like you, and I will put My words in his mouth,
and he shall speak to them all that I command him. And it shall come about that whoever will not listen to
My words which He shall speak in my name, I Myself will require it of him.
When has such a prophet ever appeared except Jesus? Who else has so spoken God's words that those
who did not heed them incurred God's direct judgment? About whom did God speak saying, "This is my
beloved Son ... hear ye him?" (Mt. 3:17).
d) Jesus is the Captain of the Lord's host. In Joshua 5:13-6:2, a "man" with a drawn sword appeared
to Joshua who called himself the "Captain of the host of Jehovah." Joshua was commanded to loose his shoes
as he was on holy ground; and in 6:2 (two verses later) we read, "And Jehovah said unto Joshua."
In view of what we learn in the New Testament about Jesus, this one who appears to Old Testament
characters and speaks as Jehovah, receives worship, and exercises Divine power cannot be other than Jesus in
preincarnate appearance, a "Christophany,' from the Greek words christos and phaino (to appear). (No man
has seen God at any time.) Jesus is God "manifest in the flesh" (1 Tm. 3:16).
e) References in Psalms applied to Jesus. "The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou at my right hand,
until I make thine enemies thy footstool" (Ps. 110:1). (Applied by Christ to himself in Mk. 12:35-37.) 'Thou
art my Son; this day have I begotten thee" (Ps. 2:7). (In Acts 13:33, Paul applies this passage to Jesus.) "Thy
throne, 0 God, is for ever and ever" (Ps. 45:6). (The writer of Hebrews relates this to Jesus in 1:8.)
f) Jesus is the Messiah (The Son of David) predicted in the Old Testament. In Isaiah 7:14, He is to

59
be born of a virgin. In Isaiah 9:6,7, He is the Prince of Peace, the Mighty God, the Everlasting Father, Son of
David, etc. In Micah 5:2, He is to be born in Bethlehem. In Isaiah chapter fifty-three, He is the man of
sorrows and acquainted with grief, bruised for our iniquities, etc. Jesus is the only reasonable identification
for this Servant of Jehovah. Philip applies Isaiah chapter fifty-three, to Jesus. Several address Jesus as "Thou
Son of David' (Mt. 9:27; 21:9). That Jesus is frequently referred to in the Old Testament Scriptures is attested
to by the testimony of Jesus Himself after His Resurrection: 'And beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he
expounded unto them in all the Scriptures the things concerning Himself" (Lk. 24:27).

2. In the New Testament.


After the Resurrection of Jesus and the descent of the Holy Spirit on the Day of Pentecost, the doctrine of
the Trinity was crystal clear to the New Testament church. Jesus had revealed Himself in all the Scriptures
and, now the other Comforter had come and brought "all things to their remembrance" (Jn. 14:26). When the
Apostles began to preach the Gospel and to write epistles, they did not waver in declaring that Jesus was God
and that the Holy Spirit was God; yet, at the same time, they thought of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Spirit as one God (1 Cor. 8:6).

The following are PROOFS of the Trinity in the New Testament:


a) The three Persons are in evidence at one time at the Baptism of Jesus. Jesus ascends from the
waters of baptism, the Holy Spirit descends from heaven in the visible form of a dove, the Father speaks from
heaven saying, 'This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased" (Mt. 3:16,17). All Three are in
manifestation at the same time. The Father speaks of the Son as another identity in Whom He is pleased. The
Spirit has an identity separate from the other two. Those who say that the Three are only modes or guises of
one Person here make Jesus a magician who produces a dove out of thin air, and a ventriloquist who projects
His voice to the clouds. The Scripture does not give us an illusion, but a clear demonstration of the Divine
Tri-unity. (See also Mk. 1:9-11; Lk. 3:21,22; Jn. 1:32-34.)
b) In the fourteenth chapter of John we have a clear proof of the three distinct Persons of the
Trinity. First, in verse nine, Jesus says to Philip, "he that hath seen me hath seen the Father." Here it is clear
that Jesus and the Father are one. Yet at the same time they have separate identities, for Jesus says to the
disciples,
And I will pray the Father and He shall give you ANOTHER Comforter, that He may abide with you
forever... But the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost whom the Father will send in my name, he shall teach
you all things, and bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you (Jn. 14:16,26).
Jesus speaks of the Father as "He," of the Holy Spirit as "He," and of Himself as 'T" Jesus refers to the Holy
Spirit as "another Comforter," separate in identity. The Spirit will come when He goes away. Yet Jesus says,
"lo, I am with you alway. . .' (Mt. 28:20). Herein is the mystery: There are three separate identities (not
individuals), yet there is ONE GOD, not three. The Trinity is beyond our comprehension, yet the
unmistakable teaching of Scripture.
c) The Baptismal Formula given by Jesus in the Great Commission clearly reveals the threeness
and the oneness of God: ". . . baptizing them in the NAME of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy
Ghost. . ." (Mt. 28:19). The three identities are given as Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, grouped together in
equality; the word "name" is not repeated, indicating the unity.
d) The apostolic benediction in 2 Corinthians 13:14 shows in capsule form the Trinitarian thinking
of the Early Church: "The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God, and the communion of the
Holy Ghost, be with you all. Amen." We have a similar Trinitarian statement in Jude 20b,21: "praying in the
Holy Ghost, keep yourselves in the love of God, looking for the mercy of our Lord Jesus Christ unto eternal
life." While the usual order of the Three is given in the Baptismal Formula, in the two benedictions given
above, Jesus is placed first in one, and the Holy Spirit first in the other. Does this not show that the terms
"Son" and 'Holy Spirit" are not inferior? (See also 1 Cor. 12:4-6; Eph. 4:4-6; 5:18-20; 2 Thes, 2:13,14)

60
VIII. THE PERSONS OF THE TRINITY
A. God the Father.
We will not enlarge upon the general doctrine of God here, as this has already been covered under the
sections on the Existence, Nature, Names, and Attributes of God. We will briefly consider God as Father of
our Lord Jesus Christ. The relationship of Father and Son has to do with their self-revelation to us in the
context of Redemption. It does not mean that once the Father existed alone and then He begot the Son at a
point of time. All the Persons of the Trinity are Coequal and Coeternal. The lexicons give the meaning of the
Greek word monogenes as "of the same kind." The term "only begotten" means that Jesus was not created by
the Father, therefore being different from the Father. We are created and adopted sons, therefore of a
different nature from the Father. John said of Jesus as the Word: "In the beginning was the Word, and the
Word was with God [lit. face to face with], and the Word was God. The same was in the beginning with God
[lit. already was]" (Jn. 1:1,2). In John chapter seventeen, Jesus prayed that He might be glorified with the
glory He had with the Father before the world was. Someone asked what God was doing before He created
the universe; he was troubled about the idea of an eternally lonely God. But before there was a universe, in
the Trinity of God there was love, communication, and purpose (Eph. 1:4,5; 1 Jn. 4:7,8). If God were not
Triune, the above question could perplex us. But the Three are One in Nature, Will, and Purpose.

B. God the Son.

1. His Virgin Birth.


As found in Matthew 1:20b-25 (NASB): Joseph, son of David, do not be afraid to take Mary as your wife;
for that which has been conceived in her is of the Holy Spirit. And she will bear a son; and you shall call His
name Jesus, for it is He who will save His people from their sins. Now all this took place that what was
spoken by the Lord through the prophet might be fulfilled, saying,'BEHOLD THE VIRGIN SHALL BE
WITH CHILD, AND SHALL BEAR A SON, AND THEY SHALL CALL HIS NAME IMMANUEL,'which
translated means, GOD WITH US. And Joseph arose from his sleep, and did as the angel of the Lord
commanded him, and took her as his wife, and kept her a virgin until she gave birth to a Son: and he called
His name JESUS. (See also Lk. 1:26-38)
a) It is worth noting that in Matthew 1:16, the conclusion of Joseph's genealogy, Jesus' Virgin Birth is
accented by the use of a feminine pronoun, of which Mary is the antecedent: 'And to Jacob was born Joseph
the husband of Mary, by whom was born Jesus, who was called Christ.' The "by whom" in the Greek, ex hes,
is singular, feminine gender, making the birth to be "by Mary" only, even though the genealogy is Joseph's.
Only Matthew and Luke relate the birth of Jesus, but John states: "And the Word was made flesh and dwelt
among us, (and we beheld His glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the Father) full of grace and truth"
(Jn. 1:14). The Apostle Paul says concerning the birth of Jesus: "But when the fulness of the time was come,
God sent forth his Son, made [born] of a woman...." (Gal. 4:4). Does not 'born of a woman" indicate a Virgin
Birth? Those who doubt or deny the Virgin Birth of Jesus, do so because of a presupposition of unbelief.
That the Scriptures teach the Virgin Birth is undeniable.
b) The Westminster Catechism defines the doctrine of the Virgin Birth as follows: "Christ the Son
of God, became man, by taking to Himself a true body and a reasonable soul, being conceived by the power
of the Holy Ghost, in the womb of the Virgin Mary, and born of her yet without sin." These words from the
Apostle's Creed sum up the belief of the Early Church, "conceived by the Holy Ghost, born of the Virgin
Mary."
c) In the Old Testament there is a progressive revelation of the supernatural Virgin Birth of Jesus:
(1) In Genesis 3:15, we have the earliest prophecy of a redeemer from sin in which He is called 'The
seed of woman."

61
(2) God promised Abraham a blessing upon his "seed" and through his seed blessing upon all
nations (Gn. 22:15-18). Paul interprets the promise to Abraham's seed as the promise fulfilled in Christ
Jesus: "Now to Abraham and his seed were the promises made. He saith not, And to seeds, as of many;
but as of one, And to thy seed, which is Christ" (Gal. 3:16).
(3) Jesus' birth shall be a "rod out of the stem of Jesse [David], and a Branch ... of his roots: And
the Spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him . . ." (Is. 11:1,2). (Also 2 Sm. 7:12,13). Matthew begins his
gospel with the words: 'The book of the generation of Jesus Christ, the son of David...." (Mt. 1:1).
(4) Isaiah prophesies about a child to be born who shall be called "The Mighty God and the
Everlasting Father" (Is. 9:6,7), and he shall occupy the throne of David.
(5) Isaiah clearly predicts the Virgin Birth as the means of the coming of Immanuel (Mt. 1:22,23;
Is. 7:14).
(6) Before the Birth of Jesus there was the Angelic announcement of it. The angel appeared first
to Zacharias, announcing the birth, by his wife Elizabeth, of John the Baptist, Jesus' forerunner (Lk. 1:11-
17); then, angelic witness was given to Mary that she would bring forth a child who would be the Son of
the Highest, and in spite of her "knowing not a man," it would happen by the Holy Spirit's
overshadowing"; for with God nothing was impossible (Lk. 2:27-35).
d) The doctrine of the Virgin Birth is vitally important to the whole structure of fundamental
theology. IF JESUS HAD BEEN BORN OF A NATURAL FATHER:
(1) He would have inherited the Adamic nature of the human race, and His Death would not have
been vicarious nor substitutionary. He would have died only for his own redemption.
(2) He would not have been Infinite, and even if some method could have been arranged to avoid a
corporate identity with Adam, He could not have died for the world.
(3) He would have been merely a sincere and zealous, but finite religious leader; for the denial of the
Virgin Birth is a virtual denial of the Deity of Christ. If Jesus had a human father, He could not have
been the "only begotten" of the Father, the unique Infinite Son of God.
(4) Then we have an unreliable Bible. If Jesus was not born of a virgin as recorded in Matthew and
Luke, how can we trust what it records of His Death and Resurrection? If our Scriptures cannot be
trusted on such a crucial matter, then all religious faith is like sailing the sea without chart or compass.
(5) Then we would by logical inference have to reject every miraculous aspect of Christianity. If
Jesus is the Eternal Son of God who became incarnate to identify with and redeem Man, then we could
not expect other than a miraculous entrance to this world. Did not the angel say to Mary, "with God
nothing shall be impossible" (Lk. 1:37)?
(6) Then He would have been, at best, only a spiritual genius with unusual religious insight, and not
the one Infinite Lamb of God who made valid all Old Testament sacrifice. Only a Divine and Infinite
offering can make effective, once for all, every sacrifice for sin. The Old Testament sacrificial system
would have been little above paganism if God had not intended to send His Infinite Son in the "fullness of
time" to fulfill the typology of animal sacrifices which by themselves were powerless. In Hebrews
chapter ten we read: "For it is not possible that the blood of bulls and goats should take away sins ... we
are sanctified through the offering of the body of Christ ONCE FOR ALL" (vv.4,10). A Christ of
completely human parenthood, could not be God's Lamb.
(7) Then we could not expect Jesus to come again as the King with Whom all the redeemed will rule.
Only the preexistent Word of God will come as King of Kings and Lord of Lords. John says of Him:
"Behold, He cometh with clouds; and every eye shall see Him.... I am Alpha and Omega, the beginning
and the ending, saith the Lord, which is, and which was, and which is to come, the Almighty" (Rv. 1:
7,8). And again: 'And He was clothed with a vesture dipped in blood: and His name is called The WORD
of God" (Rv. 19:13). It could be shown, if space permitted, that rejection of the doctrine of the Virgin
Birth, would weaken practically all other basic historic Christian theology. The fact is that the
contemporary teachers who deny the Virgin Birth present a gospel that the Apostles would not have

62
recognized and that the Scriptures refute.

2. His Nature
The Westminster Confession gives the following definition of The Son of God, the second person of the
Trinity, being very and eternal God, of one substance, and equal with the Father, did, when the fulness of time
was come take upon himself man's nature, with all the essential properties and common infirmities thereof,
yet without sin: being conceived by the power of the Holy Ghost, in the womb of the Virgin Mary, of her
substance. So that the two whole, perfect, and distinct natures, the Godhead and the manhood, were
inseparably joined together in one person, without conversion, composition, or confusion. Which person is
very God and very man, yet one Christ, the only Mediator between God and man.... (Ch. VIII, Sec. 2)
Jesus had a Divine Nature and a human nature, yet He was one Person not two. He was the Son of God
and the Son of Man, but His two natures did not result in a Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde dual personality. He was
Christ, the Messiah, and He was Jesus of Nazareth: "For there is one God, and one mediator between God and
man, the man Christ Jesus" (1 Tm. 2:5). He subsisted in the form of God and was equal with God; but, he
took upon Himself the form of a servant and was made in the likeness of men. (The Greek homoioma means
"real likeness," but His likeness was not merely human.) Jesus was real man, but not merely man. Jesus was
born and died like men; but, He was the "Ancient of Days" who said, "Before Abraham was, I AM" (Jn.
8:58). Jesus said, I thirst"; but also, "I am the water of life." Jesus said, 'Give me to drink"; yet, on the same
occasion, "Whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him shall never thirst" (Jn. 4:7-14). He was
beaten with stripes; yet, with His stripes we were healed. He said, I can do nothing of myself"; but, without
Him was not anything made that was made. Another had to carry His cross; but, "He upholdeth all things by
the word of His power" (Heb. 1:3). He increased in wisdom and in stature (Lk. 2:52); but, He is the same
yesterday, and today and forever. He was sentenced to death by a Roman governor; but, He was the King of
Kings and the Lord of Lords. He said, M now is my soul troubled"; yet, He was the "Prince of Peace." He
cried on the cross, "Why hast thou forsaken me?; yet, He promised His followers, "I will never leave thee nor
forsake thee."
a) The human nature of Jesus. The Apostle John warned against a heresy that denied the humanity of
Jesus; he stated: ... many false prophets are gone out into the world. Hereby know ye the Spirit of God: Every
spirit that confesseth that Jesus Christ is come in the flesh is of God: And every spirit that confesseth not that
Jesus is come in the flesh is not of God: and this is that spirit of antichrist.... (1 Jn. 4:1-3)

Some devout and well meaning believers, have been so absorbed in maintaining the Deity of Christ Jesus
that they have minimized the humanity of Jesus. Jesus did not merely have a brush with humanity, He took to
Himself a genuine human nature with every human attribute except sinfulness. His human nature was in
submission to His Divine Nature without sacrificing any of its humanness. Let us study the proofs of His
human nature:

(1) Jesus was born a natural infant in Bethlehem's manger and wrapped in a baby's swaddling clothes
(Lk. 2:7).
(2) He grew up in the normal manner of a child (Lk. 2:39,40).
(3) He grew up in subjection to His parents (Lk. 2:51,52).
(4) Jesus was traced through two human genealogies, one of Joseph (Mt. 1), and one of Mary (Lk.
3:23-38).
(5) He is called 'The Seed of Woman," "The Seed of Abraham," and "The Son of David," and is in
this way linked to the human race.
(6) Jesus was tempted and tested in all points as we are, without sin. It is often asked if Jesus could
have sinned. He could not have sinned because He possessed, in addition to His human nature, a Divine

63
Nature which was Holy; furthermore, because He was conceived by the Holy Spirit without a human
father, His human nature was devoid of sin. In addition to this, his human nature was in perfect
submission to His Divine Nature and Divine Will. Then, some will say, why was He tempted if He could
not sin? Temptation, as applied to Jesus meant "testing." It was perfectly in order for Him to be tested to
demonstrate, as the Last Adam, His perfect obedience; and as the Lamb of God, that He was "without
spot or blemish." (Mt. 4:1-11; Lk. 4:1-13; Mt. 26:36-46; Heb. 2:18, 4:15).
(7) He calls Himself a man (Jn. 8:40); He calls Himself or is called the Son of Man seventy (70)
times (Jn. 8:28); "One Mediator, the man Christ Jesus" (1 Tm. 2:5).
(8) Jesus is our High Priest. The qualification of a priest is that he must be taken from among men in
order to be their representative. He must share their state (Heb. 5:1-10). Isaiah saw Jesus in prophetic
vision as "the man of sorrows and acquainted with grief" (Is. 53:3). The true High Priest must also be
able to approach the Throne of God on His own merit. Jesus the Son of God represents God to Man, and
conversely Man to God. Our High Priest is the God-man; a High Priest after the order of Melchizedek.
(9) Jesus had human attributes such as hunger, thirst, tears, fatigue, etc.; at last He suffered, shed His
blood, died and was buried.
(10) Even after the Resurrection, with a glorified body He could invite Thomas to touch His hands
and side to feel His wounds. He still retained His humanity along with His Divinity. In Revelation 19:13
He returns to reign on earth and it is said of Him: "And he was clothed with a vesture dipped in blood. . .
." In Revelation chapter twenty-two, we see Jesus with the Father in the New Jerusalem and He is called
the "Lamb." The threefold positional work of Jesus was to be that of Prophet, Priest, and King; in the
coming age Jesus will retain these same distinctions. (See Acts 3:19-26; Heb. 7:17,21; Mt. 27:29,37; Jn.
19:21; 1 Tm. 1:17; 1 Tm. 6:13-16; 2 Pt. 1:11; Heb. 1:8-14.) The Son of God became the Son of man in
order that the sons of men might become sons of God.
b) The Divine Nature of Jesus. If we approach the study of Jesus with human reason, we tend to
discover only His humanity; if we approach it with emotional devotion, we tend to find only His Divinity; but
if we study the Bible with faith, we accept what God's Word reveals - both humanity and Deity. We have
examined the proofs of His humanity; let us now look at the evidence of His Deity:
(1) In the Old Testament, the prophets prophesy of His coming, and give to Him Divine names: (a) Isaiah
calls Him "The Mighty God, the Everlasting Father" (Is. 9:6,7), and "Immanuel," God with us (7:14). (b)
Jeremiah refers to Him as "The LORD Our Righteousness [Jehovah Tsidkenu]" (Jer. 23:6). (c) David speaks
of Him as "My Lord" (Ps. 110:1-7).
(2) He is called God, and Lord in the New Testament: "And Thomas answered and said unto Him, My
Lord and my God" (Jn. 20:28); "And we know that the Son of God is come ... This is the true God and eternal
life."
(1 Jn. 5:20). Christ came who is over all, God blessed forever. Amen". (Rom. 9:5); And the Word was
God" (Jn. 1:1); ". . . the glorious appearing of the great God and our Savior Jesus Christ" (Ti. 2:13); "Thy
throne God is for ever and ever" (Heb. 1:8, quoted from Ps. 45:6).
(3) He is called the "unique" Son of God. The term "only begotten" (Gr., monogenes) means "unique, of
the very same kind." Jesus was not created as the Son, He was eternally the Son. "Verily, verily I say unto
you, the hour is coming, and now is, when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God: and they that hear
shall live" (Jn. 5:25); "For what the law could not do, in that it was weak through the flesh, God sending His
own Son, in the likeness of sinful flesh, and for sin, condemned sin in the flesh. . ." (Rom. 8:3); "He is anti-
Christ that denieth the Father and the Son. Whosoever denieth the Son, the same hath not the Father: but he
that acknowledgeth the Son hath the Father also" (1 Jn. 2:22b,23).
(4) Jesus declares Himself to be One with the Father: "I and my Father are one" (Jn. 10:30); 'he that hath
seen me hath seen the Father" (Jn. 14:9). (Also Jn. 14:7-1 1)
(5) Jesus had pre-existence: "Before Abraham was I AM" (Jn. 8:58); "In the beginning was the Word,
and the Word was with God, and the Word was God ... And the Word became flesh" (Jn. 1:1-5,14); "And

64
now, 0 Father, glorify thou me with thine own self with the glory which I had with thee before the world was"
(Jn. 17:5). (See also Phil. 2:5-11; Jn. 1:15; Heb. 1:1-3.)
(6) To Jesus were ascribed Divine attributes: (a) Omnipotence, "All power is given unto me in heaven
and in earth" (Mt. 28:18); "And without Him was not any thing made that was made" (Jn. 1:3); "For by him
were all things created, that are in heaven, and that are in earth, visible and invisible; whether they be thrones,
or dominions, or principalities, or powers: all things were created by Him, and for Him; and He is before all
things, and by Him all things consist' (Col. 1:16,17). (See also Jn. 1:14; 11:25,26; 20:30,31; Col. 2:9). (b)
Omniscience, "But Jesus did not commit Himself unto them, because He knew all men, And needed not that
any should testify of man: for He knew what was in man," (Jn. 2:24,25). (See also, Jn 1:48-51; 16:30;
21:17,18; Col. 2:3). (c) Omnipresence, '. . . Lo I am with you always even unto the end of the world" (Mt.
28:20); "And no man hath ascended up to heaven, but He that came down from heaven, even the Son of man
which is in heaven" (Jn. 3:13). (d) Eternity, 'He is before all things" (Col. 1:17); "Jesus Christ the same
yesterday, and today, and for ever" (Heb. 13:8). (See also Jn. 1:1-3; 8:58; Mi. 5:2; Rv. 1:17; Heb. 1:8). (e)
Immutability, see Heb. 13:8. (f) Creation, See Jn. 1:3,10; Col. 1:16; Heb. 1:10; Eph. 3:9; Jn. 1:10. (g)
Holiness, "Ye know that he was manifested to take away our sins; and in him is no sin" (1 Jn. 3:5). (See also 1
Pt. 2:22; Heb. 7:26). (h) Forgiveness of sins, "He said ... Son, thy sins be forgiven thee" (Mk. 2:5). (Also Lk.
7:48). (I) All Judgment is given Him, "For the Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all judgment unto
the Son" (Jn. 5:22). (See also, Acts 17:31; Rv. 22:12; Rom. 2:16; Mt. 16:27; 25:31-33; 2 Cor. 5:10).
(7) Jesus made statements about Himself that would be absurdly grandiose were He not Divine. "I am
the resurrection and the life: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: And whosoever
liveth and believeth in me shall never die" (Jn. 11:25,26). (See also Jn. 4:14,26; 5:20; 6:33-35,40, 50,51,53,
54,63; 8:12,23,24,56,58; 9:35-39; 10:79.)
(8) Jesus was aware of and declared His unique relationship as the Son of God to the Father and to the
Holy Spirit. "But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of
truth, which proceedeth from the Father, he shall testify of me: ... It is expedient for you that I go away: for if
I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you" (Jn. 15:26-,
16:7). (See also Jn. 6:20-27; 7:38,39).
(9) Worship was ascribed to Jesus. Exodus 34:14 stipulates: 'For thou shalt worship no other god: for the
Lord, whose name is Jealous, is a jealous God...." Worship belongs only unto God Almighty; yet Christ
received genuine worship without objection or protest. "They that were in the ship came and worshiped him,
saying, Of a truth thou art the Son of God" (Mt. 14:33). At Jesus' birth the wise men came to pay homage
unto Him: '. . . we have seen His star in the east, and are come to worship Him ... And when they were come
into the house, they saw the young child with Mary His mother, and fell down and worshiped Him,..." (Mt.
2:2,11). God commanded concerning His Son, "And again, when He bringeth in the first begotten into the
world, He saith, And let all the angels of God worship Him" (Heb. 1:6). To whomever worship is ascribed,
the same is very God of very God. Jesus is very God, second Person of the Godhead, Coequal and Coeternal
with the Father. Amen.
In ancient times, the Deity of Christ was denied; first by the Ebionites in 107 A.D., then later (in 325
A.D.) by Arias and his followers. In modern times Christ's Deity has been questioned by the Deists, the
Unitarians, the Christian Scientists, Jehovah's Witnesses, Mormons and many liberal theologians. The main
stream of the Church has always held to the doctrines of the Trinity and the Deity of Christ. Some, who have
professed belief in Christ's Deity, actually believed in a created Christ who was above men but less than God,
or they believed that He Was 'divine" in the sense that all men may be divine.

3. The works of Christ.


Jesus was a worker. He said, 'My Father worketh hitherto, and I work" (Jn. 5:17). Once, when the
disciples were concerned about His need for food, Jesus responded by saying, 'My meat is to do the will of
him that sent me, and to finish His work." (Jn. 4:34). Feeling the urgency of His task, Jesus exclaimed, "I
must work the works of him that sent me, while it is day: the night cometh, when no man can work. As long

65
as I am in the world, I am the light of the world" (Jn. 9:4,5). In Jesus' prayer near the end of His earthly
ministry, He said, "I have glorified thee on the earth: I have finished the work which thou gavest me to do"
(Jn. 17:4).
It seems quite clear that any study of the Christian Faith must interpret the meaning of Christ's Work on
earth. At one point in time, God Himself, in the Person of His Only Son, visited our world to redeem out of it
a people for His own possession. What God's Son did while here, and how it accomplished our salvation,
must be the most important matter that can occupy our thoughts. The Work of Christ must be studied; it only
remains to decide how to best organize that study. Many writers have preferred to study the Lord's Work
under three headings: (1) His work as PROPHET (2) His work as a PRIEST, and (3) His work as a KING.
While this method of study has been criticized, its value from the perspective of the whole Bible seems to
recommend it; therefore, we will follow it. There were three types of leaders in the Old Testament,
commissioned by God, who were ushered into their offices by the symbolic act of anointing with oil, which
anointing signified the fullness of the Holy Spirit. The term "Messiah" means "The anointed one." The name
'Christ" also means "The anointed one." It is appropriate that Christ, God's Anointed, should fulfill all three of
these ministries as the ultimate Prophet, Priest, and King:
a) Christ the Prophet - a prophet is one commissioned by God to make known His Will to Man. The
greatest prophet in the Old Testament was Moses, who spoke on God's behalf, revealing Divine will to God's
chosen people in the form of the Law. A secondary work of a prophet was that of predicting future events. In
Deuteronomy 18:18,19, Moses predicted the coming of the greatest of all prophets:
I will raise them up a prophet from among their brethren, like unto thee, and will put my words in his
mouth; and he shall speak unto them all that I shall command him. And it shall come to pass, that whosoever
will not hearken unto my words that he shall speak in my name, I will require it of him.
After the healing of the lame man at the Beautiful gate, Peter addressed the people, declaring to them that
Jesus was the promised prophet who fulfilled Moses' prophecy. Then he added, "Unto you first God, having
raised up His Son Jesus, sent him to bless you, in turning away every one of you from his iniquities" (Acts
3:26).
When Jesus arose to address the synagogue at Nazareth, He quoted a Messianic prophecy from Isaiah:
The Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because he hath anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor; he hath
sent me to heal the brokenhearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, and recovering of sight to the blind,
to set at liberty them that are bruised, to preach the acceptable year of the Lord.
When all eyes were fastened upon Him He continued by saying, "This day is this scripture fulfilled in
your ears" (Lk. 4:18,19,21; Is. 61:1,2a).
In the New Testament epistles, the passage which expresses most clearly the prophetic mission of Jesus,
of speaking to man on God's behalf, is Hebrews 1:1,2: (NKJV) "God, who at various times and in different
ways spoke in time past to the fathers by the prophets, has in these last days spoken to us by His Son, whom
He has appointed heir of all things"
There were five functions which usually characterized the ministry of a prophet, they were: (1)
Preaching (2) Teaching (3) Discipling (4) Predicting and (5) Miracles. Not every prophet's ministry had all
five functions, but we could point to Elijah, Isaiah, Jeremiah, and several others whose ministries included the
full range of functions. Most certainly all the above mentioned functions were manifested fully in the
ministry of Jesus the Prophet:
(1) Jesus began His prophetic ministry with preaching; Mark 1:14 says ofHim: "Now ... Jesus came
into Galilee, preaching the gospel of the kingdom of God." There are nearly fifty (50) of the discourses of
Jesus recorded in the New Testament, the best known of which was His "Sermon on the Mount." That Jesus
preached with a sense of mission is indicated by His words recorded in Mark 1:38, "Let us go into the next
towns, that I might preach [Gr., kerusso, "to herald"] there also: for therefore came I forth." The preaching of
Jesus was revolutionary; He too called upon men to change their ways. Mark gives us an excerpt of one of
His early sermons: "The time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand: repent ye, and believe the

66
gospel" (Mk. 1:15). To the ruler Nicodemus, He demanded, "Ye must be born again" (Jn. 3:7). But Jesus did
not preach as a doomsday prophet, He always held out hopeful assurance, as in John 3:17, "For God sent not
His Son into the world to condemn the world; but that the world through him might be saved." Again, 'For the
Son of man is come to seek and to save that which is lost" (Lk. 19:10). However, Jesus did not come merely
to preach the word of God, He was the Word of God. He did not come primarily to preach the Gospel; He
came that there might be a Gospel to preach.
(2) The Word has much to say about Jesus' ministry of teaching. "And they went into Capernaum;
and straightway on the Sabbath day he entered into the synagogue, and taught. And they were astonished at
his doctrine: for He taught them as one that had authority, and not as the scribes" (Mk. 1:21,22). The
disciples usually addressed Jesus as "Master." The word "master" is used more than forty (40) times in the
gospels, and is usually applied to Jesus. It must be noted, however, that the usual Greek word translated
"master" is didaskalos, which means "teacher." Two other Greek words translated "master" also mean
"teacher," one of which was rabbi. In ancient times the title "teacher" was one of great prestige. Jesus was
the greatest of all teachers. He did not quote authorities, He was the Authority. He was not merely the way-
shower, He was The Way. He was not only the truth-teller, He was Truth itself. When He inquired of his
followers if they would also go away, Peter responded, "Lord, to whom shall we go? thou hast the words of
eternal life" (Jn. 6:68). After Jesus' discourse at the Feast of Tabernacles, where He said, "He who believes in
me ... from his innermost being shall flow rivers of living water," (Jn. 7:38, NASB) many cried out, "Of a
truth this is the Prophet" (Jn. 7:40); and the officers of the Sanhedrin returned reporting, "Never man spake
like this Man" (Jn. 7:46). Yet, the teaching of Jesus, characterized by His parables (there were 38), attracted
even the children. The parable of 'The Good Samaritan" may well be the best known story in the Western
world. John may have said the ultimate word about Jesus the Teacher when He said: "No man hath seen God
at any time; the only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, He hath DECLARED Him" (Jn.
1:18).
(3) Closely connected with Jesus' ministry of teaching was that of making disciples, many of
whom became the Apostles of the church and the first preachers of the message of Christ crucified and risen.
On Jesus' very first preaching mission the following is recorded by Mark: "Now as He walked by the sea of
Galilee, he saw Simon and Andrew his brother casting a net into the sea: for they were fishers. And Jesus
said unto them, Come ye after me, and I will make you to become fishers of men" (Mk. 1:16,17). A very
short while later Mark records: "And He ordained twelve, that they should be with him, and that he might
send them forth to preach and to have power to heal sicknesses, and to cast out devils. . . ." (Mk. 3:14,15).
This passage informs us of the three purposes of making disciples: (1) that they might be with Him (2) that
they might preach, and (3) that they might heal and cast out demons. If these are in the order of priority, the
matter of first importance was that of spending time in the presence of the Master. A disciple is not one who
merely learns the content of books and lectures; he is one who is matured by being in the presence of his
teacher, following his example, imbibing his spirit. Later, when Jesus gave His disciples the Great
Commission to go and make disciples of all nations, they well understood His meaning in "making disciples."
Our task today is still that of making disciples who learn how to follow Jesus by seeing Him in us, and
observing His Power manifested in us. Secondly, He taught them by His example to preach the gospel of the
kingdom, not in word only, but also in the power of deliverance. Thirdly, he gave them power to heal the sick
and to cast out demons. We are not surprised that Mark concludes his gospel with these words of prophecy:
And these signs shall follow them that believe; In my name shall they cast out devils; they shall speak
with new tongues ... they shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover ... And they went forth and
preached every where, the Lord working with them, and confirming the word with signs following.
Amen. (Mk. 16:17,18,20).
(4) A secondary, but important, function of a prophet was that of predicting future events. If the
predictions of a prophet came to pass and they were glorifying to God, the prophet was authenticated as one
sent from God. While the greater part of Jesus' preaching and teaching was directed to the people of that
time, He made a number of predictions of future events that authenticated His Deity. Some of His predictions
were: (a) His own Death and Resurrection (Mt. 16:21); (b) the persecution of the Church (Lk. 12:11); (c) the

67
coming of the Comforter, the Holy Spirit, to abide in the Church (Jn. 16:7-11; 14:16,17,27); (d) the
destruction of the temple and the city of Jerusalem in A.D. 70 (Lk. 19:43,44; 21:6); (e) The signs and
conditions of the last days (Mt. 24; Mk. 13; Lk. 21); (f) the Church's triumph; the Church has had many
enemies, and has endured many trials; yet, it is assuring to remind ourselves that Jesus predicted the Church's
triumph, ". . . I will build my church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it" (Mt. 16:18); "And this
gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the end
come" (Mt. 24:14). Jesus was the Prophet par excellence.
(5) A frequent mark of a prophet was that his ministry was attended by the supernatural. Moses'
miraculous deeds range from the plagues of Egypt and the parting of the Red Sea to bringing water from the
rock. Elijah called down fire from heaven, multiplied the widow's meal and oil, raised her son from the dead,
and was caught up to Heaven in a whirlwind. Elisha brought healing to Naaman the leper, raised up the
Shunammite's son, and numerous other miracles. Isaiah brought healing to King Hezekiah. Daniel stopped
the mouths of lions and interpreted impossible dreams. It is only natural then, that the ministry of Jesus
would be characterized by the miraculous. He was not only a worker of miracles, He was the Fountainhead of
the supernatural. When we consider His Person and mission, that He was God Incarnate, the world's Savior,
it would be unthinkable that He would have hidden His identity completely in a human disguise. His Birth
was a miracle, His Resurrection from the dead was the miracle of all miracles. He demonstrated His Deity by
such miracles as walking on water, calming the storm, turning water into wine, and multiplying the bread and
fishes; these were miracles over nature, wrought by the Creator of all things. By far the greater number of His
signs and wonders were miracles of compassion upon the sick, the afflicted and the demon possessed. Jesus
came to destroy the works of the Devil. Jesus imparted to the Church the power to carry on a ministry of
deliverance which was made obvious in the book of Acts. Jesus gave assurance of the continuance of
miracles in the Great Commission when He said, "All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye
therefore ... and, lo, I am with you always even unto the end of the world [lit., consummation of the age]" (Mt.
28:18-20). If the Risen Lord is with us, He will confirm His Word with signs; beginning, of course, with the
great miracle of regeneration. ". . . Greater works than these shall he do; because I go unto my Father' (Jn.
14:12). (Also 2 Pt. 1:3,4)
b) Jesus our Great High Priest -while the prophet represents God to Man, the priest represents Man to
God. There are three things that characterize the work of the priest: (1) he is one with, and is taken from
among, those whom he represents to God (Ex. 28:1; Heb. 5:1,2) (2) he offers to God sacrifices to atone for sin
(Lv. 4:13-21; Heb. 10:11,12) and (3) as a mediator, he makes intercession for the people (Is. 53:12; Heb.
7:25; 1 Tm. 2:5).
(1) Jesus emptied Himself of the outward manifestation of equality with God, and took upon Himself the
form of a servant, made in the likeness of men (Phil. 2:5-8). This He did to fully identify with those for
whom He would make atonement. He goes to God the Father in our behalf, because He made Himself one
with us. Herein is the importance of the human nature of Jesus:
Wherefore in all things it behoved him to be made like unto his brethren, that he might be a merciful and
faithful high priest in things pertaining to God, to make reconciliation for the sins of the people. For in that he
himself hath suffered being tempted, he is able to succour them that are tempted. (Heb. 2:17,18)
(2) There is the remarkable circumstance that Jesus was both the Priest and Sacrifice in one Person: "For
there is one God, and one mediator between God and men, the man Christ Jesus. . . ." (1 Tm. 2:5). Jesus was
introduced by John the Baptist, His forerunner, as "the Lamb of God which taketh away the sin of the world"
(Jn. 1:29). Peter speaks of Jesus as the Sacrifice: "Forasmuch as ye know that ye were not redeemed with
corruptible things, as silver and gold ... but with the precious blood of Christ, as of a lamb without blemish
and without spot. . . ." (1 Pt. 1:18,19).
In the final drama, one is sought to take the title deed to the kingdom from the hand of Him who occupies
Heaven's throne. None was found but one called 'The Lion of the Tribe of Judah" and "The Root of David."
But when he approached the throne to take the document, he was seen as a lamb that had been slain. All of
Heaven and the Church sang a new song, Thou art worthy ... for thou wast slain, and hast redeemed us to God

68
by thy blood out of every kindred, and tongue, and people, and nation. . . (Rv. 5:1-9) (See Rom. 8:6-10.)
(3) Jesus not only died to make an atonement for our sin; He perpetually represents us at the Father's
right hand as our Intercessor. In Hebrews 10:12 we are told: "But this man, after he had offered one sacrifice
for sins for ever, sat down on the right hand of God. . . ." Our High Priest not only saves us from the guilt of
sin, He ever intercedes for us, saving us from the power and presence of sin: "But this man, because he
continueth ever, hath an unchangeable priesthood. Wherefore he is able also to save them to the uttermost
that come unto God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them" (Heb. 7:24,25). Paul
expresses Christ's intercessory work clearly in Romans 8:34: "Who is he that condemneth? It is Christ that
died, yea rather, that is risen again, who is even at the right hand of God, who maketh intercession for us." To
summarize: Jesus is our High Priest who, having identified with us, represents us to the Father; through Him
we have access to the Throne of Grace. He is also the Perfect Sacrifice for sin, through whose blood we have
received the Atonement. Finally, He is our Advocate who intercedes for us: ". . . he bare the sin of many, and
made intercession for the transgressors" (Is. 53:12b).
(4) Something needs to be said here about the Melchizedek Priesthood of Jesus. The man Melchizedek is
mentioned eleven (11) times in Scripture, nine (9) times in the book of Hebrews: 5:6,10; 6:20;
7:1,10,11,15,17,21. The historic account of this celebrated priest is found in Genesis 14:18-20, and is
contained in three short verses. How the writer of Hebrews could develop a complete typology of Christ from
this priest might make us wonder, if it were not for a remarkable reference to Mechizedek in Psalms 110:4:
'The Lord [Jehovah] hath sworn, and will not repent, Thou art a priest for ever after the order of
Melchizedek." Psalms chapter 110 is a Messianic Psalm beginning with the well-known reference to Christ:
"The Lord [Jehovah] said unto my Lord [Adonail, sit thou at my right hand, until I make thine enemies thy
footstool'." This prophecy is quoted by Jesus Himself, as recorded by Luke in Acts 2:34,35, and by the writer
of Hebrews in 1:13. Psalms 110:4 is a prophecy of Christ's priesthood, of which Melchizedek is the perfect
TYPE.
Let us see from Hebrews chapter seven, how this priest of the Most High God [El Elyon], the God of
Abraham, typifies the perfect Priesthood of Christ. His name Melchizedek, means "King of Righteousness,"
and since he was King of Salem (Jerusalem), his title means "King of Peace." The ideal combination of
"righteousness" and "peace" is accomplished in Jesus Christ, who is the King of Righteousness (Is. 32:1), and
the Prince of Peace (Is. 9:6); and only in Jesus the Savior can we be assured: 'Therefore being justified
[declared righteous] by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ . . ." (Rom. 5:1) (See Is.
32:17). Melchizedek was more than a priest, he was a king. While Jesus fulfilled a number of aspects of the
Levitical priesthood (i.e. entering within the veil), Levi could not be his type, for priests only came from the
tribe of Levi; and Jesus was "The Son of David,""The Lion of the tribe of Judah" (Heb. 7:14), "The Coming
King."
The Melchizedek priesthood was superior to the Levitical, for the following reasons given in Hebrews
chapter seven:
(a) Abraham, the great-grandfather of Levi, paid tithes to Melchizedek, his superior (v.4).
(b) Abraham was blessed by him,"the lesser is blessed by the greater" (vv. 6,7).
(c) Levitical priests must be able to trace their genealogy; no parentage or genealogy is reckoned
for Melchizedek, although the book of Genesis is full of genealogies (v.3).
(d) The deaths of Levi, Aaron, and Eleazar are recorded. No mention is made of the birth or death of
Melchizedek; his priesthood was by direct Divine appointment, not depending upon tribal status or
parentage; therefore in type, the priesthood of Melchizedek is perpetual (vv.15-17).
(e) The priestly work of the Levitical priesthood had virtue only because, in the "fulness of time," the
perfect Priest would come and offer the perfect Sacrifice (Heb. 10:1-12).
(f) The perfect Priest, prophesied by the Psalmist in Psalm 110:4, would be a royal priest: "the Lord
will stretch forth Thy strong scepter from Zion saying, 'Rule in the midst of Thine enemies"' (Ps. 110:2).
There has been no end of speculation about the identity of Melchizedek; some have thought that he was a

69
"Christophany," a preincarnate appearance of Christ, or an angel. The Bible does not say that Jesus was
Melchizedek, but that His priesthood was "after the similitude of [or order of] Melchizedek" (Heb. 7:15-17).
If Melchizedek had been a supernatural being, and not a man, he would not have typified Jesus in His human
nature which was essential: 'For every high priest taken from among men..." (Heb. 5:1). Melchizedek was an
earthly king of Salem, but he had been appointed to the priesthood of the Most High God by direct revelation,
his office not depending upon a priestly dynasty. While he was human, his priesthood was divine and endless
in nature.
Since the priesthood of Levi (and Aaron) was not able, by animal sacrifices, to take away sin (Heb. 10:4),
a High Priest must come Who is of a perpetual order, Who can, by His kingly Sovereignty, destroy Satan's
kingdom. The Levitical priesthood was under the old Law that was destined for disannulling (Heb. 7:18).
The Priesthood of Jesus is under the New Covenant of Grace: "Wherefore he is able also to save them to the
uttermost that come unto God by Him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them" (Heb. 7:25).
c) Jesus our King - we have elected to study Christ's works under the categories of: (1) Prophet (2)
Priest and (3) King. As Prophet, He is the Message bearer; as Priest, He is the Sin-bearer; as King, He is the
Scepter-bearer. Moses prophesied His coming as a Prophet; Isaiah predicted His coming as the Priest and
Sin-bearer; and Daniel saw him as the coming Messiah and King: "Know therefore and understand, that from
the going forth of the commandment to restore and to build Jerusalem unto the Messiah the Prince shall be
seven weeks, and threescore and two weeks... " (Dn. 9:25). The angel announced the Birth of Jesus to Mary
as a royal proclamation,
And behold, thou shalt bring forth a son, and shalt call His name JESUS. He shall be great, and shall be
called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord God shall give unto Him the THRONE of His Father DAVID: and
He shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of His KINGDOM there shall be no end (Lk. 1:31-33).
Let us examine Christ's kingly work under three headings:
(1) Christ came as a king, "Where is he that is born king of the Jews" (Mt. 2:2); therefore, He was
aware of His royal mission as announced by John the Baptist, "The kingdom of heaven is at hand" (Mt. 3:2).
He presented Himself to Jerusalem as their King, as prophesied in Zechariah 9:9: '. . . Thy King cometh unto
thee: he is just, and having salvation." (See Mk. 11:1-11). When Pilate asked Him if He were a king, he
answered affirmatively, but added, "My kingdom is not of this world. . ." (Jn. 18:36). The cross on which
Jesus died bore the title, "Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews" (Jn. 19:19). After the Resurrection, during the
forty (40) last days on earth, Jesus was occupied about His kingdom; as Luke reports: "being seen of them
forty days and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of God" (Acts 1:3).
(2) Christ represented His kingdom as a present kingdom as well as a future one: ". . . Jesus came
into Galilee, preaching the gospel of the kingdom of God, and saying' The time is fulfilled and the kingdom of
God is at hand'. . . ." (Mk. 1:14,15). Jesus said about His kingdom, "For behold, the kingdom of God is in
your midst" (Lk. 17:21, NASB). Some scholars insist that the kingdom of God is entirely future, an
eschatological kingdom. They overlook two things. First, the Greek word for "kingdom", basileia does not
mean the sphere over which Christ rules, but the rule itself. Wherever Christ Jesus is Sovereign, there is His
rule (kingdom). Wherever Christ is Lord, there His kingdom is present. Second, when men come to Christ
they are being delivered from Satan's kingdom into Christ's kingdom (Col. 1:13). During Jesus' earthly
ministry, culminated by the Cross and Resurrection, He was overturning the kingdom of Satan, "But if I with
the finger of God cast out devils, no doubt the kingdom of God is come upon you"(Lk. 11:20). Strongest of
all, is the fact that Jesus, in connection with the founding of the Church, said to the disciples, 'And I will give
unto thee the KEYS OF THE KINGDOM of heaven: and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound
in heaven: and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven" (Mt. 16:19). George Eldon
Ladd, has the following to say about the present manifestation of Christ's kingdom:
The kingdom has come in that the powers of the future kingdom have already come into history and into
human experience through the supernatural ministry of the Messiah which has effected the defeat of Satan.
Men may now experience the reality of the reign of God ... The presence of Christ on earth had for its purpose
the defeat of Satan, his binding, so that God's power may be a vital reality in the experience of those who

70
yield to God's reign by becoming the disciples of Jesus. In Christ, the kingdom in the form of its power, has
come among men.
(3) As the culmination of Christ's work on earth, He will come again to reign over His eschatological
kingdom as King of Kings and Lord of Lords (Rv. 19:16; 20:6; 22:5,16). John beautifully extols Christ in his
kingly work:
And from Jesus Christ, who is the faithful witness and the first begotten of the dead, and PRINCE of the
kings of the earth. Unto him that loved us, and washed us from our sins in His own blood and hath made us
kings and priests unto God and His Father; to Him be glory and dominion for ever and ever. Amen (Rv.
1:5,6). Jesus fulfilled the prophecies of the coming Messiah. His kingdom was not a visible realm with a
throne and a capitol; but during his earthly ministry, He defeated Satan and initiated a kingdom of
righteousness. His subjects, endued with power, are by the preaching of the gospel of the kingdom (Acts
28:22,31) rescuing men from the kingdom of Satan, and leading them into the kingdom of Christ (Col. 1:13).
At the culmination of this age, Christ the King will come and establish His kingdom on earth as well as in
Heaven, and we shall reign with Him. The qualification for sharing Christ's future reign is stipulated in the
parable of the talents: "Well done, thou good and FAITHFUL servant: thou hast been FAITHFUL over a few
things, I will make thee ruler over many things. . . ." (Mt. 25:21). "Faithfulness" means not merely
"dutifulness," but also "full of faith."

C. God the Holy Spirit.


About the Holy Spirit, the Nicene Creed says: "We believe in the Holy Ghost, who is the Lord and giver
of life, who proceedeth from the Father, who with the Father and Son, is worshiped and glorified, who spake
by the prophets." Since we live in the dispensation of the Holy Spirit, it is very important that we know as
much about Him as the Word reveals to us. Sound doctrine depends upon a clear and accurate understanding
of the Nature and Work of the blessed third Person of the Trinity who dwells in and empowers the Church,
the Body of Christ.28
1. The Personality of the Holy Spirit.
Some false teachers, beginning in apostolic times, have doubted or denied the Personality of the Holy
Spirit, thinking of Him as a force or influence exerted by God, rather than a Person. This tendency may
derive in part from the word "spirit," from the Latin spiritus which means "breath." The Greek word pneuma,
and the Hebrew word ruach both have the same meaning of "breath" or "wind," as well as "spirit." If one
thinks of the Holy Spirit as merely the "breath" or "force" of God, then He could be conceived of as
impersonal, and not a Being having separate identity from the Father. However, Divine revelation tells us
that God is SPIRIT (not material or physical). Like the wind, God exerts power and force while being by
nature invisible. The spirit of man is his immaterial, invisible self. If God is a Person, and man, made in
God's image, is a person (though far inferior), it should not be illogical to think of the Holy Spirit as a Person.
Observe the following proofs from Scripture (of which there are many) of the Personality of the Holy Spirit,
as well as His separate identity from the Father:
a) Personal pronouns are used in relation to Him: Jn. 16:14; Eph. 1:14. In spite of the fact that the
Greek word for "spirit" is in neuter gender, the demonstrative pronoun ekeinos, "that One," is used by John
(16:13,14) to refer to the Holy Spirit: "Howbeit when HE [that One], the Spirit of truth, is come, he will guide
you into all truth ... HE [that One] shall glorify me...." Paul, in Ephesians 1: 13,14 uses a masculine relative
pronoun to refer to the Spirit: ". . . you were sealed in Him with the Holy Spirit of WHO [masc.] is given as a
pledge of our inheritance...." (NASB) (See also Jn. 15:26; 14:16,17.)
b) Personal characteristics are ascribed to Him. The definition of a person is: "One possessing
intelligence, emotion or feeling, and will." (1)
The Holy Spirit possesses intelligence:
But God hath revealed them unto us by His Spirit: for the Spirit searches all things, yea, the deep
things of God. For what man knoweth the things of a man, save the spirit of man which is in him? Even

71
so the things of God knoweth no man, but the Spirit of God. Now we have received not the spirit of the
world, but the Spirit which is of God; that we might know the things that are freely given to us of God (I
Cor. 2:10-12).
Furthermore, "the word of wisdom" and the "word of knowledge" are gifts given by the Holy Spirit (I
Cor. 12:8). (2) The Spirit possesses emotion and feeling: the Holy Spirit loves (Rom. 15:30), is vexed (Is.
63:10), and is grieved (Eph. 4:30). (3) The Holy Spirit possesses a will: "But all these worketh that one and
the selfsame Spirit, dividing to ever man severally as He will" (I Cor. 12:11).
c) Personal actions are attributed to the Holy Spirit: (1) He speaks: Acts 13:2; 21:11; Rv.
2:7,11,17,29. (2) He testifies: Jn. 15:26. (3) He teaches: Jn. 14:26. (4) He intercedes: Rom. 8:26,27. (5) He
guides: Jn. 16:13; Acts 16:6. (6) He gives commands and ordains: Acts 13:2; 20:28. (7) He works miracles:
Acts 8:39; Rom. 15:19.
d) Personal reactions are ascribed to the Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit is shown to be a Person
according to the feelings which He is said to have as a result of certain human actions: (1) He can be vexed
and grieved: Eph. 4:30; Is. 63:10; Gn. 6:3. (2) He may be tempted, Acts 5:9. (3) He may be resisted, Acts
7:51. (4) He may be lied to, Acts 5:3. (5). He may be done despite to and blasphemed: Mk. 3:29,30; Heb.
10:29.
e) Personal relationships are maintained by the Holy Spirit: (1) with the Father, Mt. 28:19. In the
Baptismal Formula, the Spirit is associated on an equal plane, in name and personal identity, with the Father
and the Son. (2) with Christ: "He shall glorify me: for He shall receive of mine, and shall shew it unto you"
(Jn. 16:14). (3) with believers: "For it seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us to lay upon you no greater
burden than these necessary things. . . ." (Acts 15:28). The Apostles sought the will and good pleasure of the
Holy Spirit in forming the policies of the local church.

That the Holy Spirit has a separate identity from the Father and the Son within the Trinity is clearly seen
from the last discourse of Jesus recorded in the book of John. In this discourse, several times Jesus makes
reference to the coming of the Holy Spirit, whom He calls "ANOTHER Comforter": "And I will pray the
Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, that he may abide with you for ever. . . ." (Jn. 14:16). That
the "Comforter" is the Holy Spirit is clear, for Jesus calls Him "The Spirit of Truth" (v.17). In verse twenty-
six, Jesus says, "But the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost," making the identification certain. Jesus uses
masculine pronouns showing that the Holy Spirit is a Person. The Comforter will come in answer to Jesus'
prayer to the Father, Who will send Him. (Jn. 14:16). In John 15:26, Jesus says that He would send the
Comforter, from the Father, "But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you ... which
proceedeth from the Father, he shall testify of me . . . ." Clearly, we have expressed by Jesus, an I-Thou-He
relationship: Jesus prays, the Father sends, the Comforter proceeds. It is impossible to ignore the separate
identities described. This is further amplified by the words of Jesus, ". . . It is expedient for you that I go
away: for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send Him unto you"
On. 16:7). One must go for the other to come. When the Comforter comes it will be the result of the Son's
praying and sending, the Father's sending in the Son's name, and the Spirit's proceeding.
The Holy Spirit, then, proceeds (as the creeds declare) from the Father and the Son. A heresy of ancient
times, called "Sabellianism," taught that the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit were only different names for the
same Person and different modalities by which the one Person manifested Himself. If this were true, then
Jesus' discourse about the Comforter would be meaningless, as would His prayer to the Father recorded in
John chapter seventeen. Whether the "proceeding of the Spirit" mentioned in John 15:26, is an eternal
relationship (as stated by the creeds), or a proceeding into the Church on the Day of Pentecost in answer to
Jesus' prayer, is difficult to determine; for the "proceeding" is nowhere else mentioned. The Roman and
Greek churches have disputed for centuries over whether the Spirit proceeds eternally from the Father only, or
from the Father and the Son. The Greek church holds that He proceeds only from the Father; but whether the
proceeding is eternal, or on the occasion of Jesus' prayer, it seems clear that the Holy Spirit was sent both by
the Father and the Son. (Compare Jn. 14:26 with 15:26 and 16:7.)

72
2. The Deity of the Holy Spirit.
We will show from Scripture that the Holy Spirit is very God, Coequal and Coeternal with the Father and
the Son, the third Person of the Trinity. That the Spirit executes the Will of the Father and glorifies the Son,
not speaking of Himself, does not denote inferiority; it merely indicates the inner working of the Triune God.
Among men, subordination would denote inferiority, but not in the tri-unity of God; that is a part of the
incomprehensible mystery. In the Trinity there are not three individuals, but three Personal Identities in the
ONE God. When we contemplate how submission in the Trinity, on the part of the Son and the Spirit, does
not constitute inferiority in position; we can, then, better understand why submission by believers, one to
another, does not belittle the believer, but makes him the more pleasing to his Lord. The following arethe
scriptural proofs of the Deity of the Holy Spirit:
a) He is called God. "But Peter said, Ananias, why hath Satan filled thine heart to lie to the Holy
Ghost, and to keep back part of the price of the land? ... thou hast not lied unto men, but unto God" (Acts
5:34). Clearly, what is done to the Holy Spirit is considered as done to God. Their fatal sin was not in
withholding the price of the land, but in the deceit of pretending to give it all. (See also I Cor. 3:16, 2 Cor.
3:17).
b) Divine Attributes are ascribed to Him: (1) Eternal: "How much more shall the blood of Christ, who
through the eternal spirit offered Himself without spot to God, purge your conscience from dead works to
serve the living God?" (Heb. 9:14). The Holy Spirit is not a created being; He always existed as a part of the
Triune God, He is as Eternal as the Father and the Son. (2) Omniscience: ". . . the Holy Ghost, whom the
Father will send in my name, He shall teach you all things..." (Jn. 14:26); ". . . for the Spirit searcheth all
things...... (1 Cor. 2:10). (Also Lk. 2:25-32). (3) Omnipresence: "Whither shall I 90 from thy spirit? or whither
shall I flee from thy presence?" (Ps. 139:7). The Psalmist declares that there is no place on earth, in Hell or in
Heaven where one could escape the presence of the Holy Spirit. (4) Omnipotence: ". . . The Holy Ghost shall
come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing which
shall be born of thee shall be called the Son of God" (Lk. 1:35). (See also Mi. 3:8; Rom. 15:13-19). (5)
Holiness: This is seen in the name, Holy Spirit. He is the Spirit of Holiness who operates in the Church to
consecrate believers to God. He separates us from the world, and unto God (Eph. 4:30). (6) Foreknowledge:
". . . The Holy Spirit by the mouth of David, spake before concerning Judas. . . . " (Acts 1: 16). Only God can
know the future. The Holy Spirit, speaking 1,000 years before through David, foreknew and predicted in two
Messianic Psalms (69:25 and 109:8) the betrayal and fate of Judas Iscariot. (See also Acts 11:27,28,
concerning the prediction by the Spirit, through Agabus, of the great famine). (7) Love: "Now I beseech you,
brethren, for the Lord Jesus Christ's sake, and for the love of the Spirit [subjective genitive -"love which the
Spirit has"] that ye strive together with me in your prayers to God for me. . . ." (Rom. 15:30). In the
Trinitarian benediction of 2 Corinthians 13:14, the grace of Christ and the fellowship of the Holy Spirit are
actually aspects of God's Love. Since God is Love, we expect to find love manifested in the acts of the
Trinity.
c) Divine works are attributed to the Holy Spirit: (1) Creation: "The Spirit of God hath made me, and
the breath of the Almighty hath given me life (Jb. 33:4). (See also Gn. 1:2; Ps. 104:30). This creating and life
giving work of the Holy Spirit is seen also in the overshadowing of Mary at the conception of Jesus, and in
the raising of Jesus from the dead. Is it not also seen in our regeneration or new birth? (See also Lk. 1:35;
Rom. 8:10,11; Jn. 3:5-7). (2) Prophecy: ". . . The sweet psalmist of Israel, said, The Spirit of the Lord spake
by me, and His word was in my tongue. The God of Israel said, the Rock of Israel spake to me. . . ." (2 Sm.
23:1-3). Here the Holy Spirit is equated with the God of Israel and the Rock of Israel; the Spirit is the Spirit
of Jehovah who is the same as Eloah (God of creation) and the Rock (Tsur - metaphorical name for the
"Eternal, Immutable One"). (3) Intercession: "Likewise the Spirit also helps in our weaknesses: for we do not
know what we should pray for as we ought: but the Spirit himself makes intercession for us with groanings
which cannot be uttered" (Rom. 8:26,27, NKJV). The Son of God is our Intercessor; the Spirit is associated
with the Son in representing us at the Throne of Grace. The Holy Spirit in His Omniscience knows the mind

73
of God and the Will of God for us, therefore He can direct us in prayer so that we pray "as we ought." (4)
Inspiration of Scripture: "For the prophecy came not in old time by the will of man: but holy men of God
spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost" (2 Pt. 1:21). (See also 2 Tm. 3:16, 'inspiration of God" is
literally "God breathed"; the "breath of God" is a metaphor for the Holy Spirit, Gn. 2:7). (5) Agent in Divine
guidance: "But when they shall lead you, and deliver you up, take no thought beforehand what ye shall speak,
neither do ye premeditate: but whatsoever shall be given you in that hour, that speak ye: for it is not ye that
speak, but the Holy Ghost" (Mk. 13:1 1). Note that the Spirit has Infallible Knowledge of what to speak and
He is able so to instruct our minds and to guide us so that, in practice we say what is proper and according to
God's Will.

3. The names of the Holy Spirit.


In our study of the names of God, we observed that His names portrayed His Character. The names of
God were not mere designations or identifications; they revealed to us something about God's Nature,
Attributes, or Works. The same concept holds true with the names of the Holy Spirit. There are about 350
passages in the Scriptures which make reference to the Holy Spirit, in which more than fifty (50) names or
titles may be discerned. We will not attempt to analyze every name ascribed to the Spirit, only those titles
that add to the total understanding of the Spirit's Nature or activity. They are as follow:
a) The Holy Spirit: ". . . How much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that
ask Him?" (Lk. 11:13). The Holy Spirit is the most precious gift that our Father in Heaven can give us; which
He is abundantly willing to impart.
b) The Spirit of God: "Know ye not that ye are the temple of God, and that the Spirit of God dwelleth
in you?" (1 Cor. 3:16). In 1 Corinthians 6:19, the temple of the Spirit is the individual believer, but here it is
the Church of Christ (observe the pronoun "ye," as in 2 Cor. 6:16).
c) The Spirit: ". . . That which is born of the Spirit is spirit" (Jn. 3:6b). The Spirit produces the born-
again experience in the believer; it is He who imparts new life (Zoe in addition to bios). (See Ps. 104:30. 1
Cor. 2:10: Jn. 3:6-8).
d) The Spirit of Jehovah: "And there shall come forth a rod out of the stem of Jesse, and a Branch shall
grow out of his roots: and the Spirit of Jehovah shall rest upon him, the Spirit of wisdom and understanding,
the spirit of counsel and might, the spirit of knowledge and the fear of the Lord...... (Is. 11:1,2). This is
clearly a messianic prophecy. The Spirit of Jehovah will rest upon the Christ, both in His earthly ministry as
Redeemer (Is. 42:1; Mt. 3:16; Jn. 3:33,34) and in His Millennial Reign. (See also Is. 61:1 where the Holy
Spirit is also called the Spirit of Jehovah, and where the prophetic particulars point to both of Christ's
comings).
e) The Spirit of the Living God: ". . . Ye are ... the epistle of Christ... written not with ink, but with the
Spirit of the Living God. . . ." (2 Cor. 3:3). The Church is an epistle, a testimony to Christ before all men, a
testimony not of human works, but an epistle written by the Spirit of the Living God (the giver of Divine life)
upon the tables of the heart. In other words, the Spirit will engrave the Character of Jesus on our hearts as we
function in the Body of Christ.
f) The Spirit of Christ: "Now if any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of His" (Rom. 8:9b).
Possessing the Spirit of Christ identifies us as one of His.
g) The Spirit of His Son: "And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of His Son into your
hearts, crying, Abba, Father" (Gal. 4:6). The Son of God became the Son of man that the sons of men may
become the sons of God with the privilege of calling God,'Abba, Father."

74
h) The Spirit of Jesus Christ: "For I know that this shall turn to my salvation through your prayer, and
the supply of the Spirit of Jesus Christ...... (Phil. 1:19). As we pray for those who minister, God will supply
the same Spirit who sustained Christ Jesus in His mission. The use of one definite article with both the
"prayer" and the "supply" shows that the two are related.
I) The Spirit of Holiness: "And declared to be the Son of God with power, according to the Spirit of
Holiness. . . ." (Rom. 1:4). Jesus came as the promised seed of David who was also the Divine Son of God,
His Deity being declared by His Resurrection from the dead by the agency of the Spirit of Holiness. Only
God is absolutely Holy; His Spirit is the Holy Spirit, or Spirit of Holiness.
j) The Spirit of Burning: Isaiah calls the Spirit, the Spirit of burning, and of judgment. (Is. 4:4). The
Spirit of Holiness purges sin and iniquity from Zion by burning and judgment, resulting in salvation. The
Holy Spirit's "fan is in His hand, and He will thoroughly purge His floor...." (Mt. 3:11, 12).
k) The Spirit of Truth: John calls the Holy Spirit the Spirit of Truth because He is the Agent of Divine
revelation who will enable the Apostles to record the teachings of Jesus and to accurately interpret the
redeeming events of sacred history. (See Jn. 14:17; 15:26; 16:13).
l) The Spirit of Life: The principle of the Spirit of Life in Christ has replaced the principle of the flesh
(selfish ego), so that now, this new dynamic can bring forth the righteousness of Christ in us and through us.
(Rom. 8:2).
m) The Spirit of Glory: "If ye be reproached for the name of Christ, happy are ye; for the spirit of glory
and of God resteth upon you. . . ." (1 Pt. 4:14). When Jesus approached the Cross, during His last week, He
cried, "The hour is come, that the Son of man should be glorified" (Jn. 12:23-33). Jesus considered his ordeal
of crucifixion as His hour of glory. Peter, speaking to persecuted Christians, and remembering the words of
Jesus about His hour of glory, assured them that their sufferings for Christ were their glory and that the Spirit
of glory was resting upon them; they were participating in the sufferings of Christ, and they would also
participate in His glory. (See 1 Pt. 2:19, 3:14).
n) The Spirit of Grace: "Of how much sorer punishment suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy, who
hath trodden under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he was
sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the Spirit of grace?" (Heb. 10:29). Here is clearly a
case of apostasy on the part of one who was formerly sanctified by the blood. We are saved by grace, and not
of works; but it is possible to so do despite to the Spirit of' Grace that we forfeit God's gracious gift and fall
into judgment.
o) The Eternal Spirit: ". . . Christ, who through the eternal Spirit offered Himself without spot to God. .
." (Heb. 9:14). The eternity of the Spirit demonstrates His Deity. The Spirit, who overshadowed Jesus at His
conception, His baptism, and His temptation was with Jesus at the Cross and with Him up from the grave.
p) The Holy Spirit of Promise: After that ye believed, ye were sealed with the Holy Spirit of promise"
(Eph. 1:13). In Luke 24:49, Jesus had promised to pour out the Spirit upon the tarrying disciples. This
promise is repeated in Acts 1:4,5. Jesus referred to the Spirit as the promise of the Father, taking the promise
probably from Joel 2:28, and Ezekiel 36:27,28. The Holy Spirit's empowerment of believers was well
anticipated by Jesus, and by the Father, through the mouths of Ezekiel and Joel.
q) The Comforter: If I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send
him unto you" (Jn. 16:7). (Also Jn. 14:26; 15:26). Comforter is perhaps, not the best translation for our day
because we think of comfort as consolation. In old English, the word meant "strengthener." The Latin source
word comfort meant "to strengthen much." The biblical Greek word is parakletos, meaning "one called
alongside to help." Some have preferred the word "Advocate." The New American Standard Bible (NASB)
renders the word, "Helper." The New International Version (NIV) employs the word, "Counselor." It seems
that HELPER is the best general term which does justice to the Greek word parakletos.

4. The symbols of the Holy Spirit.


In addition to the names and titles ascribed to the Holy Spirit, a number of symbolic figures of speech

75
are employed in Scripture to reveal characteristics of the Spirit. The Jews expressed themselves more by
word pictures than by abstract terms. The teaching of Jesus is exceedingly rich in symbols and figures of
speech. The study of these symbols of the Spirit should help us better understand the ways and works of the
Spirit of God.
a) WIND: Jn. 3:8 - "The wind bloweth where it listeth: ... so is everyone that is born of the Spirit." One
of the meanings of the Greek and Hebrew words for "spirit" is that of "breath" or "wind." On the Day of
Pentecost, a "rushing mighty wind" is associated with the Holy Spirit's outpouring (Acts 2:2). Wind
symbolizes the invisible, everywhere present, power and life-sustaining influence of the Spirit.
b) OIL: Is. 61:1; Lk. 4:14-18; Acts 10:38; Jas. 5:14; 1 Jn. 2:20,27 - oil was used in the anointing of
Kings and Priests in order to install them, symbolic of the Holy Spirit's empowerment for their work. All
believers have the promise of this anointing.
c) DOVE: Mt. 3:16; Gn. 8:8-12; Gal. 5:22,23; Mt. 10:16; Ps. 68:13 - the Holy Spirit descended upon
Jesus at His baptism in the form of a dove. The dove symbolizes the qualities of gentleness, purity, love,
innocence, and beauty.
d) WATER: Jn. 4:14; 7:38,39; 1 Cor. 10:4; Ez. 36:25-27; X. 2:23-29 water symbolizes the Spirit's
refreshing, satisfaction, and fertilization. The Scriptures picture water in the form of "rain," "dew," "rivers"
and "springs". In the application of this symbol, Jesus and the Spirit are closely related as in John 4:14 and
7:38,39.
e) FIRE: Is. 4:4; 6:6,7; 1 Kgs. 18:38; Acts 2:3 - fire speaks of the Spirit's "power" and "purging." For
one to enjoy the power of the Holy Ghost, he must continually experience His cleansing.
f) WINE: Is. 55:1; Ps. 104:15; Acts 2:13; Eph. 5:18 - Wine seems to call attention to the spiritually
stimulating and joy-giving characteristic of the Spirit's indwelling presence. Some of the onlookers on the
Day of Pentecost, hearing the "glossolalia" of the Apostles, remarked that they were drunk on "new wine."
Peter said that they were not drunk, but that they were filled with the Spirit prophesied by the prophet Joel
(Acts. 2:13-15). The world seeks alcoholic wine for stimulation and merriment, the Christian receives
enhancement of his abilities and true joyfulness from the Spirit of God who indwells him. The world's spirits
give a lift with a let-down; the believer's anointing with oil and wine brings inspiration without desperation.

76
Chapter Three

THE DOCTRINE OF MAN


Anthropology

I. Introduction
II. Man created by God
A. Not evolved from lower life forms
B. Exists by special creation
III. Man the result of Divine purpose
A. The council of the Trinity
B. The work of God's creative purpose
IV. Man created in God's image
A. Not a physical image
B. A personal image
C. A moral image
D. A social image
V. Man created a living soul (being)
A. Given a body (earth)
B. Given an immaterial self (God breathed)
C. Becomes a living soul (being)
VI. Man's primitive state or condition
A. The state of knowledge
B. The moral state
C. The psychological state
D. The social state
E. The occupational state
F. The state of life expectancy
VII. The Fall of Man
A. His probation
B. His temptation
C. His fallen state
VIII. Man's potential in the state of grace
A. Christ's Incarnation and the believer's new position in Christ
B. The believer a new man in Christ Jesus
C. The believer's new nature in Christ
D. The believer's new life in Christ
E. The believer's constant renewal
F. The believer's hope of a heavenly home
G. The believer's victory over the old nature
H. The believer's authority in Christ's kingdom

77
The Doctrine of Man
Anthropology

I. INTRODUCTION

It may appear that going from the Doctrine of God to the Study of Man is going from the sublime to the
ridiculous. Even the Psalmist cried, "What is man that thou are mindful of him?" (Ps. 8:4) But when we stop
to think that Man is a creation of God (Gn. 1:27), that Redeemed Man is God's handiwork (Eph. 2:10, Wey.),
and that Redeemed Humanity is God's inheritance (Eph. 1:18), we become aware of the importance of Man as
a subject of study.
Carl Henry, a modern scholar of renown wrote: "Who is man? This remarkable creature, whose amazing
conquest of space and time has yielded unabridged dictionaries indexing the whole of reality, has fallen into
frustration - ironically enough - when defining himself."'
Only the Scriptures give a solid and satisfying answer to the age-long question, "Who is Man?"
Therefore, any serious work on Bible doctrine must cope with this question. In academic circles, the study of
Man is called "Anthropology," which is derived from two Greek words: anthropos, which means "man," and
logos, which means "discourse or reason." Biblical anthropology deals with Man as God's creation, Man as a
sinner alienated from God by voluntary disobedience, and Man as the object of God's Redeeming Grace.
Scientific anthropology, according to Webster, is: "The study of man, especially of the variety, physical and
cultural characteristics, distribution, customs, social relationships, etc. of
mankind."
In this approach to Anthropology we shall study Man as he is portrayed in the Scriptures. The Psalmist
asks the question, "What is man?" and answers the question as follows: "For thou hast made him a little lower
than the angels, and hast crowned him with glory and honour. Thou madest him to have dominion over the
works of thy hands; Thou hast put all things under his feet. . . ." (Ps. 8:5-6).
But then man disobeyed and fell short of the glory of God; therefore, when the writer of Hebrews quoted
from Psalm chapter eight, he added: "But now we see not yet all things put under him. But we see Jesus, who
was made a little lower than the angels for the suffering of death, crowned with glory and honour; that He by
the grace of God should taste death for every man" (Heb. 2:8b,9).
The following scriptural study of Man will fall under these categories: (1) Man Created by God, (2) Man
the Result of Divine Purpose, (3) Man Created in God's Image, (4) Man Created a Living Soul, (5) Man's
Primitive State, (6) The Fall of Man, and (7) Man in the State of Grace.

II. MAN WAS CREATED BY GOD


A. Not Evolved from Lower Life Forms.
The Bible attributes the origin of Man to an act of direct creation by God,"So God created man in His
own image. . . ." (Gn. 1:27)."And the Lord God formed man of the dust of the ground, and breathed in to his
nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living soul" (Gn. 2:7). In our public school systems, pupils are
taught that man evolved from the lower animals, and that all life over a vast expanse of time came from a
single life form that came into being from an unknown origin. Honest teachers admit that the "theory of
evolution" is, in fact, only a theory or hypothesis advanced to explain origins without introducing the
supernatural, which science cannot study. The theory of evolution is generally attributed to Charles Darwin,
who first popularized the hypothesis in the middle of the 19th century. His theory was received by
materialists everywhere. Mendel's law of heredity seemed to prove that species were fixed, and that acquired
characteristics could not be inherited. Later scientists gave the name "genes" to the remarkable factors that
control heredity. Dr. Robert Kofahl has the following to say about genes:
Research over the past two decades has revealed much about the structure of the gene. A great deal
has been learned about the function of the gene at the molecular level. Molecular genetics is a most
complicated subject which affords powerful support for the Biblical creation model .

78
Dr. Paul Brand, world renowned surgeon, Chief of the Rehabilitation Branch of the U.S. Public Health
Service, and a Professor of Surgery has the following to say about the genes' chemical code DNA that
controls all forms of life, maintaining the species propagating each after its own kind according to Genesis
chapter one, and preventing the evolution of any species into another:

All living matter is basically alike; a single atom differentiates animal blood from plant chlorophyll.
Yet the body senses infinitesimal differences with an unfailing scent; it knows its hundred trillion cells by
name ... To complicate the process of identity, the composite of Paul Brand - bone cells, fat cells, blood
cells, muscle cells - differs entirely from my components ten years ago. All cells have been replaced by
new cells (except for nerve cells and brain cells, which are never replaced). Thus, my body is more like a
fountain than a sculpture: maintaining its shape, but constantly being renewed. Somehow my body
knows the new cells belong, and they are welcomed. What moves the cells to work together?... The
secret to membership lies locked away inside each cell nucleus, chemically coiled in a strand of DNA.
Once the egg and sperm share their inheritance, the DNA chemical ladder splits down the center of every
gene much as the teeth of a zipper pull apart. DNA reforms itself each time the cell divides: 2, 4, 8, 16,
32 cells, each with the identical DNA. Along the way cells specialize, but each carries the entire
instruction book of one hundred thousand genes. DNA is estimated to contain instructions that, if written
out, would fill a thousand, six hundred-page books ... (The DNA is so narrow and compacted that all the
genes in all my body's cells would fit into an ice cube; yet if DNA were unwound and joined together end
to end, the strand could stretch from earth to the sun and back more than four hundred times) ... A nerve
cell may operate according to instructions from volume four and a kidney cell from volume twenty-five,
but both carry the whole compendium. It provides each cell's sealed credential of membership in the
body. Every cell possesses a genetic code so complete that the entire body could be reassembled from the
information in any one of the body's cells ... The Designer of DNA went on to challenge the human race
to a new and higher purpose: membership in His own Body ... In reality, I become genetically like Christ
Himself because I belong to His body.

Mendel's law seemed to sound a death knell for Darwin's theory; however, persistent evolutionists found
a new basis for evolution in the occasional sudden changes in life forms called "mutations." While nearly all
mutations are harmful, some scientists theorize that beneficial mutations could account for the ongoing
evolution from lower species to higher species; however, no evidence for this exists. Evolution by
"mutations" is called by some "neo-darwinism."
The whole framework of evolutionary theory is coming under sharp criticism. Francis Hitchings, writing
in Life Magazine, states: "Charles Darwin died 100 years ago ... Today his explanation of evolution is being
challenged as never before, not just by Creationists, but by his fellow scientists."
While many scientists work on the assumption of the evolutionary hypothesis, evolution is not scientific
fact; it cannot be proved. And unless one has chosen to be a materialist, there is overwhelming logic in a
supernatural origin for Man, who almost universally seeks an object of worship, and who cannot escape from
an instinct of responsibility to a higher power. One hundred years beyond Darwin, evolution is still unproven
and contributes nothing to the dignity of Man; for the materialist, it is a godless faith.
It should be stated in fairness that not all evolutionists are materialists nor agnostics. There are the
Theistic Evolutionists who believe that evolution was the method God employed to create all life. However,
since there is no evidence whatever (either in the fossil record, or in the science of genetics for the
transmutation of species) and since the Bible plainly states that the species propagate each after its own kind,
it seems truer to Scripture and to reason to accept a direct creation for Man as a natural interpretation of
Genesis chapter one would require.
Of course, the Bible believer cannot prove scientifically the Divine creation of Man; he accepts the
scriptural account by faith. However, he finds no problem in this, because having accepted the Lord of the
Scriptures by faith, his life has been transformed, and he has been given a sustaining hope and a powerful
meaning to his existence. The believer's courageous faith informs him of his meaningful origin and his
heavenly destiny.

79
While the believer's acceptance of his Divine origin is an act of faith, his Divine origin is not without
solid scientific evidence. It is not the purpose of this book to deal with physical science, but with Bible
doctrine; however, this quotation by scientists aptly closes this sub-division:
The most powerful evidence for creation and against evolution is, in our opinion, to he found in specific
evidences of intelligent, purposeful design. This evidence is all around us and is something the layman as
well as the scientist can appreciate. The authors of The Creation Explanation: accept the claim of the Bible to
be the Word of God. They accept the opening chapters of Genesis, therefore, to be true to scientific fact.
This is their fundamental postulate and they make no apology for it.
B. Exists by Special Creation.
Three Hebrew words are used in Genesis chapters one and two to describe Man's creation: (1) bara -
defined as meaning "the production or effectuation of something new, rare, and wonderful," (2) asah -
meaning "to form, to construct, to prepare, to build" and (3) yatzar - meaning "to form or shape" (as a potter
forming vessels). In Genesis 1:26, the Triune God says, "Let us MAKE man" (asah); in Genesis 1:27, we
read, "So God CREATED man" (bara); Genesis 2:7, states, "And the Lord God FORMED man" (Yatzar).
The idea in 1:26 is that God constructed Man in conformity with His own image; in 1:27, He created Man as
something new and wonderful in His purpose; and in 2:7, He formed and shaped Man from the earth as a
potter forms a vessel of clay. The "dust of the ground" (2:7) identifies Man with the scene of his fall and his
redemption; the breath of God identifies his origin with his Maker and his intended heavenly destiny, Man is
of the earth, but he is intended for fellowship with God.
The declaration of Man's creation by God is not confined to two or three verses; it is affirmed or assumed
throughout Holy Scripture. Genesis 51b and 2a continues: "In the day that God created [bara] man, in the
likeness of God made he him; Male and female created he them In Genesis 6:7, "And the Lord said, I will
destroy man whom I have created [baral. . . ." Moses says in Deuteronomy 4:32, concerning the miraculous
deliverance from Egypt: "For ask now concerning the days that are past, which were before thee, since the
day that God created man upon the earth, and ask from one side of heaven to the other, whether there has been
any such thing as this great thing is From the inspired quill of the prophet Isaiah come the following
statements: "But now thus saith the Lord that created thee (43:1); "Even every one that is called by my name:
for I have created him for my glory, I have formed him; yea, I have made him" (43:7); "I have made the earth,
and created man upon it. . . ." (45:12). And from Malachi 2:10a: "Have we not all one father? hath not one
God created us?" That Man was created by God is clearly stated by New Testament writers. Paul says: "And
have put on the new man, who is renewed in knowledge according to the image of Him that CREATED him. .
. ." (Col. 3:10). (See also 1 Tm. 2:13; Rom. 9:20; 1 Cor. 15:45; Jas. 3:9.)

III. MAN THE RESULT OF DIVINE PURPOSE


A. The Council of the Trinity.
Man was not created in the manner of the lower creatures. They were created as a result of God's spoken
command. God first formed Man out of the earth, then breathed His Divine breath into him. There was
something from God Himself breathed into Man, demonstrating that he was intended to be special to the
Creator above all other earthly creatures. Isaiah gives the Lord's explanation of His purpose in creating Man:
". . . I have created him for My glory" (Is. 43:7). Man is the product of God's planned purpose to create a
being to glorify Him. In the light of God's deliberate affirmation of Genesis 1:26, there is a hint of a council
of the Trinity in which they said, "Let us make man in our image, after our likeness, and let them have
dominion ... over all the earth." Some have attributed the plural pronouns "us" and "our" to the fact that the
name for God (Elohim) is a plural form. However, Elohim, while it is plural, usually takes a singular verb.
Commenting on Genesis 1:26, H. C. Leupold, the great Lutheran Hebrew scholar says:
The hortative, "Let us make" (na'aseh), is particularly striking because it is plural ... Behind such
speaking lies the truth of the Holy Trinity which, as it grows increasingly clear in revelation, is in the
light of later clear revelation discovered as contained in this plural in a kind of obscure adumbration. The
truth of the Trinity explains this passage. The common explanation that God is addressing the angels has
been shown up in its deficiencies by Koenig. It cannot be denied that on occasion God addressed the

80
angelic host before His throne ... but never once does God actually counsel with them.

B. The Work of God's Creative Purpose.


Paul refers to this council of the Triune God in Ephesians 1:4,5 when he says: "According as he hath
chosen us in him before the foundation of the world, that we should be holy and without blame before Him in
love. . . ."Also in 2 Timothy 1:9: "Who hath saved us and called us with an holy calling, not according to our
works, but according to his own purpose and grace, which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world
began...... The following remarkable things are said about Man's creation: (1) Man is created by God, (2) Man
alone of all created beings received the breath of God, (3) Man is formed in God's Image, (4) Man is created
for God's glory, (5) Man was planned and designed in a council of the Triune God, and (6) Man has been
redeemed by the God-man Christ Jesus. Writing to Titus, Paul declared: "In hope of eternal life, which God,
that cannot lie, PROMISED before the world began. . ." (Ti. 1:2). Since God could not have promised
anything to men before the world began, He must have promised to His Son Jesus, the redemption and eternal
life of Man. Jesus, in His intercessory prayer to the Father clearly implies this truth, "Father, I will that they
also, whom thou hast given me, be with me where I am; that they may behold my glory, which thou hast
given me: for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world" Un. 17:24).
The question has been asked, "If God in His foreknowledge knew that Man would fall, why did He create
him?" We cannot, of course, discern God's motives; but we can be certain that in the Divine purpose it was
determined that a Mankind in God's image (although disobedient) would, redeemed through the Son Jesus,
justify God's purpose. This is a mystery that we cannot fathom with our finite minds, but it is clear that
Redeemed Man in Christ, the object of God's love, fulfills a high purpose. He is only "dust of the ground,"
but he is a potential CHILD of God.

IV. MAN CREATED IN GOD'S IMAGE


The Scriptures tell us that Man was created in the Image of God: Hebrew - Tselem Elohim, Greek - eikon
tou theou, Latin - ImagoDei. In Genesis 1:26, the term "likeness" is added; but almost all commentators see it
as Hebrew parallelism, introducing a synonym for emphasis only, not added meaning. Nowhere in Scripture
are we told in so many words what the meaning of "the image" is; therefore, many explanations have been
offered. The following is a listing of the more common interpretations of the Imago Dei: (1) that Man was
conformed to an ideal form which God possesses, (2) Man's dominion over the earth and its creatures, (3)
Man's rationality and ability to have communion with his Creator, (4) Man's personality of intellect, emotion
and will, (5) Man's original holiness, righteousness and moral nature, and (6) Man's triune being of body, soul
and spirit.

A. Not a Physical Image.


God is Spirit, He does not have a physical body (Jn. 4:24); He is invisible (Col. 1:15; 1 Tm. 1:17; Heb.
11:27), although He may appear in human form as in the case of the angel of Jehovah (Gn. 17,18). There has
been conjecture that Man's upright stature indicates that he was patterned after a prototype image represented
by the glorified body of Christ. Romans 5:14 does state that Adam was a type of Christ. However, Israel was
expressly prohibited from making any graven image of God in human form, as though God were physically
like man. It is true that Jesus subsisted in the "form of God"; however, when he came to earth He took the
form of a servant and was made in the "likeness of men." Therefore, His earthly form must have been a great
condescension from His heavenly form (Phil. 2:7,8). Adam's form before the Fall may have been much
superior to his post-Edenic image; however, man still retains something of the original Imago Dei (Jas 3:9;
Gn. 9:6; Jn. 5:37; Is. 6:1).

B. A Personal Image.
We believe in a personal God: One who designs, plans, communicates, wills, and feels (is pleased and
displeased). We define personality as comprising: intellect, emotion, and will. Genesis 1:26-31 attributes
these components of personality to God: intellect in the words, 'and God said"; will and purpose in the

81
statement, "let Us make"; and feeling or emotion in the sentence, "And God saw everything that He had made,
and, behold, it was very good." We are careful here, because God's Nature is vastly beyond our
comprehension, but the Infinite God is represented everywhere in Scripture as possessing personal
characteristics.
If God had a purpose in creating Man, He must have desired to communicate with His creation to reveal
something of His will and purpose. The God who said, "let us make" also said to His nation Israel, "Come
now, and let us reason together. . . ."(Is. 1:18). Man is the only one of earth's creatures able to reason
abstractly, to create, to innovate, to choose as a free agent, to communicate with and to worship God. The
animals' activities, on the other hand, are instinctive, not free. Do Man's personal and rational faculties
constitute God's image? Or does Man's capacity to have dominion and to rule over earth's creatures constitute
the Divine image? Do we still see this image portrayed in Man's conquest of space, his control of atomic
energy, his harnessing of electricity and other of nature's forces, and his employment of animals to do his
work? There seems to be some hint of this in Genesis 1:28-31 and Psalms 8:4-9.

C. A Moral Image.
Man is a moral being. He was created with a sense of accountability to his Maker. When he does right,
his heart assures him; when he does wrong, his heart condemns him (1 Jn. 3:20,21; Rom. 8:1). Because Man
is a moral creature, God gave to him His Law, recorded in Exodus 20; if he violated the Law, God would not
hold Man guiltless (Ex. 20:7). Man, who failed the test in the Garden, also failed to keep the Law; he shared
Adam's guilt, as well as Adam's acquired sinful nature. Only the last Adam, Jesus Christ, can free Man from
the condemnation and guilt of his fallen condition (Rom. 8:1).
As a moral being, Man has a CONSCIENCE. There are those who think that the conscience is not a
separate faculty, but merely the knowledge of self in relation to a known standard of right and wrong, or the
inter-working of intellect, emotion and will in the face of a moral standard. It seems clear, however, from
Scripture and experience that Man does indeed possess a faculty of conscience. Webster's Dictionary defines
conscience as: "A knowledge or sense of right and wrong, with a compulsion to do right; moral judgment that
opposes the violation of a previously recognized ethical principle, and that leads to feelings of guilt if one
violates such a principle's While the word "conscience" is not found in the Old Testament, its working is
described in Leviticus 5:3. In the New Testament, the word conscience occurs thirty-one (31) times. It is said
about the conscience that it can be: good, weak, pure, seared, defiled, evil, and purged. It is said to perform
actions, such as, to bear witness and to convict. Could such actions and characteristics be attributed to
anything other than a distinct faculty? It appears that the conscience is a human instinct which was given to
Man in the beginning; for as soon as Man sinned, he hid himself Undoubtedly the conscience interacts with
intellect, emotion and will.

D. A Social Image.
God is Love. He is Love in His essential nature, for love is the expression of the triune God: Father, Son
and Holy Spirit. Man in God's image was created as a social creature who is to love. He was immediately
given a wife: taken from his side to be his equal, from near his heart to be loved, and from under his arm to be
protected by him. He is commanded to multiply and replenish the earth, to be a family and a family of
nations. The Law was given to govern Man's social relationships. Of the Ten Commandments, six are
concerned with Man's treatment of his fellow man. Man was made to have communion with God, with his
family and with his neighbors. When Man lost communion with God, his human relationships began to break
down; consider that the first son of Adam became a murderer. Love, Jesus tells us, is to be the controlling
motive of the redeemed man; who, when he is born again, becomes a member of a body, the body of Christ
(Jn. 13:34,35).

V. MAN CREATED A LIVING SOUL (BEING)


According to inspired Scripture, Man, at his creation, was given two gifts from God: (1) A body formed
from the dust, and (2) the breath of God. "And the Lord God formed man of the dust of the ground, and

82
breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living soul" (Gn. 2:7). As a result of the
creative combination of an earthly element and a heavenly element, Man became a living being in the image
of his Creator. He begins life on the earth in a vessel of clay, but his intended destiny is everlasting life in a
glorified body.

A. Is Given a Body.
The Greeks and many of the ancients thought of the body as a prison of the soul and the source of all evil.
The Gnostic, a false Christian cult, held this low esteem of the body to the extreme of denying that Jesus had
a physical body. To counter these Gnostic, John the Apostle warned about those who denied that Jesus had
come in the flesh (1 Jn. 4:1-3). The Scriptures teach us to honor and respect the body as God's creation:
"Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by man shall his blood be shed: for in the image of God made he man" (Gn.
9:6).
The following are TEN facts about the body from Scripture that are important for the Christian believer to
know:
1. It is a mortal body that will return to the dust out of which it was fashioned,"'. . . for dust thou art,
and unto dust thou shalt return" (Gn. 3:19). This thought will keep us humble in the presence of our God.
When Abraham talked with God, he said, "Behold now, I have taken upon me to speak unto the Lord, which
am but dust and ashes. . . ." (Gn. 18:27). The Psalmist reminds that without the breath of God man is but dust,
". . . Thou takest away their breath, they die, and return to their dust" (Ps. 104:29).
2. Man is made of mere dust; but that dust in the hands of God became something wonderfully made:
I will praise thee; for I am fearfully and wonderfully made: marvelous are thy works; and that my
soul knoweth right well. My substance was not hid from thee, when I was made in secret, and curiously
wrought in the lowest parts of the earth. Thine eyes did see my substance, yet being unperfect; and in thy
book all my members were written.... (Ps. 139:14-16a)
Science is just beginning to discover how unimaginably wonderful and complex is the human body.
3. Man's natural, physical body is only a temporary tabernacle for the real person who inhabits it:
"Knowing that shortly I must put off this my tabernacle, even as our Lord Jesus Christ hath shewed me." (2
Pt. 1:14); and "For we know that if our earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of
God, an house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens" (2 Cor. 5:1).
4. In the resurrection, man will have a new house not made with hands; however, that new body will
have a relationship to this present natural body. Paul, discussing the resurrection, states: "It is sown a
natural body; it is raised a spiritual body. . . . For this corruptible must put on incorruption, and this mortal
must put on immortality" (1 Cor. 15:44a,53). This present body, that goes back to dust, will somehow be
changed and transformed into a glorified body. Jesus said, ". . . the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of
God: and they that hear shall live" (Jn. 5:25). Paul assured that the dead in Christ would rise first (1 Thes.
4:16b). Paul does say that "flesh and blood cannot inherit the kingdom of God" (I Cor. 15:50); but, as Jesus in
the resurrection had a "touchable" body of "flesh and bones" (not blood) Un. 20:27, Lk. 24:39), so the
believer's resurrection body will have a relationship to the earthly body, as a new plant is related to the seed
from which it springs (1 Cor. 15:44).
5. The body of redeemed man is a temple of the Holy Spirit, therefore it must not be an instrument of
sin: What? know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost which is in you, which ye have of
God, and ye are not your own? For ye are bought with a price: therefore glorify God in your body, and in
your spirit, which are God's (1 Cor. 6:19,20).
6. Man's body, when dedicated to Christ's service, is reckoned as a living and holy sacrifice: "I
beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy,-
acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable service" (Rom. 12:1). The Old Testament worshiper offered
dead sacrifices of animals to God; the New Testament believer in Christ offers not a dead, but a living,
offering of consecrated service - employing the body in Christian living and ministry.
7. The redeemed man may employ his body as a weapon against Satan. Satan strives to motivate the
believer to use his body in a way that would advance Satan's cause; Paul urges the believer to use his body as
a weapon against Satan and for God:

83
You must not let any part of your body turn into an unholy weapon fighting on the side of sin; you
should instead, offer yourselves to God, and consider yourselves dead men brought back to life; you
should make every part of your body into a weapon fighting on the side of God (Rom. 6:13, JB).
8. Redeemed man enjoys certain benefits of Christ's redeeming work in his body, even in this world.
Matthew, writing about the healing ministry of Jesus, said,
When the even was come, they brought unto him many that were possessed with devils: and He cast
out the spirits with his word, and healed all that were sick: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by
Esaias the prophet, saying, Himself took our infirmities and bare our sicknesses (Mt. 8:16,17).
Clearly, the work of the Cross accomplished something for Man's physical body, loosening the hold of
sickness upon it. Jesus later said about the ministry of those who were to preach the Gospel, ". . . they shall
lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover" (Mk. 16:18). When the Church became established, prayer for
physical healing became a sacrament. James instructs: "Is any sick among you? let him call for the elders of
the church: and let them pray over him, anointing him with oil in the name of the Lord: And the prayer of
FAITH shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up. . . ." (Jas. 5:14,15a). That the redeeming work of
Christ and the indwelling of the Holy Spirit bring present benefits, even to the body, is brought out in Romans
chapter eight: "But if the Spit-it of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up
Christ from the dead shall quicken your mortal bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you" (Rom. 8:11). Some
would argue that this "quickening" refers to the final resurrection of the body. That it pertains to present
experience is seen in the following facts:
a) Paul is speaking of the believer's present victory over the flesh
b) He refers to our "mortal" bodies, not dead bodies; mortal means "subject to death."
c) Before the quickening of the resurrection, the bodies will be "dead" in the grave, not "mortal."
d) In verse twelve, he says: "Therefore, brethren, we are debtors, not to the flesh, to live after the
flesh." The argument pertains clearly to the present walk in the Spirit.
e) If the Spirit delivers from carnal domination through faith, so also can the Spirit deliver from
bodily infirmity through faith.
9. The believer will be judged, at the judgment seat of Christ on the basis of things done in the body:
"For we must all appear before the judgment seat of Christ; that every one may receive the things done in his
body, according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad" (2 Cor. 5:10).
The judgment above mentioned (bema) is a judgment of works, not of condemnation (1 Cor. 3:11-15).
The degree of reward is based upon things done "in the body." It is the soul, of course, that sins; but the sin is
executed by the body and its members. Paul said: "But I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection,
lest that by any means, when I have preached to others, I myself should be a castaway" (1 Cor. 9:27).
10. Man's body of "dust," which he inherits from Adam, bears the image of Adam as well as the image
of God. Through Christ we will inherit a glorified body in the image of Christ, the last Adam. This is
brought out in 1 Corinthians 15, and made clear in the rendering of the New King James Version:
The first man Adam became a living being, the last Adam became a life-giving spirit. However, the
spiritual is not first, but the natural, and afterward the spiritual. The first man was of the earth, made of dust;
the second Man is the Lord from heaven. As was the man of dust, so also are those who are made of dust;
and as is the heavenly Man, so also are those who are heavenly. And as we have borne the image of the man
of dust, we shall also bear the image of the heavenly Man (1 Cor. 15:45-49).

B. Is Given an Immaterial Life.


The Scriptures teach that Man's immaterial life and personality are derived from God's creative breath and
that our life's breath depends upon the sustaining grace of our Creator: Job. 12:10; Ps. 33:6; Is. 42:5; Acts
17:25.
Some schools of modern scientific psychology attribute Man's personality and intellect to the physical,
chemical and electrical function of the brain. While these schools cannot explain the origin of life nor the life
principle, they prefer to entirely eliminate any Supernatural basis for man's rational faculty. Psychologists
avoid the term "mind," preferring to concentrate their experiments on the brain and nerve system seeking a
physical explanation for all human behavior. They cannot explain how, in the event of injury to one side of

84
the brain, that one's personality is reestablished on the other side. Man as a free, creative, rational and
worshiping being is far too wonderfully complex to be explained as a result of the mere chance action of
physical forces. The Book of Genesis informs of the Divine origin of man's inner self. "And the Lord God ...
breathed into his nostrils the breath of life. . . ." (Gn. 2:7).
The IMMATERIAL element in man is referred to in Scripture by the use of at least NINE (9) different
terms:
1. Life (Mk. 8:35)
2. Soul (Mk. 8:36)
3. Spirit (Ps. 31:5)
4. Mind (Rom. 7:25)
5. Heart (Eph. 6:6)
6. Strength (Lk. 10:27)
7. Self (I Cor. 4:3,4)
8. Will (1 Cor. 7:37)
9. Affections (Col. 3:2)
This is not to say, of course, that these terms are all synonyms. Each refers to the immaterial self from a
discernibly different point of view, or describes a different function of the self. On the other hand, several of
the terms could be interchangeable; for instance, the Greek word psuche is variously translated by the English
words "life" (42 times), "soul" (53 times), and "heart" (2 times).
The words most frequently used to identify the immaterial self are "soul" and "spirit." "Soul" translates
the Hebrew word nephesh, and the Greek word psuche. "Spirit" is the English translation of the Hebrew
ruach, and the Greek pneuma. It is interesting that all four of these words from the original Hebrew and
Greek mean basically "breath" or "wind." These terms aptly express the fact that our immaterial self derives
from the "breath" of God. When Jesus described the work of the Spirit of God to Nicodemus, He said, "The
wind [pneuma ] bloweth [pnei ] where it listeth"; some scholars think that the clause should read: "The Spirit
breathes where He wills" Un. 3:8). The Greek words are capable of either translation.9 The book of Job
attributes Man's creation to the breath of God: "But there is a spirit in man: and the inspiration of the
Almighty giveth them understanding" (32:8). And "The Spirit of God hath made me, and the breath of the
Almighty hath given me life" (33:4).
It has often been said that all living creatures have souls, but only Man has a spirit; the fact is that
Scripture attributes both soul and spirit to the animals: Eccl. 3:21; Ps. 104:25-30. (Compare Gn. 2:7 with Gn.
6:21, 22.) Man is distinguished from the lower creatures by the quality of his faculties, not the number of
them. Man is man because he is created in the "Image of God," and because his life is everlasting. It has
been taught that unregenerate man has only a body and soul, that the spirit is imparted at the new birth. This
confuses the human spirit with the Holy Spirit who indwells the believer; ungodly men are said to have spirits
(I Chr. 5:26). Also, it is incorrect to say that "soul" is the human element, and that "spirit" is the Divine
element again this confuses the human spirit with the Holy Spirit. Souls and spirits of men are pictured in
heaven (Rv. 6:9; Heb. 12:23); "soul" and "spirit" are both attributed to God the Father and Son: Mt. 12:18; Is.
42:1; Mt. 26:38; Is. 53:11,12; Lk. 23:46.
In regard to the composition of Man, there are TWO classical schools of thought: (1) Trichotomy (three
parts) - body, soul, and spirit, and (2) Dichotomy (two parts) - body and soul (or spirit). The arguments for
the two positions are as follows:
1. Trichotomy.
a) In Genesis 2:7, the combination of a body of dust and the breath of God resulted in a third part, the
soul.
b) I Thessalonians 5:23 definitely specifies three parts of man: "And the very God of peace sanctify you
wholly; and I pray God your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of our
Lord Jesus Christ."
c) Hebrews 4:12 declares that soul and spirit are capable of being divided asunder by the word of God:
"For the word of God is quick, and powerful, and sharper than any two edged sword, piercing even to the
dividing of soul and spirit, and of the joints and marrow, and is a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the

85
heart."
d) When Paul speaks of men as "carnal," "natural" (soulish) and "spiritual," he seems to indicate
conditions related to body, soul and spirit respectively J Cor. 2:14-3:1).
2. Dichotomy.
a) In Genesis 2:7, only two distinct parts are mentioned: the body of earth and the breath of God. The
living "soul" is not a third part, but the result of body and spirit. It does not say that man had a soul, but
"became a living soul [being]."
b) The terms "soul" and "spirit" are used interchangeably; for instance, in John 12:27 Jesus said, "Now is
my soul troubled"; but in John 13:21, we read: "When Jesus had thus said, he was troubled in spirit." (See also
Gn. 41:8; Ps. 42:6; Heb. 12:23; and Rv. 6:9; 20:4.
c) The terms "soul' and "spirit" are both used of animals as well as men: Eccl. 3:21; Rv. 16:3.
d) The term "soul" is attributed to Jehovah: Jer. 9:9; Is. 42:1; 53:10-12; Heb. 10:38.
e) The highest spiritual exercises are attributed to the soul as well as to the spirit, "And thou shalt love
the Lord thy God ... with all thy soul . . ." (Mk. 12:30). (See also Lk. 1:46; Heb. 6:18,19; Jas. 1:21).
f) According to Jesus, to lose the soul is to lose everything, "For what shall it profit a man, if he shall
gain the whole world, and lose his own soul"(Mk. 8:36,37; Mt. 16:26). (See also Mt. 10:28).
g) Responding to the argument based on the benediction in 1 Thessalonians 5:23, the dichotomist
answers that Paul does not infer that body, soul and spirit are three distinct and separable parts of man, but
uses soul and spirit in the same way Jesus uses the four terms "heart," "soul," "mind," and "strength" in Mark
12:30; and no one ascribes four parts to man on the basis of the words of Jesus. Paul uses the word "mind"
(translated from 9 different Greek words) more frequently than he uses the term "soul" when referring to the
rational part of man.
h) In response to the trichotomist's argument from Hebrews 4:12 regarding "dividing asunder of soul and
spirit," the dichotomist points out that the verse does not speak of the Word as dividing the 'soul" from the
"spirit"; but as penetrating into the deepest recesses of one's being, even to the thoughts and intents of the
heart. About Hebrews 4:12,13, W. E. Vine comments:
The Word of God pierces through all that lies deepest in human nature, not actually separating soul
from spirit and joints from marrow, but piercing and laying bare the inmost being, cutting through the
most secret recesses of the spirit's life, penetrating the soul and, deeper still, the spirit, as through joints to
their very marrow.
I) The dichotomist does not say that there is no difference whatever between the words "soul" and
"spirit." Although they are frequently used to designate the same immaterial part of man, in their more precise
use, they refer to man's inner-self in different relationships. When the words are distinguished in meaning,
the soul faces earthward, the spirit heavenward. The soul is Man in his earthly relationships; the spirit is Man
in his spiritual and immortal relationships. However, the two cannot be separated, but together constitute
man's immaterial self.

C. Becomes a Living Soul (Being) - Genesis 2:7.


The two views of Trichotomy and Dichotomy have been outlined above. It should be kept in the mind
that the difference between the two positions is not really great and that no other major doctrine is affected by
the difference.
1. Man as a unity. There is a strong tendency among conservative scholars to think of man as a unity
rather than as a being of divisible parts. The soul (spirit) is separated from the body at physical death, but
only for an interim awaiting the resurrection. Paul speaks of the soul as naked without the body:
Now we know that if the earthly tent we live in is destroyed, we have a building from God, an eternal
house in heaven, not built by human hands. Meanwhile we groan, longing to be clothed with our
heavenly dwelling, since when we are clothed, we will not be found naked. For while we are in this tent,
we groan and are burdened, because we do not wish to be unclothed but to be clothed with our heavenly
dwelling, so that what is mortal may be swallowed up by life (2 Cor. 5:1-4, NIV).
The Greeks thought about the soul in the after-life as being a disembodied spirit. The Christian believer
anticipates a union of the spirit with a glorified body, a body like that of Jesus, raised up from the grave and

86
transformed. In Romans chapter eight, the Apostle Paul speaks of the redemption of the body: "And not only
they, but ourselves also, which have the firstfruits of the Spirit, even we ourselves groan within ourselves,
waiting for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of the body" (Rom. 8:23).
Christ's vicarious atoning work redeemed the whole person, not just the soul or spirit. When we think of
man as redeemed wholly, we find new meaning in Paul's benediction of 1 Thessalonians 5:23: "And the very
God of peace sanctify you WHOLLY; and I pray God your WHOLE spirit and soul and body be preserved
blameless unto the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ."
Are not body, soul and spirit, then, separate functions of one person, rather than separate substances? Did
not Jesus have our wholeness in mind when he said, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with ALL thy heart,
and with ALL thy soul, and with ALL thy mind, and with ALL thy strength. . ." (Mk. 12:30)?
Speaking of treating man as a unity, Dr. Paul Tournier, Swiss physician and psychiatrist writes:
Science, in fact, works only by analysis, by dividing ad infinitum the object of study ... What happens
then is like what happens when we separate a jigsaw puzzle into its five hundred pieces: The overall picture
disappears. This is the state of modern medicine; it has lost the sense of the unity of man. Such is the price it
has paid for its scientific progress. It has sacrificed art to science. Its discoveries are true; that is to say, they
reveal valid and important facts. But they do not lead to a true understanding of man, because he is a
synthesis. We shall not come to understand man by adding up all the items of analytical knowledge that we
possess of him, but by comprehending him as a unified whole. Man is not just a body and a mind. He is a
spiritual being. It is impossible to know him if one disregards his deepest reality.""

2. The origin of Man's soul or spirit. Since the Scriptures record only one creation by God's direct act
of breathing life, from what source does each newly born person's soul come? There are THREE theories:
(a) Pre-existence, (b) Creationism, and (c) Traducianism.
a) Preexistence is self-explanatory. This theory of transmigration of souls is held by Hinduism,
Theosophy, Rosicrucians and many occult religions. It has no support in Scripture whatever.
b) Creationism is held by Roman Catholics and many Reformed theologians. According to
Creationists, the soul is created directly by God in each newly conceived person sometime between
conception and birth; only the body is propagated by the parents. Scriptures quoted in defense of this theory
are: Zec. 12:1; Is. 42:5; 57:16; Eccl. 12:7; and Heb. 12:9. It is urged against this position that it makes God
the creator of sinful souls or represents God as putting a pure soul in a depraved Adamic body. It can also be
shown that the Scriptures given in support of a direct creation of each soul would with equal force support the
indirect agency of God in procreation.
c) Traducianism. seems to be the preferred theory among conservative scholars. According to
Traducianism, the human race was created in Adam, and from him both body and soul were procreated by
natural generation. Scriptures supporting this theory, to list a few, are: Jb. 14:4, 15:14; Ps. 51:5, 58:3; Jn. 3:6;
and Eph. 2:3. Dr. Strong describes the position as follows:
Traducianism, holds that man, as a species, was created in Adam. In Adam, the substance of
humanity was yet undisturbed. We derive our immaterial as well as our material being, by natural laws of
propagation, from Adam - each individual man after Adam possessing a part of the substance that was
originated in him.
It is argued in favor of the traducian theory that:
(1) There is no biblical record of God's creating a human being more than once, after which He rested
from His work (Gn. 2:2).
(2) It best explains the inherited sinful nature of man as voiced by David, "Behold, I was shapen in
iniquity; and in sin did my mother conceive me" (Ps. 51:5).
(3) It is strongly supported by a vital statistic about the family of Jacob: "All the souls that came with
Jacob into Egypt, which came out of his loins, besides Jacob's sons' wives, all the souls were threescore and
six. . ." (Gn. 46:26).
(4) In a biblical statement about the birth of Seth, it is said that he was begotten in the likeness of Adam
(Gn. 5:3).
(5) It explains personality likenesses between children and parents.

87
The traducianist, however, does not posit a purely natural origin for new souls; he maintains that all souls
since Adam are indirectly created by God as the Sustainer of the process of procreation (Heb. 1:3; Col. 1:17).

VI. MAN'S PRIMITIVE STATE


It will be the purpose of this section to examine the primitive state of Adam before the Fall. An attempt
will be made to show the psychological, moral, social, occupational, and spiritual condition of Adam and Eve
as occupants of their God-given Edenic home.

A. The State of Knowledge.


God gave to Adam the task of naming all the animals and birds, and perhaps all forms of life, for he was
given dominion over all of God's creatures (Gn. 1:28; 2:19,20). This required a vast knowledge. Apparently,
Adam's knowledge included an insight into the nature and relative purpose of each species; for in primitive
times names did more than identify the holder, they revealed character and destiny. The father of the human
race was not a full-grown adolescent; he was the resident scientist of Eden.

B. The Moral State.


Since Holiness and Righteousness are among the fundamental attributes of God, Adam, created in God's
image, must have partaken of a holy and righteous character. When God had completed the creation, it was
perfect: "And God saw everything that he had made, and, behold, it was very good" (Gn. 1:31a). A
comparison of Ephesians 4:24 with Colossians 3:9,10 strongly infers the primitive righteousness of Adam.
His state is often described as that of mere innocence; however, the word "innocence" is not sufficiently
definitive. Adam was created in a state of holiness; and while it was not yet confirmed, because it had not yet
been tested, it was a state devoid of evil.

C. The Psychological State.


Adam seems to have been created with several basic instincts (some may prefer to call them needs, drives
or impulses).
These instincts or needs would seem to be the following:
1. Self-preservation: Adam was warned by God of impending death, if he ate of the forbidden tree (Gn.
3:3).
2. The desire for food: God provided every kind of plant and tree good for food (Gn. 1:29).
3. The urge for procreation or sex: Adam and Eve were commanded to multiply and replenish the earth
(Gn. 1:28). Genesis says about man and woman: "Therefore shall a man leave his father and mother, and
shall cleave unto his wife. . ." (Gn. 2:24).
4. The need for acquisition: God placed them in their own garden, which they lost with the Fall (Gn.
2:15).
5. The drive for domination: Adam was commanded to have dominion over the earth and over every
created thing (Gn. 1:28). These instincts were for the good of Man; they continue to be for Man's good when
they are not abused; however, they constitute the desire of the "flesh"; consequently, they must be controlled
by the Spirit in the believer. There will be more on this subject in a later section.

D. The Social State.


Man is a social creature, he was made for companionship. "And the Lord God said,'It is not good that
man should be alone; I will make him an help meet for him'"(Gn. 2:18). (See also Gn. 18:23,24). In the
garden, Adam had daily communication with the Lord. When Eve was created, he had constant
companionship with a being of his own kind. When Adam sinned, he was alienated from God; then,
suspicion surfaced between Adam and Eve, resulting in the accusation, "the woman whom thou gavest to be
with me..." (Gn. 3:12).

E. The Occupational State.

88
The Garden of Eden was not a place of idleness. "And the Lord God took the man, and put him into the
garden of Eden to dress it and to keep it" (Gn. 2:15). Adam was not only a zoologist, he was also a
horticulturist. The beauty and productivity of Eden were not the result of God's creative work only; Adam
kept and tended the garden, giving it touches of human handiwork. Creative occupation is positively essential
for fulfillment. Work became "toil" only when sin entered the scene.

F. The State of Life Expectancy.


Adam was created with the potential of immortality. Death would occur only if Adam disobeyed the
command of God relative to eating from the tree of the knowledge of good and evil (Gn. 2:16,17; 3:3). When
Adam and Eve sinned, death began to reign. Angels with a flaming sword henceforth guarded the tree of life
(Gn. 3:24). Jesus Christ, the last Adam, has removed the sting of death; the Seed of woman has bruised the
serpent's head; through God's Son, paradise is restored.
Adam was created in God's image, in holiness and righteousness. He was placed in an ideal environment,
with a fulfilling occupation. He was provided with Divine companionship and marital love. His potential
was immortality; yet, he disobeyed and fell. How could he have forfeited so much, not only for himself, but
for the human race? The answer to this question is taken up in the following section.

VII. THE FALL OF MAN


At the very heart of the Christian gospel is the statement from the Gospel of John: "For God so loved the
world, that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have
everlasting life" (Jn. 3:16). God sent His Son to rescue Man from his perishing condition. If God loved Man
so much, how did Man get into a state of perishing? A brief explanation is given in the following paragraph
from the Foursquare Declaration of Faith:
We believe that man was created in the image of God, before Whom he walked in holiness and
purity, but that by voluntary disobedience and transgression, he fell from the Eden of purity and
innocence to the depths of sin and iniquity, and that in consequence of this, all mankind are sinners sold
unto Satan, sinners not by constraint but by choice, shapen in iniquity and utterly void by nature of that
holiness required by the law of God, positively inclined to evil, guilty and without excuse, justly
deserving the condemnation of a just and holy God.

Although he was created in God's image, placed in an ideal environment, and given everything he needed,
Adam rebelled against God and disobeyed His commandment. The result of Adam's sin was shame, guilt,
alienation and death; not only for himself, but for the whole human race. This raises the question, "Why
would God subject Adam and Eve to temptation?" (See Ps. 14:1-3; Rom. 3:10, 23; 5:12-21).

A. The Probation of Man.


1. It's Purpose. Man was created in God's image. He was endowed with intelligence, emotion and will.
He was a free moral agent, therefore, he was capable of making a choice. Since Man was created for God's
glory (Is. 43:7), and since he could best glorify God by freely choosing to worship and serve Him, it was
necessary that Adam be given an opportunity to make a choice. For Adam and Eve, the Garden of Eden was
not only a home in paradise; it was also a place of probation, a place to test their obedience and loyalty to
Jehovah. The probation of Adam and Eve was based upon a clear direct commandment, a simple law of
works. The law had two parts: (1) a positive part, consisting of a glorious provision and (2) a negative part,
consisting of a clear prohibition: "And the Lord God commanded the man, saying, Of every tree of the garden
thou mayest freely eat: but of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it: for in the day
that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gn. 2:16,17).
It needs to be explained how beings who were created with holy natures could sin. Our first parents had
holy natures, but they did not yet have holy characters. A holy nature is the result of creation; a holy
character is the result of testing in which a choice of good is made, where a choice of evil was possible. A
choice of evil results in an evil character. God desired the worship and service of beings with holy moral

89
characters.
Free choice, then, was necessary for the development of mature holiness and blessedness. With free
choice there is, of necessity, the possibility of a wrong choice. Adam and Eve made the wrong choice with
disastrous consequences, both for themselves and for the human race.

2. Its character. The probationary commandment given to Adam was personal, not moral. There was
no obvious wrong in eating from the forbidden tree; the Fall of Adam and Eve was the result of disobedience,
not the result of a clearly immoral act. This test was similar to the later test of Abraham. The test of
Abraham was purely personal, not moral. There would have been no intrinsic wrongdoing by Abraham in
sparing his son; he moved toward the sacrifice of Isaac as an act of pure obedience to God. A moral law
should be obeyed because it is inherently right to do so. For instance, the Ten Commandments are not right
only because they came from God; God gave the Decalogue because it represented inherently right conduct.
On the other hand, the ceremonial law required obedience because God gave it; its rightness was not self-
evident. The prohibition of eating from the tree of good and evil was a testing law, because the evil was not
self-evident; the evil was in the disobedience of the commandment. The Fall of Adam and Eve resulted from
a pure act of willful disobedience.

3. Its reasonableness. The reasonableness of the probation of Adam and Eve can be seen in several
considerations. First, an all-wise God knew what was necessary to bring Man to his highest potential
development and to his greatest blessedness. If Adam had obeyed, resisting Satan's temptation, he would
have possessed holy moral character, and would have risen to a new level of blessing and of fellowship with
God. There is a hint of this in the character and in the consequent translation of Enoch to heaven. Enoch
developed holy character even after inheriting an Adamic nature. If Adam had obeyed, he would have had
heaven on earth. A loving God would not have subjected Adam to probation had it not been necessary for
Adam's highest possible good.
In the second place, God, having foreseen Adam's failure, provided a plan for his redemption. God is not
the author of sin; He did not cause Adam to fall, for Adam had every reason to obey- However, God purposed
to bring out of human failure a glorious Redemption, a redemption wrought through the Incarnation and
vicarious Death of His own Son; a redemption that would include the final defeat of Satan who was, after all,
the first sinner. Within the very curse pronounced upon the serpent, God gave a promise of a Redeemer "the
seed of woman," and of Satan's defeat "it shall bruise thy head" (Gn. 3:15). Typical of the Redemption
provided through the blood of Jesus were the animals slain to provide a covering of Adam's nakedness and the
acceptable offering of a lamb which Abel brought to God (Gn. 3:21; 4:4). The Apostle Peter declares that
Christ, as a lamb, was purposed "before the foundation of the world"; therefore, God in His foreknowledge
saw that Adam would fail and determined to bring out of Adam's failure a people gloriously redeemed by the
blood of Christ (1 Pt. 1:18-20). It appears that Adam's testing was necessary and reasonable; because,
whichever result the testing would have produced would have led to a final state superior to the original
Edenic state.

B. The Temptation of Man.


1. The agent of temptation. In Genesis chapter three, the temptation of Adam and Eve is attributed to
the serpent who is said to have been "more crafty than any beast of the field" (Gn. 3:1, NASB). The real
tempter, however, was Satan. This is made clear by a passage in Revelation chapter twelve: "And the great
dragon was cast out, that old SERPENT, called the DEVIL, and SATAN, which deceiveth the whole world . .
." (Rv. 12:9).
A passage from the Apostle Paul strengthens this identity of the serpent with Satan; for he suggests that
the same tempter who beguiled Eve is present still, seeking to corrupt the minds of believers: "But I fear, lest
by any means, as the serpent beguiled Eve through his subtilty, so your minds should be corrupted from the
simplicity that is in Christ" (2 Cor. 11:3).
Furthermore, Genesis 3:1 does not state that the serpent was more subtile than any "other" beast, but more
subtile than "any" beast of the field. The serpent was the vehicle which Satan used to effect the temptation.

90
Apparently, Satan has the power to disguise himself by assuming the appearance of another being; Paul says
about Satan: "For Satan himself is transformed into an angel of light" (2 Cor. 11: 14). Many scholars believe
that the serpent was originally an upright animal which was the most beautiful of all the creatures. This
seems likely because the curse upon the serpent reduced him to a crawling creature. That the real tempter was
Satan, who had previously rebelled against God, is made clear by the prophecy that the "seed of woman"
(Christ) would bruise the serpent's head. Satan's rebellious posture and his fall are described in Isaiah 14:12-
15, and in Ezekiel 28:12-15. Seldom does Satan appear in his role as God's adversary except to those who are
completely surrendered to him; he normally disguises himself, assuming the form of a benefactor or of one
able to fulfill one's selfish ambitions.

91
2. The temptation's motives. What kind of motivation could Satan use that would tempt holy
innocent beings to disobey God? It was mentioned in Section VI that Adam and Eve were endowed with
certain basic instincts which they needed for their well-being. These instincts or drives seem to have been
those of self preservation, acquisition, desire for food, desire for love and procreation, and the urge for
dominion. Before the Fall, their drives were balanced and controlled; however, they constituted a
motivational base to which temptation could be directed. Satan aimed his temptation at three of Eve's
basic desires:
And when the woman saw that the tree was good for food, and that it was pleasant to the eyes,
and a tree to be desired to make one wise, she took of the fruit thereof, and did eat, and gave also unto
her husband with her; and he did eat (Gn. 3:6).
These were not inherently evil desires. They became evil because they were motivated by Satan, and
because they constituted disobedience to God's specific commandment. Desire becomes "lust" when it is
contrary to the Spirit. Many scholars believe that John was referring to the pattern of Eve's temptation
when he said: "For all that is in the world, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of
life, is not of the Father, but is of the world. And the world passeth away, and the lust thereof. but he that
doeth the will of God abideth forever" (1 Jn. 2:16,17). The term "world" does not refer to the earth, but to
the societal realm ruled by Satan; the term "flesh" has reference not to the body as such, but to the total
person dedicated to selfishness and disobedience to God.
At this point, it is important to notice that Satan did not appeal to Eve's desires until he first caused
her to doubt the Lord. He began his temptation with the insinuating question, "Hath God said?" (Gn. 3:1);
a question contrived to make Eve doubt God's goodness. The question was followed by a statement
meant to raise doubts about God's veracity, "Ye shall not surely die" (Gn. 3:4). With the seed of doubt
already planted, Satan showed himself to be God's enemy by making the bold accusation that God was
depriving Adam and Eve of their rightful privilege of divine status, "For God doth know that in the day ye
eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil" (Gn. 3:5).
Once the seed of doubt had been planted and had germinated, the appeal to desire was effective. Eve may
have thought, "If the Lord's truth and goodness are suspect, one must pursue one's own best interests."
Scholars have differed over the identity of the basic sin; their opinions have been divided among SELF,
DOUBT and PRIDE, any one of which is deadly (See 2 Pt. 2:10; 1 Tm. 3:6; Jas. 1:5-8, NIV); all three of
which, however, appear to have contributed to the fall of Adam and Eve.

C. The Fallen State of Man.


The Scriptures plainly teach that Man was created in the image of God. Genesis chapter three
describes Adam's disobedience and fall; Genesis chapters four through eleven portray Adam's descendants
in their calamities and strife. Man still bears enough of God's image to demonstrate his Divine origin; at
the same time, Man's history of war, crime, terrorism and perversion give indisputable evidence of his
Fall. Man with his noblest ideals speaks of his creation by God; Man with his greed and inhumanity to
man speaks of his corruption by Satan. If we did not have an inspired record of Man's fall, we would
have to assume some such happening at the dawn of history to account for the tragic human drama, which
is brightened only by Divine intervention and the redeeming events of Christ's Incarnation, Resurrection,
Omnipresence and promised Return. (See Rom. 5:12-14; 1 Tm. 2:13,14; Jb. 31:33; 1 Cor. 15:22,45.)

1. The interpretation of the Fall. Is the account of the Fall of Adam and Eve to be taken
figuratively or literally? Is it a myth or an allegory to be taken symbolically, or is it sober history to be
taken factually? Liberal and neo-orthodox theologians generally interpret the first eleven chapters of
Genesis as a myth. The following facts argue for a literal interpretation:
a) Nowhere in the Bible is the story of Adam interpreted symbolically. If the Creation and Fall
stories were allegories, the spiritualized. interpretations would have been numerous.
b) There is no indication in the book of Genesis, between chapters eleven and twelve, that
suggests a change from allegory to history. Noah is as much a real character as is Abraham.
c) Parallels between Adam and Christ are made by the Apostle Paul. Since Christ is a historical
person, it is not likely that He would be an antitype of a nonhistorical character. (See Rom. 5:14; 1 Cor.
15:22,45.)
d) In two genealogies recorded in later books of the Bible, the name of Adam is listed along with
obviously historical characters. (See 1 Chr. 1,2; Lk. 3:23-38). Adam is included in the genealogy of

92
Christ along with David, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob.
e) Real geographical locations are included in the story of Adam. such as Assyria and the river
Euphrates.

f) The fallen condition of Man is very literal. A real fallen state can hardly be attributed to a
mythical event. Furthermore, the fact that Man has made fantastic progress scientifically while he, at the
same time, has made no progress morally, ethically, and socially clearly indicates Man's sinful nature. In
addition, the persistence of war, crime, terrorism, greed, political corruption, and perversion demonstrate
the existence of a supernatural evil force who motivates much of human activity. However, God's Son
established a beach-head at Calvary from which He is building His kingdom; soon He will return to reign
in righteousness and to destroy the power of darkness (Rv. 19:11-20).

2. The results of the Fall.


a) The judicial results of the fall were fourfold: (1) The judgment upon the serpent (Gn. 3:14,15).
This apparently upright and beautiful creature was doomed to a crawling posture. The eating of "dust"
was a term denoting utter humiliation. According to Isaiah, the serpent will eat dust during the
Millennium, but he will be harmless (Is. 65:25). (2) The judgment upon the woman was that of pain and
sorrow in child bearing and submission to her husband (Gn. 3:16). The woman's lot in pagan countries is
an exaggerated manifestation of the curse. Only in lands reached by the Christian gospel has womanhood
experienced a measure of redemption. (3) The judgment upon the man was not that of labor, but of
wearisome toil (Gn. 3:17). Work is a boon to Man, but seldom is it free from strife and criticism. This
curse is evident the world over in the fear of crop failure, the fear of unemployment, labor strife,
bankruptcies and relentless competition. (4) The judgment upon the ground was that of lowered
productivity and the introduction of thorns and thistles (Gn. 3:17,18). Jesus used the illustration of thorns
and thistles as the opposite of good fruit (Mt. 7:16,17). Thorns became a symbol of evil and were
associated with Satan (2 Cor. 12:7). The evil symbolism of the thorn is seen in the fact that evil men,
motivated by Satan, placed a crown of thorns upon the brow of Jesus (Jn. 19:2-5). The prophet Isaiah
predicted the lifting of the curse and the removal of the thorn during the Millennium (Is. 55:12,13).

3. The consequences of the Fall.


a) The immediate consequence of the sin of Adam and Eve was that of a sense of shame. They
hid themselves from God because they were suddenly aware of their nakedness. Shame led to fear and
alienation. They wanted the experiential knowledge of good and evil, which they were tempted to believe
would make them divine; they got only the knowledge of evil, with good out of reach. Had Adam and
Eve obeyed, they would have had the experience of the knowledge of good with a knowledge of evil as
God knows and abhors it. (See Gn. 3:7-13.)
b) The most disastrous consequence of the Fall was death. God had warned, "for in the day that
thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gn. 2:17b). There were two trees in the garden: the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil, and the tree of life. Adam and Eve willfully ate from the tree of
"knowledge," which led them to the knowledge of evil and to the knowledge of death. As God had
warned, they were driven from the garden, from the tree of life, and from the presence of God. Adam did
not immediately die physically; in fact, he lived nine hundred and thirty years, but the process of disease
and mortality began the moment he sinned: "And as it is appointed unto men once to die, but after this the
judgment.. . " (Heb. 9:27). Perhaps the Psalmist best describes Man's mortality:
You have set our iniquities before you. Our secret sins in the light of your countenance. For all
our days have passed away in your wrath; We finish our years like a sigh. The days of our lives are
seventy years; and if by reason of strength they are eighty years, yet their boast is only labor and
sorrow; for it is soon cut off, and we fly away ... So teach us to number our days, that we may gain a
heart of wisdom (Ps. 90:8-12 NKJV).
The Bible identifies three categories of death, they are:
(1) Physical death. Physical death occurs when the spirit is separated from the body and the body
returns to dust (Gn. 3:19). In the old dispensation, only Enoch and Elijah escaped physical death (Gn.
5:24; 2 Kgs. 2:11).
In the new dispensation, only those who are taken up in the Rapture escape physical death (1 Thes.
4:16,17). Jesus raised several persons from the dead, and several others were raised up under the ministry

93
of the Apostles; however, we must assume that they later died natural deaths (Jn. 11:43,44; Acts 9:40).
(2) Spiritual death. Spiritual death is separation from God. All the unregenerate are alienated
from God by sin (Eph. 2:1-3); they may pass from death unto spiritual life by exercising saving faith in
the Lord Jesus Christ (Eph. 2:4-6; 1 Jn. 5:11,12; Col. 1:13,14,18-23; 1 Cor. 15:54-57). "For since by man
came death, by man came also the resurrection of the dead. For as in Adam all die, even so in Christ all
shall be made alive" (I Cor. 15:21,22). (Also Rom. 5:12-14.)
(3) Eternal death. Eternal death is the condition of those who are spiritually dead, who depart this
earthly life without repentance of sin and without faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. Eternal death is the
punishment of those who are terminally unbelieving, unrepentant and disobedient (2 Thes. 1:7-10). The
judgment unto eternal death (also called the second death) will take place at the end of the Millennium
before the Great White Throne of God. It will be a judgment for sinners only, the believer's judgment of
works will take place at the Rapture (Rv. 20:11-15; 2 Cor. 5:6-11).
VIII. MAN'S POTENTIAL IN THE STATE OF GRACE
Lest it appear that the study of Man is concerned only with Man's Fall, his sinful nature and the
consequent judgments, this final section will portray Man in the state of grace.

A. The Believer is a New Man in Christ Jesus.


If so be that ye have heard him, and have been taught by him, as the truth is in Jesus: that ye put off
concerning the former conversation [conduct] the old man, which is corrupt according to the deceitful
lusts; and be renewed in the spirit of your mind; and that ye put on the new man, which after God is
created in righteousness and true holiness (Eph.4:21-24). (See also Jn. 1:11-13; 2 Cor. 5:17.)

B. As a Result of Christ's Incarnation and Identification with Human Nature, Man was Given a
New Potential in a New Humanity in Christ.
And so it is written, The first man Adam was made a living soul; the last Adam was made a
quickening spirit. Howbeit that was not first which is spiritual, but that which is natural; and afterward
that which is spiritual. The first man is of the earth, earthy: the second man is the Lord from heaven. As
is the earthy, such are they also that are earthy: and as is the heavenly, such are they also that are heavenly
(1 Cor. 15:45-48). (See also Col. 3:9,10; 1 Cor. 15:21,22).
Adam corrupted human nature by sin, disobedience and rebellion. Christ by taking human nature into
union with His Divine Nature, and by living sinlessly and in perfect obedience to His Father, redeemed
human nature giving it a new potential. In Adam, we have paradise lost; in Christ Jesus, we have paradise
regained. In Adam, Man's fate is death; in Christ Jesus, Man's potential is life and eternal fellowship with
God. Paul, writing to the Philippian church, greeted the believers: ". . . to all the saints IN Christ Jesus. .
." (Phil. 1:1). In Christ is the believer's position. He is a member of the body of Christ and of the new
humanity.

C. The Believer in Christ Has a New Nature in Christ.


"Whereby are given unto us exceeding great and precious promises: that by these ye might be
partakers of the divine nature, having escaped the corruption that is in the world through lust" (2 Pt. 1:4).
The word translated "promises" in 2 Peter 1:4 means not the promise itself, but the thing or things
promised by God (the fulfillments of the promises). The promises themselves, of which the Word is
filled, are a great blessing to the believer; but, he has been redeemed from corruption and given a new
nature by the fulfillment of God's promises in Christ,

D. The Believer Has New Life in Christ.


"Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath
everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation; but is passed from death unto life" (Jn 5:24). (See
also Rom. 6:11; Eph. 2:1-6).

E. In Christ, the Believer Experiences Constant Renewal.


'For which cause we faint not; but though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed day
by day" (2 Cor. 4:16). "And be not conformed to this world: but be ye transformed by the renewing of
your mind, that ye may prove what is that good, and acceptable, and perfect, will of God" (Rom. 12:2).
(Also Rom. 12:1).

94
F. In Christ, the Believer Has the Hope of an Eternal Heavenly Home.
'And the Lord shall deliver me from every evil work, and will preserve me unto His heavenly
kingdom . . ." (2 Tm. 4:18). ". . . To an inheritance incorruptible, and undefiled, and that fadeth not away,
reserved in heaven for you. . . " (1 Pt. 1:4). (See also Jn. 14:2,3).

G. In Christ, the Believer Has Victory Over the Old Nature.


"Now if we be dead with Christ, we believe that we shall also live with him ... Let not sin therefore
reign in your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof... For sin shall not have dominion
over you: for ye are not under the law, but under grace" (Rom. 6:8,12,14).

H. The Believer in Christ Is Not Only Freed From the Dominion of Sin and Death; He Is Given
Kingdom Authority to Minister in the Name of Jesus and in the Power of the Spirit.

"So then after the Lord had spoken unto them, he was received up into heaven, and sat down on the
right hand of God. And they went forth, and preached every where, the Lord working with them, and
confirming the word with signs following' (Mk. 16:19,20). (See also Mt. 16:19; 18:18;
Lk. 9:1,2).
Man redeemed in Christ and surrendered to Christ becomes a vehicle of witness by which God's
salvation purpose is extended to all humanity. The atoning work of Christ has made a state of grace the
potential for all Mankind: ". . . Whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have everlasting life"
(Jn. 3:16).

95
Chapter Four
THE DOCTRINE OF SIN
Hamartiology

Introduction
I. The problem of sin
A. The source of sin
B. The permitting of sin
II. The origin of sin
A. In the universe
B. In the human race
III. The first human sin
A. The necessity of probation
B. The process of temptation
C. The results of Man's first sin
D. The curse which the first sin brought
IV. The nature of sin
A. The definition of sin
B. Sin and God's Law
C. Scriptural expressions for sin
D. Sin is evil
E. The sinful nature of sin
F. Important considerations regarding sin
V. The universality of sin
VI. The imputation of sin
VII. The relation of original sin and depravity
A. The meaning of depravity
B. The results of depravity
VIII. The guilt from sin
A. Sin in relation to God
B. Degrees of guilt
IX. The penalty of sin
A. The significance of penalty
B. The nature of penalty

96
CHAPTER FOUR
The Doctrine of Sin
Hamartiology

INTRODUCTION
The Greek word for sin is hamartia, while the word ology signifies knowledge. Thus, Hamartiology
is the knowledge or the doctrine of sin. That sin is a reality in the world hardly needs to be argued.
History reveals its dire effects in the wars, tumults, and the evils sin exhibits. Every sound in nature is in
the minor key. The conscience of man is often a nagging testimony to his own shortcomings and sin
(Rom. 2:15). The Scripture speaks constantly of its reality. "All have sinned, and come short of the glory
of God" (Rom. 3:23). "But the scripture hath concluded all under sin. . ." (Gal. 3:22).

I. THE PROBLEM OF SIN


One of the most perplexing questions which comes to the human mind is in relation to the presence
and origin of sin. That all men are sinners cannot be denied. This is true of every race and tribe. Nor is it
necessary for man to learn to sin. The principle of sin is in his very nature from the earliest days of his
life. No child needs to be told how to do wrong, but he must constantly be taught to do that which is
right.

A. The Source of Sin.


Let us clearly understand that the Bible did not create the problem of sin. Sin was in the world long
before the Bible was written. If the Bible had never been written, or if it were not true, we would still
have the problem of sin on our hands. Men may even blame God and say sin was all His fault, but that
does not eliminate the problem. The curse of sin is still upon us.
Just because God is the Creator of all things, it does not follow that He is the author of sin. The
Scripture entirely excludes such a thing. ". . . Far be it from God, that he should do wickedness; and from
the Almighty, that he should commit iniquity" (Jb. 34:10). God could not possibly sin, for He is holy.
"And one cried unto another, and said, Holy, holy, holy, is the Lord. . ." (Is. 6:3). There is no
unrighteousness in Him. "He is the Rock, his works are perfect: and all his ways are just: a faithful God
who does no wrong and just is he" (Dt. 32:4, NIV). "To shew that the Lord is upright: he is my rock, and
there is no unrighteousness in him" (Ps. 92:15). He cannot be tempted with evil, neither does He tempt
any man. "Let no man say when he is tempted, I am tempted of God: for God cannot be tempted with
evil, neither tempteth he any man" (Jas. 1:13). He hates sin. "For all that do such things, and all that do
unrighteously, are an abomination unto the Lord thy God" (Dt. 25:16). "And let none of you imagine evil
in your hearts against his neighbor; and love no false oath: for all these are things that I hate, saith the
Lord" (Zec. 8:17). In the light of all this, it would be blasphemous to make God the author of sin.
In order for sin to be sin, in the sense that there is guilt attached to it, it must be the free act of a
responsible being - one who understands the difference between right and wrong. This is what is called a
free moral agent.

B. The Permitting of Sin.


One of the great unanswered questions of all time has been why God, in His infinite wisdom and
power, should have allowed sin to come into the universe. Philosophers, theologians, and scientists have
struggled with this problem that is obviously beyond their ability to solve. Perhaps the best one can say is
that God permitted sin to come into the world for reasons beyond our ability to understand. Certainly, He
was not being taken unawares. His holy purposes had not been thwarted, nor was He seeking to salvage
something out of the unforseen wreckage. This is not to say that God planned that sin, with all its evil and
suffering, should come into the world. It is merely that for good purposes known only to Him, and in
spite of the suffering that it would cause, as well as the awful price of the death of His Son which He must
pay, God permitted sin to come, first into heaven, and then to earth.

97
Lewis Sperry Chafer has listed seven reasons, which are here advanced, for the divine permission of
sin:

1. The Divine recognition of the creature's free choice - It is evidently the purpose of God to
secure a company of beings for His own glory who are possessed of that virtue which is the result of a
free-choice victory over evil. But man cannot make a choice between good and evil unless evil exists.

2. The specific value of redeemed beings - According to the Scriptures, God is not revealed as One
who seeks to avoid the issues which arise because of the presence of sin in the universe. He could have
created innocent, unfallen beings possessing no capacity to err; but if He desired redeemed souls purified
by sacrificial blood and purchased at an infinite cost, the expression of such love and the exercise of such
sacrifice are possible only when sin is present in the world.

3. The acquisition of Divine knowledge - The creatures of God's hand must, by a process of
learning, attain to that knowledge which God has possessed eternally. They can learn only by experience
and revelation. Man must learn concerning both good and evil. He must realize the sinfulness of sin if he
is to attain in any degree to the knowledge God possesses; but he cannot attain to such knowledge unless
sin exists as a living reality which is ever demonstrating its sinful character.

4. The instruction of angels - "To the intent that now unto the principalities and powers in heavenly
places might be known by the church the manifold wisdom of God. . ." (Eph. 3:10). "Unto whom it was
revealed, that not unto themselves, but unto us they did minister the things, which are now reported unto
you by them that have preached the gospel unto you with the Holy Ghost sent down from heaven; which
things the angels desire to look into" (1 Pt. 1:12). From these scriptures it is possible to conclude that
angels are observing men on earth and learning important facts through the present experience of human
beings. It would be as necessary for angels to learn the truth regarding that which is evil as it is for them
to learn the truth regarding that which is good, but the acquiring of the knowledge of evil through
observing human experience must be denied the angels unless evil is permitted as an active principle in
the universe.

5. The demonstration of the Divine hatred of evil - It is evidently of immeasurable importance for
God to demonstrate His hatred of evil. The Apostle Paul declares that God was ". . . willing to shew his
wrath, and to make his power known. .." (Rom. 9:22); but no judgment, wrath, or power in relation to sin
could be disclosed apart from the permitted presence of sin in the world.

6. The righteous judgment of all evil - Far beyond the mere details of the expression of sin is the
essential fact of the principle of evil, which if it is to be judged by God, must evidently be brought out
into an open demonstration of its actual character. Such a demonstration could not be secured with sin
existing as a hypothetical issue. It had to become concrete and prove its actual character.

7. The manifestation and exercise of Divine grace - Finally, and of the greatest import, there was
that in God which no created being had ever seen. The angelic hosts had seen His wisdom, His power,
and His glory; but they had never seen His grace. They had no conception of the goodness of God to the
undeserving. By one marvelous act of mercy in the gift of His Son as a sacrifice for sinners, He opened
the way for the exercise of His grace toward those who, because of their sin, deserved only His wrath.
But there could be no exercise of Divine grace toward the sinful and undeserving until there were sinful
and undeserving beings in the world.

II. THE ORIGIN OF SIN

98
It must be realized that sin did not have its beginning here on earth. The first sin was committed in
heaven. Heaven was stained before earth was marred by its dire presence. Thus, in order to fully
understand its reality and nature, we must first study its beginning in the universe, and then its beginning
upon earth.

A. The Origin of Sin in the Universe.


First, let us consider the person who was responsible for the first sin in the universe:
Son of man, take up a lamentation upon the king of Tyrus, and say unto him, Thus saith the Lord
God; Thou sealest up the sum, full of wisdom, and perfect in thy beauty. Thou hast been in Eden the
garden of God; every precious stone was thy covering, the sardius, topaz, and the diamond, the beryl, the
onyx, and the jasper, the sapphire, the emerald, and the carbuncle, and gold: the workmanship of thy
tabrets and of thy pipes was prepared in thee in the day that thou wast created. Thou art the anointed
cherub that covereth; and I have set thee so: thou wast upon the holy mountain of God; thou hast walked
up and down in the midst of the stones of fire. Thou wast perfect in thy ways from the day that thou wast
created, till iniquity was found in thee. By the multitude of thy merchandise they have filled the midst of
thee with violence, and thou hast sinned: therefore I will cast thee as profane out of the mountain of God:
and I will destroy thee, 0 covering Cherub, from the midst of the stones of fire. Thine heart was lifted up
because of thy beauty, thou hast corrupted thy wisdom by reason of thy brightness: I will cast thee to the
ground, I will lay thee before kings, that they may behold thee (Ez. 28:12-17).

That the prophet is describing a supernatural being is clear from the passage. The words might apply
to a king of Tyre, but they seem to go beyond this application and describe the highest of all created
beings. To whom else could these words apply, than to Satan before his fall?
We next look at the sin of which this exalted being was guilty:
How art thou fallen from heaven, 0 Lucifer, son of the morning! how art thou cut down to the
ground, which did weaken the nations! For thou hast said in thine heart, I will ascend into heaven, I
will exalt my throne above the stars of God: I will sit also upon the mount of the congregation, in the
sides of the north: I will ascend above the heights of the clouds; I will be like the most High (Is.
14:12-14).
Five times Lucifer lifts up his will against the will of God. It can thus be seen that the first sin was
that of rebellion against, and total independence of, God.
"I will ascend into heaven" - There are three heavens: the atmospheric heaven, the stellar or
astronomic heaven, and the highest or third heaven where God and the saints abide. (See 2 Corinthians
12:1-4, where Paul writes about having been caught up into the "third heaven.") The angels' sphere is in
the second heaven.
"I will exalt my throne above the stars of God" - "The stars of God" refers to the angelic hosts, as in:
"When the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God shouted for joy" Jb. 38:7), and "Raging
waves of the sea, foaming out their own shame; wandering stars, to whom is reserved the blackness of
darkness for ever" (Jude 13). (See also Rv. 12:3,4; 22:16.) Thus is expressed the desire to secure a
rulership over angelic beings.
"I will sit also upon the mount of the congregation, in the sides of the north" - These words have been
taken to express a desire for an earthly kingdom also. In scriptural symbolism, a mountain means a
kingdom. "And it shall come to pass in the last days, that the mountain of the Lord's house shall be
established in the top of the mountains, and shall be exalted above the hills; and all nations shall flow into
it" (Is. 2:2). ". . . And the stone that smote the image became a great mountain, and filled the whole earth"
(Dn. 2:35).
"I will ascend above the heights of the clouds" - Divine glory is often symbolized by clouds in
Scripture. Lucifer wanted to possess this glory.
"I will be like the most High" - This is the climax of the other four desires. All of these statements
express independence of and opposition to God, a willful ambition against God. If we wonder how it was

99
possible for sin to come into a perfect environment, the answer seems to be, as far as Lucifer and the
angels who fell with him, that their fall was due to their deliberate, self-determined revolt against God.

B. The Origin of Sin in the Human Race.


The third chapter of Genesis describes how sin first entered the human race. A complete grasp of this
chapter's teachings is essential to our understanding of that which follows in the Scriptures. The story of
the fall of man, as given here, is an absolute contradiction to the theory of evolution which purports to
teach that man began at the very bottom of the moral ladder and is now slowly climbing upwards. On the
contrary, this chapter declares that man began at the very top, in the image of God, and proceeded to
tumble to the bottom.
Genesis chapter three also contradicts the modern theory of heredity and environment. We are told
that the reason sin and evil are in the world is because of the pollution of the stream of our heredity. If
our ancestors had not sinned we would not have been sinners. We know that Adam and Eve had no
polluted ancestry behind them, yet they sinned. Again we are told that the cause of evil in the human
heart is due to the sinful environment in which we live. If we could only clean up society, then men
would no longer be subject to sin. This is shown to be false by the fact that our first parents lived in a
condition of perfection, yet they sinned. No change of environment will rid man of his sin. Arthur W.
Pink has said, "What man needs is not a new berth, but a new birth."
The human race was created in such a way that it could receive and reciprocate the love of God. In
order for love to be real it must be bestowed freely. Love is not love if it is given under compulsion.
How was God to know whether this first man and woman loved Him? He gave them an opportunity to
prove their love by a simple act of obedience. In fact, it was not even as difficult as can be assumed. All
they were asked to do was to refrain from committing one act - partaking of the fruit of one of the many
trees in the garden, and thereby demonstrating their devotion to Him. God was not depriving them of
anything. Adam and Eve did not need the fruit of this tree. It was not necessary to either their happiness
or well-being. On the other hand, man does not need sin. It has not added one moment of genuine
pleasure to his life in any way. Even those who sin against others the most want others to deal honestly
with them. The liar expects you to tell him the truth, and the thief who steals your goods wants you to
leave his goods alone.
There was no poison or evil in the fruit of that one tree. It was only wrong because God said they
were not to eat of it. In the moral economy which God was establishing here on the earth sin was a
possibility, but not a necessity. Adam and Eve should never have converted that possibility into an
actuality. Surrounded with everything for their every need, and duly warned by God as to what the
consequences would be, we can only conclude that they were to blame for what they did. "But every man
is tempted, when he is drawn away by his own lust, and enticed" (Jas. 1:14).
It is very important to bear this fact in mind: God did not permit Satan to coerce or overpower Adam
and Eve. The serpent tempted them, but he did not force them to eat of the forbidden fruit. The manner
in which Satan came was a real trial, but it was not of such a nature as to overwhelm the original pair.
This is true of all temptation. A successful temptation requires the cooperation of the individual tempted.
He must yield just as Adam and Eve yielded. They could blame Satan for tempting them; but they must
blame themselves for yielding to the temptation. Their sinning was their own responsibility, and thus they
bore the penalty.
The difference between Satan's fall and man's fall is that Satan fell without any external tempter. Sin
among angels originated in their own beings; man's sin originated in response to a tempter and temptation
from without. Thiessen makes a unique statement: "Had man fallen without a tempter, he would have
originated his own sin, and would have himself become a Satan."

III. THE FIRST HUMAN SIN


A. The Necessity of Probation.
God had made man perfect, in His own image. He had placed him in a perfect environment,
supplying his every need, and had given him a beautiful helpmate in Eve. He was also given a free will.
But it was necessary that his free will be tested, in order for him to be confirmed in positive righteousness

100
of character. Character is the sum total of human choices. It can be attained only through choices. Thus
man was on probation, until it should be shown how he would use his power of freedom of choice. He
could have chosen to resist temptation. Unfortunately, he chose the opposite.

B. The Process of Temptation, Genesis 3:1-6.


1. Satan cast doubts on God's Word and His love. "Now the serpent was more subtle than any
beast of the field which the Lord God had made. And he said unto the woman, Yea, hath God said, Ye
shall not eat of every tree of the garden?" (v.1) The reason the tempter came to the woman, rather than to
Adam, may be due to the fact that God had given the command, forbidding them to eat of the tree, to
Adam directly. Eve received the command from her husband. So Satan very cleverly did not come
directly to the man, but to the woman through the serpent; and he came while she was alone. Satan's
subtle question, "Yea, hath God said?" is a favorite tactic of his today - calling in question the veracity of
God's Word. He also seemed to suggest that God was keeping something back from man, thus His love
might be called into question.
2. Eve tampered with God's Word. "And the woman said unto the serpent, We may eat of the fruit
of the trees of the garden: but of the fruit of the tree which is in the midst of the garden, God hath said, Ye
shall not eat of it, neither shall ye touch it, lest ye die" (vv.2,3). Eve did three things, each of which is
tragically dangerous. Note carefully what God had said, "Of every tree of the garden thou mayest freely
eat: but of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it: for in the day that thou
eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gn. 2:16,17). First, Eve added to God's Word. She added, "neither
shall ye touch it." God had not said that, and by adding these words she made it appear as though God
were unreasonable in His demands. It is always a dangerous thing to add to God's plain words. "Add
thou not unto his words, lest he reprove thee, and thou be found a liar" (Prv. 30:6). Second, she altered
God's Word. She said, "lest ye die." The sharp point of the Spirit's sword was dulled, suggesting that
there was only a possibility that they might die. Third, she omitted part of God's Word. Eve completely
left out God's solemn threat, "Thou shalt surely die." Revelation 22:19 says: "And if any man shall take
away from the words of the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of the book of life,
and out of the holy city, and from the things which are written in this book."
3. Satan contradicted God's Word. Having sown the seed of doubt in Eve's mind concerning what
God had said, Satan was now ready for the flat denial, and its plausible explanation. "And the serpent
said unto the woman, Ye shall not surely die: for God doth know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your
eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil" (vv.4,5). The word "gods" is not
expressed in the original Hebrew in the plural! What Satan really said was, "Ye shall be as God." This
certainly made a strong appeal to her self-centered ambition - to be as God! Then she began to rationalize
as to the attractiveness of the fruit, its satisfying taste, and the intriguing possibility of a whole new
experience in knowing both good, which she had known, and evil - an area which must have stirred her
curiosity, to say the least.
4. Eve succumbed to the temptation. "And when the woman saw that the tree was good for food,
and that it was pleasant to the eyes, and a tree to be desired to make one wise, she took of the fruit thereof,
and did eat, and gave also unto her husband with her; and he did eat" (vv.6).
First John 2:16 states: "For all that is in the world, the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the
pride of life, is not of the Father, but is of the world." Here are stated what seem to be the three areas of
temptation man is subjected to in this world. All sin stems from at least one of these. It can easily be
seen that Eve fell for all three: the lust of the eye - "she saw ... it was pleasant to the eyes," the lust of the
flesh - "that the tree was good for food," and the pride of life - "a tree to be desired to make one wise."
Thus the seed of every sin among men is seen in this the first sin.

C. The Results of Man's First Sin.


1. As seen in man's attitude toward himself.
a) Adam and Eve immediately became conscious of their own sin. Their consciences were
awakened and instantly accused them to themselves. God had not even entered the picture, yet man knew
he was a sinner. "And the eyes of them both were opened, and they knew that they were naked...'(v.7).

101
God later asked them,"Who told thee that thou wast naked?" (v.11). Man did not need another to tell him;
he knew it himself
Adam and Eve became conscious of two things with relation to their sin: pollution and guilt. The
consciousness of their pollution led them to endeavor to cover themselves. The realization of their guilt
caused them to flee when God came near. The pollution of sin is a fact. Sin is sinful, and every man
bears its stain upon his soul. God does not put it there. It is the inevitable result of sin. There was also
the consciousness of guilt, for all sin is in relation to God.
b) Adam and Eve vainly sought to cover their sin. "And they sewed fig leaves together, and made
themselves aprons" (v. 7). Hardly had the first man and woman sinned, and become conscious of their
guilt, before there was an attempt to cover up. Prior to this time man needed no covering for his body.
Many commentators have imagined that they were covered with a garment of light - the glory of God.
Whatever their condition was, they were instantly conscious that they had lost something. Some have
thought that prior to this the spirit dominated the body, but now the body ruled over the spirit. The
inherent tendency in sinful man is to always try to cover up the result of his sin. Thus many attempt to
sew for themselves "fig leaves" of self-righteousness. Our first parents soon discovered that these did not
even satisfy themselves, let alone a holy God; for when God came near, they fled from His presence.

2. As seen in man's attitude toward God.


a) Adam and Eve fled from the presence of God. "And they heard the voice of the Lord God
walking in the garden in the cool of the day: and Adam and his wife hid themselves from the presence of
the Lord God amongst the trees of the garden" (v. 8). What a difference sin had made in so short a time!
Apparently, they had enjoyed God's presence prior to their sin, but now they fled from Him. There is
something about sin in the human heart that forms an antipathy toward God, and the sinner will flee from
His presence.
b) Adam and Eve falsely thought they could hide from God. What a false sense of security was
theirs as they hid behind the trees of the garden! As though they could hide from the all-seeing eye of the
Almighty within the confined limits of Eden! As though there were any place in all God's great universe
where one might hide from Him who sees and knows all the secrets of men's hearts! (Ps. 139:7-13). It is
gracious indeed to realize that, though He most surely knew what had happened, it was God who sought
the fallen pair: Adam, "Where art thou?" (Gn. 3:9). God has been taking the initiative in seeking lost
Mankind ever since. "For the Son of man is come to seek and to save that which is lost" (Lk. 19:10).
(Also the parable of the lost sheep, Lk. 15:3-7).

3. As seen in man's attitude toward his fellow man. One of the saddest results of sin is its effect
upon others. Eve was not content to disobey God herself alone, she must also involve her husband. "And
when the woman saw that the tree was good for food.... she took of the fruit thereof, and did eat, and gave
also unto her husband. . ." (Gn. 3:6). The drunkard, the addict, or the immoral person, is never satisfied
until he has influenced others to join him in his vices.
When God confronted the first sinners and asked them that searching question, "Hast thou eaten of the
tree, whereof I commanded thee that thou shouldst not eat?" (v. 11), there was an immediate attempt on
the part of Adam to shift the blame to another: "The woman .... she gave me of the tree, and I did eat"
(v.12). Instead of openly admitting his guilt, Adam blamed his wife. Not only did he blame her, but there
is the suggestion that Adam also laid some of the blame on God Himself: "The woman whom thou gavest
to be with me ... (v.12). It is of the nature of sin that causes man to refuse to take the responsibility on
himself. The prayer that brings forgiveness and cleansing is, "God be merciful to ME a sinner" (Lk.
18:13).

D. The Curse Which the First Sin Brought.


Though it was only one sin - one act of disobedience - it manifested the spirit of rebellion which had
come into the heart of man, and broke fellowship with the Holy God. As a result, God pronounced the
curses under which all of creation has suffered ever since.

102
1. The curse upon the serpent. ". . . thou art cursed above all cattle, and above every beast of the
field; upon thy belly shalt thou go, and dust thou shalt eat all the days of thy life. . ." (v.14) - the curse
upon the animal kingdom.
2. The curse upon the woman. I will greatly multiply thy sorrow and thy conception; in sorrow
thou shalt bring forth children; and thy desire shall be to thy husband, and he shall rule over thee" (v.16).
3. The curse upon the man...... cursed is the ground for thy sake; in sorrow shalt thou eat of it all the
days of thy life ... in the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread, till thou return unto the ground; for out of it
wast thou taken: for dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return" (vv.17-19). This plainly includes both
physical and spiritual death.
A further result of the curse upon man is his expulsion from the garden of Eden.
And the Lord God said, Behold, the man is become as one of us, to know good and evil: and now, lest
he put forth his hand, and take also of the tree of life, and eat, and live forever: therefore the Lord God
sent him forth from the garden of Eden, to till the ground from whence he was taken. So he drove out the
man; and he placed at the east of the garden of Eden Cherubims, and a flaming sword which turned every
way, to keep the way of the tree of life (vv.22-24). Though this seems to be a severe judgment, yet there is
the thought of mercy, for God did not want man to eat of the tree of life lest he should live forever in his
sin; thus making redemption impossible.
4. The curse upon the ground. ". . . cursed is the ground for thy sake ... thorns also and thistles
shall it bring forth to thee . . ." (vv.17,18) The curse upon the vegetable kingdom.

IV. THE NATURE OF SIN


A. What is Sin?
Perhaps the best definition is found in the Larger Catechism (Westminster) which says: "Sin is any
want of conformity unto, or transgression of, any law of God given as a rule to the reasonable
creature.114 Chafer and others think it would be better to substitute the word "character" for "law" in this
definition, inasmuch as the law of God may not include all that God's character requires. Anything that
contradicts God's character of holiness is sin. The definition might be more comprehensive if both
thoughts were included: Sin is any want of conformity unto, or transgression of, the character or law of
God given as a rule to the reasonable creature. Sin may be against God's Person and thus be godlessness,
defilement or selfhood; or it may be against God's laws, or moral government, and thus be transgression,
rebellion, or lawlessness. The former is illustrated in Isaiah chapter six, where the prophet caught a vision
of the holiness of God and cried out: ". . . woe is me! for I am undone; because I am a man of unclean lips
. . ." (Is. 6:5). Also, as Job said to God: 'I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear: but now mine eye
seeth thee. Wherefore I abhor myself, and repent in dust and ashes." Jb. 42:5,6). (See also Lk. 5:8 and Rv.
1:17.) That sin is a transgression of the law is clear from:
What shall we say then? Is the law sin? God forbid. Nay, I had not known sin, but by the law:
for I had not known lust, except the law had said, Thou shalt not covet (Rom. 7:7).
For as many as are of the works of the law are under the curse: for it is written, Cursed is every
one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them (Gal. 3:10).
If ye fulfill the royal law according to the scripture, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself, ye do
well: But if ye have respect to persons, ye commit sin, and are convinced of the law as transgressors
(Jas. 2:8,9).

B. Sin and God's Law.


1. The nature of God's law. Since we define sin as any want of conformity unto or transgression of
God's law, it would be well to understand a few things about His laws.
First, there is nothing wrong with the Law itself. We have so emphasized the fact that we are under
grace and not under Law, one would almost think the Law was something evil. Paul says: ". . . the law is
holy, and the commandment holy, and just, and good" (Rom. 7:12). It is a revelation of God's nature and
will, therefore it can only be good.
Second, God's law is not something arbitrary, since it springs from His own nature. God does not

103
declare that something is right simply on the basis that He says it is. Rather, He says it is right because it
is right. If this were not so He would be a despot.
Third, when God gave man His Law, did He expect him to keep it? The answer can only be, No!
Knowing all things, God was fully aware that man would not - indeed could not - keep His Law when He
gave it to him. Why then, did an all-wise God give a set of laws to a people He well knew would not, and
could not, keep them? As in everything, God had a wise and good purpose in this giving of the Law.
There seems to be at least a threefold purpose.

2. The purpose of God's Law.


a) The Law was given to intensify Man's knowledge of sin. A man's conscience will bear inner
witness to him that he is a sinner, but through God's published Law he has a clearer knowledge of what
sin is. "Now we know that what things soever the law saith, it saith to them who are under the law: that
every mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God ... for by the law is the
knowledge of sin" (Rom. 3:19,20). "What shall we say then? Is the law sin? God forbid. Nay, I had not
known sin, but by the law: for I had not known lust, except the law had said, Thou shalt not covet" (Rom.
7:7). Having learned through the law, that sin is breaking God's commandments, sin now takes on the
character of transgression. "For until the law sin was in the world: but sin is not imputed when there is no
law" (Rom. 5:13). "Was then that which is good made death unto me? God forbid. But sin, that it might
appear sin, working death in me by that which is good; that sin by the commandment might become
exceeding sinful" (Rom. 7:13).
b) The Law was given to reveal the holiness of God. If there is one message that comes to us
from the detailed ceremonial laws, offerings, priestly requirements, etc.; it is that God is a holy God and
can only be approached in the proper, prescribed way, and only at given times. The Law reveals the
holiness of God. "Wherefore the law is holy, and the commandment holy, and just, and good" (Rom.
7:12).
c) The Law was given to lead men to Christ. "For Christ is the end of the law for righteousness to
every one that believeth" (Rom. 10:4). The Law is called a "schoolmaster." "Wherefore the law was our
schoolmaster to bring us unto Christ, that we might be justified by faith" (Gal. 3:24). The word translated
"schoolmaster" is paidagogos, which has no exact equivalent in the English language. A paidagogos was
usually a trusted slave in a wealthy Roman family, who had the responsibility of superintending the
general care of a son from about age six to sixteen: taking him to and from his teachers' houses or the
schools of physical training, looking after him in his play hours, and so on. In likening the Law to the
believer's paidagogos, Paul had in mind the temporary and purely provisional nature of this arrangement
until the child became of age and could participate fully in his father's inheritance. The Law could not
save, but it served to make men realize their need of Christ, through Whom alone they could be justified
by faith. The Law, through its offerings, its priesthood, and the tabernacle, pointed to the Cross of Christ
as the only way of salvation and access to God. Once Christ came, and was received as Savior and Lord
through faith, the Law, as a means of obtaining salvation, was done away with. Unbelievers, those who
do not come to Christ for salvation, are still being judged by the Law.
The Scriptures teach that on the death of Christ the believer is delivered, not only from the curse of
the Law - the penalty imposed upon him by the Law - but from the Law itself.
Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us: for it is written,
Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree ... (Gal. 3:13).
Wherefore, my brethren, ye also are become dead to the law by the body of Christ; that ye should
be married to another, even to him who is raised from the dead, that we should bring forth fruit unto
God (Rom. 7:4).
Having abolished in his flesh the enmity, even the law of commandments contained in ordinances
... (Eph. 2:15).
Blotting out the handwriting of ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us, and took
it out of the way, nailing it to his cross ... (Col. 2:14).
This deliverance from law refers not only to the ceremonial law, but to the moral law (the Ten
Commandments) as well. Second Corinthians 3:7-11 makes it clear that it was that law which was

104
"written and engraven in stones" that passed away. This makes it certain that Paul was writing about the
Ten Commandments.
But if the ministration of death, written and engraven in stones, was glorious, so that the children
of Israel could not steadfastly behold the face of Moses for the glory of his countenance; which glory
was to be done away: how shall not the ministration of the spirit be rather glorious? ... For if that
which is done away was glorious, much more that which remaineth is glorious (2 Cor. 3:7-11).
Thus the believer can realize that he is not "under law, but under grace" (Rom. 6:14). "But if ye be
led of the Spirit, ye are not under the law" (Gal. 5:18).

C. Scriptural Expressions for Sin.


Many different words and expressions are used in the Bible to describe sin. The following are some
of the most popularly used ones:
1. Missing of a mark or aim - Romans 3:23; 5:12, this is the expression most used in both the Old
and New Testaments.
2. Overpassing or trespassing of a line - to transgress, I Timothy 2:14.
3. Disobedience to a voice - Hebrews 2:2,3.
4. Falling where one should have stood upright - Galatians 6:1,variously translated.
5. Ignorance of what one ought to have known - Hebrews 9:7.
6. Diminishing of that which should have been rendered in full measure - I Corinthians 6:7; i.e.,
Annanias and Saphira, Acts 5:2.
7. Non-observance of a law - sins of omission, James 4:17.
8. Lawlessness or anarchy - utter disregard for the Law - 1 John 3:4, where "transgression" should
be translated "lawlessness." 9. Debt, a failure in duty, a not meeting one's obligations to God Matthew
6:12.
10. Other single words: iniquity, Lv. 26:40; godlessness, 1 Pt. 4:8; wickedness, Prv. 11:31; unbelief,
Rom. 11:20; unrighteousness, I Jn. 1:9; unjustness, Dt. 25:16; unholiness, 1 Ti. 1:9.

D. Sin is Evil.
1. Sin is a specific type of evil. There are physical evils and moral evils in the world. Physical evils
such as floods, earthquakes, hurricanes, frost and drought, etc., are not sins. They are not moral evils, but
are sometimes sent by God to punish or chastise those who have broken His Law. It is in this sense in
Isaiah 45:7, that God is said to "create evil." The Hebrew word ra, which Isaiah uses here for "evil," is
never rendered "sin," but "evil, calamity, adversity," etc. God made the Law and its penalties for breaking
it. If man sins, he will reap the results; and the responsibility for both are man's.
2. Sin is a positive evil. The sinner is not simply one who does not keep the Law. He becomes a
positive force for evil.

E. The Sinful Nature of Sin.


Sin does not merely consist of outward acts. It is a principle or nature within the sinner. While it is
true that men are sinners because they sin, it is a fundamental principle that men sin because they are
sinners. They are sinners by nature before they become sinners by practice. The first sin of Adam was a
personal sin which resulted in his having a sinful nature. His descendants have all been born with a sinful
nature, which has resulted in their sinning. Jesus said that a tree brings forth fruit according to its nature.
"Even so every good tree bringeth forth good fruit; but a corrupt tree bringeth forth evil fruit. A good tree
cannot bring forth evil fruit, neither can a corrupt tree bring forth good fruit" (Mt. 7:17, 18). He was more
interested in cutting down the evil tree, rather than trying to destroy the evil fruit. Thus, John the Baptist
prophesied of Him, "And now also the axe is laid unto the root of the trees: therefore every tree which
bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire" (Mt. 3:10).
This also explains why Jesus condemned the adulterous look, as well as the act of adultery (Mt.

105
5:27,28); and why He condemned anger as much as murder (Mt. 5:21,22), for it is this principle which
leads to murder. In connection with temptation and the adulterous look of which Jesus speaks here, it
seems, according to Dake, that He meant that a man would look "with continual longing, with the mind
made up to commit the act if at all possible (Jas. 1:13-16). It becomes a state of the heart and is as deadly
as the act itself (I Sam. 16:7; Mk. 7:19-23 ).116 Temptation itself is not sin; thus, if a man "looks" at a
woman and is "tempted," that in itself is not sin. It becomes sin if he dwells upon it, fantasizing
concerning his desire. James explains it thus: "But every man is tempted, when he is drawn away of his
own lust, and enticed. Then when lust hath conceived, it bringeth forth sin: and sin, when it is finished,
bringeth forth death" (Jas. 1:14,15).
The New Testament distinguishes between sin and sins. The former refers to the sin nature, while the
latter refers to the results, or expressions, of that nature. Paul says: "For without the law sin was dead....
But when the commandment came, sin revived, and I died" (Rom. 7:8b,9); ". . . whosoever committeth sin
is the servant of sin" Un. 8:34); ". . . we have before proved both Jews and Gentiles, that they are all under
sin. . . ." (Rom. 3:9); 'wherefore, as by one man sin entered into the world. . . ." (Rom. 5:12). Sin is also
seen to be a force within a person, as well as the acts which he commits. 'Let not sin therefore reign in
your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof" (Rom. 6:12). "For sin shall not have
dominion over you: for ye are not under the law, but under grace" (Rom. 6:14).
Those who study criminals, with a view to reclaiming them, are more interested in what made them
commit the crime than in the actual deed itself. Man needs a salvation that will give him a new nature.
That is why "Ye must be born again" (Jn. 3:7).
Thiessen quotes Charles Hodge as saying: "Sin includes guilt and pollution; the one expresses its
relation to the justice, the other to the holiness of God." Then he adds: "In so far as sin is a transgression
of the law, it is guilt; in so far as it is a principle, it is pollution. 117
Pollution as a result of sin, is clearly seen in the following scriptures: 11... the whole head is sick, and
the whole heart faint" (Is. 1:5); "the heart is deceitful above all things, and desperately wicked. . ." (Jer.
17:9); ". . . an evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart bringeth forth that which is evil...... (Lk. 6:45).
The following scriptures, and many others, speak of men needing to be cleansed: "wash me throughly
from mine iniquity, and cleanse me from my sin" (Ps. 51:2); "purge me with hyssop, and I shall be clean:
wash me, and I shall be whiter than snow" (Ps. 51:7); and ". . . the blood of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth
us from all sin" (I Jn. 1:7).

F. Important Considerations Regarding Sin.


1. Sins of omission. Failure to do what God's Law requires is as much sin as to do contrarily to the
requirements of the Law. There are sins of omission as well as of commission. "Therefore to him that
knoweth to do good, and doeth it not, to him it is sin" Was. 4:17). Israel was accused of robbing God.
"Will a man rob God? Yet ye have robbed me. But ye say, Wherein have we robbed thee? In tithes and
offerings" (Mal. 3:8).
2. Sins of unbelief. "And when he is come, he will reprove the world of sin ... Of sin, because they
believe not on me. . ." Jn. 16:8,9). "And he that doubteth is damned if he eat, because he eateth not of
faith: for whatsoever is not of faith is sin" (Rom. 14:23).
3. Sins of ignorance. Ignorance of the law is no excuse. The Levitical law gave specific instructions
concerning the type of offering a man should bring to the priest if he was guilty of a sin through
ignorance: And if any soul sin through ignorance, then he shall bring a she goat of the first year for a sin
offering. And the priest shall make an atonement for the soul that sinneth ignorantly. . . ." (Nm.
15:27,28).
And if a soul sin, and commit any of these things which are forbidden to be done by the
commandments of the Lord; though he wist it not, yet he is guilty, and shall bear his iniquity (Lv.
5:17).
The idea of a sin of ignorance is also expressed in the New Testament:
And that servant, which knew his lord's will, and prepared not himself, neither did according to
his will, shall be beaten with many stripes. But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of

106
stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes (Lk. 12:47,48).
4. One sin makes one guilty of all. "For as many as are of the works of the law are under the curse:
for it is written, Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the books of the
law to do them" (Gal. 3:10). "For whosoever shall keep the whole law, and yet offend in one point, he is
guilty of all" (Jas. 2:10). This seems to be a most stringent law. Yet if a person were hanging over a high
cliff by a chain, it would not be necessary to break every link in the chain to send him headlong to his
death on the rocks below. One would need to break only one link - and that could be the smallest of all.
It only takes one sin to make a man a sinner.

V. THE UNIVERSALITY OF SIN


The Scriptures bear testimony to the sinfulness of all mankind. The Old Testament declares: ". . . for
there is no man that sinneth not. . ." (I Kgs. 8:46); ". . . for in thy sight shall no man living be justified"
(Ps. 143:2); "who can say, I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin?" (Prv. 20:9); "for there is
not a just man upon earth, that doeth good, and sinneth not" (Eccl. 7:20).
The New Testament is even more explicit: there is none righteous, no, not one ... there is none that
doeth good, no not one" (Rom. 3:10-12); "for all have sinned, and come short of the glory of God. . ."
(Rom. 3:23); "but the scripture hath concluded all under sin. . . ." (Gal. 3:22); "we all stumble in many
ways." (Jas. 3:2a, NIV); "If we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us" (1
Jn. 1:8).
The fact that Christ died for all is an indication that all are sinners and need His saving grace: "For the
love of Christ constraineth us; because we thus judge, that if one died for all, then were all dead: and that
he died for all, that they which live should not henceforth live unto themselves, but unto him that died for
them, and rose again" (2 Cor. 5:14,15).
The Scriptures teach that through the sin of Adam and Eve all his posterity are counted as sinners.
"Through the one man's disobedience the many were made sinners" (Rom. 5:19, NASB). How God can
hold every man responsible for a depraved nature because of a sin he himself did not commit, will be
discussed under the imputation of sin.

VI. THE IMPUTATION OF SIN


Imputation means to attribute or reckon something to a person. A good illustration of the principle is
seen in Philemon verses seventeen and eighteen, where Paul says of Onesimus' debt: "If thou count me
therefore a partner, receive him as myself. If he hath wronged thee. or oweth thee ought, put that on mine
account. . . ."
Three great examples of imputation are seen in the Bible: (1) that of Adam's sin to the human race, (2)
that of our sin to Christ, as He died for us, and (3) Christ's righteousness imputed to believers through
faith in Christ. The first and third are especially seen in Romans 5:12-21. This is truly one of the greatest
passages in the Bible. The key verse in this passage is verse twelve: "Wherefore, as by one man sin
entered into the world, and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned.. . ."
"As by one man sin entered in to the world" - sin did not begin with Adam, it merely entered into the
human race through him. It had its beginning with Lucifer (Ez. 28:12-17). The important expression here
is, "for that all have sinned." Since the Greek aorist tense is used, a single historical act which was
completed in the past is indicated. Thus, "all have sinned" is better rendered "all sinned." Chafer says:
Each member of the race died physically because of his own part in Adam's sin. Since one
complete, single, historical act is in view, the words "all sinned" cannot refer to a nature which results
from that act, nor can it refer to personal sins of many individuals. It is not that man became sinful.
The assertion is that all sinned at one time and under the same circumstances.
"Sinned" is not equivalent to "became sinful." Paul does not say, "death passed upon all men" for that
Adam sinned, but "for that all sinned" (v.12).
Adam was the natural head of the human race, so that all men were in him when he sinned. Thus, we
all are sinners because we sinned in him. This principle is illustrated in Hebrews 7:9,10: "And as I may so
say, Levi also, who receiveth tithes, payed tithes in Abraham. For he was yet in the loins of his father,

107
when Melchisedec met him." Levi, the father of the priestly tribe, received tithes of the people. But
because he was in the loins of his great-grandfather Abraham when he paid tithes to Melchisedec, the
priest of the Most High God, Levi is said to have paid tithes to this ancient priest (Gn. 14:20). In like
manner, the whole human race was in Adam, their natural head, when he sinned. God thus imputes the
sin of Adam to each member of the race. Chafer again strongly claims: "No one would claim that Levi
consciously and purposefully paid tithes to Melchisedec, yet God declares he did. Likewise, no one
would claim that each individual in Adam's race consciously and purposefully sinned in Adam, yet there
can be no doubt that God reckons that each member of the race sinned in Adam's transgression's In 1
Corinthians 15:22 we read: "For as in Adam all die......
Lest any think that the statement in Romans 5:12, "for all have sinned," is a reference to personal
sin, Paul follows the statement with verses thirteen and fourteen:
For until the law sin was in the world: but sin is not imputed when there is no law. Nevertheless
death reigned from Adam to Moses, even over them that had not sinned after the similitude of Adam's
transgression, who is the figure of him that was to come.
No written statement of what God required had been given to man before the Law was given, thus
men were not held as guilty of having broken what did not exist; "Nevertheless death reigned from Adam
to Moses. . ." (v.14). We have already been told that death came by sin. If man was not responsible for
breaking laws which did not exist, yet he suffered the penalty of sin, which was death; then the sin which
caused him to die, even before the Law was given to Moses, could not have been personal sin. Death
reigned, from Adam to Moses, even over infants and incompetent people. It would seem then that the
"all" who sinned (v.12), could not have been held guilty of personal sin, but must have been considered
sinners because of their being in Adam when he sinned. In verse fourteen we are told that Adam was the
figure, or type "of him that was to come," Christ Jesus. In the following verses, Paul makes several
comparisons and contrasts between the first Adam and the Last Adam, Christ: "Therefore as by the
offence of one [Adam] judgment came upon all men to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of
one [Christ] the free gift came upon all men unto justification of life. For as by one man's disobedience
many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous" (vv.18,19).
If any feel that it is unjust that the sin of Adam should be imputed to all his posterity, by the same
reasoning it would be unjust to impute the righteousness of Jesus Christ to those who believe in Him. Yet
this is the basis of our justification and salvation.
It might seem to some that there is a contradiction between two sets of statements which are found in
the Old Testament. In Exodus 20:5 and Deuteronomy 5:9 (which are identical) and Exodus 34:7, which
expresses the same thought in almost the same language, are found the words: 'I the Lord thy God am a
jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth generation of
them that hate me." In apparent contradiction to this we read: "The son shall not bear the iniquity of the
father, neither shall the father bear the iniquity of the son: the righteousness of the righteous shall be upon
him, and the wickedness of the wicked shall be upon him" (Ez. 18:20). (See also Dt. 24:16; 2 Kgs. 14:6; 2
Chr. 25:4.) The explanation of this difficulty is not hard to find. The former statement has to do with the
consequences of the parents' sin and not the sin per se. The passage in Ezekiel is referring to the guilt and
penalty of the parents' sin rather than the consequences. We know that children often must bear the
consequences of their parents' wrongdoing and wrong-living. The following from The Pulpit
Commentary illustrates this principle:
God again manifestly does by the laws which obtain in his moral universe, entail on children
many consequences of their parents' ill-doing - as the diseases which arise from profligacy and
intemperance, the poverty which is the result of idleness or extravagance, the ignorance and evil
habits which are the fruit of neglected education. It is this sort of visitation which is intended here.10

Nowhere does the Bible teach, as is made clear from Ezekial 18:20 and the other references given,
that a son or grandson is considered guilty of the individual sin or sins of his parents and will thus be
judicially or eternally punished.

VII. ORIGINAL SIN AND DEPRAVITY

108
A. The Meaning of Depravity.
Two things are meant by the expression "original sin": the first sin of Adam, and the sinful nature
possessed by every man since Adam, due to Adam's first transgression. This sinful nature is called
"depravity." Depravity consists of four things which are true of every individual when he is born.
1. He is completely void of original righteousness. "Behold, I was shapen in iniquity; and in sin did
my mother conceive me" (Ps. 51:5).
2. He does not possess any holy affection toward God. "Who changed the truth of God into a lie,
and worshiped and served the creature more than the Creator, who is blessed for ever Amen" (Rom. 1:25).
"For men shall be lovers of their own selves ... traitors, heady, high-minded, lovers of pleasures more
than lovers of God. . . . " (2 Tm. 3:2-4)
3. There is nothing from without a man, that can defile him; but the things which come out of him,
these are they that defile the man. "For from within, out of the heart of men, proceed evil thoughts,
adulteries, fornications, murders, thefts, covetousness, wickedness, deceit, lasciviousness, an evil eye,
blasphemy, pride, foolishness: all these evil things come from within, and defile the man" (Mk. 7:15, 21-
23).
4. He has a continuous bias toward evil. "And God saw that the wickedness of man was great in
the earth, and that every imagination of the thoughts of his heart was only evil continually" (Gn. 6:5).
Lest the term "depravity" be misunderstood, it is well to note the following, quoted from Lectures in
Systematic Theology, by Thiessen: From the negative standpoint, it does not mean that every sinner is
devoid of all qualities pleasing to men; that he commits, or is prone to commit every form of sin; that he is
as bitterly opposed to God as it is possible for him to be ... Jesus recognized the existence of pleasing
qualities in some individuals (Mark 10:21; Matt. 23:23). ... From the positive standpoint, it does mean that
every sinner is totally destitute of that love to God which is the fundamental requirement of the law.
"Hear, 0 Israel: the Lord our God is one Lord: and thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thine heart,
and with all thy soul, and with all thy might" (Dt. 6:4,5). See Matt. 22:35-38; that he is supremely given
to a preference of himself to God (11 Tim. 3:2-4); that he has an aversion to God which on occasion
becomes active enmity to Him: "Because the carnal mind is enmity against God: for it is not subject to the
law of God, neither indeed can be" (Rom. 8:7); that his every faculty is disordered and corrupted: "Having
the understanding darkened, being alienated from the life of God through the ignorance that is in them,
because of the blindness of their heart" (Eph. 4:18); that he has no thought, feeling, or deed of which God
can fully approve: "For I know that in me (that is in my flesh,) dwelleth no good thing: for to will is
present with me; but how to perform that which is good I find not" (Rom. 7:18); and that he has entered
upon a line of constant progress in depravity from which he can in no wise turn away in his own strength
(Rom. 7:18).11

B. The Result of Man's Depravity.


Sin is willful rebellion against God. Such an attitude cannot but bring forth evil results. It is not
surprising that one can look all about and see the awful results of sin. It is just not possible for men to
continue sinning and receive anything but a harvest of sorrows of the worst kind. Paul states in Galatians
6:8: "For he that soweth to his flesh shall of the flesh reap corruption. . . ." Hosea said, concerning Israel:
'For they have sown the wind, and they shall reap the whirlwind... ." (Hos. 8:7). He also declared: "Ye
have plowed wickedness, ye have reaped iniquity; ye have eaten the fruit of lies. . ." (Hos. 10:13).
One would have to be blind not to see the result of sinful depravity in the minds and bodies of the
human race today. Superstition, barbarity, and the grossest iniquity are seen in every land where the
Gospel has not gone. Where the message of salvation from sin has been preached and rejected, the
condition is almost worse, for here is added the condemnation of light that has been rejected. In our own
land, which is probably the greatest Christian country in the world, every institution of correction, every
prison of punishment, every sanitarium and asylum is bulging with the results of sin. Every policeman in
the nation is a silent tribute to the result of sin. So devastating is the influence of sin upon the human
consciousness that now sin is glamorized until it is being recognized in society as the thing to do. A great
man once said, "Our greatest defense against sin is to be shocked at it"; and when this attitude ceases, sin
has accomplished its direst results. Paul, in that terrible list of gross iniquities in Romans 1:24-32,

109
climaxed the whole dread situation when he said: "Who knowing the judgment of God, that they which
commit such things are worthy of death, not only do the same, but have pleasure in them that do them"
(v.32). When sin loses its sinfulness, and men take pleasure in the grossest of sinful practices, there is
little hope left.

VIII. THE GUILT FROM SIN


A. Sin in Relation to God.
Guilt is just desserts of punishment for self-determined violation of law or failure to conform to that
law. It is the result of sin in relation to God's wrath. There are natural results of sin in the sinner himself,
but wrath brings God into the picture. Every sin is an offense against God and subject to His wrath. (See
Ps. 7:11; Jn. 3:18,36). David's repentance reached its height when he realized that he had not only sinned
against Bathsheba and her husband Uriah, but against God. "Against thee, thee only have I sinned, and
done this evil in thy sight: that thou mightest be justified when thou speakest, and be clear when thou
judgest" (Ps. 51:4). The prodigal realized the same when he cried, ". . . I have sinned against heaven. . ."
(Lk. 15:21). Romans 3:19 states the case well: "Now we know that what things soever the law saith, it
saith to them who are under the law: that every mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become
guilty before God." God's holiness reacts against sin; the reaction is "the wrath of God." "For the wrath of
God is revealed from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men; who hold the truth in
unrighteousness.. ." (Rom. 1:18). According to Strong: "Not only does sin, as unlikeness to the divine
purity, involve pollution, - it also, as antagonism to God's holy will, involves guilt."
While guilt is primarily a reaction to God, there is also a secondary reaction in one's conscience.
Strong reports: "Progress in sin is marked by a diminished sensitiveness of moral insight and feeling. As
the greatest of sins is to be conscious of none,'so guilt may be great, just in proportion to the absence of
consciousness of it (Ps. 19:12; Eph. 4:18,19). There is no evidence, however, that the voice of conscience
can be completely or finally silenced. The time for repentance may pass, but not the time for remorse."13
Dr. H. E. Robins is quoted as saying, "To the convicted sinner a merely external hell would be a cooling
flame, compared with the agony of his remorse ."

B. Degrees of Guilt.
The Scripture makes it clear that there are degrees of guilt, and thus degrees of punishment, because
there are varieties of sin. This principle is recognized by the variety of sacrifices required by different
kinds of sins (Lv. 4-7). The New Testament also suggests degrees of guilt: Lk. 12:47,48; Jn. 19:11; Rom.
2:6; Heb. 2:2,3; 10:28,29. There are:
1. Sins of nature, and sins of personal transgression. Men are sinners because of the principle of
inborn sin - sins of nature. But there is greater guilt when the sinner by nature commits acts of personal
transgression.
2. Sins of ignorance and sins of knowledge. We have already seen that there are sins of ignorance.
But sins against knowledge would be accompanied by greater guilt. The greater the knowledge, the
greater the guilt. "Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works had been
done in Tyre and Sidon, which have been done in you, they had a great while ago repented, sitting in
sackcloth and ashes. But it shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the judgment, than for you" (Lk.
10:13,14). "For as many as have sinned without law shall also
perish without law: and as many as have sinned in the law shall be judged by the law" (Rom. 2:12).
3. Sins of infirmity and sins of presumption. The Psalmist prayed to be kept from presumptuous
sins: "Keep back thy servant also from presumptuous sins; let them not have dominion over me. . ." (Ps.
19:13). In contrast, Peter illustrates a sin of infirmity. He was determined to be true even if all others
denied the Lord; but he found he did not have the strength he thought was his (Mt. 26:35).
Another way of expressing this contrast is to note the difference between sins of impulse and sins of
deliberation. David's sin against Bathsheba was one of impulse; but his sin against Uriah was one of
deliberation, as he carefully planned for the latter's death.

110
IX. THE PENALTY OF SIN
A. The Significance of Penalty.
1. Upon the unsaved. Penalty is the pain or loss which is directly inflicted by the Lawgiver in
vindication of His justice, which has been outraged by the violation of law. There are natural
consequences of sin: "For the wages of sin is death...... (Rom. 6:23); "the soul that sinneth, it shall die"
(Ez. 18:20a); "and as it is appointed unto men once to die, but after this the judgment. . ." (Heb. 9:27).
Physical death is one of the natural results of sin, but there is an "after this" which represents the penalty
to follow. We do not doubt that the natural consequences of sin are part of the penalty. "His own
iniquities shall take the wicked himself, and he shall be holden with the cords of his sin" (Prv. 5:22).
Immorality takes its toll upon the human body. Ungodliness results in mental and spiritual deterioration.
But this is only part of the penalty. In all penalty there is the holy wrath of the Lawgiver. The one may
be suffered now, but the other is to be experienced in the future. "Depravity and guilt, as consequences of
sin, rest upon mankind now, but penalty in its fulness awaits a future day. 1115
2. Difference between chastisement and punishment. It is important to note that there is a vast
difference between chastisement and punishment. Chastisement, which is corrective, is never sent as a
punishment upon the children of the Lord. Christ bore all the punishment for the believer's sin.
Chastisement always proceeds from love. "O Lord, correct me, but with judgment; not in thine anger, lest
thou bring me to nothing" (Jer. 10:24). "For whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth every
son whom he receiveth" (Heb. 12:6).
On the other hand, punishment proceeds from justice: And they shall know that I am the Lord, when I
shall have executed judgments in her, and shall be sanctified in her" (Ez. 28:22); ". . . thus saith the Lord
God; I do not this for your sakes, 0 house of Israel, but for mine holy name's sake, which ye have
profaned among the heathen, whither ye went" (Ez. 36:22); 'and I heard the angel of the waters say, Thou
art righteous, 0 Lord, which art, and wast, and shalt be, because thou hast judged thus" (Rv. 16:5); "for
true and righteous are his judgments: for he hath judged the great whore, which did corrupt the earth with
her fornication, and hath avenged the blood of his servants at her hand" (Rv. 19:2). Thus chastisement is
intended to be corrective; but penalty, or punishment, is not intended to reform the offender. It hardly
needs to be said, that you cannot reform a murderer by executing him

B. The Nature of Penalty.


The one word in Scripture which designates the total penalty of sin is "death." It is threefold: physical,
spiritual and eternal.
1. Physical death. Man was created with a capacity for immortality; he did not have to die if he
obeyed God's law. But God told Adam, ". . . in the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gn.
2:17), referring to the tree of the knowledge of good and evil. Adam did not immediately die; but from
that time on, death was working in his physical frame. Some nine hundred years later death took its final
toll upon his body. It is appointed unto man once to die . . . (Heb. 9:27). Death is not the cessation of the
personality, but the separation of the soul from the body; "including all those temporal evils and
sufferings which result from disturbance of the original harmony between body and soul, and which are
the working of death in us."16
Only through an act of redemption could man again have access to the tree of life. At the time of
resurrection, eternal physical life will be restored to those who receive Christ Jesus as their Savior. At
that time the soul and spirit will be reunited with the body and man will be a complete being again. Thus,
for the Christian, death is no longer the penalty for his sin, since Christ bore that penalty for him. Death
becomes a gateway through which the soul enters into the fullest enjoyment of all of the benefits God has
wrought in Christ. (Eph. 2:7).
2. Spiritual death. By spiritual death, we mean the separation of the soul from God; "including all
that pain of conscience, loss of peace, and sorrow of spirit, which result from disturbance of the normal
relation between the soul and God ." Physical death is by no means the chief part of death as the penalty
for sin. While Adam did not die physically the moment he disobeyed God, he did die spiritually. He lost
that communion with God which is the source of all life. He became "dead in trespasses and sins" (Eph.

111
2:1). First Timothy 5:6 relates to the widow, but perfectly describes Adam's immediate condition also, as
well as that of every unredeemed man: "But she that liveth in pleasure is dead while she liveth." When
Jesus said, "And whosoever liveth and believeth in me shall never die" (Jn. 11:26a); He was speaking of
the restoration of spiritual life through His redeeming grace.
3. Eternal death. Eternal death is the culmination and completion of spiritual death, and speaks of
eternal separation of the soul from God.
This is called "the second death." "But the tearful, and unbelieving, and the abominable, and
murderers, and whoremongers, and sorcerers, and idolaters, and all liars, shall have their part in the lake
which burneth with fire and brimstone: which is the second death" (Rv. 21:8). "Who shall be punished
with everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power. . ." (2 Thes.
1:9). "Then shall he say unto them on the left hand, Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire,
prepared for the devil and his angels . . ." (Mt. 25:41). "Marvel not at this; for the hour is coming, in the
which all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done good, unto
the resurrection of life; and they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation" Jn. 5:28,29).
Chafer discusses the second death:

112
It is true that the "second death," which is eternal, is a separation from God and that eternal estate is
an immeasurable penalty in the light of the fact that the lost soul must know what grace might have
wrought. The penalty is a definite imposition over and above the natural course of events - a retribution
which corresponds to the punishment required. It is as certain as the character of God that whatever is
imposed will be just and right, and it will be so recognized by all. God will not in this, any more than in
any other undertaking, be the author of that which is evil.

113
Chapter Five
THE DOCTRINE OF SALVATION
Soteriology

Introduction
I. Provisions that have been made
A. Death of Christ
B. Resurrection of Jesus Christ
C. Ascension and Exaltation of Jesus Christ
II. The application of the provisions
A. Election
B. Repentance
C. Faith
D. Justification
E. Regeneration
F. Adoption
G. Sanctification
H. Assurance
I. The security of the believer

114
The Doctrine of Salvation
Soteriology
INTRODUCTION
The word "Soteriology" is derived from two Greek words, soteria and logos. The former means
"salvation," and the latter "word, discourse, or doctrine." Having dealt with the doctrine of Theology, wherein
the Holiness of God was emphasized, and having seen the failure and sin of Mankind in the study of
Anthropology and Hamartiology, one is brought to realize the utter need for a plan of salvation sufficient to
bridge the vast gap between these two infinite extremes - Man's sinfulness and God's Holiness. Fortunately
for all concerned, God foreknew all that was to take place in Man's Fall, and He planned just such a salvation
as was needed before the foundation of the earth. Before the first sin was committed in the universe, before
the sad plight brought on by rebellious man, who had been made in the image of God, the Lord planned and
provided the way of escape from the snares and condemnation of sin. Our God was not caught unawares. He
foreknew the Fall and He foreordained the plan of rescue.
God's plan of salvation is so simple that the least among the sons of men can grasp enough of it to
experience its transforming power. At the same time, it is so profound that no inadequacy has ever been
discovered in it. In fact, those who know it best are continuously amazed that one, and only one, plan of
salvation is needed to meet the vast array of spiritual needs among the almost limitless varieties of the needs
of men in every race, culture and condition among the nations of this world.
The heart of God's plan of salvation centers around the office and function of a Mediator - One who could
go between an offended God and a helpless sinful creature, man. Job felt the need for just such a One as he
found himself (at least he thought) estranged from God. "He is not a man like me that I might answer him,
that we might confront each other in court. If only there were someone to arbitrate between us, to lay his
hand upon us both" (Jb. 9:32,33 NIV). This is the position which Christ, in His substitutionary Sacrifice came
to fill. "For there is one God, and one mediator between God and men, the man Christ Jesus" (1 Tm. 2:5).
This is the reason for the Incarnation of the Second Person of the
Godhead; to be a mediator for God He must be God, to represent Mankind He must be a man. The
penalty for the sins of Mankind, which must be done away if man is to have fellowship with God, was death.
But because God cannot die - Spirit cannot die - He must have a body. And so "the Word was made flesh,
and dwelt among us" (Jn. 1:14). Also note the following extended explanation:
Forasmuch then as the children are partakers of flesh and blood, he also himself likewise took part of the
same: that through death he might destroy him that had the power of death, that is, the devil; and deliver them
who through fear of death were all their lifetime subject to bondage. For verily he took not on him the nature
of angels; but he took on him the seed of Abraham. Therefore in all things it behooved him to be made like
unto his brethren, that he might be a merciful and faithful high priest in things pertaining to God, to make
reconciliation for the sins of the people (Heb. 2:14-17).
All this has been made possible through the death, burial and resurrection of Jesus Christ.
In the study of the Doctrine of Salvation there shall be two headings: (1) The Provisions Which Have
Been Made: including the death, burial, resurrection, ascension and exaltation of Jesus Christ and (2) The
Application of Those Provisions: including repentance, faith, justification, regeneration, adoption,
sanctification, assurance, and security.

I. PROVISIONS THAT HAVE BEEN MADE

A. The Death of Christ.


In studying the life of Christ, we are struck by the many wonderful works performed by Him. The
feeding of the multitudes, making water into wine, healing the sick, making the lame to walk, the dumb to

115
speak, and the blind to see were all evidences which pointed to the fact that He was the Son of God. By these
mighty works, He gave ample evidence that He was in truth all that He claimed to be. However, His work
was not finished by the mighty deeds done in His life, the great truths He preached, and in being a blessing
and a benediction to the people of His day. His primary purpose in coming to this earth was to bring salvation
to the souls of men. When the angel of God spoke to Joseph about the child to be born of Mary, he said,
"And she shall bring forth a son, and thou shalt call his name Jesus for he shall save his people from their sins'
(Mt. 1:21). The present thought shall then be the method by which Jesus would save His people from their
sins. This leads to the study of His Death.

1. The importance of the Death of Christ.


Myer Pearlman says: "The outstanding event and central doctrine of the New Testament may be summed
up in the words, 'Christ died (the event) for our sins (the doctrine) I Cor. 15:3."I Christianity is unlike all other
religions in the place it assigns to the death of its Founder. All other religions base their claim to greatness on
the life and teaching of those who founded them, while the Gospel of Jesus Christ centers around the Person
of Jesus Christ, including especially His Death at Calvary. It has often been said that there is good in every
religion. It may be true that there is some ethical value in many other teachings, but only in Christianity do
we have redemption from sin, and this accomplished through the substitutionary Death of the Son of God
Himself.

a) The importance given to it in the Scriptures.


(1) In the Old Testament -
The Death of Christ is foreseen throughout the Old Testament in many types and prophecies. Only a few
of the most outstanding of these can be mentioned here.
(a) Types: The Coats of Skins - 'Unto Adam also and to his wife did the Lord God make coats of skins,
and clothed them" (Gn. 3:21).
Abel's Offering - "And Abel, he also brought of the firstlings of his flock and of the fat thereof. And the
Lord had respect unto Abel and to his offering" (Gn. 4:4).
The Offering of Isaac (Gn. 22)
The Passover Lamb (Ex. 12)
The Levitical Sacrificial System (Lv. 1-7)
The Brazen Serpent (Nm. 21; Jn. 3:14)
The Slain Lamb -All we like sheep have gone astray; we have turned every one to his own way; and the Lord
hath laid on him the iniquity of us all. He was oppressed, and he was afflicted, yet he opened not his mouth:
he is brought as a lamb to the slaughter, and as sheep before his shearers is dumb, so he opened not his mouth
(Is. 53:6,7).
(b) Prophecies: The Seed of the Woman -"And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and
between thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel" (Gn. 3:15). This has
been called the Protevangelium - "The First Gospel."
The Crucifixion Scene (Ps. 22)
The Vicarious Suffering (Is. 53)
The Cut-off Messiah - "And after threescore and two weeks shall Messiah be cut off, but not for himself"
(Dn. 9:26).
The Smitten Shepherd - And one shall say unto him, What are these wounds in thine hands? Then he shall
answer, Those with which I was wounded in the house of my friends. Awake, O sword, against my shepherd,
and against the man that is my fellow, saith the Lord of hosts: smite the shepherd, and the sheep shall be
scattered: and I will turn mine hand upon the little ones (Zec. 13:6,7).

116
In His conversation with the two disciples, on the way to Emmaus on the evening of His Resurrection,
Jesus stated that Moses, all the prophets, indeed all the Scriptures, spoke of His Death. "Ought not Christ to
have suffered these things, and to enter into his glory? And beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he
expounded unto them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself" (Lk. 24:26, 27). It is clear, from I
Peter 1:10,11, that the sufferings of Christ were the one great subject into which the Old Testament prophets
inquired and searched diligently: "Of which salvation the prophets have inquired and searched diligently, who
prophesied of the grace that should come unto you; searching what, or what manner of time the Spirit of
Christ which was in them did signify, when it testified beforehand the sufferings of Christ, and the glory that
should follow." When Moses and Elijah appeared with Christ on the Mount of Transfiguration the subject of
which they spoke was the death of the Savior. "And, behold, there talked with him two men, which were
Moses and Elias: who appeared in glory, and spake of his decease which he should accomplish at Jerusalem"
(Lk. 9:30,31).

(2) In the New Testament


Torrey says that the Death of Jesus Christ is mentioned directly more than one hundred and seventy-five
(175) times in the New Testament.2 Since there are 7,957 verses in the New Testament, this would mean
that one out of every forty-five (45) verses refers to this subject. Thiessen states: "The last three days of our
Lord's earthly life occupy about one-fifth of the narratives in the four Gospels.

b) Its relation to the Incarnation.


This subject has been dealt with under that section of Theology which deals with Jesus Christ. But a few
pertinent scriptures will be repeated here to emphasize the importance of His Death. Jesus partook of flesh
and blood in order that He might die. "Forasmuch then as the children are partakers of flesh and blood, he
also himself likewise took part of the same: that through death he might destroy him that had the power of
death, that is, the devil" (Heb. 2:14). "He was manifested to take away our sins" U Jn. 3:5). Christ came into
this world for the express purpose of giving Himself a ransom for our sins. "Even as the Son of Man came
not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many" (Mt. 20:28). "But now once
in the end of the world hath he appeared to put away sin by the sacrifice of himself" (Heb. 9:26). As Theissen
well says: 'His death was not an afterthought or an accident, but the accomplishment of a divine purpose in
connection with the incarnation. The incarnation is not an end in itself, it is but a means to an end, and that
end is the redemption of the lost through the Lord's death on the cross.114

c) It is one of the two fundamental truths of the Gospel.


Notice how Paul emphasizes the death and burial, and the resurrection of Christ as constituting the
Gospel. "Moreover, brethren, I declare unto you the gospel ... how that Christ died for our sins according to
the scriptures; and that he was buried, and that he rose again the third day according to the scriptures" (1 Cor.
15:1-4). The Gospel is the "good news" of salvation, the forgiveness of sins through the death, burial and
resurrection of Jesus Christ.

d) Its necessity for Man's salvation.


Many scriptures point out the absolute necessity of Christ's Death in order that God could pardon sin and
grant Man His salvation. Note how often the word "must" occurs in the following passages:

And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up (Jn. 3:14).
From that time forth began Jesus to show unto his disciples, how that he must go unto Jerusalem, and
suffer many things of the elders and chief priests, and be killed, and be raised again the third day (Mt. 16:21).

117
But first must he suffer many things, and be rejected of this generation (Lk. 17:25).

Hear the testimony of the angels at the empty tomb: Saying, The Son of man must be delivered into the
hands of sinful men, and be crucified, and the third day rise again (Lk. 24:7).
Opening and alleging, that Christ must needs have suffered, and risen again from the dead (Acts 17:3).
The only basis on which a Holy God could forgive sin was by His Son bearing the penalty of the sinner's
guilt. He cannot forgive merely on the grounds of the sinner's repentance. It can only be because the penalty
has been fully paid. God does not, as some preach, forgive sinners because He loves them. His Love caused
Him to give His only begotten Son to be a ransom for sin, thus the sinner can be forgiven.
George Herbert Morrison has beautifully written:

Let me say that the cross is not needed and included because of God's unwillingness to pardon. Nowhere
in the New Testament is the cross conceived as turning an unwilling God into a willing one, as a compulsion
on a reluctant God. It is not the cause of love, it is its consequence; it is the spring of love, it is its outflow,
and that is what is so often forgotten. We read in the New Testament of Christ being offered as a propitiation
for our sins, and our thoughts go back to pagan faiths, where men tried to appease their angry gods; but the
tremendous difference is that in all these faiths man had to provide the propitiation; in the Christian faith God
provides it. He does not ask men for an atoning sacrifice; He gives the atoning sacrifice, and He gives it
because He loves the world and willeth not that any man should perish ... It is because He is so passionately
eager to forgive that God sent His Son to die.
Why then was the cross needed if God eternally is love? ... to me the old answer is the only answer - God
is more than a private Person; God is the moral Ruler of the universe. A father forgives his child freely if the
child is penitent; but if the father is a judge he cannot forgive a criminal like that, even though the criminal is
his child; it is his duty to uphold and administer the law in the highest interests of the state, and if he pardoned
the criminal on the ground that he was penitent, the country would lapse to lawlessness and chaos.
Or again, take it that the father is a schoolmaster, and the son a pupil in the school; can he act as a
schoolmaster as he can act as a father, forgiving because the child expresses sorrow? Would not that
disintegrate and destroy discipline and steadily lower the morale of the whole school and inevitably lead to
license?
These are imperfect illustrations, but they suggest the problem of God: how to forgive, as His heart yearns
to do, and at the same time to be the "judge of all the earth"; how to pardon, on the slightest sign of penitence,
and yet maintain that law that lives in Him, so that men may live in the sure and splendid confidence "that
justice and judgment are the habitation of (His) throne" (Psa. 89'14).
There was "a problem worthy of God," as Martin Luther and Thomas Chalmers used to say: how to
cancel sin, and treat it as if it were not, and yet maintain and vindicate His righteousness. And the New
Testament with unvarying iteration tells us that God solved that problem by giving His only begotten Son to
die for sin ... Any divine pardon that belittled law would make this world an intolerable dwelling place; but
when God gave His Son to die for sin, "righteousness and peace have kissed each other" (Psa. 85:10).

2. Misunderstandings concerning the Death of Christ.


In order to more fully appreciate the true scriptural teaching concerning the Death of Christ it might be
well to briefly examine some of the false theories that have been advanced over the years.

a) The Accident Theory.


This view sees Christ simply as a man and thus subject to death as any other man. He died at the hands of

118
a mob who did not agree with His teachings. His death was completely unforseen and had no significance
whatever for anyone else. This view is held by extreme rationalists who disregard the plain teachings of
Scripture.
This radical idea is easily refuted by the fact that the Death of Christ was foreseen and foretold throughout
the Old Testament as we have seen (Ps. 22, Is. 53, Zec. 11). Furthermore, Jesus repeatedly spoke of His
future death and the manner of it: Mt. 16:21; Mk. 9:30-32; Mt. 20:17-19; Lk. 22:19,20. John 10:17,18 clearly
contradicts this false theory: "Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I might take
it again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have
power to take it again. This commandment have I received of my Father."
b) The Martyr Theory.
This theory holds that the Death of Christ was no more than that of a noble martyr, such as Huss or Polycarp.
Its only value for Mankind is in the example which Jesus set in being true to what He believed and taught,
even to being willing to die for it. This has sometimes been called the "Example Theory." Man can be saved
by repentance and reformation alone.
This idea completely ignores the scriptural teaching that Christ's Death was a propitiation of God's wrath
and an atonement for Man's sin.
Being justified freely by his grace through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus: whom God set forth to
be a propitiation through faith in his blood, to declare his righteousness for the remission of sins that are past,
through the forbearance of God; to declare, I say, at this time his righteousness: that he might be just, and the
justifier of him which believeth in Jesus (Rom. 3:24-26).
This theory fails to account for Christ's unmartyr-like attitude in asking that the cup pass from Him. (Mt.
26:42)

c) The Moral Influence, or Love of God Theory.


This holds that Christ's suffering and death were merely the natural results of His becoming flesh and
suffering with, not for, His creatures. In this theory, Thiessen says: "The sufferings and death of Christ are
similar to those of the missionary who enters a leper colony for life, in order to save the lepers.116 He further
points out that the theory teaches that "the love of God manifested in the incarnation, the sufferings and death
of Christ, are to soften human hearts and lead them to repentance.117 Here, then, there is no thought of the
wrath of God to be propitiated, and Christ dying as the Substitute for our sins.
It is true that 'God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Son" Un. 3:16), and that "God
commendeth his love toward us, in that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us" (Rom. 5:8). These
passages emphasize the Love of God, but they also make it clear what the Love of God did. The Love of God
did not save sinners; it caused God to be willing to give His Son to die for us and thus satisfy the just demands
of His own Holiness. Again quoting Thiessen: "On this theory it is difficult to explain how Old Testament
believers were saved, since they did not have this object-lesson of the love of God."
d) The Governmental Theory.
The principal thought behind this theory is that God made an example of Christ, in His sufferings, in
order to exhibit to Man His displeasure with sin. God's government of the world necessitated that He show
His wrath against sin. Only thus could He maintain respect for His law. As Mankind realizes God's attitude
toward sin, shown in the sufferings of Christ, he will be moved to repentance, which alone is necessary for
salvation. The main objection which this teaching raises is, why then was the Incarnation necessary.? And
why must the sufferer be an innocent person? Why could not God's wrath be manifest against any sinner,
rather than His only begotten Son?

3. The true meaning of the Death of Christ.


In order to grasp the full extent of what was accomplished through the Death of Jesus Christ, a number of

119
different words must be used and their meaning fully understood. Man's sin was so great, God's Holiness so
pure, that the gulf between them which must be spanned required an amazing accomplishment on the part of
our Lord. Through His Death, He fully met every need of the sinner relative to sin, enabling him to enjoy
eternal fellowship with God. At the same time, Christ fully met every requirement necessary for a Righteous
and Just God to freely forgive sin and receive man back into His fellowship. At no time throughout eternity
will anyone, man, devil or angel, be able to challenge the perfect and full provision of God's great Salvation.
We shall consider the Death of Christ as it is revealed in five different words.
a) It is vicarious - a substitution.
The word vicarious comes from "vicar" which means "a substitute, one who takes the place of another
and acts in his stead." "All we like sheep have gone astray; we have turned every one to his own way; and the
Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all" (Is. 53:6). "Even as the Son of man came not to be ministered
unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many" (Mt. 20:28). "For he hath made him to be sin for
us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him" (2 Cor. 5:21). "Who his own
self bare our sins in his own body on the tree, that we, being dead to sins, should live unto righteousness" (1
Pt. 2:24). "For Christ also hath once suffered for sins, the just for the unjust, that he might bring us to God" (1
Pt. 3:18).
From these and many other scriptures (See 1 Cor. 15:3; Rom. 5:8; Jn. 10:11; Gal. 2:20) it is clear that
Christ was our Substitute in bearing our sins on the Cross. It is obvious that He did not bear His own sins.
"Who did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth" (1 Pt. 2:22). "Which of you convinceth me of sin?"
Un. 8:46). When He died, He died for the sins of others.
It has been objected that it is immoral for God to punish an innocent person for one who is guilty, and
therefore the idea of substitution is unbearable. Let it be said, first, that God knows nothing of punishing the
innocent for the guilty. Jesus so took upon Himself our sin that He assumed our guilt. Secondly, it is not
unlawful for a judge to himself pay the penalty he has imposed. Christ is very God, and thus had the right to
pay the penalty for our sin. Thirdly, it could only be considered immoral if Jesus were compelled to be our
sacrifice, but if He voluntarily took that position no injustice was done. This He did. "Therefore doth my
Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I might take it again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it
down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again" (Jn. 10:17,18). Let it be fully
realized that we are not saved by the murder of a man, but by One Who willingly offered Himself for us.

b) It is an atonement.
The word "atonement" is used in a general and a particular manner. As it is popularly used, it refers to the
entire provision of salvation which God made for sinners through the Sacrifice of our Lord Jesus Christ. This
is the meaning as it is usually used. However, the word has a specific meaning in the Scripture. It literally
means "a covering." It is an Old Testament word. The only time it occurs in the New Testament is in the
Authorized Version of Romans 5:11: "And not only so, but we also joy in God through our Lord Jesus Christ,
by whom we have now received the atonement." This is universally recognized as a poor translation. The
word katallage should be "reconciliation." as all other translations render it.
In the Old Testament, atonement must be made for individual trespasses. "If a soul sin, and commit a
trespass against the Lord ... he shall bring his trespass offering unto the Lord ... and the priest shall make an
atonement for him before the Lord: and it shall be forgiven him for any thing of all that he hath done in
trespassing therein" (Lv. 6:2-7). It was also possible to make national atonement for national sins:
And if the whole congregation of Israel sin ... and are guilty ... then the congregation shall offer a
young bullock for the sin, and bring him before the tabernacle of the congregation. And the elders of the
congregation shall lay their hands upon the head of the bullock before the Lord; and the bullock shall be
killed before the Lord ... and the priest shall make an atonement for them, and it shall be forgiven them"
(Lv. 4:13-20).
In the laying on of the hands of the elders, the sins of Israel were transferred to the sacrificial animal and

120
he was slain as their substitute. The atonement provided a covering of the guilt of the real criminal, and made
it invisible to the eye of a Holy God. This thought is suggested in such scriptures as the following: 'Hide thy
face from my sins, and blot out mine iniquities" (Ps. 51:9); "Thou hast cast all my sins behind thy back' (Is.
38:17); "Thou wilt cast all their sins into the depths of the sea" (Mi. 7:19). As has been said, this word
"atonement" is an Old Testament word, for in Christ we have more than a covering for our sins. They are
forgiven - they are completely removed. The blood of the sacrificial animals, brought by the worshiper, could
only suffice to cover Man's sins until Christ's precious blood should be shed to remove them. "For it is not
possible that the blood of bulls and of goats should take away sin. Wherefore when he cometh into the world,
he saith, Sacrifice and offering thou wouldest not, but a body hast thou prepared me ... by the which will we
are sanctified through the offering of the body of Jesus Christ once for all" (Heb. 10:4-10).

c) It is a propitiation.
Whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation through faith in his blood, to declare his righteousness for
the remission of sins that are passed, through the forbearance of God (Rom. 3:25).
For he is the propitiation for our sins: and not for our's only, but also for the sins of the whole world (I Jn.
2:2).
Therefore, he had to be made like his brethren in all things, that he might become a merciful and faithful
high priest in all things pertaining to God, to make propitiation for the sins of the people (Heb. 2:17, NASB).
The word "propitiation" properly signifies the turning away of wrath by a sacrifice. Thus it signifies
appeasement. "The idea of the wrath of God is stubbornly rooted in the Old Testament, where it is referred to
585 times."9 It is also mentioned a number of times in the New Testament: "He that believeth not the Son of
God shall not see life, but the wrath of God abideth on him" Un. 3:36). "For the wrath of God is revealed
from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men" (Rom. 1:18). "Let no man deceive you with
vain words: for because of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience" (Eph.
5:6). (See also Rom. 2:5, 5:9; 1 Thes. 1:10; Heb. 3:11; Rv. 19:15.)
In the passages quoted above it will be seen that Paul views Christ's Death as the means of removing
God's wrath (Rom. 5:9). The amazing paradox is that God Himself provided the means of removing His own
wrath. We also observe: that it is the Father's love that "sent his Son to be the propitiation for our sins" (1 Jn.
4:10); that the reason Christ became "a merciful and faithful high priest" was "to make propitiation for the
sins of the people" (Heb. 2:17); and that His propitiation is adequate for all (1 Jn. 2:2). According to Leon
Morris: "The consistent Bible view is that the sin of man has incurred the wrath of God. That wrath is averted
only by Christ's atoning offering. From this standpoint his saving work is properly called propitiation."

d) It is a reconciliation.
The need of reconciliation is apparent because of the enmity between God and Man brought about by
man's sin. Through the Sacrifice of Jesus Christ, this condition of enmity can be changed into one of peace
and fellowship. This is one of the greatest blessings of personal salvation. Again, this new relationship
magnifies the Grace of God, for no man can reconcile himself to God. God Himself wrought this
reconciliation for us through Christ. We were reconciled to God through the Death of His Son. "For if, when
we were reconciled to God by the death of His Son, much more, being reconciled, we shall be saved by his
life' (Rom. 5:10). "And you, that were sometime alienated and enemies in your mind by wicked works, yet
now hath he reconciled" (Col. 1:21). Colossians 1:20 tells us that this was accomplished through the blood of
his Cross: "And, having made peace through the blood of his cross, by him to reconcile all things unto
himself."
The Scripture applies this word of reconciliation to both God and Man: "All things are of God, who hath
reconciled us to himself by Jesus Christ, and hath given to us the ministry of reconciliation; Now then we are
ambassadors for Christ, as though God did beseech you by us: we pray you in Christ's stead, be ye reconciled
to God" (2 Cor. 5:18,20). Theissen explains:

121
The thought is something like this: At first God and man stood face to face with each other. In sinning,
Adam turned his back upon God. Then God turned his back upon Adam. Christ's death has satisfied the
demands of God and now God has again turned His face toward man. It remains for man to turn round about
and face God. Since God has been reconciled by the death of his Son, man is now entreated to be reconciled
to God."

e) It is a ransom or redemption.
The word "redemption" signifies a releasing or liberation from captivity, slavery or death by the payment
of a price, called a ransom. Thus the word has a double significance: it means the payment of a price, as well
as the deliverance of the captive. The Death of Christ on the Cross is seen in Scripture as the price which
Jesus paid for the deliverance of the sinner. "Even as the Son of man came not to be ministered unto, but to
minister, and to give his life a ransom for many" (Mt. 20:28). The deliverance which Jesus obtained is called
Redemption. "Neither by the blood of goats and calves, but by his own blood he entered in once into the holy
place, having obtained eternal redemption for us" (Heb. 9:12).

According to the New Testament we have redemption from the following:


(1) From the penalty of the Law - Paul calls this the "curse of the law." "Christ hath redeemed us from
the curse of the law, being made a curse for us: for it is written, Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree"
(Gal. 3:13).
(2) From the Law itself - "Wherefore, my brethren, ye also are become dead to the law by the body of
Christ" (Rom. 7:4). We are now under grace. "For sin shall not have dominion over you: for ye are not under
law, but under grace" (Rom. 6:14).
(3) From sin as a power in one's life - "Knowing this, that our old man is crucified with him, that the
body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin" (Rom. 6:6). "How shall we that are
dead to sin, live any longer therein?" (Rom. 6:2). (See also Ti. 2:14; 1 Pt. 1:18,19; Rom. 6:12-14.)
(4) From Satan - "And that they may recover themselves out of the snare of the devil, who are taken
captive by him at his will" (2 Tim. 2:26). "Forasmuch then as the children are partakers of flesh and blood, he
also himself took part of the same: that through death he might destroy him that had the power of death, that
is the devil: and deliver them who through fear of death were all their lifetimes subject to bondage" (Heb.
2:14,15).
(5) From all evil, including our present mortal body - "Who gave himself for our sins, that he might
deliver us from this present evil world, according to the will of God and our Father" (Gal. 1:4). "Which is the
earnest of our inheritance until the redemption of the purchased possession, unto the praise of his glory" (Eph.
1:14). "And not only they, but ourselves also .... waiting for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of our body"
(Rom. 8:23). This final consummation of our redemption will be realized at our Lord's Second Coming.
"And when these things begin to come to pass, then look up, and lift up your heads; for your redemption
draweth nigh" (Lk. 21:28).
To summarize the benefits of Christ's Death: When we speak of it as vicarious we think of substitution;
when we speak of it as an atonement we think of covering; as a propitiation we think of appeasement; as a
reconciliation we think of enmity; and as a ransom we think of redemption.

4. For whom did Christ die?


This is a very vital question because of many theories which are held within the Christian Church. The
Calvinistic theory of a "limited atonement" teaches that Christ died only for the elect whom He had
previously chosen. Let us see what the Bible says.
a) For the Church.
There is no doubt that Christ died for those believers who are the members of His Body, the Church.

122
Husbands, love your wives, even as Christ also loved the church, and gave himself for it; that he might
sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the word, that he might present it to himself a glorious
church, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing; but that it should be holy and without blemish (Eph.
5:2527).
As the Father knoweth me, even so know I the Father: and I lay down my life for the sheep Jn. 10:15).
I pray for them: I pray not for the world, but for them which thou hast given me; for they are thine ... Holy
Father, keep through thine own name those whom thou hast given me, that they may be one, as we are (Jn.
17:9-11).
b) For the entire world.
There is an even larger volume of scripture to show that Christ died for the whole world - for each
individual. "All we like sheep have gone astray; we have turned every one to his own way; and the Lord hath
laid on him the iniquity of us all" (Is. 53:6). "Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the
world" Un. 1:29). "Who gave himself a ransom for all" (1 Tm. 2:6). "And he is the propitiation for our sins:
and not for ours only, but also for the sins of the whole world" (I Jn. 2:2). Perhaps the strongest verse against
the doctrine of a limited atonement is 2 Peter 2:1: 'But there were false prophets also among the people, even
as there are false teachers among you, who privily shall bring in damnable heresies, even denying the Lord
that bought them and bring upon themselves swift destruction." Here it is positively said that Christ bought
these who are definitely false prophets who shall be destroyed. Note also the clear implication, in the
following two verses, that Christ died for some even though they will be lost: "But if thy brother be grieved
with thy meat, now walkest thou not charitably. Destroy not him with thy meat, for whom Christ died" (Rom.
14:15). 'And through thy knowledge shall the weak brother perish, for whom Christ died?" (1 Cor. 8:11).
Not a single individual man or woman or child is excluded from the blessings offered in the Atonement. "But
we see Jesus, who was made a little lower than the angels for the suffering of death, crowned with glory and
honor; that he by the grace of God should taste death for every man" (Heb. 2:9).
The question, quite naturally, comes to mind, if Christ died for all, why then are not all saved? The
answer lies in the simple, but plain, fact that each one must experience a believing faith that Christ died for
him before he can participate in the benefits of His Death for himself. In John 8:24 Jesus said, "If ye believe
not on me ye shall die in your sins." Lewis Sperry Chafer says: "The condition indicated by Christ on which
they (the unbelievers) may avoid dying in their sins is not based on His not dying for them, but rather their
believing on him ... The value of Christ's death, as marvelous and complete as it is, is not applied to the
unregenerate until they believe." This matter of the necessity of a personal application, by faith, of the Saving
Grace of Jesus Christ, is illustrated by the details of the Passover night. The Israelite family was to kill a lamb
and sprinkle the blood upon the door posts and the lintel of their homes and then they were to abide in the
house. God said, "And the blood shall be to you for a token upon the houses where you are: and when I see
the blood, I will pass over you, and the plague shall not be upon you to destroy you, when I smite the land of
Egypt" (Ex. 12:13). God was not going to look out in the back yard where the lamb was slain. He was going
to look upon the door posts of each individual home. When He saw the blood there, the death angel passed
by. There must be a personal application, by faith, of the precious blood that was shed for us on Calvary.
William Evans sums it up admirably when he says:
The atonement is sufficient for all; it is efficient for those who believe in Christ. The atonement
itself, so far as it lays the basis for the redemptive dealing of God with men is unlimited; the application
of the atonement is limited to those who actually believe in Christ. He is the Savior of all men
potentially; of believers alone effectually. "For therefore we both labor and suffer reproach, because we
trust in the living God, who is the Savior of all men, specially of those that believe" (I Tim. 4:10). 13

c) What About Infants?


Does the Grace of God cover infants and little children until they come to the age of accountability, or
moral

123
responsibility? If Jesus did indeed die for all, then it would seem that these little ones would be included in
His Atonement. If Christ died for all men then the sins of all are potentially covered because of the shedding
of His precious blood. But there is a special sin which Jesus said the Holy Spirit would condemn; it is the sin
of unbelief. "And when he is come, he will reprove [convict] the world of sin ... of sin because they believe
not on me" (Jn. 16:8,9). The Holy Spirit gives a whole new dimension to sin. Unbelief is a sin of which
conscience will never convict a man. In not believing on Jesus Christ, and thus rejecting His Salvation, man
fails to take advantage of the forgiveness which He provided by His Death. Thus the whole guilt of man's sin
is heaped back upon himself. This sin is not possible for a little one before he attains the age of
accountability; thus, the Saving Grace of Jesus Christ still avails for him. It is impossible to state when a
child will reach this point of accountability. With some it is as early as three or four years; with others it may
be five or six years of age.

B. The Resurrection of Jesus Christ.


It seems almost incredible that a fair-sized branch of the Christian Church sees little or no significance to
the Resurrection of Jesus Christ, unless it be as it affects Him personally. As we pursue this study we will see
how essential and how glorious is the fact of our Lord's Resurrection.

1. The importance of the Resurrection of Christ.


a) It is one of the two primary doctrines of the Gospel.
"Moreover, brethren, I declare unto you the gospel ... how that Christ died for our sins according to the
scriptures; and that he was buried, and that he rose again on the third day according to the scriptures" (1 Cor.
15:1-4). It is impossible and useless to try to determine which is the more important: His Death or His
Resurrection, for the one without the other could never have been sufficient for the salvation of men. If Christ
had remained in the grave, His Death would have been no more than that of any martyr for the Christian faith.
He could have given us nothing better than a philosophy. Yet, without the vicarious sacrifice of His Death,
His Resurrection would have presented no saving power.
It was His Resurrection which demonstrated that He was the Son of God. "Concerning his Son Jesus
Christ our Lord, which was made of the seed of David according to the flesh; and declared to be the Son of
God with power, according to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection from the dead" (Rom. 1:34). His
Resurrection proves that His Death was of sufficient value to God to cover all our sins, for His Sacrifice was
the sacrifice of the Son of God.

b) It was the foundation stone on which the Church was built.


The Apostles gave it the place of greatest importance. In the famous passage from 1 Corinthians chapter
fifteen, verses 13-19, is found "one of the most potent negative suppositions that can be made in connection
with the Christian faith.1114 Paul lists five negative facts which, if they were true, would divest the Gospel of
all its power and blessing:
(1) Our preaching is vain - "If Christ be not risen, then is our preaching vain" (v.14). Our Gospel is
robbed of its note of joy and is changed into a funeral dirge. It would become a gospel of death, a mere
biography of a man that lived an extraordinary life, but died an ordinary, though ignominious, death - "even
the death of the cross." Our Gospel would be emptied of its power. Unless Jesus gained a victory at Calvary,
as evidenced by His Resurrection, over death, hell, and the grave, then we are still victims. It took the victory
of the open tomb and the power of the Risen Lord to give effectuality to the Gospel.
(2) Faith is vain - 'Your faith is also vain" (v.14). All that you have accepted by faith as a free gift from
God, through Jesus Christ - divine son ship, eternal life, justification, sanctification, glorification, and a home
in Heaven, you did not receive at all. If Christ be not risen these are not yours. Paul repeats the same in verse
seventeen. Faith is always impotent unless its object gives it power.

124
(3) The Apostles are false witnesses - "Yea, and we are found false witnesses of God; because we have
testified of God that he raised up Christ: whom he raised not up, if so be that the dead rise not" (v.15). An
essential qualification of apostleship was that he be a witness of Christ's Resurrection. "Wherefore of these
men which have companioned with us all the time that the Lord Jesus went in and out among us, beginning
from the baptism of John, unto that same day he was taken up from us, must one be ordained to be a witness
with us of his resurrection" (Acts 1:21,22). In selecting a successor to Judas, one of the prerequisites was that
he be a witness of Christ's Resurrection. These men were false witnesses if Christ is not risen. The apostles
of truth are found to be the apostles of falsehood. If Christ be not risen, the whole fabric of scriptural
authenticity breaks down and leaves us without a shred of scriptural authority.
(4) Believers are yet in their sins - "Ye are yet in your sins" (v.17). 'For there is no other name under
heaven given among men, whereby we must be saved" (Acts 4:12). "Thou shalt call his name JESUS: for he
shall save his people from their sins" (Mt. 1:21). But, if Christ is not risen, He possesses no more saving
efficacy than that of any other great character from history. It took the Resurrection of Jesus Christ to show
the justifying value of His Death.
(5) Those who have died are perished - "Then they also which are fallen asleep in Christ are perished.
If in this life only we have hope in Christ, we are of all men most miserable" (vv.18,19). It is better to sorrow
as those who have no hope than to sorrow as those who have a false hope.
The hope that sustained the martyrs in their sacrifice and that sustained multitudes since who have died in
the faith was a false hope, "if Christ be not risen." But away with the thought. Paul triumphantly declares:
"But now is Christ risen from the dead, and become the firstfruits of them that slept" (1 Cor. 15:20).15
One cannot but be impressed, as he reads the early chapters of the book of Acts, with the prominent place
given by the Apostles to the truth of the Resurrection of Jesus Christ. The very first sermon preached after the
outpouring of the Holy Spirit on the Day of Pentecost is almost entirely on the theme of the Resurrection of
Jesus (Acts 2:22-36). The second great recorded sermon, preached by Peter from Solomon's porch of the
Temple, again mentions this great fact: "And killed the Prince of Life, whom God raised from the dead;
whereof we are witnesses" (Acts 3:15). Speaking later before the Sanhedrin, Peter does not let the
opportunity pass without bearing witness that Jesus lives again. "Be it known unto you all, and to all the
people of Israel, that by the name of Jesus Christ of Nazareth, whom ye crucified, whom God raised from the
dead, even by him doth this man stand here before you whole" (Acts 4:10). There was hardly ever a message
preached, either to one person or to a multitude, which did not mention Christ's Resurrection. Acts 4:33
summarizes the entire early ministry of the Apostles: "With great power gave the apostles witness of the
resurrection of the Lord Jesus: and great grace was upon them all." See the following as examples of this in
the Apostles' and Paul's ministry: Acts 2:24,32; 3:15,26; 4:10; 10:40; 13:30-37; 17:31; Rom. 4:24,25; 6:4,9;
7:4; 8:11; 10:9; 1 Cor. 6:14; 2 Cor. 4:14; Gal. 11; Eph. 1:20; Col. 2:12; 1 Thes. 1:10; 2 Tm. 2:8; 1 Pt. 1:21.

2. The nature and manner of Christ's Resurrection.


a) His Resurrection was by the work of the entire Trinity.
(1) By God the Father - "And what is the exceeding greatness of his power to usward who believe,
according to the working of his mighty power, which he wrought in Christ, when he raised him from the
dead" (Eph. 1:19,20). "Whom God raised up, having loosed the pains of death: because it was not possible
that he should be holden of it" (Acts 2:24). "Him God raised up the third day, and shewed him openly" (Acts
10:40). "But God raised him from the dead" (Acts 13:30). (See Rom. 10:9; Col. 2:12; Rom 6:4.)
(2) By His Own Power-"Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I might
take it again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have
power to take it again" Un. 10: 17,18). When He speaks of His own body under the image of a temple, He
represents its restoration as His own work: "Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up" Jn.
2:19). This does not mean that Jesus acted separately from the Father, but it does show that in this great
miracle He was not passive. Think of the fact of a dead man raising Himself!

125
(3) By the Power of the Holy Spirit - "For Christ also hath once suffered for sins, the just for the unjust,
that he might bring us to God, being put to death in the flesh, but quickened by the Spirit" (1 Pt. 3:18). "But if
the Spirit of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up Christ from the dead shall
also quicken your mortal bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you" (Rom. 8:11).
b) It was an actual Resurrection.
Jesus actually died. The swoon theory, that He merely swooned upon the cross, and pitying hands took
Him down thinking that He had died, the cool air of the tomb in which He was laid revived Him, so that He
came forth as though He had really risen from the dead, is obviously completely false. He appeared to His
disciples in the full bloom of health and strength, otherwise He could not have had the effect upon them
which He did. The results of hanging on a cross for six hours left a human body in such physical condition
that it could not have been restored in only three days. Note the following proofs of His actual Death:
(1) The soldiers saw that He was dead - "But when they came to Jesus, and saw that he was dead
already, they brake not his legs" Un. 19:33). These were professional Roman soldiers who were used to
conducting crucifixions and could not be deceived that their work was not finished.
(2) The Centurion attested to His Death - The Centurion in charge of the crucifixion brought his
personal report to Pilate. He assured the Roman governor, that Jesus was indeed dead. "And Pilate marveled
if he were already dead: and calling unto him the centurion, he asked him whether he had been any while
dead. And when he knew it of the centurion, he gave the body to Joseph" (Mk. 15:44,45).
(3) Blood and water flowed from His side -In order to insure that not the slightest possibility would
exist that any life remained in the body of Jesus, one of the soldiers pierced the side of Jesus with his lance or
spear. Authorities have claimed that the flowing forth of the blood and water is a physiological evidence that
His heart was ruptured, and that death would be almost instantaneous. William Hendriksen in New
Testament Commentary, Exposition of the Gospel of John, quotes from an article in Calvin Forum written by
a prominent physician in Grand Rapids, Michigan, Dr. Stuart Bergsma, to the effect that blood and water
flowing from a spear wound could have only come from a ruptured heart
"But one of the soldiers with a spear pierced his side, and forthwith came there out blood and water" Jn.
19:34.
(4) Joseph of Arimathaea believed He was dead - "Joseph of Arimathaea, an honorable counselor,
which also waited for the kingdom of God, came and went in boldly unto Pilate, and craved the body of
Jesus" (Mk. 15:43).
(5) The women who had stood by His cross believed He died - As soon as the Sabbath day was past
they came with spices to anoint a dead body. "And when the sabbath was past, Mary Magdalene, and Mary
the mother of Jesus, and Salome, had brought sweet spices, that they might come and anoint him" (Mk. 16:1).
(6) Jesus said He died. Jesus, Who is "the 'truth," declared that He died. "I am he that liveth, and was
dead" (Rv. 1:18). Thus we have every reason to believe that Christ's Resurrection was a genuine resurrection
of one who was indeed dead.
c) It was a bodily Resurrection.
The word "resurrection," as it is used of the Lord Jesus Christ about twelve different times in the New
Testament, can only signify the resurrection of the body. It is never connected with the spirit, for the spirit
never dies. There is abundant proof that the body of our Lord was literally raised to life again.
(1) His resurrection body was composed of "flesh and bones." It was not a phantom. "And as they
thus spake, Jesus himself stood in the midst of them, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you. But they were
terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they had seen a spirit. And he said unto them, Why are ye
troubled? and why do thoughts arise in your hearts? Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I myself. handle
me, and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see me have" (Lk. 24:36-39).
(2) His resurrection body could be touched and felt. "And as they went to tell his disciples, behold,
Jesus met them, saying, All Hail. And they came and held him by the feet, and worshiped him" (Mt. 28:9).

126
"Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I myself. handle me and see" (Lk. 24:39). "Then saith he to Thomas,
Reach hither thy finger, and behold my hands; and reach hither thy hand, and thrust it into my side: and be not
faithless, but believing" Un. 20:27).
(3) He ate before their eyes. "And while they yet believed not for joy, and wondered, he said unto them,
Have ye here any meat? And they gave him a piece of a broiled fish, and of an honeycomb. And he took it,
and did eat before them" (Lk. 24:41-43).
(4) The disciples and His followers recognized Him. It is natural to suppose that they recognized Him
by His physical features. "And their eyes were opened, and they knew him; and he vanished out of their
sight" (Lk. 24:31). "Jesus saith unto her, Mary. She turned herself, and saith unto him, Rabboni; which is to
say, Master ... Mary Magdalene came and told the disciples that she had seen the Lord, and he had spoken
these things unto her" (Jn.20:16,18). "Then were the disciples glad, when they saw the Lord" Un. 20:20).
"Therefore that disciple whom Jesus loved saith unto Peter, It is the Lord" Jn. 21:7).
(5) He appeared in the same body into which the nails had been driven and the spear had been
thrust. "And when he had thus spoken, he showed them his hands and his feet" (Lk. 24:40). "And when he
had so said, he shewed unto them his hands and his side" (Jn. 20:20). The Scripture indicates that these same
wounds will be visible in His body when He comes again: "And they shall look upon him whom they have
pierced" (Zec. 12:10); "And one shall say unto him, what are these wounds in thine hands? Then he shall
answer, Those with which I was wounded in the house of my friends" (Zec. 13:6); "Behold, he cometh with
clouds; and every eye shall see him, and they also which pierced him" (Rv. 1:7).
(6) Jesus, Himself, had foretold His bodily resurrection. "Destroy this temple, and in three days I will
raise it up ... But he spake of the temple of his body. When therefore he was risen from the dead, his disciples
remembered that he had said this unto them; and they believed the scripture, and the word which Jesus had
said" Un. 2:19-22).
(7) David, through the Spirit, had prophesied that His body would be raised. "For thou wilt not
leave my soul in hell; neither wilt thou suffer thine Holy One to see corruption" (Ps. 16:10). The Jews, in
keeping with others in eastern lands, believed that corruption of the body set in on the fourth day after death.
Jesus was raised on the third day. This gives significance to Martha's words concerning her brother Lazarus,
"Lord, by this time he stinketh: for he hath been dead four days" Un. 11:39).
d) It was a unique Resurrection.
Eight incidents of human bodies being raised from the dead are recorded in the Scriptures. They are: the
son of the widow at Zarephath (1 Kgs. 17:17-24); the Shunamite woman's son (2 Kgs. 4:17-27); the man who
was laid on the bones of Elisha (2 Kgs. 13:21); Jairus' daughter (Mk. 5:22-43); the young man of Nain (Lk.
7:1117); Lazarus (Jn. 11); Tabitha (Acts 9:36-43); and Eutychus (Acts 20:7-12). We have every reason to
believe that these were not raised in an immortal body, but that they died again. Jesus' Resurrection was more
than a reversal of His Death. First Timothy 6:16 tells us that He alone "hath immortality." Paul states:
"Knowing that Christ being raised from the dead dieth no more; death hath no more dominion over him. For
in that he died, he died unto sin once: but in that he liveth, he liveth unto God' (Rom. 6:9,10). Jesus said, "I
am he that liveth, and was dead; and, behold, I am alive forevermore" (Rv. 1:18).
Though the body that was raised from Joseph's tomb was the same body in which Jesus had lived and
ministered, it was somewhat different. It was a spiritual body, one not bound by physical limitations. He
could enter a room though the doors were shut. "Then the same day at evening, being the first day of the
week, when the doors were shut where the disciples were assembled for fear of the Jews, came Jesus and
stood in the midst ... And after eight days again his disciples were within, and Thomas with them: then came
Jesus, the doors being shut, and stood in the midst" Un. 20:19,26).
Again Jesus' resurrection body was unique in that it was not recognizable at times; Note: the incident of
the two disciples on the way to Emmaus (Lk. 24:13-16; Mk. 16:12), the occasion at the tomb when Mary
mistook Him for the gardener (Jn. 20:14,15), and the disciples on Galilee after a fruitless night of fishing Jn.
21:4,5).

127
3. Proofs of Christ's Resurrection:
a) The empty tomb.
The angel bore witness that the tomb was empty.
'He is not here: for he is risen, as he said. Come see the place where the Lord lay" (Mt. 28:6). The
women found the tomb empty. "And they entered in, and found not the body of the Lord Jesus" (Lk. 24:3).
Mary Magdalene testified the same: "Then she runneth, and cometh to Simon Peter, and to the other disciple,
whom Jesus loved, and saith unto them, They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulcher, and we know
not where they have laid him" Un. 20:2). That His body had been stolen from the sepulcher was the story told
by the soldiers only after they were bribed:
And when they were assembled with the elders, and had taken counsel, they gave large money unto the
soldiers, saying, Say ye, His disciples came by night, and stole him away while we slept. And if this come to
the governor's ears, we will persuade him, and secure you. So they took the money, and did as they were
taught: and this saying is commonly reported among the Jews until this day (Mt. 28:12-15).
Such a happening would be entirely unlikely. The disciples were so filled with discouragement and
timidity it is doubtful if they would have had the courage to perpetrate such an act. In 1879, a Roman edict
was found stating that it was illegal, under penalty of death, to rob a tomb or to move a body from one place
to another. Thus the disciples would be guilty of death. It is amazing that the enemies of Christ remembered
what the disciples had forgotten. "Now the next day, that followed the day of the preparation, the chief priests
and Pharisees came together unto Pilate, saying, Sir, we remember that deceiver said, while he was yet alive,
After three days I will rise again. Command therefore that the sepulcher be made sure until the third day, lest
his disciples come by night and steal him away" (Mt. 27:62-64). Note how well the body was secured: A
huge stone was rolled over the door to the sepulcher; it was sealed with the official Roman seal; it was
watched over by the Roman guard. The guards would have placed their lives in jeopardy if they had allowed
the body to be stolen. Furthermore, if they were asleep (v.13) how would they have known what took place?

b) The grave clothes.


"And he [John] stooping down, and looking in, saw the linen clothes lying; yet went he not in. Then
cometh Simon Peter following him, and went into the sepulcher, and seeth the linen clothes lie, and the
napkin, not lying with the linen clothes, but wrapped together in a place by itself" (Jn. 20:5-7). It was
customary for the Jews to wind long strips of cloth around a body from the neck to the feet, preparing it for
burial. Of Lazarus we read: "And he that was dead came forth, bound hand and foot with graveclothes: and
his face was bound about with a napkin" (Jn. 11:44). These strips of cloth would become impregnated with
the vast weight of spices that were used for embalming (Jn. 19:39,40), so that the whole would form a sort of
cocoon. Jesus' body apparently slipped out of this, leaving the clothes undisturbed. Only the napkin about the
face was removed - possibly to let it be seen that His body was not within. Anyone who attempted to steal the
body would be in such haste he would not take time to unroll the cloths from the corpse and then replace the
clothes as they were. Besides, why would one wish to have a nude dead body?
If the lie were true, and the disciples did steal the body of the Lord, it is incredible that they would be
inspired and willing to devote their lives to the propagation of a colossal falsehood. Each one of the disciples,
with the possible exception of John, are reputed to have suffered a martyr's death for the message he
proclaimed. It might be conceivable, that if the disciples were together in a group, they would have courage
to sustain each other and agree to die for a lie. But each was alone when he sealed his faith with his blood.

c) It was not challenged in the first century.


According to Fitzwater: The apostles preached the resurrection of Christ immediately after it occurred,
and in the very region where it took place. They placed the guilt of the killing of Jesus Christ upon the very
ones who had committed the deed. If Christ had not really risen from the dead, it could and would have been
disproved; but there is no hint in history, sacred or profane, of anyone's challenging this fact of the apostles'

128
preaching.
All that would have been necessary would have been for them to have produced the dead body of our
Lord.

d) Three effects that demand a cause:


(1) The Lord's Day - The fact that the early disciples being Jews, changed their day of worship from the
time-honored sabbath to the first day of the week, and that custom has continued down to our times, is an
effect that must have had a great cause. The change was made to celebrate the fact that the Lord arose on the
first day of the week. (Acts 20:7, 1 Cor. 16:2)
(2) The Christian Church - There has never been another institution in all of history that has produced
so much good in this life, as well as giving promise of the life that is to come. The Christian Church stands
alone! "The real historical evidence for the resurrection is the fact that it was believed, preached, propagated,
and produced its fruit and effect in the new phenomena of the Christian Church, long before any of our
gospels was written."
(3) The New Testament - This is the Book of the Resurrection of Jesus Christ. Had it not been for this
event, the Book would never have been written. Evans concludes: "If Jesus Christ had remained buried in the
grave, the story of His life and death would have been buried with Him ... The resurrection does not grow out
of the beautiful story of His life, but the beautiful story of His life grew out of the fact of His resurrection."

4. The results or benefits of His Resurrection:


a) It provides a firm foundation for our faith.
First, in God. "Who by him do believe in God that raised him up from the dead, and gave him glory; that
your faith and hope might be in God" (I Pt. 1:21). Only God can raise the dead. He proved that He is God
when He raised up Jesus.
Secondly, in Jesus Christ. His Resurrection is a firm affirmation that He is all He claimed to be - the very
Son of God. "And declared to be the son of God with power, according to the spirit of holiness, by the
resurrection from the dead" (Rom. 1:4). Christ was not made to be the Son of God by His Resurrection, but
declared to be. Had Christ remained in the tomb there would have been no reason to believe that He was any
different than all those who had died before Him. The Jews twice asked Jesus to show them a sign by which
they might believe. In each case He gave them a sign that pointed to His Death and His Resurrection. The
first was that of Jonah being three days and three nights in the fish's belly (Mt. 12:38-40). The second pointed
to the destruction and rebuilding of the temple of His body Jn. 2:18-21).
b) It provides an assurance of forgiveness of sins.
Those who believe on Him can be assured of forgiveness of sins. "That if thou shalt confess with thy
mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thine heart that God hath raised him from the dead, thou shalt be
saved" (Rom. 10:9). The sinner's Justification is confirmed by the Resurrection of Jesus Christ. "Who was
delivered for our offences, and was raised again for our justification" (Rom. 4:25). Only by His Resurrection
can the believer have confidence that God was satisfied with the sacrifice Christ had made in his behalf
Indeed, the New Birth is said to be accomplished because of His Resurrection. 'Blessed be the God and
Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which according to his abundant mercy hath begotten us again unto a lively
hope by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead" (1 Pt. 1:3).
c) We have an understanding, merciful and faithful High Priest in Heaven.
"Wherefore in all things it behooved him to be made like unto his brethren, that he might be a merciful
and faithful high priest in things pertaining to God, to make reconciliation for the sins of the people" (Heb.
2:17). "Who is he that condemneth? It is Christ that died, yea rather, that is risen again, who is even at the
right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us" (Rom. 8:34). "Wherefore he is able also to save them
to the uttermost that come unto God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them" (Heb. 7:25).

129
d) It assures the believer of all needed power for life and service.
The Apostle Paul expressed the greatest desire of his life when he said: "That I may know him, and the
power of his resurrection" (Phil. 3:10). The great miracle which always stirred faith in the followers of God
in Old Testament days, was the deliverance of the children of Israel from Egypt. Time after time the prophets
stirred faith in the people by reminding them of what God had done for their fathers at the Red Sea. The
greatest demonstration of God's power in the New Testament is the raising of Jesus Christ from the dead.
Indeed this seems to be the yardstick by which God's power is measured. Paul prays that the saints at Ephesus
might know "what is the exceeding greatness of his power to us-ward who believe, according to the working
of his mighty power, which he wrought in Christ, when he raised him from the dead" (Eph. 1:19,20). This
was the power that defeated death. Note again in Ephesians 1:19 that the "exceeding greatness of his power"
is "to us-ward who believe." This is sufficient for every day and every emergency.
e) The believer has the assurance of resurrection and immortality.
"For if we believe that Jesus died and rose again, even so them also which sleep in Jesus will God bring
with him" (1 Thes. 4:14). "Knowing that he which raised up the Lord Jesus shall raise up us also by Jesus,
and shall present us with you" (2 Cor. 4:14). "Because I live, ye shall live also" (Jn. 14:19). (See also Jn.
5:28,29; 6:40; Rom. 8:11; 1 Cor. 15:20-23.)
In Romans 5:14 we read, "death reigned from Adam to Moses . . . ." As a dread monarch on a sepulchral
throne, death had continued to reign over the sons of men. Each succeeding generation had arisen full of
hope, only to go down before the same deadly foe. In Hosea 13:14, God had challenged: "O death, I will be
thy plagues; 0 grave I will be thy destruction," but still death reigned. But now, in the Resurrection of Jesus,
death was defeated! Christ defeated death, not by avoiding it, but by enduring and conquering it. Through
death He destroyed "him that had the power of death, that is, the devil" (Heb. 2:14). The "power of his
resurrection" conquered "the power of death." In one of the last pictures we have of the Savior He has "the
keys of hell and of death" (Rv. 1:18).
So when this corruptible shall have put on incorruption, and this mortal shall have put on immortality,
then shall be brought to pass the saying that is written, Death is swallowed up in victory. 0 death, where is thy
sting? O grave, where is thy victory.? The sting of death is sin; and the strength of sin is the law. But thanks
be to God, which giveth us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ (1 Cor. 15:54-57).
f) It guarantees the certainty of a Day of Judgment.
There will be a time of judgment for both the godly and the ungodly. "Because he hath appointed a day,
in the which he will judge the world in righteousness by that man whom he hath ordained; whereof he hath
given assurance unto all men, in that he hath raised him from the dead" (Acts 17:31). Evans declares: "The
resurrection of Christ is God's unfailing testimony to the fact of a coming day of judgment. The one is as sure
as the other.1120 (See Acts 10:42; Jn. 5:22, 25-29.)

C. The Ascension and Glorification of Jesus Christ.


1. His Ascension.
By the Ascension of Christ we refer to that event when He departed from this earth in His resurrection
body and was visibly taken into heaven. Mark and Luke are the only Gospel writers who speak of it. "So
then after the Lord had spoken unto them, he was received up into heaven" (Mk. 16:19). "And he led them
out as far as to Bethany, and he lifted up his hands, and blessed them. And it came to pass, while he blessed
them, he was parted from them, and carried up into heaven" (Lk. 24:50,51). "And when he had spoken these
things, while they beheld, he was taken up; and a cloud received him out of their sight" (Acts 1:9).
Jesus predicted the event of His Ascension. "What and if ye shall see the Son of man ascend up where he
was before?" (Jn. 6:62). Paul taught Christ's Ascension: "Wherefore he saith, When he ascended up on high,
he led captivity captive, and gave gifts unto men. (Now that he ascended, what is it but that he also descended
first into the lower parts of the earth? He that descended is the same also that ascended up far above all
heavens, that he might fill all things)" (Eph. 4:8-10). (See also Jn. 20:17; 13:1; 16:10,16,28; Heb. 4:14; 7:26;

130
1 Tm. 3:16.)
Putting together the words "ascended up far above all heavens" (Eph. 4:10), with "made higher than the
heavens" (Heb. 7:26), and "that is passed through the heavens" (Heb. 4:14, RV) the picture seems to be that
there are several heavens, possibly the atmospheric and astronomic, through which Jesus passed on His way
to the Father. William Evans suggests: "This means that He overcame all those evil principalities and powers
that inhabit these heavenlies (Eph. 6) and who doubtless tried their best to keep Him from passing through the
heavens to present His finished work to the Father". Myer Pearlman reminds us: "Thus the ascension
becomes the dividing line of two periods of Christ's life: From birth to the resurrection He is the Christ of
human history, the One Who lived a perfect human life under earthly conditions. Since the ascension He is
the Christ of spiritual experience, who lives in heaven and touches men through the Holy Spirit."

2. His Exaltation.
a) The Meaning of the Exaltation of Christ.
By the Exaltation of Christ we refer to the Father giving to the risen and ascended Son the place of honor
and power at His right hand. This truth is taught in many places in the New Testament.
By Luke: "Therefore being by the right hand of God exalted" (Acts 2:33); "Him hath God exalted with his
right hand to be a Prince and a Savior" (Acts 5:31);
By Peter: "Who is gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of God; angels and authorities and powers
being made subject unto him" (1 Pt. 3:22).
By Paul: "It is Christ that died, yea rather that is risen again, who is even at the right hand of God" (Rom.
8:34); 'Which he wrought in Christ, when he raised him from the dead, and set him at his own right hand in
the heavenly places" (Eph. 1:20); "If ye then be risen with Christ, seek those things which are above, where
Christ sitteth on the right hand of God" (Col. 3:1); "But this man, after he had offered one sacrifice for sins
forever, sat down on the right hand of God" (Heb. 10:12).
Jesus implied it in Matthew 22:41-46, and clearly taught it in Revelation 3:21: "To him that overcometh
will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down with my father in his
throne."
Stephen saw the glorified Lord shortly before his death, thus he cried, "Behold, I see the heavens opened,
and the Son of man standing on the right hand of God" (Acts 7:55,56). "The right hand of God" indicates a
place of honor and of power. "Wherefore God also hath exalted him, and given him a name which is above
every name: that at the name of Jesus every knee should bow, of things in heaven, and things in earth, and
things under the earth; and that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the
Father" (Phil. 2:9-11).

b) Results of the Exaltation of Christ.


(1) He is now our High Priest - He is now, as our High Priest, appearing before God in our behalf "For
Christ is not entered into the holy places made with hands, which are the figures of the true, but into heaven
itself, now to appear in the presence of God for us" (Heb. 9:24). "Seeing then that we have a great high priest,
that is passed into the heavens, Jesus the Son of God, let us hold fast our profession" (Heb. 4:14).
(2) We are assured of access to God - It assures believers of a free access into the presence of God.
"Seeing then that we have a great high priest ... Let us therefore come boldly unto the throne of grace, that we
may obtain mercy, and find grace to help in time of need" (Heb. 4:14-16). "There is one God, and one
mediator between God and men, the man Christ Jesus" (1 Tm. 2:5).
(3) Christ Head of the Church - "And hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the head
over all things to the church" (Eph. 1:22). "And he is the head of the body, the church: who is the beginning,
the firstborn from the dead; that in all things he might have the preeminence" (Col. 1:18).
(4) Spirit outpoured - He has poured out the Holy Spirit upon those who believe. "Nevertheless I tell

131
you the truth; It is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto
you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you" (Jn. 16:7). "And I will pray the Father, and he shall give you
another Comforter, that he may abide with you for ever" (Jn. 14:16). "Therefore being by the right hand of
God exalted, and having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Ghost, he hath shed forth this, which
ye now see and hear" (Acts 2:33).
(5) He gave gifts to men and to the Church - I Cor. 12:8-10; Eph. 4:8-13.
(6) He is preparing a place for His Own - "I go to prepare a place for you" Jn. 14:2).
(7) He pledged His Return - "And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come again, and receive you
unto myself; that where I am, there ye may be also" Jn. 14:3).

3. The practical values of the doctrines of the Ascension and Glorification of Christ.
Myer Pearlman has given us the following five very practical and inspiring values of realizing that our
Lord and Savior has ascended and is seated in the place of honor at the Father's right hand:
a) An Incentive to Holiness - Consciousness of the ascended Christ, whom we look forward to seeing
some day, is an incentive to holiness (Col. 3:1-4). The upward glance will counteract the downward pull.
b) A Right Conception of the Church - The knowledge of the Ascension makes for a right conception
of the Church. Belief in a merely human Christ will cause people to regard the Church as merely a human
society, useful for philanthropic and moral purposes, but possessing no supernatural power or authority. On
the other hand, a knowledge of the ascended Christ will result in the recognition of the Church as an
organism, a supernatural organism deriving Divine life from its risen Head.
c) A Right Attitude Toward the World - Consciousness of the ascended Christ will produce a right
attitude toward the world and worldly things. "For our conversation [literally, citizenship] is in heaven; from
whence also we look for the Savior, the Lord Jesus Christ" (Phil. 3:20),
d) A Deep Sense of Personal Responsibility - Faith in the ascended Christ will inspire a deep sense of
personal responsibility. Belief in the ascended Christ carries with it the knowledge that an account will have
to be rendered to Him some day. Rom. 14:7-9; II Cor. 5:9,10. The sense of a responsibility to a Master in
heaven acts as a deterrent to sin and an incentive to righteousness (Eph. 6:9).
e) The Joyous Hope of His Return - With faith in the ascended Christ is connected the joyous and
blessed hope of His returning. "And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come again and receive you
unto myself" (John 14:3)

132
II. THE APPLICATION OF THE PROVISIONS

A. Election.
The doctrine of Election is one of the most controversial in all theology. Down through the centuries
it has continued to divide Christians into various camps. Some books on Systematic Theology do not even
teach this subject.
It has sometimes been presented in such an extreme manner as to make it sound as though those who are
elected will certainly be saved, regardless of their response to the Gospel, and their manner of living.
Contrarily, those who are chosen to be lost are said to perish eternally, regardless of any endeavor to come to
God through faith in Christ.
This extreme position is based on the so-called doctrines of "unconditional election" - the elect are chosen
completely apart from any repentance and faith on their part; and "limited atonement" - that Christ did not die
for all Mankind, but only for those whom He chose. It is also based on the teaching that God's general call to
all men to come to Christ is not a sincere call" - that He only "efficiently calls" (intending to bring to pass)
those whom he has previously elected for salvation. It has been shown from the Scripture, under 'The Death
of Christ" (sec. I.,A.), that Christ did die for all Mankind and that He bids all who labor and are heavy laden
to come unto Him.
What is Election? Thiessen says that, in its redemptive sense, Election is: "That sovereign act of God in
grace whereby He chose in Christ Jesus for salvation all those whom He foreknew would accept Him."24
Election is a sovereign act of God because, being God, He does not have to consult with, nor ask the opinion
of, anyone else. Inasmuch as the Scripture teaches that Election took place "before the foundation of the
world" (Eph. 1:4), there was none with whom God could consult. All men have sinned, and are guilty before
God, so He was not under any obligation whatsoever to provide salvation for any.
Election is an act of God in grace for this same reason. All Mankind has sinned and deserves nothing but
condemnation. Sinful man can do nothing of himself whereby he could be considered worthy of salvation.
Thus any offer of eternal life must be of Grace.
It is "in Christ Jesus," because He alone could provide the Righteousness which Man needed. God could
not choose man in himself so He chose him in Christ.
Election is always said to be according to God's Foreknowledge: And we know that all things work
together for good to them that love God, to them who are the called according to His purpose. For whom he
did foreknow, he also did predestinate to be conformed to the image of his Son, that he might be the firstborn
among many brethren. Moreover whom he did predestinate, them he also called: and whom he called, them
he also justified: and whom he justified, them he also glorified (Rom. 8:28-30).
Peter, an apostle of Jesus Christ, to the strangers scattered throughout Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia,
and Bithynia, elect according to the foreknowledge of God the Father, through sanctification of the Spirit,
unto obedience and sprinkling of the blood of Jesus Christ (1 Pt. 1:1,2).
We must clearly distinguish between God's Foreknowledge and His Foreordaining. It is not right to say
that God foreknew all things because He arbitrarily determined to bring them to pass. God in His
Foreknowledge looks ahead to events much as we look back upon them. Foreknowledge no more changes the
nature of future events than afterknowledge can change a historical fact. There is a difference between what
God determines to bring to pass and what He merely permits to happen. Thiessen asserts:
Certainly only few who hold the view of "unconditional election" would teach that God is the
efficient cause of sin: practically all would agree that God merely permitted sin to enter the universe, and
all would admit that He foresaw that it would enter, before He created anything. If, then, God could
foresee that sin would enter the universe without efficiently decreeing that it should enter, then He can
also foresee how men will act without efficiently decreeing how they shall act.

133
Ephesians 1:3-5 makes it very clear that believers were chosen "in Christ Jesus":
Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in
heavenly places in Christ: according as he hath chosen us in him before the foundation of the world, that we
should be holy and without blame before him in love: having predestinated us unto the adoption of children
by Jesus Christ to himself, according to the good pleasure of his will. Having chosen His own "in Christ,"
God was not looking at man in himself, but as he is in Christ. Those who were chosen are those who were in
Christ. By His Foreknowledge God already saw them there when He made the choice. Those who are in
Christ are sinners who have believed in the redeeming blood of Christ, through which they have been united
with Him as members of His body.
There is no virtue whatever in this faith. Men are not saved because they believe, but through believing.
Believers were foreseen by God in Christ when He chose them. How did they get there? Through faith in
His dear Son. He did not determine who should be there. He simply saw them there in Christ when He chose
them.
The Bible does not teach selection, but election. Nowhere does the Bible teach that some are predestined
to be damned. This would be unnecessary inasmuch as all are sinners and on their way to eternal
condemnation.
And you hath he quickened, who were dead in trespasses and sins: wherein in time past ye walked
according to the course of this world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now
worketh in the children of disobedience: among whom also we all had our conversation in times past in the
lusts of our flesh, fulfilling the desires of the flesh and of the mind; and were by nature the children of wrath,
even as others ... at that time ye were without Christ, being aliens from the commonwealth of Israel, and
strangers from the covenants of promise, having no hope, and without God in the world (Eph. 2:1-3,12).
It is not a man's non-election that leads to eternal ruin; it is his sin and failure to accept Jesus Christ.
Every man is free to accept Christ as his personal Savior, if he will. Not only is he invited, he is urged to do
so.
Christ has made every provision for him. "But we see Jesus, who was made a little lower than the angels
for the suffering of death, crowned with glory and honor; that he by the grace of God should taste death for
every man" (Heb. 2:9). "The times of this ignorance God winked at; but now commandeth all men every
where to repent" (Acts 17:30).
Many of the problems that have arisen in the Church over this doctrine of Election have come because
some have applied it to the unsaved. It is truth for those who are already in Christ. It is universally
recognized, within the body of believers, that the Epistle of Paul to the Romans is the most orderly setting
forth of the plan of salvation that we have in the Bible. It will be noticed that the Apostle does not deal with
the subject of Election until he has passed the eighth chapter, which concludes with the truth of no separation
from Christ.
The story has often been told, as a parable, of the man laboring up the hill laden down with his sin and
condemnation. He sees the door of salvation up ahead of him, and over it is written, "Whosoever Will May
Come." He rejoices as he enters and his burden is rolled away. Once inside the gateway of salvation he looks
up on the inside of the arch and discovers the words, "Chosen in Him Before the Foundation of the World."
What a glorious truth to discover after one has found the peace of sins forgiven, as he has placed his faith in
the redeeming Sacrifice of Jesus Christ!
Let no idea, with regard to this doctrine of Election, in any way hinder the preaching of the Gospel to all
Mankind. The Great Commission is still the obligation of the Church of Jesus Christ: "Go ye into all the
world and preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved; but he that
believeth not shall be damned" (Mk. 16:15,16).
Election, being a doctrine wholly of God's Sovereignty, must be followed by those steps toward the
personal experience of salvation which are required of the sinner: these are repentance and faith. Each of
these will be considered in the two sections which follow.

134
B. Repentance.
Repentance is a subject rarely preached on in our churches today.
Some have even taught that it is not necessary, that we are living in a different dispensation which does
not require it. They quote Paul's words to the Philippian jailor's question: "Sirs, what must I do to be saved?"
Paul's reply was, "Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved, and thy house" (Acts 16:30,31).
Because Paul did not mention repentance, we are told all we need to do is to believe in order to be saved
today. Repentance has to do with turning from sin, and unfortunately the sinfulness of sin is something very
seldom emphasized in our day. It is doubtful if a person is ever born again if he does not fully realize that the
question of his sin has been dealt with by the Lord Jesus Christ. Many are being asked to come to Christ
simply on the basis of blessings to be received and the joy to be experienced. Jesus Christ met the sin
question for us and it is of the greatest importance that we turn from our sin before we can believe on Him as
our Savior.

1. Definition.
The root meaning of "repentance" is a change of mind or purpose. It is a "sincere and thorough changing
of the mind and disposition in regard to sin." It involves a change of view, a change of feeling, and a change
of purpose. Thus we can say it contains three elements: the intellectual, the emotional and the voluntary.
a) The intellectual element.
This involves a change of view. It is a change of view with regard to sin, God, and self. Sin comes to be
recognized not merely as a weakness, an unfortunate happening, or a mistake, but as a personal guilt: 'For I
acknowledge my transgressions: and my sin is ever before me" (Ps. 51:3); 'for by the law is the knowledge of
sin" (Rom. 3:20). Furthermore, sin is recognized to be a transgression against God. From a human
viewpoint, David's sin was against Bathsheba and Uriah her husband. But David came to realize that it was
also against the laws of God. He cried, "Against thee, thee only, have I sinned, and done this evil in thy sight"
(Ps. 51:4). Sin is also recognized in its relationship to one's self. Not only is it seen to be as guilt before God,
but as that which defiles and pollutes self. Recognizing this, David prays, "Purge me with hyssop, and I shall
be clean: wash me, and I shall be whiter than snow" (Ps. 51:7). As Job received a new vision of God, he said,
"I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear: but now mine eyes seeth thee. Wherefore, I abhor myself, and
repent in dust and ashes" (Jb. 42:5,6). This intellectual element of repentance is very important, but if it is not
followed by the next two elements it may only bring fear of punishment with yet no real hatred of sin.

b) The emotional element.


Repentance has often been defined as "a Godly sorrow for sin." Writing his second letter to the
Corinthians Paul
said: "Now I rejoice, not that ye were made sorry, but that ye sorrowed to repentance: for ye were made sorry
after a godly manner, that ye might receive damage by us in nothing. For godly sorrow worketh repentance
not to be repented of. but the sorrow of the world worketh death" (2 Cor. 7:9,10). In Luke 18:13 Jesus
pictured the publican smiting himself upon his breast: "And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up
so much as his eyes unto heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner." There is
no way by which we may measure how much emotion is necessary in true repentance, but certainly there is a
real stirring of the heart when one is brought face to face with his own dread sin. Not uncommonly, tears
accompany a repentant heart. However, one must distinguish between true sorrow because of his sin and the
mere feeling of shame for it. There is a vast difference between remorse and repentance. A person may
merely be sorry that he was caught in the act of sin, and not truly repentant because of his sin. This could
simply be remorse. Sorrow for sin must be followed by the voluntary element.

135
c) The voluntary element.
Billy Sunday used to say, "Religion is not something for your handkerchief but for your backbone." There
must be the exercise of the will for repentance to be truly effective. This means an inward turning from sin
and a whole-hearted turning to Christ for forgiveness. One of the words used for "repentance" means "to turn.
" This is illustrated in the story of the Prodigal who said, "I will arise and go to my father ... and he arose, and
came to his father" (Lk. 15:18,20). As repentance touches the will, it will result in:
(1) Confessing sin - "For I will declare my iniquity ;I will be sorry for my sin" (Ps. 38:18). "I have
sinned against heaven" (Lk. 15:21).
(2) Forsaking sin - "He that covereth his sins shall not prosper: but whoso confesseth and forsaketh them
shall have mercy" (Prv. 28:13). "Let the wicked forsake his way, and the unrighteous man his thoughts" (Is.
55:7).
(3) Turning to God - "Let the wicked forsake his way, and the unrighteous man his thoughts; and let him
return unto the Lord" (Is. 55:7). We must not only turn from sin, but unto God (1 Thes. 1:9; Acts 26:18).

d) Not something meritorious -


Repentance must never be thought of as something meritorious - a "work" to be done in order that God
will grant salvation. Theissen points out that we are not saved for repenting but if we repent.26 The Douay
Version translates the word "repent" as "do penance". Thus the Roman Catholic Church views repentance as
a satisfaction which the sinner presents to God. This is a false translation and pictures the sinner as able to do
something for his salvation, instead of realizing his helplessness and seeing that his salvation is totally of
God's provision through His marvelous Grace.

2. The importance of repentance.


The importance of this subject is emphasized by the large place given to it in the Scriptures, both Old and
New Testament, as well as in the ministry of Jesus and the early preachers of the Gospel.
a) In the Old Testament.
The Old Testament highlights the place that repentance should have in Israel's relationship with God in
the following scriptures:
If thou shalt hearken unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to keep his commandments and his statutes
which are written in this book of the law, and if thou turn unto the Lord thy God with all thine heart, and with
all thy soul (Dt. 30:10).
Turn ye from your evil ways, and keep my commandments and my statutes, according to all the law
which I commanded your fathers, and which I sent to you by my servants the prophets (2 Kgs. 17:13). I
hearkened and heard, but they spake not aright: no man repented him of his wickedness, saying, What have I
done? every one turned to his course, as the horse rusheth into the battle (Jer. 8:6).
Therefore say unto the house of Israel, thus saith the Lord God; Repent, and turn yourselves from your
idols; and turn away your faces from all your abominations (Ez. 14:6).
Therefore I will judge you, 0 house of Israel, every one according to his ways, saith the Lord God.
Repent, and turn yourselves from all your transgressions; so iniquity shall not be your ruin (Ez. 18:30).
If my people, which are called by my name, shall humble themselves, and pray, and seek my face, and
turn from their wicked ways; then will I hear from heaven, and will forgive their sin, and will heal their land
(2 Chr. 7:14).

b) In the New Testament:


(1) John the Baptist - Repentance was the keynote in the preaching of John the Baptist: ". . . preaching
in the wilderness of Judaea, And saying, Repent ye: for the kingdom of heaven is at hand" (Mt. 3:1,2). John

136
the Baptist came as the forerunner of Jesus, to prepare the hearts of the nation of Israel for their Messiah. The
preparation that was necessary was repentance, and it is still so in every sinful heart.
(2) Jesus - Repentance occupied a large place in the preaching of Jesus. 'From that time Jesus began to
preach, and to say, Repent: for the kingdom of heaven is at hand" (Mt. 4:17). "I am not come to call the
righteous, but sinners to repentance" (Mt. 9:13). "Then began he to upbraid the cities wherein most of his
mighty works were done, because they repented not" (Mt. 11:20). "The men of Ninevah shall rise in
judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: because they repented at the preaching of Jonas; and,
behold, a greater than Jonas is here" (Mt. 12:41).
(3) The Disciples - The twelve disciples preached repentance. "And they went out, and preached that
men should repent" (Mk. 6:12).
(4) In The Great Commission - "That repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name
among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem" (Lk. 24:47).
(5) Peter - Peter preached repentance. "Then said Peter unto them, Repent and be baptized every one
of you" (Acts 2:38). (See also: Acts 3:19, 5:31, 8:22,11:18.)
(6) Paul - Paul preached repentance. "Testifying both to the Jews, and also to the Greeks, repentance
toward God, and faith toward our Lord Jesus Christ" (Acts 20:21). (See also: Acts 26:20; 2 Cor. 12:21; 2 Tm.
2:25).

c) Repentance is the will of God for every man.


"The Lord is ... longsuffering to usward, not willing that any should perish, but that all should come to
repentance" (2 Pt. 3:9).
(1) The command of the Lord - It is the command of the Lord that all men repent. 'And the times of
this ignorance God winked at; but now commandeth all men every where to repent" (Acts 17:30).
(2) Failure will result in eternal death - Men will perish eternally if they do not repent. "I tell you,
Nay: but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish" (Lk. 13:3).
(3) Brings joy in Heaven - Repentance of sinners on earth brings great joy in heaven. "I say unto you,
that likewise joy shall be in heaven over one sinner that repenteth, more than over ninety and nine just
persons, which need no repentance" (Lk. 15:7, 10).

3. The manner in which repentance is produced.


Jesus taught that miracles of themselves will not produce repentance. 'Then began he to upbraid the cities
wherein most of his mighty works were done, because they repented not: Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto
thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works, which were done in you, had been done in Tyre and Sidon, they
would have repented long ago in sackcloth and ashes" (Mt. 11:20, 21).
Our Lord taught that even the coming of one back from the dead would not, of itself, produce repentance.
"And he said, Nay, father Abraham: but if one went unto them from the dead, they will repent. And he said
unto him, If they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though one rose from the
dead" (Lk. 16:30,31).

a) It is a gift of God.
"Then hath God also to the Gentiles granted repentance unto life" (Acts 11:18). "In meekness instructing
those that oppose themselves; if God peradventure will give them repentance to the acknowledging of the
truth" (2 Tm. 2:25). (See also Acts 5:31.) Repentance is not something that a person can bring about of
himself. The person who thinks that he can live for self and the world and then repent and turn to God when
he decides to is sadly mistaken. Many a sinner has gone out into eternity crying "It's too late!", while loved

137
ones and ministers have urged him to repent and accept the Lord. If one ever has an urge to repent of his sin
and turn to the Lord he should do so without any delay. The time may come when he would like to do so but
cannot. "Lest there be any fornicator, or profane person, as Esau, who for one morsel of meat sold his
birthright. For ye know that afterward, when he would have inherited the blessing, he was rejected: for he
found no place of repentance, though he sought it carefully with tears" (Heb. 12:16,17).

b) Through Divinely ordained means.


(1) In relation to the unsaved:
(a) Through believing God's Word - "So the people of Ninevah believed God, and proclaimed a fast
and put on sackcloth, from the greatest of them to the least of them. For word came unto the king of Ninevah,
and he arose from his throne, and he laid his robe from him, and covered him with sackcloth, and sat in ashes"
(Jon. 3:5,6).
(b) Through the preaching of the Gospel - "Now when they heard this, they were pricked in their heart,
and said unto Peter and to the rest of the apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" (Acts 2:37). "The
men of Ninevah shall rise in judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: because they repented at the
preaching of Jonas; and, behold, a greater than Jonas is here" (Mt. 12:41).
(c) Through the Goodness of God - "Or despisest thou the riches of his goodness and forbearance and
longsuffering; not knowing that the goodness of God leadeth thee to repentance?" (Rom. 2:4). "The Lord is
not slack concerning his promise, as some men count slackness; but is longsuffering to us-ward, not willing
that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance" (2 Pt. 3:9).
(2) In Relation to the Christian:
(a) Through God's reproof and chastisement - For whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth
every son whom he receiveth ... For they verily for a few days chastened us after their own pleasure; but he
for our profit, that we might be partakers of his holiness. Now no chastening for the present seemeth to be
joyous, but grievous: nevertheless afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which
are exercised thereby (Heb. 12:6,10,11).
God's chastisement leads to repentance. "As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten: be zealous therefore, and
repent" (Rv. 3:19).
(b) Through a new vision of God - "I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear: but now mine eye
seeth thee. Wherefore I abhor myself and repent in dust and ashes" (Jb. 42:5,6).
(c) Through the loving reproof of a brother - "The servant of the Lord must not strive; but be gentle
unto all men, apt to teach, patient, in meekness instructing those that oppose themselves; if God peradventure
will give them repentance unto the acknowledging of the truth; and that they may recover themselves out of
the snare of the devil, who are taken captive by him at his will" (2 Tm. 2:24-26).

4. Fruits of repentance.
One last word should be said regarding the results of repentance. It will definitely lead to:
a) Confession of sin. "And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as his eyes unto
heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner" (Lk. 18:13).
b) Furthermore, a truly repentant attitude will lead one to make restitution for wrongdoing as much as
it is possible. 'And Zacchaeus stood, and said unto the Lord; behold, Lord, the half of my goods I give to the
poor; and if I have taken any thing from any man by false accusation, I restore him fourfold" (Lk. 19:8).
These, however, do not constitute repentance; rather, they are fruits of repentance.

C. Faith.
The second essential element, along with repentance, which is necessary to receiving salvation is faith. It

138
is questionable which of these precedes the other in point of experience. It is doubtful if a person can really
repent unless he believes; and it is questionable whether one can truly believe for salvation without a sincere
repentance from sin. John Calvin once said, "When John Smith goes through a door, who goes first John or
Smith?" Thus it is difficult to be certain which comes first, repentance or faith. We know that both are
necessary.
Thiessen observes: "As in the case of repentance so in the case of faith, the doctrine does not receive the
attention that it deserves. Great emphasis is laid upon conduct; a man's creed is said to be a matter of
indifference. Yet a man's life is governed by what he believes, and in religion by the PERSON in Whom he
believes. 1127

1. The importance of faith.


It is probably not possible to overstate the importance of faith in the Christian life. Faith is the only
avenue of approach to God. "He that cometh to God must believe that he is, and that he is a rewarder of them
that diligently seek him" (Heb. 11:6). Without faith it is not possible to please God: "But without faith it is
impossible to please him" (Heb. 11:6). Everything a believer receives from God he receives through faith.
a) Salvation through faith.
Proclaimed by the following:
For by grace are ye saved through faith (Eph. 2:8).
He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved (Mk. 16:16).
Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved (Acts 16:31).
As many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on
his name (Jn. 1:12).
To him that worketh not, but believeth on him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for
righteousness (Rom. 4:5).
Therefore being justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ (Rom. 5:1).
We are not of them who draw back unto perdition; but of them that believe to the saving of the soul (Heb.
10:39).
Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath
everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation; but is passed from death unto life (Jn. 5:24).
b) The fullness of the Holy Spirit through faith.
"That we might receive the promise of the Spirit through faith" (Gal. 3:14). "This spake he of the Spirit,
which they that believe on him should receive" Jn. 7:39).
c) Sanctification through faith.
"And put no difference between us and them, purifying their hearts by faith" (Acts 15:9). 'That they may
receive forgiveness of sins, and inheritance among them which are sanctified by faith that is in me" (Acts
26:18).
d) Security through faith.
"Who are kept by the power of God through faith" (1 Pt. 1:5). "Well; because of unbelief they were
broken off, and thou standest by faith" (Rom. 11:20). "Not for that we have dominion over your faith, but are
helpers of your joy: for by faith we stand" (2 Cor. 1: 24).
e) Perfect peace through faith.
"Thou wilt keep him in perfect peace, whose mind is stayed on thee: because he trusteth in thee" (Is.
26:3). "We which have believed do enter into rest" (Heb. 4:3).
f) Healing through faith.

139
"And the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up" (Jas. 5:14). "The same heard
Paul speak: who steadfastly beholding him, and perceiving that he had faith to be healed" (Acts 14:9).
g) Victory over adversaries through faith.
The chief adversaries of the Christian may be summed up as: the world, the flesh, and the Devil.
h) The world overcome through faith.
"This is the victory that overcometh the world, even our faith" (1 Jn. 5:4).
I) The flesh over come through faith
"Reckon" -an act of faith - "ye also yourselves to be dead indeed unto sin, but alive unto God through
Jesus Christ our Lord" (Rom. 6:11).
j) The Devil overcome through faith.
"Put on the whole armor of God, that ye may be able to stand against the wiles of the devil ... above all
taking the shield of faith, wherewith ye shall be able to quench all the fiery darts of the wicked" (Eph. 6:6-16).
"Simon, Simon, behold, Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat: but I have prayed for
thee that thy faith fail not" (Lk. 22:31, 32).
k) The entire Christian life is lived through faith.
Four times in the Scripture we read: "The just shall live by faith" (Hk. 2:4; Rom. 1:17; Gal. 3:11; Heb. 10:
38). "The life which I now live in the flesh I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me, and gave
himself for me" (Gal. 2:20). Faith is the very atmosphere in which the Christian life is lived. Christians are
called believers because their lives are lived in continuous faith. It is clear, then, that it must have a great part
in the receiving of salvation in its initial experience.

2. The Meaning of Faith.


Many Bible scholars believe that the Bible does not give an actual definition of faith. It is agreed,
however, that Hebrews 11:1 is probably the closest to such a definition: "Now faith is the substance of things
hoped for, the evidence of things not seen." The value of this verse as a definition of faith is more obvious
when we closely examine the use of several words. Faith is said to be the "substance". The word "substance"
comes from a word that literally means "foundation" or that which underlies our hope. 'Foundation" speaks of
that covenant relationship of mutual love between the Lord and the believer which is our ground of hope.
Faith is no blind groping in the dark, but the certain conviction, born of love and experimental relationship,
that God's revealed Word is true. Faith is more than a mere hope; it is "substance," which was, in legal
affairs, translated "title deed." He who believes divinely, in whose heart love amounts to persuasion, has a
"title deed" to God's full provision. Faith is a persuasion as it applies to the invisible. The realities of God's
kingdom are by nature invisible realities, that is, invisible to natural sight. Faith is that faculty by which the
spiritual realities are perceived as being real, and capable of being realized. He who has faith has eyes for the
spiritual. Faith is to the Christian real "evidence." He needs no other evidence in order to proceed in accord
with the revealed will of God. In classical Greek, the word we translate "evidence" often meant "proof." Faith
is a "foundation" and a "Proof."

3. The elements of faith.


Faith, like repentance, has three elements: the intellectual, the emotional and the volitional, or voluntary.
a) The intellectual element.
Faith is not a blind leap into the dark. It has been erroneously called, "A step in the dark which leads to
the light." On the contrary, faith is walking in the light - the Light of God's Word. It is utterly unsafe to take
even one step in the dark. A man could be on the edge of a deep precipice and one step would plunge him to
his doom. Faith must be based on knowledge. No one can believe in something of which he has no
knowledge. One cannot believe in a person with whom he is completely unacquainted. Believing a thing

140
without evidence is impossible. Faith that is needed for salvation is based on the very best of evidence, the
Bible, as the Word of God. "So then faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God" (Rom. 10:17).
We need to know the Gospel in order to believe on Christ as our Savior.
b) The emotional element.
This element is sometimes seen in the joy that accompanies the first realization of God's goodness in
providing for one's needs. It is illustrated by Israel's experience, as described in Psalm 106:12: "Then
believed they his words, they sang his praise." Unfortunately, the emotion of joy soon passed, for in verses
twenty-four and twenty-five we read: "They believed not his word: but murmured in their tents, and
hearkened not unto the voice of the Lord." Jesus described such, "And these are they likewise which are sown
on stony ground. who, when they have heard the word, immediately receive it with gladness; And have no
root in themselves, and so endure but for a time: afterward, when affliction or persecution ariseth for the
word's sake, immediately they are offended" (Mk. 4:16,17).
Dr. A. T. Pierson has said: "Here is the order: Fact leads. Faith with its eye on Fact following. Feeling
with its eye on Faith brings up the rear. All goes well as long as this order is observed. But the moment that
Faith turns its back on Fact and looks at Feeling the procession wabbles."
This element of faith also includes an assent of the mind to the truth received. The scribes replied to
Jesus' explanation of the greatest commandment, "Well, Master, thou hast said the truth" (Mk. 12:32,33).
Thiessen has well summarized this section as follows: "We may define the emotional element of faith as
the awakening of the soul to its personal needs and to the personal applicability of the redemption provided in
Christ, together with an immediate assent to these truths. "30
c) The voluntary element.
After knowing what God has promised, and after assenting to the truth of that promise, then faith reaches
out and appropriates what is provided. Knowledge itself is not enough. A man may have the knowledge that
Christ is Divine and yet reject Him as Savior. Knowledge affirms the reality of these things, but it neither
accepts or rejects. Nor is assent enough. There is an assent of the mind which does not convey a surrender of
the heart, and it is "with the heart man believeth unto righteousness" (Rom. 10:10). Real faith is in the realm
of the will. It appropriates. It takes. Faith always has the idea of action in it. "Faith has legs." It is the soul
leaping up to embrace the promise. "And being fully persuaded that, what he had promised, he was able also
to perform" (Rom. 4:21).
Thus, this phase of faith is comprised of two elements: (1) surrender of the heart to God and (2) the
appropriation of Christ as Savior. Proverbs 23:26 illustrates the former: "My son, give me thine heart." Also
Matthew 11:28,29: "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest. Take my
yoke upon you, and learn of me; for I am meek and lowly in heart; and ye shall find rest unto your souls."
Romans 10:9 says: "That if thou shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus." This literally translates, "If
thou shalt confess with thy mouth Jesus as Lord." It conveys the thought of surrendering to the Lordship of
Jesus over your entire life. The appropriation of Christ as Savior means to fully receive all that He has done
on Calvary for the redemption of your soul: "But as many as received him, to them gave he power to become
the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name" (Jn. 1:12).
This illustrates the important truth that salvation is receiving Jesus Christ, Himself This personal
appropriation is a vital necessity. It is not enough that Jesus has died. I must recognize that He died for me.
It is true that He died for all, but I must individually accept Him as my Savior. Water is provided for all, but I
shall die of thirst if I do not personally drink of the life-giving flow. Air is provided for all, but I must
individually breathe it if I am to survive. There must be an individual commitment of the soul to Christ, and a
personal acceptance of Him as both Savior and Lord.
A Christian family was spending an afternoon enjoying winter sports on the frozen lake near their home.
One of the girls went a little too far out on the ice and fell through into the freezing water. Clinging to the ice
on the surface, she cried for help. Her father, hearing her cry of distress, made his way gingerly out on the
still-frozen surface. Slowly crawling to the broken edge of the ice, he reached out and caught one of his

141
daughter's hands. But try as he would, he could not draw her up over the surface of the ice, as she clung with
her other hand to the edge. Finally he said to her, "Give me both of your hands." This meant that she must let
go of the firm edge of the ice and commit herself completely to her father's care, with nothing to hold on to
but him. It was only then that he was able to pull her to safety. Salvation can only be realized as we let go of
every earthly handhold and give Him both our hands in utter surrender and commitment. He alone can save.

4. The source of faith.


Although many other blessings relative to the Christian life, which are received through faith, have been
suggested in this section on Faith, we are particularly concerned here with the part faith has in the experience
of salvation, and how this saving faith is received. Many times individuals, when confronted with the Gospel,
and told that all they have to do is to believe, will reply, "But it is so hard to believe." If one is trying to
believe in his faith, or in something that he is doing, it is difficult, for neither his faith nor his works are
sufficient, and he realizes this. But faith is based on what God has done and what He has promised, not on
anything in man. Faith is simply believing God's Word. It is based entirely on the finished Work of Christ as
revealed in the Scripture. In other words it is based on God's Word. "Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing
by the word of God" (Rom. 10:17). The NIV renders this: "Consequently, faith comes from hearing the
message, and the message is heard through the word of Christ." Thus faith comes through hearing the word of
Christ. "Howbeit many of them which heard the word believed" (Acts 4:4). Nothing will produce faith more
than reading and studying the Bible, the Word of God, and thus becoming acquainted with what God has
promised. Faith is simply believing in what God has said. It is taking Him at His Word.
The Word is nigh thee, even in thy mouth, and in thy heart: that is the word of faith, which we preach;
that if thou shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thine heart that God hath raised
him from the dead, thou shalt be saved (Rom. 10:8,9). Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my
word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life (Jn. 5:24).
Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved, and thy house (Acts 16:31).
Granted, the Gospel of the Grace of God to sinful Man sounds too good to be true. But when one
considers it is planned by God, and brought about by Him, and promised by Him. it should not be difficult to
take Him at His word. This is faith!

D. Justification.
1. Definition.
Justification by faith is the foundation truth of God's provision of salvation for guilty and lost sinners. It
was the great truth which the Protestant Reformation restored to the Christian Church. It is frequently
referred to in the Scriptures, yet it is one of the most neglected and misunderstood doctrines in all evangelical
theology. It is of such a far-reaching and startling nature that many seem afraid to teach and believe the
scriptural declarations concerning it. Yet it must be understood if we are to grasp, and fully understand, the
"so great salvation" (Heb. 2:3) God has graciously and freely provided.
Regeneration and Justification are closely related doctrines. Regeneration has to do with that which takes
place in the believer's heart; Justification concerns his standing before God. Regeneration refers to the
impartation of life; Justification to his being declared righteous in the eyes of God. Regeneration is the
Divine answer to the problem of spiritual death; Justification is the Divine answer to the problem of guilt.
Justification is a legal term which pictures the sinner before the bar of God to receive condemnation for
the sins he has committed. But instead of being condemned he is judicially pronounced as not guilty, being
declared by God to be righteous. Justification has been defined as "that act of God whereby He declares
righteous him who believes on Christ." Observe it is not that the sinner is righteous, but that he is declared
righteous on the basis of his faith in the Sacrifice of the Lord Jesus Christ. "Abraham believed God, and it
was counted unto him for righteousness" (Rom. 4:3). Justification is more than forgiveness, or pardon of sins,
and the removal of guilt and condemnation. Such is negative - the putting away of sin. Justification is also

142
positive - the reckoning of, or putting to one's account, the perfect Righteousness of Christ. "But of him are
ye in Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us wisdom, and righteousness . . ." (1 Cor. 1:30). "For he hath
made him to be sin for us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him" (2 Cor.
5:21). Justification includes the sinner's deliverance from wrath, and also his acceptance as righteous in the
sight of God. In justifying the sinner, God places him in the position of a righteous man. It is as though he
had never sinned.

2. What Justification involves


Outside the city of Kingston, Ontario, Canada, some years ago, a man entered the kitchen door and began
to accost the wife of the household just as she was preparing the evening meal. She cried out to her husband,
who was in another room of the house, and he immediately came rushing to her assistance, grabbing the man
by the collar and thrusting him out the back door. In the morning, as he was going out the door, the husband
found, to his utter surprise, the intruder lying at the bottom of the steps dead. It was never determined
whether the man was killed by the force of his fall, or whether he was merely stunned and then froze to death
in the cold of the winter night. The farmer, being an honest man, immediately went into town and gave
himself up to the authorities. Several days later a hearing was held. Every bit of evidence that could be
accumulated was brought in and duly recorded by the appointed clerk of the court. After every possible
witness had been heard from, and all records fully transcribed and considered, the judge turned to the farmer
and said, "In the eyes of this court, you are justified." That meant that every shred of evidence that had been
taken down during that hearing had to be destroyed. If anyone were to go to Kingston today he could not find
one piece of evidence of that case. Every record is gone.
When God justifies the sinner, who trusts in the Saving Grace of Jesus Christ, all evidence of his sin and
guilt is completely wiped out. "In those days, and in that time, saith the Lord, the iniquity of Israel shall be
sought for, and there shall be none; and the sins of Judah, and they shall not be found: for I will pardon them
whom I reserve" (Jer. 50:20). This is a most remarkable declaration, for certainly Israel and Judah had plenty
of sins for which they were guilty. But when God forgives, He forgets. 'This is the covenant that I will make
with them after those days, saith the Lord, I will put my laws into their hearts, and in their minds will I write
them: And their sins and iniquities will I remember no more" (Heb. 10:16,17). This, in itself, is amazing, for
He is the Omniscient God. He knows all things. The only thing we are ever told that God forgets is the sins
of the one who trusts in His great Salvation. Thus God does not see believers as forgiven sinners. He sees
them, rather, as those who have never sinned.

a) Pardon or remission of sins.


"Be it known unto you therefore, men and brethren, that through this man is preached unto you the
forgiveness of sins: and by him all that believe are justified from all things, from which ye could not be
justified by the law of Moses" (Acts 13:38,39). "In whom we have redemption through his blood, the
forgiveness of sins, according to the riches of his grace" (Eph. 1:7). "And you, being dead in your sins and
the uncircumcision of your flesh, hath he quickened together with him, having forgiven you all trespasses"
(Col. 2:13). Because the believer's sins are all forgiven it follows that the guilt and punishment of those sins
is also removed.

b) Restoration to God's favor.


The sinner has not merely incurred a penalty but has also lost God's favor and is thus subject to His wrath.
"He that believeth not the Son shall not see life; but the wrath of God abideth on him" (Jn. 3:36). "For the
wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men" (Rom. 1:18).
Through Justification all this is changed. "Much more then, being now justified by his blood, we shall be
saved from wrath through him" (Rom. 5:9).

143
One of the great problems in society today has to do with the rehabilitation of those who have served time
for a crime committed. Even though he has met his debt to society, it is difficult for such a person to find his
place in the community again. He has the mark of a criminal against him, and is not easily received by those
who knew him before. This is why a large proportion of those who have been incarcerated drift back into the
company of the criminal element and very often are arrested and sentenced to another period in prison. Thank
God that His Grace is so abundant that we are received into His favor as though we had never broken His
laws.
Therefore being justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ: by whom we
have access by faith into this grace wherein we stand, and rejoice in hope of the glory of God (Rom. 5:1,2).
But after that the kindness and love of God our Savior toward man appeared, not by works of
righteousness which we had done, but according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing of regeneration,
and renewing of the Holy Ghost; which he shed on us abundantly through Jesus Christ our Savior; that being
justified by his grace, we should be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life (Ti. 3:4-7).
This restoration to favor is illustrated for us in the parable of the prodigal son: "But the father said to his
servants, Bring forth the best robe, and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet: and
bring hither the fatted calf, and kill it; and let us eat, and be merry: for this my son was dead and is alive
again; he was lost, and is found. And they began to be merry" (Lk. 15:22-24). This restoration is confirmed
by P. B. Fitzwater: "From these texts it is seen that justification is much more than remission of sins or
acquittal. The justified man is more than a discharged criminal. He is restored to the position of one who is
righteous. God treats him as though he had never sinned. "

c) Imputation of Christ's Righteousness.


Thiessen well says: "The sinner must not only be pardoned for his past sins, but also supplied with a
positive righteousness before he can have fellowship with God. This need is supplied in the imputation of the
righteousness of Christ to the believer.1132 "Even as David also describeth the blessedness of the man, unto
whom God imputeth righteousness without works, saying, Blessed are they whose iniquities are forgiven, and
whose sins are covered. Blessed is the -man to whom the Lord will not impute sin" (Rom. 4:6-8). James
Buchanan, D.D., LL.D., Divinity Professor, New College, Edinburgh, wrote an extensive book on The
Doctrine of Justification which was first published in 1867, in which he says: "Indeed Justification consists
partly in the 'non-imputation' of sin, which did belong personally to the sinner, and partly in the 'imputation'
of righteousness, of which he was utterly destitute before; and the meaning of the one may be ascertained
from the meaning of the other, while both are necessary to express the full meaning of Justification." All
fellowship with a Holy God must be on the basis of righteousness. In the first two and a half chapters of the
epistle to the Romans Paul deals with every classification of society and shows that they have no
righteousness of their own. He sums up his survey with the words: "Now we know that what things soever
the law saith, it saith to them that are under the law: that every mouth may be stopped, and all the world may
become guilty before God. Therefore by the deeds of the law there shall no flesh be justified in his sight: for
by the law is the knowledge of sin" (Rom. 3:19,20). This is a black, hopeless picture indeed! But this is not
the end of the story. Paul goes on to say: "But now the righteousness of God without the law is manifested,
being witnessed by the law and the prophets; even the righteousness of God which is by faith of Jesus Christ
unto all and upon all of them that believe" (Rom. 3:21,22). "For he hath made him to be sin for us, who knew
no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him" (2 Cor. 5:21). This verse suggests the double
imputation that is present in Justification: our sins were imputed to Christ, Who, Himself, had no sin; Christ's
Righteousness is imputed to the believer, who had none of his own. Righteousness is absolutely necessary for
fellowship with God, but man has no righteousness of his own, so God imputes to the believer the
Righteousness of Jesus Christ. How often we have heard Romans 1:16 quoted in testimonies: "For I am not
ashamed of the gospel of Christ: for it is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth." But the
testimony usually stops right there. Why is the Gospel the power of God unto salvation? Verse seventeen
supplies the

144
answer: "For therein is the righteousness of God revealed from faith to faith." Christ's Righteousness is
provided, through the Gospel, for those who will believe in Him.
A pardoned criminal is never described as a good or righteous man. But when God justifies a sinner He
declares that he is righteous in His sight. 'Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's elect? It is God that
justifieth" (Rom. 8:33). If God justified only good people then there would be no gospel for the sinner. But,
thank God, He justifies the ungodly. The righteousness which the sinner receives to his account is nothing
less than the Righteousness of Christ imputed to him. To impute means to put to the account of. Justification
by faith does not impart Christ's Righteousness to the sinner nor infuse him with it so that it becomes part of
his inner nature. That is the result of Sanctification, which we will consider later. Justification reckons to the
sinner the Righteousness of Christ, so that God sees him through the perfect Righteousness of His Son. 'This
righteousness - being the merit of a work, and not a mere quality of character - may become ours by being
imputed to us, but cannot be communicated by being infused; and must continue to belong primarily, and in
one important respect, exclusively to Him by Whom alone that work was accomplished ." But how can God
do this? How can a Holy and Righteous God, Who cannot countenance sin, declare righteous one who is born
in sin and thus is guilty both by nature and practice?

3. The method of Justification.


It is very important that we understand the method by which God justifies the sinner. Justification is the
very basis of our standing before God. It is not something that can simply be taken for granted. God cannot
merely overlook sin out of the bigness of His heart. He must preserve His own Holiness and Justice. He must
"be just, and the justifier of him which believeth in Jesus" (Rom. 3:26).
There is a definite and Divine way by which sinners can be declared righteous, and apart from this way
such a thing cannot be possible. It is a strange commentary on the sinful heart of Mankind that, deserving
eternal condemnation as he does, and being offered so great a gift as justification of his life before God, he
should complain at the Divine method. There is only one way - God's way! Let us rejoice in it, being careful
to note the details as given in God's Word.

a) Not by good works.


If there is one truth made clear in the New Testament, it is that no man is justified on the basis of his own
righteousness - his own good deeds.
For if Abraham were justified by works, he hath whereof to glory; but not before God. For what saith the
scripture? Abraham believed God, and it was counted unto him for righteousness. Now to him that worketh
is the reward not reckoned of grace, but of debt. But to him that worketh not, but believeth on him that
justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness (Rom. 4:2-5). Even so then at this present time
also there is a remnant according to the election of grace. And if by grace then it is no more of works:
otherwise grace is no more grace. But if it be of works, then it is no more grace: otherwise work is no more
work (Rom. 11:5,6). b) Not by endeavoring to keep the Law.
Now we know that what things soever the law saith, it saith to them that are under the law: that every
mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God. Therefore by the deeds of the Law
there shall no flesh be justified in his sight: for by the law is the knowledge of sin ... for all have sinned, and
come short of the glory of God (Rom. 3:19,20,23).
Knowing that a man is not justified by the works of the law, but by the faith of Jesus Christ, even we have
believed in Jesus Christ, that we might be justified by the faith of Christ, and not by the works of the law: for
by the works of the law shall no flesh be justified (Gal. 2:16).
Theoretically it would be possible to be saved by keeping the Law if one could keep it perfectly. But we
have all utterly broken God's Law in the past and are unable to keep it perfectly in the future. Paul makes it
quite plain that we are helpless in this regard: "For as many as are of the works of the law are under the curse:
for it is written, cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to

145
do them" (Gal. 3:10).
It is not that there is anything wrong with the Law itself. Paul says: "the law is holy, and the
commandment holy, and just, and good" (Rom. 7:12). The trouble is with those who cannot keep it. The
Law serves to make men realize they are sinners. "By the law is the knowledge of sin" (Rom. 3:20). The
Law is like an alarm clock which has the ability to awaken one, but it does not have the power to get him out
of bed. It is like the flight schedule of an air liner which tells you the time the plane leaves, but cannot
guarantee that you will be at the airport on time. Romans 8:3 says that the Law is "weak through the flesh."
It is sad to see those who are depending on their own good works, or sacrifices in the hope of finding
forgiveness of sin and peace with God. A missionary observed the little mother of India approaching the holy
river with a weak, emaciated child in her arms, while a strong healthy boy ran along at her side. Sometime
later he observed her returning from the place of sacrifice with only the weakling in her arms. "Mother of
India," he asked, "where is the healthy, beautiful child who was by your side?" She replied, "When we
sacrifice to our god we always give our best."
Lest there should be any misunderstanding of the teachings of Paul and James, and thus a contradiction be
imagined, note the following:
"Therefore we conclude," says Paul, "that a man is justified by faith without the deeds of the law" (Rom.
3:28).
"Ye see, then," says James, "how that by works a man is justified, and not by faith only" (Jas. 2:24).
Actually there can be no contradiction between these two men because they are both being inspired by the
same Holy Spirit. They are writing about two different aspects of one subject. Paul is telling us that salvation
is by faith alone and not by works; while James is insisting that a faith that is genuine will result in good
works. Ephesians 2:8-10 speaks of both of these aspects: "For by grace are ye saved through faith; and that
not of yourselves: it is the gift of God: not of works, lest any man should boast. For we are his workmanship,
created in Christ Jesus unto good works, which God hath before ordained that we should walk in them." Thus
the faith that saves without works will result in good works. Faith cannot be seen. It can only be judged by
what a man does. That is why James says: "Shew me thy faith without thy works, and I will shew you my
faith by my works" (Jas. 2:18). Thus Abraham's faith, which "was imputed unto him for righteousness" (Jas.
2:23), was manifested "by faith, when he had offered Isaac his son upon the altar" (Jas. 2:21). The outward
act clearly demonstrated the inner faith.

c) By the gift of God's Grace.


Justification cannot be worked for, nor merited. It is only received through God's Grace. "Being justified
freely by his grace through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus" (Rom. 3:24). "Being justified by his grace,
we might be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life" (Ti. 3:7). What is grace? The word "grace"
(Greek, charis, from which we get our word "charismatic") originally meant "beauty," or "beautiful conduct."
Later it was used to mean any favor granted to another, especially when the recipient had not merited such a
favor. The Bible writers borrowed this word and, under God's guidance, clothed it with a new significance; so
that in the New Testament it usually meant the forgiveness of sins granted entirely out of the Goodness of
God, completely apart from any merit on the part of the person forgiven. Grace blesses Man in the face of all
non-merit and positive dis-merit. Someone has said, "To feed a tramp who calls on me is unmerited favor,
but scarcely grace. But to feed a tramp who has robbed me would be grace." Grace is favor shown where
there is positive demerit.
Grace is not merely something which God expresses. It is an expression of what He is. "Grace is the
attitude on God's part that proceeds entirely from within Himself and is conditioned in no way by anything in
the objects of His favor." Dr. Henry C. Mabie is quoted as saying: 'Grace is a boon purchased for us by the
court which found us guilty." Dr. Fitzwater's own definition of Grace is: "As applied to salvation, grace
means that what the holy and righteous God demands of us was provided by himself... God in his grace is not
dealing with innocent creatures, but with sinners under righteous and just condemnation. In grace what God's

146
righteousness demands He supplies." A. W. Pink has written: "Grace is a provision for men who are so fallen
that they cannot help themselves, so corrupt that they cannot change their natures, so averse to God that they
cannot turn to Him, so blind they cannot see Him, so deaf they cannot hear Him, so dead that He Himself
must open their graves and lift them into resurrection.

d) Through the substitutionary Sacrifice of Jesus Christ.


God cannot forgive our sins just because He is gracious. As a God of justice he cannot merely overlook
our sin. His pardon is based upon the strict terms of justice. The penalty of our sins has been paid - paid for
by none other than the Lord Jesus Christ. The sins of the believer are put to the account of Christ. "Who his
own self bare our sins in his own body on the tree, that we, being dead to sins, should live unto righteousness"
(1 Pt. 2:24). "For he hath made him to be sin for us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the
righteousness of God in him" (2 Cor. 5:21). God can forgive sin because the Law has been kept and the
penalty for its breaking has been paid. Not only is the penalty of our sin paid by Christ, but His perfect
obedience to the Law provided a righteousness which God could put to our account. "For as by one man's
disobedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous" (Rom.
5:19). Thus we have the amazing situation whereby Christ takes our sin upon Himself, while his
Righteousness is bestowed upon us. What an unbelievable exchange! Yet that is exactly what God offers to
those who will believe.

e) Through faith alone.


Being justified freely by his grace through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus: whom God hath set forth
to be a propitiation through faith in his blood ... to declare, I say, at this time his righteousness: that he might
be just, and the justifier of him which believeth in Jesus (Rom. 3:24,26).
But to him that worketh not, but believeth on him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for
righteousness (Rom. 4:5).
Therefore being justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ (Rom. 5:1).
For with the heart man believeth unto righteousness (Rom. 10:10).
Knowing that a man is not justified by the works of the law, but by the faith of Jesus Christ, even we have
believed in Jesus Christ, that we might be justified by the faith in Christ, and not by the works of the law: for
by the works of the law shall no flesh be justified (Gal. 2:16).
When we declare that we are justified through faith we must realize that faith is not something that we
meritoriously offer to God for our salvation. It is only the means through which we receive His gracious
provision. We can say of faith, as we said of repentance, quoting Thiessen: 'We are not saved for our faith,
but through our faith .1139
Two further facts must be born in mind: First, The Resurrection of Christ is the guarantee of our
Justification. "Who was delivered for our offences, and was raised again for our justification" (Rom. 4:25).
The fact that God raised Jesus from the dead is a testimony that He was satisfied with the sacrifice Jesus had
made, and that our sins, which He took upon Himself, are gone. It is the Father's seal of approval upon
Christ's atoning Death. Second, Justification is complete. There are no degrees in Justification. The babe in
Jesus Christ stands in the same Justification as the believer of fifty years. There is no such thing as progress
in Justification.

E. Regeneration.
It is of the greatest importance that we fully understand what Jesus' words to Nicodemus really mean:
"Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God" Un. 3:3).
Church history clearly shows the tendency of religious organizations, once the initial revival has subsided, to
consider conversion as a ceremonial act of the church, or a voluntary act of the human will rather than as a

147
supernatural act of the Holy Spirit. In this section we shall consider the meaning and importance of what it is
to be born again. This expression is being widely used, and used in jest, in many areas where its true meaning
has no place whatsoever. Perhaps it would be well to realize that the word "again" in the above mentioned
scripture often means "from above," so that many prefer to translate the words, "Except a man be born from
above, he cannot see the kingdom of God." Merely being born a second time would not necessarily put one
on a higher plane.

1. What is the New Birth?


a) Negative.
(1) Not reformation - When you tell the average person that he must be born again he immediately
thinks you mean he must reform; he must mend his ways or turn over a new leaf The New Birth is not
reformation. Reformation, at best, is of human origin and is only outward in its effect. It cannot change the
inner man. Imagine that one has a watch with the main spring broken. If it is taken to the jeweler and he puts
on a new crystal and polishes the case, will the watch run again? Of course not. All he did was to brighten up
the outside, when the trouble is within. Man has a heart that "is deceitful above all things, and desperately
wicked" (Jer. 17:9), and he needs something which will bring about a vital transformation within his being.
(2) Not becoming religious - If you should tell the average churchgoer that he must be born again in
order to see the kingdom of God, he is not perturbed. He has always been a Christian. He belongs to a
certain church and regularly contributes to its support. He may even read his Bible every day and say his
prayers each night. He seeks to treat his neighbor as himself. What else does he need? The New Birth is not
becoming religious. We remind ourselves that when Jesus was talking about the necessity of the New Birth
he was speaking to an ultra religious man, Nicodemus, a sincere Pharisee and a member of Israel's highest
ecclesiastical court, the Sanhedrin. If anyone could get to Heaven on the basis of his religion, surely
Nicodemus could have!
(3) Not a change of heart - Though this expression is often used it is not scriptural. The New Birth is
not the changing of something in man, nor the removal of something from man, but the communication of
something to man - something which he never before possessed. The New Birth is literally the impartation of
the Divine Nature to the heart and life of the sinner, which makes him a new creation. It is brought to pass
through a personal union with Jesus Christ. "He that hath the Son hath life; and he that hath not the Son of
God hath not life" (1 Jn. 5:12). "Whereby are given unto us exceeding great and precious promises: that by
these ye might become partakers of the divine nature" (2 Pt. 1:4). When I was born the first time I received
from my parents their nature; when I was born the second time I received from God His Nature. No other
religion has such a message as this. Christianity is the only religion which professes to take a man, fallen by
nature, and regenerate him by bringing into him the life of God. No one would ever dream of saying, "He that
hath Buddha hath life."

b) Positive.
As described in the New Testament, the New Birth is:
(1) A Birth - "Whosoever believeth that Jesus is the Christ is born of God: and every one that loveth him
that begat loveth him also that is begotten of him" (1 Jn. 5:1). John 3:8 speaks of the Christian as being"born
of the Spirit." "As many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God ... which were
born ... of God" (Jn. 1:12,13).
(2) A cleansing - "According to his mercy, he saved us, by the washing of regeneration" (Ti. 3:5). This
suggests the cleansing of the soul from the defilements of the old life.
(3) A quickening - We are saved not only "by the washing of regeneration" but also by the "renewing of
the Holy Ghost" (Ti. 3:5). (See also: Col. 3:10; Rom. 12:2; Ps. 51:10.)
(4) A creation - "Therefore if any man be in Christ, he is a new creature [lit., new creation]: old things

148
are passed away; behold all things are become new" (2 Cor. 5:17). (See also: Eph. 2:10, 4:24; Gal. 6:15.)
(5) A resurrection - In describing the New Birth as a resurrection, we must realize that it is preceded by
a death. Believers have been crucified with Christ and have also been raised together with Him. Both of
these truths become a spiritual reality through identification with Christ in His death, burial and resurrection.
This is what Paul is saying:
How shall we who died to sin still live in it? Or do you not know that all of us who have been baptized
into Christ Jesus have been baptized into his death? Therefore we have been buried with him through baptism
into death, in order that as Christ was raised from the dead through the glory of the Father, so we too might
walk in newness of life. For if we have become united with him in the likeness of His death, certainly we
shall be also in the likeness of his resurrection, knowing this, that our old self was crucified with Him, that our
body of sin might be done away with, that we should no longer be slaves to sin; for he who has died is freed
from sin (Rom. 6:2-7, NASB).
This is symbolized in the ordinance of Water Baptism by immersion. As the result of this identification
with Christ in His death, burial and resurrection, Paul can say: "And you hath he quickened, who were dead in
trespasses and sins" (Eph. 2:1). He adds a further blessed dimension to this gracious identification with Christ
when he says: "Even when we were dead in sins, hath he quickened us together with Christ... and hath raised
us up together and made us sit together in heavenly places in Christ Jesus" (Eph. 2:5,6).

2. The necessity of the New Birth.


"Marvel not that I said unto you, Ye must be born again [from above]" (Jn. 3:7). These are the words of
Jesus. Yet we do marvel and wonder. Perhaps the chief question that persists in our mind is, "Why must a
man be born from above?" This is a legitimate question and it demands a forthright answer.

a) Because the kingdom of God cannot be seen without it.


Regeneration is not a mere privilege, but an absolute necessity. Jesus said, 'Except a man be born again
he cannot see the kingdom of God" Un. 3:3). It is not that God will not allow the unregenerate to see the
kingdom of God; it is an absolute impossibility. "The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of
God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned" (1
Cor. 2:14).

b) Because of the nature of man's first birth - a second birth is necessary.


We were all born of sinful parents and thus are sinners. One of the unbreakable laws of nature is that like
begets like.
Behold, I was shapen in iniquity; and in sin did my mother conceive me (Ps. 51:5).
That which is born of the flesh is flesh; and that which is born of the Spirit is spirit (Jn. 3:6).
Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these; adultery, fornication, uncleanness,
lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft, hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife, seditions, heresies, envyings,
murders, drunkenness, revellings, and such like: of which I tell you before, as I have told you in time past,
that they which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom of God (Gal. 5:19-21).
Because the carnal mind is enmity against God: for it is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed can
be ... but ye are not in the flesh, but in the spirit, if so be that the Spirit of God dwell in you. Now if any man
have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his (Rom. 8:7,9).
Flesh is flesh, and it does not matter how cultured, or even how religious it may become, it is always
flesh. The kingdom of God is spiritual and only spiritual beings can inherit it. Jesus condemned those who
rejected Him and declared, "Ye are of your father the devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do" Un. 8:44).
The widespread teaching of today is of "the universal Fatherhood of God, and brotherhood of man." The only

149
way in which God may be considered the Father of all Mankind is that He is Mankind's Creator. Otherwise,
unless a man has been born again into the family of God, he cannot claim God as his Father. It is not possible
to join the company of the saints. You have to be born into it. Flesh and spirit are two entirely different
realms and there is no way a sinner by nature can make himself a child of God. The spiritual life which is
necessary, in order that we may become sons of God, is only possible through the power of the Holy Spirit.

c) Because man would not be happy in Heaven without it.


Heaven is a place, but it is also a state or condition, and no one could possibly be happy in the presence of
the Lord, and the company of the redeemed, unless his inner nature was in harmony with God. If it were
possible for a man to enter heaven without being born again, one of the first things he would look for, after
satisfying his curiosity regarding the heavenly city, would be something to satisfy his sinful nature. If his
nature has not been transformed by the power of God he will have the same sinful desires that he possessed
before coming to Heaven. Death is not going to work a transformation equal to the Grace of God. Those who
do not enjoy the spiritual atmosphere of the presence of the Lord and the company of the saints now, will not
enjoy it later. That is why the following is such a true test of one's spiritual life: "We know that we have
passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren" (1 Jn. 3:14).

d) Because man without the New Birth is dead.


The natural man is "dead in trespasses and sins" (Eph. 2:1). He is devoid of spiritual life altogether, and
the only way in which life may be received is birth. Arthur W. Pink has well said: "Let us realize that the
sinner is not ignorant, needing instruction; he is not weak and in need of invigoration; he is not sick and in
need of doctoring. He is dead and needs to be made alive."41 The Bible says of the unregenerated: that he is
"alienated from the life of God" (Eph. 4:18); "To be carnally minded is death" (Rom. 8:6); "... you have a
name that you are alive, but you are dead" (Rv. 3: 1, NKJV); "She that liveth in pleasure is dead while she
liveth" (I Tm. 5:6). What is the difference between one who is a Christian, and one who is not? The answer
in just one word is - LIFE! One has spiritual life while the other is absolutely dead. Thus when Jesus said,
"Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God," He was not stating a theological dogma,
nor laying down a Divine edict. He was stating a simple fact - "he CANNOT see Bet alone enter into] the
kingdom of God." It is an utter impossibility. Yes, "Ye must be born again!" (Jn. 3:3)

3. How the New Birth is received.


a) Through no human effort.
Man cannot in any wise, either by any virtue or effort of his own, bring himself into the position of divine
son ship. Just as there is nothing the newly-born child does to bring about his natural birth, so there is nothing
the unregenerated can do, of himself, to bring about his spiritual birth. Eternal life is the gift of God. "Not by
works of righteousness which we have done, but according to his mercy he saved us" M. 3:5). "For by grace
are ye saved through faith; and that not of yourselves: it is the gift of God: not of works lest any man should
boast" (Eph. 2:8,9). "Which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of
God" (Jn. 1:13).
While it is certainly true that the New Birth is the gift of God, it is important that we realize that there are
certain means and agencies involved in the experience.

b) The Holy Spirit is the Agent.


That is why it is referred to as the "renewing of the Holy Ghost" (Ti. 3:5). Jesus, in John 3:5-8, refers to
our being "born of the Spirit." The Holy Spirit, coming into the heart of the believer, brings the life of God,
thus enabling him to be a partaker of the Divine Nature.

150
c) The Word of God has a vital part.
Indeed the Holy Spirit bears witness to the Word in bringing the New Birth to pass. "Of his own will
begat he us with the word of truth, that we should be a kind of firstfruits of his creatures" (Jas. 1:18). "Being
born again, not of corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the word of God, which liveth and abideth
forever" (1 Pt. 1:23). The first creation was brought about by the operation of the Word of God and the Spirit:
"And God said..."; "And the Spirit of God moved" (Gn. 1:3,2). Likewise the creation of new creatures in
Christ Jesus is brought to pass by the Word and the Spirit.

d) It is a Divine mystery.
The actual New Birth is clouded in mystery. It is a miracle of God and we cannot understand just how it
takes place. No more can we understand the mystery of natural birth. God has thrown an impenetrable veil
over the beginnings and processes of life. That I live I know, but just how I live I cannot tell. But this fact
will not hinder me from enjoying life fully. So it is with the wonder of my spiritual life.
Concerning this very question, Jesus said to Nicodemus, "The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou
hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is every one that is
born of the Spirit" (Jn. 3:8). On every stormy day people bear witness to the fact the wind is blowing, but no
one has ever seen it. All we observe are the results of the wind's fury. Thus no one can observe the
regenerating of a human soul, but we can easily bear witness to the results that are apparent in this Divine
operation. We know a little about how to bring this great experience about, but we do not know, nor need we,
how it actually takes place.

4. How the New Birth is brought about.


While we say there is nothing a man can do to regenerate himself, there is something which he must do to
obtain the regenerating work of God in his own life. The following two experiences are necessary:
a) Believing the message of the Gospel.
The sinner must believe that the Work of Christ on the Cross is sufficient for salvation. There must ever
be a close relationship between the doctrines of the Cross and Regeneration. I Peter 1:17-23 shows that it is
on the basis of the "precious blood of Christ" (v.19) one is "born again" (v.23).

b) Accepting Jesus Christ as Savior.


Salvation is an intensely personal experience. By placing our faith in all that Jesus is, and has done for
us, we receive Him as our Savior. "But as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons
of God, even to them that believe on his name" Jn. 1:12). "For ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ
Jesus" (Gal. 3:26).

5. The results of the New Birth.


a) It makes the believer a child of God.
Thus he has the privilege of calling God his Father. "After this manner therefore pray ye: Our Father.. ."
(Mt. 6:9). All the resources of the heavenly Father are now open and available to him. "If ye then, being evil,
know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your Father which is in heaven give
good things to them that ask him?" (Mt. 7:11) Being now a child of God he immediately becomes an heir of
God. "The Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God: and if children, then
heirs: heirs of God, and joint-heirs with Christ" (Rom. 8:16,17).

b) It makes the believer a new creation and a partaker of the Divine Nature, (2 Cor. 5:17; 2 Pt.
1:4).

151
Thus his whole attitude is transformed. He now loves the brethren: "Whosoever believeth that Jesus is the
Christ is born of God: and every one that loveth him that begat loveth him also that is begotten of him" (1 Jn.
5:1). "For we know that we have passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren" (1 Jn. 3:14). He
now loves God in a new and deeper way: "We love him, because he first loved us" (1 Jn. 4:19). He also has a
deep love for the Word of God: "O how I love thy law! it is my meditation all the day" (Ps. 119:97). "As
newborn babes, desire the sincere milk of the word, that ye may grow thereby" (1 Pt. 2:2). He will also have
an inborn love for even his enemies. "But I say unto you, Love your enemies, bless them that curse you, do
good to them that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use you, and persecute you; that ye may be
the children of your Father which is in heaven" (Mt. 5:44,45).

c) It enables the believer to live a life of victory over sin and the world.
'And be renewed in the spirit of your mind; And that ye put on the new man, which after God is created in
righteousness and true holiness" (Eph. 4:23,24). "If ye know that he is righteous, ye know that every one that
doeth righteousness is born of him" (1 Jn. 2:29). "Whosoever is born of God doth not commit sin; for his
seed remaineth in him: and he cannot sin, because he is born of God" (1 Jn. 3:9). The tense of the verb "doth
not commit" [hamartian ou poiei] used here makes it clear that what John is saying is that the born-again child
of God does not practice sin. He does not make it the habit of his life because he has a new nature within.

F. Adoption.
Adoption, as a doctrine, is a phase of our salvation which is seldom stressed, yet it is a great truth which
every believer should realize and appropriate. The word "adoption" is used exclusively by Paul in his
epistles. It occurs five times in his writings. Once the term is applied to Israel as a nation: "Who are
Israelites; to whom pertaineth the adoption, and the glory and the covenants, and the giving of the law, and
the service of God, and the promises" (Rom. 9:4). In another passage Paul uses it to refer to the full
culmination of our experience at the Second Coming of the Lord: 'Even we ourselves groan within ourselves,
waiting for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of our body" (Rom. 8:23). The other three references speak
of it as a present fact in the life of the Christian: "But when the fullness of the time was come, God sent forth
his Son, made of a woman, made under the law, to redeem them that were under the law, that we might
receive the adoption of sons" (Gal. 4:4,5). "Having predestinated us unto the adoption of children by Jesus
Christ to himself, according to the good pleasure of his will" (Eph. 1:5). "For we have not received the spirit
of bondage again to fear: but we have received the Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry, Abba, Father" (Rom.
8:15).

1. Definition of Adoption.
It is important to realize that the manner in which Paul uses the word "adoption" has virtually nothing in
common with the way in which it is used in our society today. According to human custom, adoption is a
means by which an outsider may become a member of a family. But this is not so in the family of God.
Thus the word "adoption" literally means "placing as a son." The believer, after becoming a child of God
through the New Birth, is immediately advanced to maturity of position, being constituted an adult son, by
this legal placing of adoption. There is therefore no childhood period in the sphere of Christian responsibility.
God addresses the same appeal to holiness and service to every Christian regardless of the length of time he
may have been saved. According to Chafer:
Whatever God says to the old and established saint, He says to every believer - including those most
recently regenerated. There should be no misunderstanding respecting the "babe in Christ," mentioned in I
Corinthians 3:1, who is a babe because of carnality and not because of immaturity of years in the Christian
life. In human experience legitimate birth and adoption never combine in the same person. There is no
occasion for a father to adopt his own child. In the realm of divine adoption, every child born of God is
adopted at the moment he is born. He is placed before God as a mature, responsible son.

152
Adoption does not mean son-making, but son-placing. Thus the child is placed as a son; the minor as an
adult. Thiessen summarizes: "In regeneration we receive a new life; in justification, a new standing; and in
adoption, a new position. " Adoption takes place the moment we are born into the family of God. It is
simultaneous with Regeneration and Justification. In the eternal councils of God, it took place when we were
"chosen in him before the foundation of the world" (Eph. 1:4,5). The full realization and enjoyment of
Adoption will be at the time of the resurrection of our bodies when the Lord returns for His own (Rom. 8:23).
Then we will be delivered from the bonds of mortality and will have a body 'like unto his glorious body"
(Phil. 3:20,21).

2. The results of Adoption.

a) The witness of the Holy Spirit.


"'Toe redeemed them that were under the law, that we might receive the adoption of sons. And because
ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, crying, Abba, Father" (Gal. 4:5,6). The
Holy Spirit bears witness to our son ship. 'The Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the
children of God" (Rom. 8:16). This will lead into a gracious fellowship with our heavenly Father. 'Ye have
received the Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry, Abba, Father" (Rom. 8:15). In keeping with this, the
believer will be enabled to "walk in the Spirit" for he will be "led by the Spirit." "For as many as are led by
the Spirit of God, they are the sons of God" (Rom. 8:14).

b) Deliverance from fear.


"For we have not received the spirit of bondage again to fear; but we have received the Spirit of adoption"
(Rom. 8:15). No longer will we be in bondage to the Law. 'Wherefore the law was our schoolmaster to bring
us to Christ, that we might be justified by faith. But after that faith is come, we are no longer under a
schoolmaster" (Gal. 3:24,25). The Holy Spirit, indwelling our spirit, makes the consciousness of Divine
acceptance so real that all fear is banished.

c) Made heirs and joint-heirs with Christ.


"And if children, then heirs; heirs of God, and joint-heirs with Christ; if so be that we suffer with him, that
we may be glorified together" (Rom. 8:17). A child may be an heir of his parents, but until he becomes of age
he cannot possess his inheritance. When he becomes of age the inheritance is his.
Now I say, that the heir, as long as he is a child, differeth nothing from a servant, though he be lord of all;
but is under tutors and governors until the time appointed of the father. Even so we, when we were children,
were in bondage under the elements of the world: but when the fullness of the time was come, God sent forth
his Son, made of a woman, made under the law, to redeem them that were under the law, that we might
receive the adoption of sons ...
Wherefore thou art no more a servant, but a son; and if a son, then an heir of God through Christ (Gal.
4:1-7).

'Too many redeemed children of the Lord do not realize their inheritance and are acting as servants rather
than sons. The elder brother complained to his father, "Lo, these many years do I serve thee ... and yet thou
never gavest a kid, that I might make merry with my friends ... and he said unto him, Son, thou art ever with
me, and all that I have is thine" (Lk. 15:29-31). Let us begin to draw on our inheritance in Christ Jesus even
now!

G. Sanctification.

153
The doctrine of Sanctification is of great importance because it has to do with the Christian's daily life.
Thus it is a most practical consideration. A wide variety of teachings have been proclaimed under this
heading. It is well to keep very close to the explicit teachings of Scripture in order not to be led into false
notions of this great subject. We need to enter into the full benefits made available to us through this
provision.

1. The meaning of Sanctification.


In the Scripture, Sanctification has both a primary and a secondary meaning. It is important that these are
kept in the proper order. The first thought that comes to most minds when this subject is mentioned, is that of
cleansing; but this is not its primary meaning.
a) The primary meaning - a dedication, consecration, or setting apart for some specific and holy use.
In the Old Testament many inanimate things were said to be sanctified. A few examples are: a house: "And
when a man shall sanctify his house to be holy unto the Lord, then the priest shall estimate it, whether it be
good or bad: as the priest shall estimate it, so shall it stand" (Lv. 27:14); a field: "And if a man shall sanctify
unto the Lord some part of a field of his possession, then thy estimation shall be according to the seed thereof:
an homer of barley seed shall be valued at fifty shekels of silver" (Lv. 27:16); the vessels of the temple:
"Moreover all the vessels, which king Ahaz in his reign did cast away in his transgression, have we prepared
and sanctified" (2 Chr. 29:19). This signifies that these vessels were set apart for the use of the worship of the
Lord. They could be used for no other purpose. Belshazzar's culminating sin, the night God destroyed him,
was that he took the vessels which had been set apart for the worship of God and drank wine from them in
worship of heathen gods (Dn. 5:3-5). The firstborn of Israel were set apart, sanctified, unto the Lord.
"Sanctify unto me the firstborn, whatsoever openeth the womb among the children of Israel, both man and
beast; it is mine" (Ex. 13:2). In the sanctification of each of these things, no thought of moral cleansing is
implied. They were simply separated to the service of the Lord. It is important for every Christian to realize
that he is a chosen vessel set apart for a very special purpose for the glory of God. In this sense he is already
sanctified.
Jeremiah was sanctified before he was born. "Before thou camest forth out of the womb I sanctified thee,
and I ordained thee a prophet unto the nations" (Jer. 1:5). This could not mean that Jeremiah was made
perfect, but rather that he was set apart, consecrated, unto the service of Jehovah. Jesus is said to have been
sanctified. John 10:36 speaks of "him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent into the world." "For their
sakes I sanctify myself," said the Lord Un. 17:19). Jesus was already Perfect, but these verses mean He was
specially set apart for the purpose of coming into the world to provide Redemption for Mankind. The popular
Greek word for "church" is ekklesia, which means "the called out ones." Each member of the Church is
especially set apart to bring glory to God. He is sanctified unto Him in this initial sense of the word.
It is like a connoisseur of fine brass who was searching through a pile of junk on the outskirts of an
eastern city, when he suddenly spied an old, battered brass pot. It was dirty, stained and beaten up, but his
practiced eye recognized a thing of value. He made his way through the junk and picked up the old pot and
set it apart by itself. In so doing, he sanctified that vessel. This is Sanctification in its initial application. Of
course he must spend many hours cleansing, straightening out the dents and polishing the old pot, until it
becomes a thing of beauty to grace his living room table. This process is Sanctification in its second
application.
b) The secondary meaning - that of cleansing and purging from moral defilement. This is a
progressive experience. Unlike Justification, which is a one-time happening only (there is no progress in
Justification), Sanctification is both a crisis and a process. Put in another way: there is, in Justification, a
positional Justification, but not a progressive aspect. There may be said to be three time-elements in
Sanctification - three distinct phases or aspects.

2. Three aspects of Sanctification.

154
a) The initial act of Sanctification: positional.
The moment a person is born again he is said to be "sanctified." 'Such were some of you: but ye are
washed, but ye are sanctified, but ye are justified in the name of the Lord Jesus, and by the Spirit of our God"
(1 Cor. 6:11). "We are bound to give thanks always to God for you, brethren beloved of the Lord, because
God hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation through sanctification of the Spirit and belief of the
truth" (2 Thes. 2:13). This is positional Sanctification. At this time the Holiness of Jesus is imputed to the
believer. He may not yet be holy in his daily living, but the Holiness of Jesus is put to his account, much like
the Righteousness of Jesus is put to the account of the believer when he is justified. Christ is made unto us
both Righteousness and Sanctification. "But of him are ye in Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us ...
righteousness, and sanctification. . ." (1 Cor. 1:30). There seems to be a difference between righteousness and
holiness. Righteousness is a legal expression and has to do with rightness. It applies to conduct - what a man
does; while holiness is related to character - what a man is.
Believers are called "saints" the moment they are saved. "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth, to
them that are sanctified in Christ Jesus, called to be saints. . ." (1 Cor. 1:2). This reads literally: "called
saints." The"to be" is in italics, signifying that these words were not in the original text, but supplied by the
translators. The Corinthian Christians were not called to be saints, they were saints. But anyone reading the
epistle of I Corinthians is well aware that this church was far from being a perfect church. In fact they are
accused of being carnal and guilty of numerous dreadful sins. But they illustrate this first aspect of
Sanctification. They were positionally holy, having the Holiness of Christ imputed to them; but they were far
from manifesting His Holiness in their practical living. In the eighth verse of chapter one, Paul speaks of
them as "blameless;" and then he proceeds, throughout the remainder of the book, to blame them for
everything. The following are also examples of Christians being called 'saints": Eph. 1:1, Col. 1:2, Jude 1.
The basis of this Sanctification is the Sacrifice of Jesus Christ on the Cross. 'By the which will we are
sanctified through the offering of the body of Jesus Christ once for all" (Heb. 10:10). "Wherefore Jesus also,
that he might sanctify the people with his own blood, suffered without the gate" (Heb. 13:12).
b) The process of Sanctification: practical.
Paul speaks of the Christians at Thessalonica as being "sanctified": "We are bound to give thanks always
to God for you, brethren beloved of the Lord, because God hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation
through sanctification of the Spirit and belief of the truth" (2 Thes. 2:13). But he also prays for their
Sanctification: "And the very God of peace sanctify you wholly; and I pray God your whole spirit and soul
and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ" (1 Thes. 5:23). He recognizes
that these Christians were sanctified, in that the Holiness of Christ was imputed to them, but now they needed
that this imputed holiness should progressively become a practical part of their daily Christian living.
A similar truth is emphasized in Colosians 3:8-12. Here the Christians are said to "have put off the old
man with his deeds;" and to "have put on the new man which is renewed in knowledge after the image of him
that created him" (vv.9,10). But in this same passage they are admonished: "But now ye also put off all these:
anger, wrath, malice, blasphemy, filthy communications out of your mouth ... Put on therefore, as the elect of
God, holy and beloved, bowels of mercies, kindness, humbleness of mind, meekness, longsuffering" (vv
8,12). What they had positionally, they must seek experientially.
Thus Sanctification is seen to be a continuing process throughout a Christian's entire lifetime. It is not
something negative. A man is not considered holy because of the things he does not do. Virtue cannot be
judged by the vices from which a person abstains. There must be a positive conformation to the Image of
Christ. This is seen as a gradual growth in, not into, grace: "But grow in grace, and in the knowledge of our
Lord and Savior Jesus Christ" (2 Pt. 3:18). "But we all, with open face beholding as in a glass the glory of the
Lord, are changed into the same image from glory to glory, even by the Spirit of the Lord" (2 Cor. 3:18). "For
whom he did foreknow, he also did predestinate to be conformed to the image of his Son, that he might be the
firstborn among many brethren" (Rom. 8:29). "Being confident of this very thing, that he which hath begun a
good work in you will perform it until the day of Jesus Christ" (Phil. 1:6).
There is no promise in the Scripture that a Christian, in this life will ever reach the place where he will no

155
longer sin. "If we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us" (1 Jn. 1:8). There
are those who teach that it is possible to have an "experience" of Sanctification, which they call a "second
work of grace." It is described in the following quotation:
The heart is purified, cleansed and made holy. It is purged of that inbred sin nature; and from that
time on, temptation comes only from without, not from within a heart that is sanctified. No one ever
becomes so completely perfected that he is not subject to temptation. But one has greater and more
glorious victory after he is sanctified because he no longer has to contend with the carnal nature. It has
been removed.

How wonderful that would be if it were true! The carnal nature, the flesh, never becomes sanctified.
"That which is born of the flesh is flesh; and that which is born of the Spirit is spirit" On. 3:6). God never
builds on the old, fleshly, sinful nature. He always begins with something new. That is why Jesus said, "Ye
must be born again" (Jn. 3:7). The flesh never becomes spiritual. Do not expect it to do so. The flesh in the
most saintly person is the same flesh that is in the worst of sinners.
Paul likens the two sons of Abraham to the two natures of the believer: the fleshly nature and the new
spiritual nature which he receives in the New Birth. "For it is written, that Abraham had two sons, the one by
a bondmaid, and the other by a freewoman. But he who was of the bondwoman was born after the flesh; but
he of the freewoman was by promise" (Gal. 4:22,23). "But as then he that was born after the flesh persecuted
him that was born after the Spirit, even so it is now" (vv.29). The flesh always opposes the Spirit. What are
we to do? "Cast out the bondwoman and her son: for the son of the bondwoman shall not be heir with the son
of the freewoman" (vv.30). Ishmael could not be corrected. He must be cast out (Gn. 21:10). This is the way
to deal with the flesh. Thus Paul admonishes: "Likewise reckon ye also yourselves to be dead indeed unto
sin, but alive unto God through Jesus Christ our Lord" (Rom. 6:11). The flesh cannot be overcome by
eradication. It will always be there as long as we are in this earthly body. Neither can it be overcome by
suppression. Some have earnestly tried to gain victory by the power of their will and the energy of the flesh.
The victory is seen to be only through identification - with Christ. Paul said, 'I am crucified with Christ;
nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in me: and the life which I now live in the flesh I live by the
faith of the Son of God, who loved me and gave himself for me" (Gal. 2:20).
The Apostle sees himself identified with Christ in His Death on the Cross. He says, as it were, "When
Christ died, I died," meaning his old fleshly nature. "I have been put to death on the cross with Christ" (Gal.
2:20, BAS). But not only was he identified with Christ in His Death, but also in His Resurrection. So he
could say, "Nevertheless I live." This is a new victorious, resurrected life. But Paul hastens to explain: "It is
no longer I who live, but Christ lives in me; and the life which I now live in the flesh I live by faith in the Son
of God, who loved me and delivered Himself up for me" (Gal. 2:20, NASB). Paul states the facts plainly
when he says: "Or do you not know that all of us who have been baptized into Christ Jesus have been baptized
into His death? Therefore we have been buried with Him through baptism into death, in order that as Christ
was raised from the dead through the glory of the Father, so we too might walk in newness of life" (Rom.
6:3,4, NASB).
The key to this whole marvelous truth is found in Romans 6:11: "Even so consider yourselves to be dead
to sin, but alive to God in Christ Jesus" (NASB). This is the practical point. Each believer is to consider
himself to be dead to sin. If he is dead to sin, then he can no longer sin. But how can one consider, or reckon,
himself to be dead to sin? He can consider it to be so because it is so. The admonition of verse eleven is
based on the fact recorded in verses six and seven: "Knowing this, that our old self was crucified with Him,
that our body of sin might be done away with, that we should no longer be slaves to sin; for he who has died
is freed from sin" (Rom. 6, NASB). There is no Bible teaching to the effect that some Christians have died to
sin and others have not. All believers have died unto sin in Christ's Sacrifice, but all have not claimed the
riches which were provided for them by that Death. They are not asked to die experimentally; they are urged
only to "reckon" themselves to be dead indeed unto sin. Note the tense of the verb: 'Our old self was crucified
with Him." This is considered to be an accomplished fact. Let us not forget that death is followed by

156
resurrection: "For if we have become united with Him in the likeness of His death, certainly we shall be also
in the likeness of His resurrection" (v.5, NASB). What triumph this suggests! Now for the final, practical,
every-day admonition: "Therefore do not let sin reign in your mortal body that you should obey its lusts, and
do not go on presenting the members of your body to sin as instruments of unrighteousness; but present
yourselves to God as those alive from the dead, and your members as instruments of righteousness to God"
(Rom. 6:12,13, NASB). This is progressive Sanctification!
It is true that the New Testament speaks of the perfectness of the child of God. "Having therefore these
promises dearly, beloved, let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness
in the fear of God" (2 Cor. 7:1). "Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect"
(Mt. 5:48). We need, however, to understand the scriptural use of this word "perfect." It has the sense of
"maturity," and implies growth in spiritual stature, not sinless perfection. Noah is said to have been "a just
[righteous] man and perfect in his generations" (Gn. 6:9). But his later drunkenness and shame shows that he
was not sinlessly perfect (Gn. 9:20-27). Nor was Job sinlessly perfect even though he is described as "that
man was perfect and upright, and one that feared God, and eschewed evil" (Jb. 1:1). He later confessed,
"Wherefore I abhor myself, and repent in dust and ashes" Jb. 42:6). Maturity depends on constant growth. A
green apple may be said to be perfect for that stage of its development, but it is not mature. So the fruit of the
Spirit (Gal. 5:22,23) may be said to be perfect in the life of the young Christian, although it has not yet come
to full maturity. Paul holds out before us that final maturity: "Till we all come in the unity of the faith, and of
the knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ"
(Eph. 4:13).
First John 3:9 has caused considerable misunderstanding: "Whosoever is born of God doth not commit
sin: for his seed remaineth in him: and he cannot sin, because he is born of God."The question is cleared up
when one notices that the verbs here are all in the present tense, and what John is saying is that he that is born
of God does not "practice" sin. It is not the usual experience of his life. Sinning is the usual life of the sinner;
it is the unusual experience of the Christian.

c) Complete and final Sanctification.


Sinless perfection and being wholly sanctified await the Coming of the Lord Jesus. At that time we will be
delivered "from the body of this flesh.' "For our conversation is in heaven; from whence also we look for the
Savior, the Lord Jesus Christ: who shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious
body, according to the working whereby he is able to subdue all things unto himself" (Phil. 3:20,21). "To the
end he may stablish your hearts unblamable in holiness before God, even our Father, at the coming of our
Lord Jesus Christ with all the saints" (1 Thes. 3:13). We have been saved from the penalty of sin; we are
being saved from the power of sin; we shall yet be saved from the presence of sin. "Beloved, now are we the
sons of God, and it doth not yet appear what we shall be: but we know that, when he shall appear, we shall be
like him; for we shall see him as he is" (1 Jn. 3:2). In the meantime we are encouraged to "grow in grace, and
in the knowledge of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ" (2 Pt. 3:18). Beholding the glory of the Lord as in a
glass, we are "changed into the same image from glory to glory, even as by the Spirit of the Lord" (2 Cor.
3:18).

3. The means of Sanctification.


As in so many phases of the Christian's experience there is both a Divine and a human side to the means
of Sanctification.

a) The Divine side - the Triune God.


(1) The Father - Jesus prayed to the Father concerning His disciples: "Sanctify them through thy truth:
thy word is truth" Jn. 17:17). Paul prayed to the Father: "And the very God of peace sanctify you wholly; and
I pray God your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of our Lord Jesus

157
Christ. Faithful is he that calleth you, who also will do it" (1 Thes. 5:23,24). The Father reckons the Holiness
of Jesus to the account of believers: "But of him are ye in Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us wisdom,
and righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption" (1 Cor. 1:30). The perfection of the believer is most
certainly an important work of the Father. "Now the God of peace, that brought again from the dead the Lord
Jesus, that great shepherd of the sheep, through the blood of the everlasting covenant, make you perfect in
every good work to do his will, working in you that which is well pleasing in his sight" (Heb. 13:20,21).
Sometimes the Father finds it necessary to use disciplinary measures to further the Christian's Sanctification.
"Furthermore we have had fathers of our flesh which corrected us, and we gave them reverence: shall we not
much rather be in subjection unto the Father of spirits and live? For they verily for a few days chastened us
after their own pleasure; but he for our profit, that we might be partakers of his holiness" (Heb. 12:9,10).
(2) The Son, the Lord Jesus Christ - through the shedding of His own precious blood. "By the which
will we are sanctified through the offering of the body of Jesus once for all" (Heb. 10:10). "Wherefore Jesus
also, that he might sanctify the people with his own blood, suffered without the gate" (Heb. 13:12).
'Husbands, love your wives, even as Christ also loved the church, and gave himself for it; that he might
sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the word, that he might present it to himself a glorious
church, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing; but that it should be holy and without blemish" (Eph.
5:25-27).
(3) The Holy Spirit - "Being sanctified by the Holy Ghost" (Rom. 15:16). "Elect according to the
foreknowledge of God the Father, through sanctification of the Spirit" (1 Pt. 1:2). The indwelling power and
anointing of the Holy Spirit is perhaps the greatest Agency to give us victory over the flesh. 'If ye live after
the flesh, ye shall die: but if ye through the Spirit do mortify the deeds of the body, ye shall live" (Rom. 8:13).
"For the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh" (Gal. 5:17). The works of the flesh
are enumerated in Galatians 5:19-21: "Adultery, fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft,
hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife, seditions, heresies, envyings, murders, drunkenness, revellings, and
such like." But in verses twenty-two and twenty-three, the characteristics of fruit of the Spirit are depicted:
'Love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance." What an amazing
contrast! How important that each Christian learn to abide in Christ, the Vine, that he may bring forth this
fruit upon the branch of his life! (Jn. 15:4,5)
What a wonderful Sanctifier the Holy Spirit is! How many have found that when they have received the
fullness of the Spirit the things of the world and of the flesh have simply dropped off? There is what has been
called 'the expulsive power of a new affection." When the Spirit fills the heart there is little relish for that
which is displeasing to the Lord. "Walk in the Spirit, and ye shall not fulfill the lusts of the flesh" (Gal. 5:16).

b) The human side - it is abundantly true that God is the One Who sanctifies the believer. No one can
do it himself Paul tells us, 'For it is God that worketh in you both to will and do of his good pleasure" (Phil.
2:13). But at the same time we are told, in a number of scripture passages, that the Christian must sanctify
himself: "Sanctify yourselves therefore, and be ye holy; for I am the Lord your God" (Lv. 20:7): "For they
could not keep it at that time, because the priests had not sanctified themselves sufficiently" (2 Chr. 30:3).
Hezekiah had discovered, in the Law, that Israel was to keep the Passover in the first month of every year.
They had not been doing so, so the king gave commandment that the feast be kept. But the priests had not
sanctified themselves sufficiently in time for the observance in the first month. So the king gave them thirty
more days in which to "sanctify themselves." "And Joshua said unto the people, Sanctify yourselves: for to
morrow the Lord will do wonders among you" (Jos. 3:5). "Having therefore these promises, dearly beloved,
let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear of God" (2
Cor. 7:1). "But in a great house there are not only vessels of gold and of silver, but also of wood and of earth;
and some to honor, and some to dishonor. If a man therefore purge himself from these, he shall be a vessel
unto honor, sanctified, and meet for the master's use, and prepared unto every good work" (2 Tm. 2:20,21).
What can a man do to "sanctify himself,""cleanse himself," and "purge himself?" He can, by employing
the means that God has put at his disposal, take advantage of the cleansing, sanctifying ministry of God in his

158
behalf. What are these means which are at his disposal?
(1) Faith - "That they may receive forgiveness of sins, and inheritance among them which have been
sanctified by faith in Me" (Acts 26:18, NASB). "And put no difference between us and them, purifying their
hearts by faith" (Acts 15:9). It is by faith that the believer lays hold of the sanctifying blood of Jesus Christ,
referred to above.
(2) Obedience to the Word - The Word of God is said to be a great medium of Sanctification: "Now ye
are clean through the word which I have spoken unto you" (Jn. 15:3); "Sanctify them through thy truth: thy
word is truth" (Jn. 17:17); "That he might sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the word"
(Eph. 5:26). "If we walk in the light, as he is in the light, we have fellowship one with another, and the blood
of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth [keeps on cleansing] us from all sin" (1 Jn. 1:7). Walking in the light is
walking according to the Word of God. "Thy word is a lamp unto my feet, and a light unto my path" (Ps.
119:105). The only way the Word of God can be a cleansing agent in our lives is through obedience. This we
must provide.
(3) Yielding to the Holy Spirit - The Holy Spirit never forces Himself upon anyone. There must be a
surrender and a yielding of our members to His anointing. How graciously He takes the Word and makes its
message plain, giving the believer the desire and the power to obey it. "Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth,
is come, he will guide you into all truth: for he shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear, that
shall he
speak: and he will shew you things to come" (Jn. 16:13).
(4) Personal commitment - In the initial experience of sanctification, which takes place at conversion,
God sets the believer apart as a chosen vessel for His use and glory. But there comes a time in the life of
every sincere follower of the Lord Jesus Christ when he, by an act of deep personal commitment, sets himself
apart for whatever service God would have him fulfill. At which time he separates himself from the things of
the world and the flesh, and dedicates himself to God's perfect will for his life. The individual has recognized
and received Jesus Christ as his Savior, but now he crowns Him as King and Lord over his life. This is a real
act of sanctification. This is what Paul is referring to when he urges: "I beseech you therefore, brethren, by
the mercies of God, that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God, which is your
reasonable service. And be not conformed to this world: but be ye transformed by the renewing of your mind,
that ye may prove what is that good, and acceptable, and perfect will of God" (Rom. 12:1,2).
The definite surrender of the life to God constitutes the supreme condition to practical Sanctification.
This involves the yielding of all our members to His will. 'Neither yield ye your members as instruments of
unrighteousness unto sin: but yield yourselves unto God, as those that are alive from the dead, and your
members as instruments of righteousness unto God" (Rom. 6:13). "I speak after the manner of men because
of the infirmity of your flesh: for as ye have yielded your members servants to uncleanness and to iniquity
unto iniquity; even so now yield your members servants to righteousness unto holiness" (Rom. 6:19). "If a
man therefore purge himself from these, he shall be a vessel unto honor, sanctified, and meet for the master's
use, and prepared unto every good work" (2 Tm. 2:21). How many times we have prayed, "Lord, purge me."
Perhaps if we would listen carefully we might hear Him say, "Purge yourself" There is much that we can do
to keep our feet out of paths that would lead to sin, and our eyes from that which would bring temptation. We
can read and study God's Word, pray and seek His face and keep ourselves in the place and company of
spiritual fellowship. If we will do all we can in this sense to sanctify ourselves, certainly God will more than
do His part. "Since God must make a man holy, if he is ever to be holy, man must yield himself to God that
He may accomplish this work in him."

H. Assurance.
The greatest necessity in life is to believe on the Lord Jesus Christ and find eternal life: "For there is none
other name under heaven given among men, whereby we must be saved" (Acts 4:12). "I am the way, the
truth, and the life: no man cometh unto the Father, but by me" (Jn. 14:6). It is equally important that, when

159
one has come to believe, he has a real and abiding assurance of having received eternal life. Many are filled
with uncertainty as to their standing before God. They think they are saved, yet lack the positive ring of
assurance. Others are afraid to be too positive on the subject, fearing perhaps to presume on the Grace of
God. As a result, their Christian life is apologetic, and lacks the reality of true fellowship with God through
Jesus Christ.
Surely God wants us to know we are saved. We believe that one of the chief reasons behind God's eternal
plan of salvation is the re-establishing of fellowship between Himself and Man. Now the foundation of
fellowship is assurance. The former is utterly impossible without the latter. How can you have fellowship
with someone when you have no confidence or understanding regarding your relationship with him? It is
imperative that we know we are saved. Everything else in the Christian life depends on this assurance.
If, as we most surely believe the Scriptures teach, salvation must be obtained in this life, and it is
impossible to receive it after having died an unbeliever, then surely there must be some means by which a
seeking soul may know when he has found this most treasured possession. If assurance is not possible, then
eternal life is but a chance.

1. Some reasons for the lack of assurance.


a) Sought through the keeping of the Law, through their own good works.
God has said, "All our righteousnesses are as filthy rags" (Is. 64:6). If this is the picture of our
righteousness, what must the Lord think of our sins? And, "All have sinned and come short of the glory of
God" (Rom. 3:23). Salvation is by grace alone. "For by grace are ye saved through faith; and that not of
yourselves: it is the gift of God: not of works lest any man should boast" (Eph. 2:8,9).
"Now we know that what things soever the law saith, it saith to them who are under the law: that every
mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God. Therefore by the deeds of the law
there shall no flesh be justified in his sight" (Rom. 3:19,20). Be it the initial experience, or in the realm of
assurance, we must ever look away from self to Christ, to what He has accomplished for us on Calvary. The
Gospel is not a question of what we do, but of what Christ has done.
b) Have not been born again.
They have substituted religious ceremony for a vital experience with God. Many have joined the church
without having experienced the miracle of grace in their hearts by the Holy Ghost. Jesus said, "Ye must be
born again," and no outward ordinance of religious ceremony will suffice.
Others have seen the folly of their sinful way and have decided to live a different kind of life. Morally
they have definitely improved themselves, but this is not the New Birth which leads to a positive, lasting
assurance of one's spiritual position.

c) Have not faced and dealt with the matter of sin in their lives.
Too many have sought salvation merely as a panacea for sorrow, disappointment or frustration. That
which must be dealt with is the guilt of a soul that has broken God's laws. Man needs to be reconciled to God,
and Jesus came to accomplish that reconciliation.
John the Baptist, introducing Jesus to the world at the beginning of His public ministry, said, "Behold the
Lamb of God which taketh away the sin of the world" Un. 1:29). Not until he knows, through accepting Jesus
Christ as his personal Savior, that his sins have been forgiven can a person have real assurance of eternal life.

d) Lack of faith in what God says in His Word.


Some are afraid to trust the promise of God. They look within themselves to discover if they feel saved
rather than to God's Word and its positive declaration. They examine their conduct to assure themselves that
they are living what they think is a Christian life. If their conduct is correct they have assurance, but if they

160
discover weaknesses and failure their assurance is gone. If God has been satisfied, and has seen fit to receive
us, it should be our joy to believe that we have been received and to rest upon His Word.

e) Thinking it is impossible to have an absolute assurance of salvation in this life.


Some tell us we cannot know until the Judgment Day. Thank God, this waiting is not necessary. The
judgment day for sin is past when one accepts Jesus as His Savior. Sin was judged on Calvary. It is all past.
"Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting
life, and shall not come into condemnation [judgment]: but is [already] passed from death unto life" Un.
5:24).

2. Positive means of assurance.


a) By the witness of the Spirit.
When a sinner is born again there comes to his heart a witness that something definite has been transacted
between him and God. That this witness within is a true, scriptural experience is borne out abundantly by the
following passages: "He that believeth on the Son of God hath the witness in himself" (1 Jn. 5:10). "The
Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God" (Rom. 8:16). "And hereby we
know that he abideth in us, by the Spirit which he hath given us" (1 Jn. 3:24). "And because ye are sons, God
hath sent forth the Spirit of His Son into your hearts, crying Abba, Father" (Gal. 4:6).
What is this "witness of the Spirit?" How does it manifest itself.? What does it feel like? It is not easy to
put into words just exactly how this witness is manifested, for it is a witness not in the flesh but in the spirit.
This is not a matter of feelings, but the witness of a new relationship. In verse fifteen of Romans eight we
read: "For ye have not received the spirit of bondage again to fear; but ye have received the Spirit of adoption,
whereby we cry, Abba, Father." The witness that is borne to us is that we are in the family of God. We are
sons of God. A new relationship has been established and there need be no mistake about it. Can you
imagine a son ever mistaking another woman for his mother? Though he may not have seen her for many
years, and she has changed with the passage of time, there is a something within which responds, and he
would be able to pick her out from among hundreds of others. There is a kinship, a witness, that would never
fail. And so, the Holy Spirit witnesses within our being when the new relationship with God becomes a
reality in our life.
Notice that it is not our relationship to God, but - far better - His relationship to us, to which the Spirit
bears witness. The blessed truth which is witnessed to our hearts is that God, the mighty Lord of glory, is our
Father.
b) By the testimony of the Word of God.
In John 3:36 we read: "He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life." That is the simple statement of
God's truth. If you believe on the Son you have eternal life. The Father says it. After all, salvation is of and
from God, and if He says I am saved, that should be enough. It is His Holiness which has been abused by my
sin, and when He is satisfied, I am too.
Notice Romans 10:9,10: "That if thou shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in
thine heart that God hath raised him from the dead, thou shalt be saved. For with the heart man believeth unto
righteousness; and with the mouth confession is made unto salvation." There are two requirements here.
There must be an outward confession of the faith which is in the heart. Notice, too, that faith is not in the
head, but in the heart. It implies a surrender to the One in Whom we believe.
Another verse, which gives positive faith to the believer, is John 5:24: "Verily, verily, I say unto you, he
that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into
condemnation; but is passed from death unto life." There are conditions to be fulfilled here; and when they are
fulfilled, the promise is sure. Note particularly the present tense: "hath everlasting life," 'is passed from death
unto life." Here is something experienced and assured right now, it is not a future blessing, but is ours now.

161
Perhaps the finest and most definite verse of all is 1 John 5:13: "These things have I written unto you that
believe on the name of the Son of God; that ye may know that ye have eternal life, and that ye may believe on
the name of the Son of God."
c) By the possession of love toward the brethren.
If one loves the children of the Lord it is a real proof that God has wrought a work of grace in his heart.
For this is the message that ye heard from the beginning, that we should love one another. Not as Cain,
who was of that wicked one, and slew his brother. And wherefore slew he him? Because his own works were
evil, and his brother's righteous. Marvel not, my brethren, if the world hate you. We know that we have
passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren. He that loveth not his brother abideth in death (1
Jn. 3:11-14).
There is a real fundamental principle behind this indication of salvation. It is brought out in the reference
made, in these verses, to Cain and his attitude toward his righteous brother Abel. Why did Cain hate, or not
love, his brother? We are told that it was: "Because his own works were evil, and his brother's righteous". In
other words, if Cain's works had been righteous he would have loved his brother Abel; but because they were
evil, the very presence of Abel convicted him and made him miserable, and of course hatred toward his
brother filled his heart. One can only love the children of the Lord when his own life has been transformed
through Jesus Christ; otherwise the life and experience of the Christian become a source of condemnation to
his soul and he does not enjoy the company, nor love the fellowship, of those who have been made clean
through Calvary This thought is clearly shown in the words of Jesus:
And this is the condemnation, that light is come into the world, and men loved darkness rather than light,
because their deeds were evil. For every one that doeth evil hateth the light, neither cometh to the light, lest
his deeds should be reproved. But he that doeth truth cometh to the light, that his deeds may be manifest, that
they are wrought in God" (Jn. 3:19-21).
Then again, love is a positive thing and is obtained only from Him Who is the source of love. If we have
that love, it proves we are in fellowship with Him. "Beloved, let us love one another; for love is of God; and
every one that loveth is born of God, and knoweth God. He that loveth not knoweth not God; for God is love"
(1 Jn. 4:7,8).

d) By the desire to obey God's commandments.


"And hereby we do know that we know him, if we keep his commandments. He that saith, I know him,
and keepeth not his commandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him. But whoso keepeth his word, in him,
verily is the love of God perfected: hereby know we that we are in him" (1 Jn. 2:3-5).
Notice the definite statements in the text: "Hereby we do know that we know him ... hereby know we that
we are in him." This is the very certainty which we desire. If we keep "his commandments," if we keep "his
word," we shall know that we know Him: the love of God will be perfected in us.
Why should obedience be a test of relationship? Is it not possible to obey God without a spiritual
transformation of our life - without being saved? What fundamental principle is at stake? Without the
transforming Grace of God, it is impossible for man to adequately obey the commands of the Lord. It is not
that it is improbable that unregenerate man will do the Will of God, it is absolutely impossible. Paul tells us
in Romans 8:7: 'The carnal mind is enmity against God: for it is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed
can be." The simple fact is that it is not possible for the carnal man to keep the Law of God.
There are several reasons why this is so. In the first place, man, in himself, does not have the power to
keep the commands of the Lord. The Israelites of old, at the giving of the Law, in all good faith said, "All the
words which the Lord hath said will we do" (Ex. 24:3). However, they overestimated their ability, for it was
not but forty days before they had broken the most important of these commands and were worshiping a
golden image made from their very own trinkets. Man just cannot do the Will of God of his own power. If
the unsaved should set out to obey the commands of God he would soon come face to face with I John 3:23:
"And this is his commandment, That we should believe on the name of his Son Jesus Christ." If he refused to

162
do that he would not be obeying the commands of God. So it is either a case of surrendering in saving faith to
Jesus or admitting that one cannot be subject to the Will of God.
Another reason why the carnal man cannot do the Will of God is that the commandments of the Lord are
spiritual. There are spiritual principles behind everything God asks us to do, and to these the natural man is
utterly blind. "The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto
him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned" (1 Cor. 2:14). Thus he fails to
appreciate the Will of God and consequently cannot obey it.
Then, the unsaved is not one who is uninformed concerning the things of God and who only needs to be
instructed in order to accept, and live in harmony with, God's every desire. The unsaved man is depraved by
nature. He has within him a rebellious spirit which says, as Pharaoh, 'Who is the Lord that I should obey
him?" Before an unregenerate man even wants to do the Will of God, there must be a change of his nature - a
positive transformation.
If this natural, sinful man suddenly finds that he delights in the Law of the Lord, and desires to do that
which is pleasing to God, he can rightly believe that he has become a partaker of the Divine Nature.
Going a step further, we read in John 14:23: "If any man love me, he will keep my words." The
manifestation of love will be obedience. The converse is equally true, that the basis of obedience is love. "He
that hath my commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me" (Jn. 14:21). Thus, when a Christian
delights to do the Will of God, there is a positive evidence that he loves the Lord. As the text at the beginning
of this section says: "in him, verily is the love of God perfected" (I Jn. 2:5).
Such a one finds that "His commandments are not grievous," and he can say, "I delight to do thy will, O
God." So we conclude that "He that keepeth his commandments dwelleth in him, and he in him" (1 Jn. 3:24).

e) The transformation of life and desires.


"If any man be in Christ, he is a new creature: old things are passed away; behold all things are become
new" (2 Cor. 5:17). It is difficult to explain how the process takes place, but, we know when it happens.
"The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh,
and whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the Spirit" Jn. 3:8).
A man knows the wind is blowing, not because he sees the wind, but because he sees the result of the
wind. So it is with the Spirit in Regeneration. We cannot see Him perform His wondrous work of
regeneration, but we can see the result of it, and we know salvation has come by the glorious transformation
of life and desires. What are some of these indications that show salvation has come?
(1) Repentance - a real turning from sin. Repentance is as much a work of the Spirit of God in the
human heart as the final inflow of the Saving Grace which transforms the life of the sinner. Certainly all the
believing in the world will not bring assurance without a real turning from sin, and man needs God's help to
do that.
If one is willing to forsake sin and truly repent, he can know the reality and everlasting assurance of God's
Salvation. "If ye know that he is righteous, ye know that every one that doeth righteousness is born of him"
(1 Jn. 2:29).
(2) Peace - the redeemed soul can rightly expect a deep settled peace in his soul. "Therefore being
justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ.. ." (Rom. 5:1). Man was made for
God. There was placed within his being a spiritual faculty that is capable of communion with God. As long
as sin separates and Man is estranged from God, he can expect no real and lasting peace in his soul. "The
wicked are like the troubled sea, when it cannot rest, whose waters cast up mire and dirt. There is no peace,
saith my God, to the wicked" (Is. 57:20,21). But what an inexplicable peace comes the moment the burden of
sin is rolled away - a "peace that passeth all understanding" (Phil. 4:7). The enmity of our rebellious heart is
gone, and we have become reconciled to God through our Lord Jesus Christ. (See Rom. 5:1,11,21; 6:11,23)
(3) Power - a new power to resist and overcome sin. When the guilt and condemnation of sin are gone,

163
the bondage to the habits of sin will also go, and in its place will be a new power and joy in righteousness.
For the first time, the soul will realize it is free. The sinner supposes that he is free, because he can indulge in
whatever he desires; the fact is, he so indulges because he cannot resist temptation. He is bound, and must
submit. The Christian, on the other hand, is free. He is free to say, "No!" to that which is unprofitable, and
free to choose that which he knows is right and pleasing to God.
(4) Fear of death removed - the fear of death will be completely removed, and an anticipation of seeing
the Savior in glory will fill its place. The question of sin has been settled. Judgment and condemnation are
passed, and to be absent from the body is now "to be present with the Lord." Earth is now the dressing room
for Heaven, and eternal life has begun.
For we know if our earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, an house
not made with hands, eternal in the heavens. For in this we groan, earnestly desiring to be clothed upon with
our house which is from heaven: if so be that being clothed we shall not be found naked. For we that are in
this tabernacle do groan, being burdened: not for that we would be unclothed, but clothed upon, that mortality
might be swallowed up of life (2 Cor. 5:1-4).

3. What will such an absence of doubt, such a positive assurance, mean to the Christian?
a) It will stabilize his entire Christian experience.
Whenever there is doubt and uncertainty there is instability. Until we realize that our experience is
founded on that which is certain and unchanging, we will be like the man in the parable who built his house
on the shifting sand. Emotional exultation and self-centered evidence make poor foundations for eternal life,
but once one gains an assurance of salvation based on God's Word and His Eternal Work, it is as rock under
the pillars of the soul and one can build well, and build eternally.
A positive knowledge and assurance of salvation will stabilize the Christian in the hours of temptation.
When others might look back, and turn back, he will be kept by Divine power. Without a settled surety, the
blessing of the Christian life will fluctuate with every passing circumstance, but the sure knowledge of an
eternal relationship with God will anchor all both sure and firm. Hear the words of Hebrews 6:17-20:
Wherein God, willing more abundantly to shew unto the heirs of promise the immutability of his counsel,
confirmed it with an oath: that by two immutable things, in which it was impossible for God to lie, we might
have a strong consolation, who have fled for refuge to lay hold upon the hope set before us: which hope we
have as an anchor of the soul, both sure and steadfast, and which entereth into that within the veil; whither the
forerunner is for us entered, even Jesus, made an high priest for ever after the order of Melchizedek.

b) It will enable him to enjoy a positive life of prayer, giving faith that will appropriate the promises
of God.
The prayer that accomplishes things in the kingdom, is founded on relationship to God. Jesus said,
"When ye pray, say Our Father," thus introducing us to a gracious place of assurance within the family of
God.

c) It will give him power over Satan.


The success of a conflict depends so much upon the ground upon which it is fought. If the Devil can
cause the Christian to forsake the "high tower" of the name of Jesus and to do battle in his own strength, that
arch-enemy of righteousness is sure to win a victory; for if he can even cause a doubt in the midst of the fray,
he knows he has the upper hand. But let that same Christian insist that his life is "hid away with Christ in
God," and steadfastly refuse to meet the tempter apart from his relationship to the Mighty Conqueror, and the
Devil will be a defeated foe. There is a conflict of faith, wherein the Christian must boldly claim his position
in Christ and refuse to take a backward step when the enemy assails. To do this, he must be sure of his
relationship to God.

164
d) It will give power to his testimony and his influence over others.
There are enough uncertainties in the world today. Religion has already offered too many vague and vain
philosophies. Men are looking for something positive and real. They want a Christ who meets their needs, a
Christ who can reveal Himself to them and make them know His presence in their lives, a Christ who can
save and cause one to know he has been redeemed.
The Church today needs the rallying call of men and women who are sold out to God, who know whereon
they stand, and who are not afraid to go ahead for God. Who knows how many about us in a world of sin are
only waiting for that sincere and urgent call, from those who know that salvation is real, to cause them to
forsake the ranks of sin and yield themselves to Jesus Christ?
The first essential and irreplaceable fact that must ring in every heart with an undoubted assurance is this -
you must know that you have been born again. All else springs from this glorious knowledge. Here is the
beginning of eternity: "For I know whom I have believed, and am persuaded that he is able to keep that which
I have committed unto him against that day" (2 Tm. 1:12).

I. The Security of the Believer.


1. The Problem.
If there is one heart-rending fact in our nation today, it is the multitude of men and women, all about us,
who have once served the Lord in the church, professed a vital experience of salvation, given evidence of
having received the Baptism with the Holy Spirit - many even having preached the Word of God - who today
never darken the door of the church, nor make any pretense of serving the God Whom they once professed to
love with all their hearts.
The more one contemplates the situation, the more he is convinced that we must be in that time the
Apostle Paul referred to when he wrote: "That day shall not come, except there be a falling away first, and
that man of sin be revealed, the son of perdition" (2 Thes. 2:3). This is not reserved to what we like to refer to
as "the old line denominations."
Maybe this can be dismissed by saying these were never really saved
in the first place; or by believing that some day, even in the last moment of life, they will repent and
return to the Lord. That these statements are true of many, we do not doubt. But, we cannot blithely dismiss
the whole matter in so simple a way. One great preacher, who believed strongly in unconditional eternal
security, admitted this vast group of former witnesses to Christ, and he invented a virtual purgatory where
they might be punished and purged from their backslidings before being admitted to the eternal reward of the
saints.

2. Assurance possible.
Note carefully that this subject is not being dealt with under the topic, 'The Insecurity of the Believer," but
rather, 'The Security of the Believer." Above all else in our Christian life, we must have a positive assurance
of our salvation. It is certainly God's will that men be saved and that they know it. Every spiritual
experience, every conflict with the enemy, every prayer that is uttered, every promise that is pleaded, is based
on an assurance of one's position in Christ. Whenever a Christian endeavors to do anything for God he must
be able to stand on the firm foundation of the positive assurance that he is His child. He can have this
assurance now! "Our gospel came not unto you in word only, but also in power, and in the Holy Ghost, and
in much assurance" (1 Thes. 1:5).

3. Two sides to the subject.


This subject constitutes an age-old battle ground. The controversy has been waged for years, and there

165
have been those who have gone to extremes on both sides of this question. Friends have parted. Churches
have split. Denominations have started. Whole schools of theology have been formulated. There is only one
way to settle the disagreement - by the Word of God. The only thing wrong with that statement is that both
sides say exactly the same thing. The Calvinist brings a long list of proof texts, each asserting that salvation
is an eternal work and once wrought in an individual heart it can never be undone. But the Arminianist comes
along with an equally long list of scriptures that prove the very opposite. "O, but," the Securityist says, "you
interpret those wrongly;" and the Non-securityist says, "So do you."
The fact that this difference has continued for so many hundreds of years, and that so many good men are
on each side of the question, proves that there must be scripture and good reasoning for both positions. There
is no easy, simple way of proving one side right and the other wrong - or else it would have been done long
ago. The BIBLE must be the answer. But the Bible must be interpreted by the Bible. The conclusion that
must be reached is that there is truth in both positions, but to carry either to the extreme is either to destroy the
believer's sense of assurance and security, or to comfort the apostate in his apostasy. There are two sides to
every theological question. This is because every doctrine has to do with God and Man.
Salvation - and every spiritual blessing - comes from God. But it has to do with Man, and because of the
manner in which God has made him as a free moral agent, he has a part to play in every spiritual transaction.
Had God made him a mere automaton, without a will or mind of his own, this would not be. But it is so.
Therefore, in every theological matter there is God's side and Man's. This simple fact helps us understand
why it is possible to list two arrays of scripture. They seem to contradict each other, but in reality they do not.
One has to do with what God promises to do. The other has to do with what Man must do. Actually they do
not contradict, but compliment each other,

4. The balance of Scripture.


Note these blessed promises of the keeping power of God: 'And I give unto them eternal life; and they
shall never perish, neither shall any man pluck them out of my hand, My Father which gave them to me, is
greater than all, and no man is able to pluck them out of my Father's hand. I and my Father are one" Un.
10:28-30). 'For I am persuaded, that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor
things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us
from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord" (Rom. 8:38,39).
These glorious promises must not be minimized, but they must be understood in proper relation to such
passages as:
Let no man say when he is tempted, I am tempted of God: for God cannot be tempted with evil, neither
tempteth he any man: But every man is tempted, when he is drawn away of his own lust, and enticed. Then
when lust hath conceived, it bringeth forth sin: and sin, when it is finished, bringeth forth death (Jas. 1:13-15).
For it is impossible for those who were once enlightened, and have tasted of the heavenly gift, and were
made partakers of the Holy Ghost, and have tasted of the good word of God, and the powers of the world to
come, if they fall away, to renew them again unto repentance; seeing they crucify to themselves the Son of
God afresh, and put him to an open shame. For the earth which drinketh in the rain that cometh oft upon it,
and bringeth forth herbs meet for them by whom it is dressed, receiveth blessing from God: but that which
bringeth thorns and briars is rejected, and is nigh unto cursing: whose end is to be burned (Heb. 6:4-8).
One of the basic rules of hermeneutics is that the obvious meaning of a passage is probably closest to the
true meaning. One can hardly read verses four and five of this passage without believing that these
expressions are describing one who has experienced salvation.
While this passage warns of the danger of turning away from Christ, it must not be used to teach that
there is no hope for one who falls away. The Scriptures make it clear that if one who has turned away from
Christ, that is rejected Christ, will humble himself and return to faith in Christ, there is forgiveness.
Do ye think that the scripture saith in vain, The spirit that dwelleth in us lusteth to envy? But he giveth
more grace. Wherefore he saith, God resisteth the proud, but giveth grace unto the humble. Submit

166
yourselves therefore to God ... Draw nigh to God, and he will draw nigh to you. Cleanse your hands, ye
sinners; and purify your hearts, ye double minded. Be afflicted, and mourn, and weep: let your laughter be
turned to mourning, and your joy to heaviness. Humble yourselves in the sight of the Lord, and he shall lift
you up (Jas. 4:5-10).
Take heed, brethren, lest there be in any of you an evil heart of unbelief, in departing from the living God.
But exhort one another daily, while it is called To day; lest any of you be hardened through the deceitfulness
of sin. For we are made partakers of Christ, if we hold the beginning of our confidence steadfast unto the end.
While it is said, Th day if ye will hear his voice, harden not your hearts, as in the provocation. For some,
when they had heard, did provoke: howbeit not all that came out of Egypt by Moses. But with whom was he
grieved forty years? was it not with them that had sinned, whose carcases fell in the wilderness? And to
whom sware he that they should not enter into his rest, but to them that believed not? So we see that they
could not enter in because of unbelief (Heb, 3:12-19).
Brethren, if any of you do err from the truth, and one convert him; Let him know, that he which
converteth the sinner from the error of his way shall save a soul from death, and shall hide a multitude of sins
(Jas. 5:19,20).

May I remind you that this last passage was written to Christians (see Jas. 1:2). To say that they were
Jews is beside the point, for in Christ there is neither Jew nor Greek. This speaks of a Christian who sins, but
if one "convert him" (lit., turns him back from his sin) he 'shall save a soul from death." It is possible then for
the soul, not merely the body, of a Christian to die. Note also 1 John 5:16: "If any man see his brother sin a
sin which is not unto death, he shall ask, and he shall be given life for them that sin not unto death. There is a
sin unto death: I do not say that he shall pray for it.,,
The Christian is distinctly told: "work out your own salvation with fear and trembling" (Phil. 2:12). But
the Scripture hastens to add: 'for it is God that worketh in you both to will and to do of His good pleasure"
(v.13). God put two great principles here in these verses, and the Bible says: "What God hath joined together,
let not man put asunder." The Bible presents and enforces both truths and it never tones down the emphasis of
one for fear of clashing with the other. In this very connection, Alexander McLaren says: "The short cord of
my plummet does not quite go down to the bottom of the bottomless, and I do not profess to either understand

God, or to understand man, both of which I should want to do before I understand the mystery of their
conjoint action.1146 Here we have this positive setting forth of both of these lines of truth - what God says,
He will do; and what He says, we must do. 'Work out your own salvation ... for it is God that worketh in you"
(Phil. 2:12).
It certainly is not God's Will that any of His children should be lost. We are also assured that He is able
to keep them from falling. But these things are not automatic. God does not save a man against his will, nor
does He keep him against his will. Just as faith and repentance are necessary for salvation, so they are
necessary for the continuance of that salvation in the Christian's life. The scriptural condition for salvation is
believing. 'He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life" (Jn. 3:36). 'He that believeth on him is not
condemned: but he that believeth not is condemned already, because he hath not believed in the name of the
only begotten Son of God" Un. 3:18). "Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth
on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation; but is passed from death
unto life" Un. 5:24). "Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me hath everlasting life" Un. 6:47).
It is important to note that the word "everlasting" (lit., eternal) in these last two verses is not an adverb but an
adjective. It is the life that is eternal, not one's possession of it. The word "believe" in these, and other
passages (see Jn. 3:16; Jn. 6:40) is in the present tense, and means "to believe and to continue to believe." It is
the continuous or progressive present tense and implies not only an initial act of faith, but a maintained
attitude. Assurance of security, therefore, is for the believing ones. The elect "are kept by the power of God
through faith" (1 Pt. 1:5). Moody calls attention to the literal translation of John 10:28, and says:

167
Not for one moment do I doubt this literal translation: "My sheep keep on hearing my voice, and I keep
on knowing them, and they keep on following me: and I keep on giving them eternal life, and they shall never
perish, and no one shall snatch them out of my hand." Some read the passage as if it says: "My sheep heard
my voice, and I knew them, and they followed me, and I gave to them eternal life." The verbs are present
linear, indicating continuous action by the sheep and by the Shepherd, not the punctiliar fallacy of the past
tense.

There is no promise in the Bible that God will keep the man who willfully turns away from the provisions
of salvation which Christ has made. In fact, we are plainly told: "If we sin willfully after that we have
received the knowledge of the truth, there remaineth no more sacrifice for sins, but a certain fearful looking
for of judgment and fiery indignation" (Heb. 10:26,27). These verses describe an apostate who willfully turns
away from, or rejects, Christ. "He that despised Moses' law died without mercy under [at the testimony of]
two or three witnesses: of how much sorer punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy, who hath
trodden under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he was sanctified,
an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the Spirit of grace" (Heb. 10:28,29). Such a one who turns from
Christ most certainly has no hope, because he willfully turns from the only source of forgiveness and
cleansing.

5. Scriptural warnings.
The Word of God contains enough warning to preclude any thought of presuming on the Grace of God.
Followers of Christ are exhorted to "watch and pray, that ye enter not into temptation" (Mt. 26:41); to
"beware lest ye also, being led away with the error of the wicked, fall from your own steadfastness" (2 Pt.
3:17); to "give diligence to make your calling and election sure" (2 Pt. 1:10); to hold "faith, and a good
conscience" in order to avoid shipwreck (1 Tm. 1:19); to "be careful to maintain good works" (Ti. 3:8); to
"stand fast in the Lord" (Phil. 4:1).
The Christian is warned of mortal danger: through salt losing its savior (Lk. 14:34,35); through failing to
abide in Christ (Jn. 15:6); in being moved away from the hope of the Gospel (Col. 1:23); in erring from the
faith (1 Tm. 6:10); in being taken captive by the Devil (2 Tm. 2:24-26); in neglecting so great salvation (Heb.
2:3); in departing from the living God (Heb. 3:12); in being hardened through the deceitfulness of sin (Heb.
3:13); in wilfully sinning (Heb. 10:26-31); in erring from the truth (Jas. 5:19,20); in being overcome by the
world (2 Pt. 2:20-22); and in leaving one's first love (Rv. 2:4,5).

6. The believer's responsibility.


However, in recognizing the possibility of the union with Christ being broken, we must not think of
returning to a legalistic position where we are kept by our own efforts. A Christian can no more keep himself
in the power of the flesh than he can save himself by this means. We are 'kept by the power of God through
faith unto salvation" (1 Pt. 1:5). Our part is to believe Him; His part is to keep us. The believer's
responsibility is to continually take advantage of the means of grace which God has provided for His children.
He cannot keep himself, but the Christian must submit himself to the mighty keeping power of God within
him. The only way he can work out his own salvation is as God works within him (Phil. 2:12,13). The
believer's part is to constantly feed on God's Word, to yield to the ministry of the Holy Spirit and to maintain
unbroken fellowship with God through prayer. Through faith, and obedience, and yieldedness to His Will, he
avails himself of all God's Grace has supplied. We are not saved because of our faith and obedience, nor are
we kept saved by these. But it is faith and obedience that keeps us in fellowship with Christ Who is faithful to
keep that which we have committed unto Him. "For I know whom I have believed, and am persuaded that he
is able to keep that which I have committed unto him against that day" (2 Tm. 1:12).
If the follower of Christ will do these things he is eternally secure. If through flagrant unbelief,
unconfessed, willful sinning or apostasy, he does not abide in Christ he has no promise that he will be kept.

168
Nowhere in the Scripture are we given license to presume against God's Grace. We have a High Priest Who
is "touched with the feeling of our infirmities" (Heb. 4:15), and Who "is able also to save them [us] to the
uttermost that come unto God through Him, seeing He ever liveth to make intercession for them [us]." (Heb.
7:25). But we are enjoined to "draw near with a true heart in full assurance of faith," and to "hold fast the
profession of our faith without wavering" (Heb. 10:22,23). Maintaining our salvation is not a neat balancing
act that we must perform as we endeavor to walk a narrow path with a deep chasm on either side. There is a
chasm, to be sure; but by faith, obedience and faithful communion with our Lord we are privileged to walk
farther and farther from it as we make our way up the headlands toward the city of God.

7. An illustration.

169
Some years ago a great jet airliner was coming through a storm tossed and buffeted with the elements.
Finally, when the troubled area was passed, a little lady passenger sighed with great relief and settled
down to rest with the words, "Well, we made it." She had done her part. Little did she think, or possibly
even know, of the planning behind that great ship: the years of experience with past models, the
thousands of hours skilled technicians had spent over the drawing boards, the almost endless tests in the
wind tunnels with every conceivable kind of model, the thousands of men who had labored on all the
component parts of that great ship, the skill and precision with which it was put together with every stress
minutely calculated. She did not consider the experience of the pilot and his crew, with perhaps a million
or more miles of successful flight behind them. She must be filled with worry and apprehension. She
must do something. Settle down, little lady. Your security does not lie in your fear and concern. It rests
in the great ship and her skillful crew.
So the eternal destiny of our souls! When the storms of temptation, doubt and fear would buffet the ship
of your experience, do not forget the loving faithfulness of your heavenly Father, V&o, before the world was,
laid the foundation of your salvation. Do not forget all the Divine skill, labor, and sacrifice that have gone
into it. Remember the Pilot has taken many a soul through storms worse than you will ever have to endure.
He experienced all these tempests Himself. "For it became Him, for whom are all things, and by whom are all
things, in bringing many sons into glory, to make the captain of their salvation perfect through sufferings...
that he might be a merciful and faithful high priest" (Heb. 2:10-17). He made it! And He is able to help all
who trust in Him.
Only, do not forsake the ship. Do not get out and trust your parachute, or endeavor to fly your flimsy
plane through the storm. Stay in the ship of His Salvation. Fasten the seat belt of His promises a little tighter.
Cheer your heart with worship and praise to Him who is at the controls. Keep close to Jesus. Remember His
Faithfulness - "Being confident of this very thing, that he which hath begun a good work in you will perform
it until the day of Jesus Christ" (Phil. 1:6). Keep close to Him and you will touch down with the softest, most
perfect landing on the shore of eternity. Keep close to Jesus!

170
Chapter Six
THE DOCTRINE OF THE HOLY SPIRIT
Pneumatology

Introduction
I. The Work of the Holy Spirit
A. In relation to the world in general
B. In relation to Jesus Christ
C. In relation to the Christian believer
II. The Ministry of the Holy Spirit as the Comforter
A. He is our Teacher - "The Spirit of truth
B. He is our Reminder
C. He is the Revealer of Jesus
D. He is the Reprover and Convicter of the world
III. The Fruit of the Spirit
A. The contrast between the works of the flesh and the Fruit of the Spirit
B. The secrets of fruitbearing
C. What does it mean to abide in Christ?
D. The difference between the Gifts of the Spirit and the Fruit of the Spirit
E. The relationship between the Gifts of the Spirit and the Fruit of the Spirit
F Detailed characteristics of the Fruit of the Spirit
IV. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit
A. The name of the experience
B. What the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is
C. The purpose and necessity of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit
D. For whom is the Baptism with the Holy Spirit?
E. Conditions for obtaining the Baptism with the Holy Spirit
F. How to receive the Baptism with the Holy Spirit
G. The manner in which the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is received
H. The evidence and results of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit
I. Additional fillings with the Holy Spirit
V. Offences against the Holy Spirit
A. Offences committed by the unbeliever
B. Offences committed by a believer
VI. The Gifts of the Spirit
A. The background for spiritual gifts
B. The vocabulary of spiritual gifts
C. The purpose of spiritual gifts
D. The gifts enumerated in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve
E. Special instructions on the gifts of tongues and prophecy
F. The gifts listed in Romans chapter twelve
G. The ministry gifts inscribed in Ephesians chapter four .
H. Other probable spiritual gifts
I. Gifts for special abilities
J. The relationship between the Gifts and the Fruit of the Spirit

171
The Doctrine of the Holy Spirit
Pneumatology

INTRODUCTION
Under the study of the doctrine of Theology, the subject of the Trinity of the Godhead has already been
covered. Reference was made to the Third Person of the Trinity, the Holy Spirit. The previous study covered
His Personality, His Deity, His Names and His Symbols. In our present section we will enter more minutely
into a consideration of the ministry of the Holy Spirit as the outworking of these characteristics which have
been covered. We plan to study the Work of the Holy Spirit, the Ministry of the Holy Spirit as the Comforter,
the Fruit of the Spirit, the Baptism with the Holy Spirit, Offenses against the Holy Spirit and the Gifts of the
Spirit.

I. THE WORK OF THE HOLY SPIRIT


One of the first thoughts which must impress itself upon us as we pursue this study, is the diversified
ministry that is attributed to the Spirit. Let us put out of our minds completely the impression that the Holy
Spirit did not come into the world until the Day of Pentecost, described in Acts chapter two, for it will be
noted that the Spirit has been active in every dispensation, and has been present wherever God has been
revealed.
It is not always possible, nor is it necessary to minutely distinguish the work of the Spirit from that of the
Father and the Son. God is One and the inter-relationship between the various activities of each Person of the
Godhead is so close that we cannot always discern one from the other. In many of His activities God works
through the Son, in the power of the Spirit. As a general principle it might be said that all the Divine
workings originate with the Father, are carried out by the Son, and are brought to fruition by the Holy Spirit.
We shall study the works of the Holy Spirit as they relate to (1) the Physical Universe, (2) the Unsaved, (3)
the Lord Jesus Christ, and (4) the Christian Believer.

A. In Relation to the World in General.


1. With regard to the material universe.
a) The Holy Spirit as an Agent in Creation. Each Person in the Godhead is represented as having
created all things: The Father - "God, ... hath in these last days spoken unto us by his Son,. . . by whom also
he made the worlds.. ." (Heb. 1:1,2); The Son - "all things were made by him; and without him was not any
thing made that was made" (Jn. 1:3), "for by him were all things created, that are in heaven, and that are in
earth, visible and invisible, whether they be thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or powers: all things were
created by him, and for him. . ." (Col. 1:16); the Holy Spirit - "Thou sendest forth thy Spirit, they are created:
and thou renewest the face of the earth" (Ps. 104:30), "the Spirit of God hath made me, and the breath of the
Almighty hath given me life" (Jb. 33:4). These various passages are not to be thought of as contradictory, but
rather a setting forth of the principle which prevails throughout the Bible, that all three Persons of the Trinity
work together for the accomplishing of the Divine Will. In fact, the opening statement of the Bible - "In the
beginning God created the heaven and the earth' suggests that the entire Trinity was active; for the word
"God" is the Hebrew Elohim, which is a uni-plural word indicating more than one personality.
b) Three specific acts of creation. In the account of Creation, as given in Genesis 1:1-27, the Hebrew
word bara which means "to create" or "make out of nothing," is used but three times. At other times God is
said to have "made" certain things, which would imply using something which was already in existence.
These three occasions represent the three great distinctive kingdoms: the heavens and the earth (1:1), animal
life (1:21), and human life (1:26,27). Evolutionists try to tell us that each kingdom is the result of the gradual
development of a lower kingdom, but God's Word emphasizes that a new kingdom was made possible only by
a special act of creation. It is interesting to our present study to notice that the Holy Spirit is said to have been

172
active in the creation of each of these three kingdoms:
(1) The heavens and the earth - Gn. 1:2; Jb. 26:13; Ps. 33:6
(2) animal life - Ps. 104:30; definitely referring to all the creatures mentioned in the previous verses in
this Psalm: 11, 12,14,17,18,20,21,25,26
(3) human life - Jb. 33:4

2. With regard to humanity as a whole.


a) The Holy Spirit witnesses to the Redeeming Work of Christ. God's plan for, and method of,
salvation is borne witness to by the Holy Spirit. None would know it better than the Holy Spirit. The God of
our fathers raised up Jesus, whom ye slew and hanged on a tree. Him hath God exalted with his right hand to
be a Prince and a Savior, for to give repentance to Israel, and forgiveness of sins. And we are his witnesses of
these things; and so is also the Holy Ghost, whom God has given to them that obey him (Acts 5:30-32).
b) The Holy Spirit convicts the world of sin, righteousness and judgment. "And when he is come,
he will reprove the world of sin, and of righteousness, and of judgment.. ." (Jn. 16:8). The word "reprove' is
variously translated in different versions as: convince, convict, expose and rebuke. Someone has stated:
"These three things are the most difficult to impress on any man, for he can always attempt to justify himself
by asserting an excusable motive for evil actions, or by pleading a relative scale of ethical standards in the
place of absolute righteousness, or by assuming that judgment is indefinitely deferred so that it is no real
threat." (The authors are indebted to the unknown source of this quote.)
(1) "Of sin, because they believe not on me" (v. 9) - Here is something which is impossible for Man to
accomplish. No one can produce conviction in the heart of another. Only the Holy Spirit can overcome the
blindness and deceitfulness of the sinful, human heart and make a man realize the greatness of his own
iniquity. Notice the particular sin of which the Holy Spirit will convict. It is not the sin of stealing,
drunkenness or adultery. Conscience will convict a man that such things are wrong, but the Holy Spirit
convicts of a sin of which conscience would never convict him - the sin of unbelief - ". . . of sin because they
believe not on me..." (Jn. 16:9). Unbelief of Jesus Christ is the greatest of all sins, for it causes the rejection
of God's only means of forgiveness, and thus brings all the condemnation of one's every sin upon the one who
fails to appropriate Christ's salvation through faith. As George Smeaton has so aptly worded it:
The sin of unbelief is here described, with all the enormous guilt attached to it, as a rejection of the
proposal of reconciliation, as the chief and the supreme sin, because a sin against the remedy, - as sinful in
itself, and as preventing the remission of all other sins ... all other sins, original and actual, with all their guilt,
are remissible through faith in Christ. But this sin involves the rejection of the graciously provided remedy;
and final unbelief has nothing to interpose between the sinner and righteous condemnation ... The sin of
unbelief is here described as if it were the only sin, because, according to the happy remark of Augustine,
while it continues, all other sins are retained, and when it departs all other sins are remitted.
(2) "Of righteousness, because I go to my Father, and ye see me no more" (v.10) - The righteousness
of which the Spirit convicts is not any human righteousness, but Christ's Righteousness. The Righteousness
of Christ is attested to by the fact that He was raised from the dead and has ascended to the Father. Had He
been an imposter, as the religious world insisted when they cast Him out, the Father would not have received
Him. The fact that the Father did exalt Him to His own right hand demonstrates that He is completely
innocent of the charges laid against Him. Moreover, it proves that He had paid the full price for the believer's
sins which had been laid upon Him. Again, Smeaton declares:
To convince the world of righteousness, must mean that the Spirit gives convincing evidence, not merely
that His cause was good, and that He is innocent, but that in Him is found the righteousness which the world
needs, the imputed righteousness which was graciously provided for us and becomes ours by faith.
His returning to the Father gave evidence that He had fully completed the task for which He was sent into
the world - that of providing righteousness for those who would believe on Him.

173
(3) "Of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged" (v.11) The world stands guilty for
refusing to believe in Christ; its condemnation is acclaimed by the righteousness of Christ exhibited in His
going to the Father; therefore, nothing awaits it but judgment. The greatest demonstration of judgment is that
the prince of this world is judged. "Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the prince of this world be
cast out" (Jn. 12:31). If Christ would judge the prince of this world, then all who follow him will likewise be
judged.
It is important for every Christian to realize how this convicting ministry of the Spirit is to be
accomplished. The Holy Spirit does not operate in this capacity through the atmosphere, as it were. He
ministers through Spirit-filled believers. Jesus said, "If I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you;
but if I depart, I will send him unto you. And when he is come [unto you], he will reprove the world of sin,
and of righteousness, and of judgment . . ." (Jn. 16:7-8). This emphasizes the importance of each believer
living a Spirit-filled life.

B. In Relation to Jesus Christ.


Probably the most profound statement of all time is found in the first four words with which our Bible
begins: "In the beginning God." No explanation is given. No attempt is made to account for His Being.
Simply this greatest of all revelations is given. Only as God has chosen to reveal Himself can we ever hope to
have any insight whatever concerning Himself. This God has done, particularly in the Person of His Son.
"God, who at sundry times and in divers manners spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in
these last days spoken unto us by [lit., "in"] his Son" (Heb. 1:1,2). Jesus could say, "He that hath seen me
hath seen the Father" (Jn. 14:9), for the Son was the "brightness of his glory, and the express image of his
person" (Heb. 1:3). But then we have a further revelation of the Son by the Holy Spirit. Jesus said of the
Spirit, "He shall glorify me: for he shall receive of mine, and shall shew it unto you. All things that the Father
hath are mine: therefore said I, that he shall receive of mine, and shall shew it unto you" (Jn. 16:14,15). Thus
we see the progressive revelation: The Father revealed by the Son and the Son revealed by the Spirit. G.
Campbell Morgan speaks of Jesus being the Revelation of the Father and the Holy Spirit as the Interpretation
of the Revelation .3
It will be most profitable, then, to study the closeness of the ministry of the Holy Spirit to the Person and
Ministry of the Lord Jesus, especially as He took upon Himself the lowliness of our human nature. In
studying the work of the Holy Spirit in the life of Christ, we recognize that the Holy Spirit has little, if
anything, to do with the Deity of Christ. That was not necessary, for it was perfect and had always been so.
But He had much to do with Christ's human nature. Attention will be called to the work of the Holy Spirit in
(1) Christ's Person; (2) Christ's earthly ministry; (3) Concerning Christ's Death and Resurrection; and (4)
Christ's ministry to the Church today.

1. Concerning Christ's Person.


a) He was sent into the world by the Holy Spirit, along with the Father.
". . . And now the Lord God, and his Spirit, hath sent me. Thus saith the Lord, thy Redeemer, the Holy
One of Israel . . ." (Is. 48:16,17). Christ did not have His beginning in Bethlehem. He existed from all
eternity; thus, it could be said that He Who already existed was sent into the world.
b) He was conceived, or begotten, by the Holy Spirit. We have this fact confirmed in three passages
of Scripture: "And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the
power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be
called the Son of God" (Lk. 1:35); ". . . When as his mother Mary was espoused to Joseph, before they came
together, she was found with child of the Holy Ghost" (Mt. 1:18); ". . . The angel of the Lord appeared unto
him in a dream, saying, Joseph, thou son of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife: for that which is
conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost" (Mt. 1:20).
In the conception of Jesus Christ, it was not a new being who was called into life, (as in all other cases of

174
human birth), but One Who had existed eternally, and Who, by His conception, now entered into vital
relationship with human nature. When Christ was conceived it was not the conception of a human personality
but of a human nature. There is only one Personality in Jesus Christ, namely the Eternal One, Who was and is
the Son of God.
c) His reception in the Temple was arranged by the Holy Spirit. And, behold, there was a man in
Jerusalem, whose name was Simeon; and the same man was just and devout, waiting for the consolation of
Israel: and the Holy Ghost was upon him. And it was revealed unto him by the Holy Ghost, that he should
not see death, before he had seen the Lord's Christ. And he came by the Spirit into the temple: and when the
parents brought in the child Jesus, to do for him after the custom of the law, then took he him up in his arms,
and blessed God, and said, "Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace, according to thy word: for
mine eyes have seen thy salvation. . ." (Lk. 2:25-30).
This is a remarkable passage in relation to the ministry of the Holy Spirit, as He witnessed to Simeon and
then arranged the fulfillment of His prophecy to that old saint.
d) His growth is attributed to the Holy Spirit. The Bible attributes the physical, the intellectual, and
the spiritual growth of Jesus to the Holy Spirit. "And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, filled with
wisdom: and the grace of God was upon him" (Lk. 2:40). Also in Luke 2:52 we are told: "And Jesus
increased in wisdom and stature, and in favor with God and man." Jesus was not created an adult as Adam.
He grew and developed as any other child grows, except He did not possess any of the detriments of a sinful
nature. His development was rapid and beautiful; so that, at the age of twelve, the rabbis in the temple were
astonished as they listened to Him. But this was due to an operation of the Holy Spirit within Him. Listen to
Isaiah: "And there shall come forth a rod out of the stem of Jesse, and a Branch shall grow out of his roots:
and the spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him, the spirit of wisdom and understanding, the spirit of counsel and
might, the spirit of knowledge and of the fear of the Lord. .." (Is. 11:1,2). Christ's Godhood could not grow
one whit, in any sense; it was perfect and complete. But His humanity did develop and increase in its
abilities. Palmer states: "Nor was this due to the fact that the man Jesus was inseparably connected with the
Divine Person, so that as a man He had omniscience. For that would destroy the true humanity of Jesus ."
e) He was led by the Holy Spirit into the wilderness to be tempted by the Devil. "Then was Jesus
led of the spirit into the wilderness to be tempted of the devil" (Mt. 4:1). "And immediately the spirit driveth
him into the wilderness. And he was there in the wilderness forty days, tempted of Satan. . . " (Mk. 1: 12,13).
Palmer comments that Luke: ... uses a verbal tense, the imperfect, that indicates not a momentary act, but a
period of time. The clear indication, therefore, is that the Holy Ghost not only led Christ into the wilderness,
but that all the time Christ was there the Holy Spirit was with Him, guiding and helping Him overcome the
temptations. And after they were all over, Luke says that He "returned in the power of the Spirit" (4:14). In
other words, that whole period of temptation from beginning to end was under the control of the Holy Spirit,
and it was by means of the Spirit that Jesus' human nature was given the strength to overcome the severe
temptations placed before Him. He did not have victory because His divine nature infused divine qualities
into His human nature, enabling Him to resist. No, for then He no longer would have been a man. Instead,
being complete man, He relied upon the indwelling Spirit for the ability to resist evil.
Note carefully that Jesus was not cornered by the Devil. He was led out or as Mark says, "driven" - by
the Spirit to meet the enemy. This is instructive to believers today. It strongly teaches that the Christian is
not necessarily out of the will of God when he is being subjected to personal testing. Also, that he may have
the same victory, for he has the same Holy Spirit abiding within.

2. Concerning Christ's earthly ministry.


Jesus was indeed very God, but when He came into this world it seems that He subjected Himself to the
Father in such a way that His ministry was through the direction and power of the Holy Spirit. Note the
following examples of the Spirit's activity in Christ's ministry:
a) The Holy Spirit anointed Jesus with power for His ministry. "And Jesus, when he was baptized,

175
went up straightway out of the water: and, lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he saw the Spirit of
God descending like a dove, and lighting upon him: and lo a voice from heaven, saying, This is my beloved
Son, in whom I am well pleased" (Mt. 3:16,17).
b) This bestowal of the Holy Spirit upon Him was for the purpose of officially equipping Him for
His public ministry.
(1) His preaching ministry - It was not until after this that we read of Him teaching and preaching (Lk.
5:14,15; Mt. 4:17). "The Spirit of the Lord is upon me; because he hath anointed me to preach the gospel to
the poor. . . " (Lk. 4:18). It is customary to think that the gracious words which proceeded out of His mouth
were the result of His own inherent greatness, but Jesus attributes them to the anointing of the Spirit.
(2) His healing ministry - "How God anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Ghost and with power:
who went about ... healing all that were oppressed of the devil; for God was with him" (Acts 10:38). Indeed,
it was as the result of the power given Him by the Holy Spirit that He was able to perform miracles.
(3) His casting out devils - In Matthew 12:28 Jesus attributes His ability to cast out demons to the Holy
Spirit: "But if I cast out devils by the Spirit of God. . ." The Pharisees accused Jesus of casting out demons by
Beelzebub the prince of demons. Jesus showed them the foolishness of Satan casting out himself. He made
very plain His source of power for this ministry. In Acts 10:38 we read: "How God anointed Jesus of
Nazareth with the Holy Ghost and with power: who went about doing good, and healing all that were
oppressed of the devil; for God was with him." Jesus was conscious of this anointing as, in the synagogue at
Nazareth, He read from Isaiah 61:1: "The Spirit of the Lord is upon me; because he hath anointed me..." (Lk.
4:18).

3. Concerning Christ's Death and Resurrection.


a) He was enabled by the Holy Spirit to offer the necessary sacrifice for sins. "How much more
shall the blood of Christ, who through the eternal Spirit offered himself without spot to God, purge your
conscience from dead works to serve the living God?" (Heb. 9:14). It was not enough that Jesus suffer and
die for our sins, He must do so in the proper manner. As Abraham Kuyper expresses it:
Christ did not redeem us by His sufferings alone, being spit upon, scourged, crowned with thorns,
crucified and slain; but this passion was made effectual to our redemption by His love and voluntary
obedience. Hence, there was in Christ's sufferings much more than mere passive, penal satisfaction. Nobody
compelled Jesus. He, partaker of the divine nature, could not be compelled, but offered himself quite
voluntarily: "Lo, I come to do thy will, O God: in the volume of the book it is written of me."
And Edwin Palmer explains:
God always demands a proper relationship between the heart and the overt act. He is not pleased
with mere external conformation to His will, but there must be a corresponding attitude of the soul. He
does not look only on the lips that say, "Lord, Lord," or the cups that are clean on the outside, but He
demands an attitude of perfect love toward Him. If Jesus had gone to the cross unwillingly, sullenly,
grudgingly, stoically; and not willingly, with a perfect, ardent zeal, and with faith toward the Father, no
atonement could have been made .

Hebrews 9:14, quoted above, indicates that the perfection of Christ's Sacrifice, the proper, obedient,
loving attitude was made possible by the Holy Spirit. "Who through the eternal Spirit offered himself without
spot to God." Without the enabling of the Holy Spirit, the man Jesus could never have done this. The Spirit
enabled Him to offer a perfect sacrifice in the attitude that was acceptable to God. Undoubtedly, the Holy
Spirit graciously empowered and sustained Him during the sufferings, both physical and spiritual, of that
awful sacrifice!
b) He was raised from the dead by the Holy Spirit. Romans 8:11 speaks of "the Spirit of him that
raised up Jesus from the dead." Sometimes the Resurrection of Jesus is attributed to the Father. Acts 2:24,

176
speaking of Jesus, says: "Whom God raised up." At other times it is said to be the work of the Son Himself.
In John 10:17,18, we hear Jesus saying, ". . . I lay down my life, that I might take it again. No man taketh it
from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again." But
also, in a special way, the Resurrection is the work of the Holy Spirit.

4. Concerning Christ's ministry to the Church.


a) Christ gave commandments to His Apostles through the HolySpirit. Acts 1:1,2 speaks of ". . . all
that Jesus began both to do and teach, until the day in which he was taken up, after that he through the Holy
Ghost had given commandments unto the apostles whom he had chosen . . ." The Holy Spirit is so vitally
connected with the ministry of the servants of the Lord that it seems quite fitting that it should have been He
Who inspired the Lord Jesus to give commandments to the disciples as they were being sent forth. As the
Spirit guides each Christian today in the service of the Lord, it is blessed to realize that it is the voice of Jesus
still speaking to them. In other words, the same Savior Who commanded those first disciples through the
Holy Spirit, is guiding and directing the endeavors of His servants today through the same blessed Holy
Spirit. The Church is not dependent upon the bodily presence of the Lord in order to be led by Him. Such
leading is accomplished by the Holy Spirit.
b) Christ is the Bestower of the Holy Spirit. In Peter's Day of Pentecost sermon, explaining the
outpouring of the Spirit which astounded everyone in Jerusalem, he said concerning Jesus: "Therefore being
by the right hand of God exalted, and having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Ghost, he hath
shed forth this, which ye now see and hear" (Acts 2:33). This was the fulfillment of the promise of the Lord
to His disciples, "But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father. . ." (Jn.
15:26). Perhaps the most important thing which Jesus has done for His followers, after having purchased
Redemption by His Death and Resurrection, is to baptize them with the Holy Spirit. John the Baptist, moved
by the Holy Spirit, in speaking of that which would characterize the coming of Jesus, said, ". . . he shall
baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire. . ." (Mt. 3:11). So vitally was the Spirit present in all the
ministry of the Savior, it is no wonder He was anxious that those who were to carry on His work would
likewise be empowered by the same mighty Spirit. It is indeed wonderful that believers today have this same
great privilege! How else could His work be accomplished? This is true New Testament ministry, and Jesus
is our great example. This is what Jesus indicated when He said, ". . . He that believeth on me, the works that
I do shall he do also; and greater works than these shall he do; because I go unto my Father" (Jn. 14:12).

C. In Relation to the Christian Believer.


We have briefly seen the revelation of the Father through the Son, and then the further revelation of the
Son through the Holy Spirit. It now is our task to observe the manner in which the Father and the Son are
revealed in and through those who are believers in Christ in the world today. This is a further ministry of the
Holy Spirit. We shall consider this phase of our subject under four headings: (1) The Spirit's work in
salvation, (2) The Spirit's work subsequent to salvation, (3) The Spirit's work in connection with the believer's
ministry and service; and (4) The Spirit's work in relation to resurrection.

1. The Spirit's work in salvation.


a) The believer is born again of the Holy Spirit. The subject of the New Birth is covered in the
section of this book under Regeneration. (See Ch. 5, The Doctrine of Salvation.) We emphasize here the fact
that this experience is wrought through the Holy Spirit. Jesus said to Nicodemus, 'Except a man be born of
water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. That which is born of the flesh is flesh; and
that which is born of the Spirit is spirit" Un. 3:5,6). When one is born naturally, natural life is imparted. In
some very definite degree, Adam lost spiritual life when he sinned. Many believe he lost the indwelling
presence of the Holy Spirit. God had warned that death would follow disobedience to His Word (Gn. 2:17)
and, as a result of his sin, Adam was left in spiritual darkness. Myer Pearlman points out the result of this

177
darkness, or lack of the Holy Spirit, in unregenerated man ever since:
In relation to understanding, the unconverted cannot know the things of the Spirit of God (1 Cor.
2:14); in relation to the will, he cannot be subject to the law of God (Rom. 8:7); in relation to worship, he
cannot call Jesus Lord (1 Cor. 12:3); as regards practice, he cannot please God (Rom. 8:8); in regard to
character, he cannot bear spiritual fruit (John 15:4); in regards to faith, he cannot receive the spirit of truth
(John 14:17).8

This new spiritual life is imparted to the believer through the indwelling Holy Spirit, which is the mark of
a New Testament Christian. "But ye are not in the flesh, but in the Spirit, if so be that the Spirit of God dwell
in you. Now if any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his" (Rom. 8:9). Again, Pearlman states:
"One of the most comprehensive definitions of a Christian is that he is a man in whom the Holy Spirit dwells.
His body is a temple of the Holy Ghost, in virtue of which experience he is sanctified as the Tabernacle was
consecrated by Jehovah's indwelling."9 "What? know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost
which is in you, which ye have of God, and ye are not your own?" (1 Cor. 6:19).
This is not to be confused with the Baptism with the Holy Spirit, which is an outpouring of the Spirit
subsequent to salvation, and is not the impartation of spiritual life, but rather power for spiritual service.
b) The Holy Spirit bears witness to the believer's sonship. "He that believeth on the Son of God hath
the witness in himself. . . " (1 Jn. 5:10) "The Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the
children of God . . . " (Rom. 8:16). "And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into
your hearts, crying, Abba, Father" (Gal. 4:6). It is important to notice that in each of these verses it is the
Spirit who takes the initiative. He is the One Who bears the witness within the heart of the believer. This is
not just an inner feeling. It is a Divine witness of a new relationship brought about by the Holy Spirit; and
when it is accomplished, He is the One Who testifies to its reality.
c) The Holy Spirit baptizes the believer into the Body of Christ. "For as the body is one, and hath
many members, and all the members of that one body, being many, are one body: so also is Christ. For by
one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free . . ."
(1 Cor. 12:12,13). Much confusion has arisen over this verse because some have taught that it is referring to
the Baptism with the Spirit which the one hundred and twenty received on the Day of Pentecost. Thus, it is
claimed that all receive the Baptism with the Holy Spirit when they are saved. There is a vital difference
between the Holy Spirit baptizing believers into the Body of Christ, an operation of the Holy Spirit, and being
Baptized with the Holy Ghost which is an operation of Jesus. John the Baptist said, "I indeed have baptized
you with water: but he [referring to Christ] shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost" (Mk. 1:8).
The baptism spoken of in I Corinthians 12:13 is conducted by the Holy Spirit, and has to do with the
believer's position in Christ; while the baptism spoken of by John in Mark 1:8 is conducted by Jesus Christ,
and has to do with power for service. In the first of these two baptisms - that into the Body of Christ - the
Holy Spirit is the agent while the Body of Christ, the Church, is the medium. In the second, Christ is the
agent and the Holy Spirit is the medium.
The verse in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve, teaches that every believer is made a member of the Body of
Christ - the Church - through an operation of the Holy Spirit which is called a baptism. First Corinthians
10:1,2 states: "Moreover, brethren, I would not that ye should be ignorant, how that our fathers were under the
cloud, and all passed through the sea; and were all baptized unto Moses in the cloud and in the sea.. ."
Christian believers are baptized "unto Christ". Baptism signifies death, burial and resurrection. The sinner is
said to be baptized into the Body of Christ because by faith he takes the place of dying with Christ on
Calvary, and rising in newness of life in union with Christ. Water baptism is an outward symbol of that
which is actually accomplished by the Holy Ghost.
d) The Holy Spirit seals the believer. "In whom ye also trusted, after that ye heard the word of truth,
the gospel of your salvation: in whom also after that ye believed, ye were sealed with that holy Spirit of
promise, which is the earnest of our inheritance until the redemption of the purchased possession . . ." (Eph.

178
1:13,14). "And grieve not the holy Spirit of God, whereby ye are sealed unto the day of redemption" (Eph.
4:30). The sealing of the believer brings out the thought of ownership. When we are saved, God places His
seal of ownership upon us. It was common, in Paul's day, for a merchant to go down to the harbor and select
certain pieces of timber bearing his mark or seal. The seal of God's ownership of His saints is the presence of
the Holy Spirit indwelling their hearts. This is an earnest or pledge that they are His, until the day when He
shall return to take them unto Himself. "Nevertheless the foundation of God standeth sure, having this seal,
the Lord knoweth them that are his" (2 Tm. 2:19a).

2. The Holy Spirit's work subsequent to salvation.


We have studied the important part which the Holy Spirit plays in the salvation of a soul, and have
realized that without this ministry no one could ever become a child of God. However, after the human heart
has been regenerated by the Spirit of God and the life of Christ has been imparted, the Holy Spirit does not
leave. Were it so, the new Christian would soon slip back into his former ways; but the Holy Spirit has a
continuing ministry which He seeks to perform for every believer, and which is indeed the secret of his
strength and progress in his new spiritual life. We shall emphasize here that the Holy Spirit continues to be
the active agent in the progressive walk of the child of God.
a) The believer is sanctified by the Holy Spirit. The subject of Sanctification is fully dealt with under
the study of Soteriology, so it will simply be pointed out here that the Holy Spirit has an integral part in this
phase of the Christian's development. "But we are bound to give thanks always to God for you, brethren
beloved of the Lord, because God hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation through sanctification of
the Spirit, and belief of the truth: (2 Thes. 2:13) (See also 1 Pt. 1:2). In the fuller treatment of the subject of
Sanctification, to which we have referred, the two phases of sanctification are pointed out: being set apart for
the Lord, and the continual cleansing which is needed. These two passages just quoted emphasize what we
might call the progress of salvation. It is through the choosing of the Father, the setting apart or sanctifying of
the Holy Spirit, the sprinkling of the blood of Jesus Christ, and belief in the truth of the Word of God. The
world, the flesh and the Devil are ever present in the Christian's daily walk. Just as a sinner cannot save
himself, so a believer cannot keep himself, apart from the daily strength which the Holy Spirit imparts. The
Christian can expect to enjoy this gracious ministry of the Spirit as he believes God's Word and yields to the
Holy Spirit.
b) The believer is enabled to mortify the flesh through the Holy Spirit. For they that are after the
flesh do mind the things of the flesh; but they that are after the Spirit the things of the Spirit. For to be
carnally minded is death; but to be spiritually minded is life and peace ... But ye are not in the flesh, but in the
Spirit, if so be that the Spirit of God dwell in you ... And if Christ be in you the body is dead because of sin;
but the Spirit is life because of righteousness ... Therefore, brethren, we are debtors, not to the flesh, to live
after the flesh. For if ye live after the flesh, ye shall die: but if ye through the Spirit do mortify the deeds of
the body, ye shall live (Rom. 8:5-13).
The word "carnal" means "fleshly," and Paul tells us it is impossible to do the will of God with the carnal
mind: ". . . for it is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed can be. So then they that are in the flesh
cannot please God" (Rom. 8:7,8). It is the Holy Spirit Who enables us to mortify make dead - the flesh, and
live victoriously in the Spirit. We mortify the deeds of the flesh by reckoning the old man crucified with
Christ (Rom. 6:11), and then by choosing to walk under the guidance and power of the indwelling Holy Spirit.
c) The Holy Spirit transforms the believer into the image of Christ. This thought also has to do with
the sanctifying influence of the Holy Spirit in transforming the nature of the child of God. "But we all, with
open face beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord, are changed into the same image from glory to glory
even as by the Spirit of the Lord" (2 Cor. 3:18). Weymouth translates this verse: "But all of us, as with
unveiled faces we mirror the glory of the Lord, are transformed into the same likeness, from glory to glory,
even as derived from the Lord the Spirit."
Paul has been speaking of the fact that Christians are epistles of Christ, ". . . written not with ink, but by
the Spirit of the living God; not in tables of stone, but in fleshy tables of the heart" (2 Cor. 3:3). He changes

179
the figure in the eighteenth verse and likens the Christian to a mirror, reflecting the image of the glory of the
Lord. Moses' face shone as he came down from communing with God on Mt. Sinai (2 Cor. 3:7), and he had
to put a veil on his face so that the people could look upon him, because the glory of the Lord was so brilliant.
Our faces, says Paul, are not veiled but open, as we reflect the glory of Christ Jesus. The wonderful thing
that takes place, though, is that while we are reflecting the glory of the Lord, so that others can see it,
something is taking place within our lives. We are being changed (the word is literally "transformed") by the
operation of the Holy Spirit into the same image of Christ which we are endeavoring to reflect. If we will
keep in focus with Jesus, the impress of His image is going to be implanted upon our own lives through the
inner ministry of the Holy Spirit.
d) The Holy Spirit strengthens the believer for greater revelations of Christ. That he would grant
you, according to the riches of his glory, to be strengthened with might by his Spirit in the inner man; [for
what purpose?] that Christ may dwell in your hearts by faith; that ye, being rooted and grounded in love, may
be able to comprehend with all saints what is the breadth, and length, and depth, and height; and to know the
love of Christ, which passeth knowledge, that ye might be filled with all the fulness of God (Eph. 3:16-19).
What Jesus must have had in mind when He said, concerning the Comforter, "He shall glorify me" (Jn. 16:14)
is expressed in the above quoted verses. Who but the Spirit of God could make us able to comprehend such
gracious revelations of the Person and Nature of our wonderful Lord? This ministry of revelation, which the
Holy Spirit exercises upon the renewed mind of the believer, is for the purpose of bringing him to the place
where he can "be filled with all the fulness of God" (Eph. 3:19). It is as He reveals these things that the
believer sees the desirability of having them, and then faith and desire reach out to possess them.
e) The Holy Spirit leads the sons of God. "For as many as are led by the Spirit of God, they are the
sons of God" (Rom. 8:14). "But if ye be led of the Spirit, ye are not under the law" (Gal. 5:18). "He will
guide you," Jesus said of the Holy Spirit (Jn. 16:13). One of the greatest privileges of the children of the Lord
is to be led by the omniscient, unerring guidance of the Holy Spirit. We are going a way which we have
never gone before. We are passing through unfriendly territory with enemies on every hand. What a blessing
to have One, Who knows all that lies ahead, as our Guide.
The Holy Spirit is a Person, and His guiding makes life a personally conducted tour. Not only does He
lead the sons of God, the Holy Spirit enables and empowers each one to walk in the path of His choosing.
f) The Holy Spirit performs the office of the Comforter. In four great passages of Scripture, in the
Gospel of John, Jesus tells of the Holy Spirit as the Comforter. These are: 14:16-18; 14:26; 15:26; and 16:7-
15. Because these will be discussed in considerable detail in a future section, they will not be expounded
here. (See 11. The Ministry of the Holy Spirit as the Comforter.)
g) The Holy Spirit brings forth fruit in the believer's life. The subject of the fruit of the Spirit will be
dealt with in detail in a later section. (See III. The Fruit of the Spirit.) The following scriptures are most
pertinent: Gal. 5:22; Rom. 14:17; 15:13; 1 Tm. 4:12; 2 Tm. 3:10; 2 Cor. 6:6; Eph. 5:8,9; 2 Tm. 2:24,25; 2 Pt.
1:5-7.

3. The Holy Spirit's work in connection with ministry or service.


Thus far we have considered the ministry of the Holy Spirit with regard to the imparting and developing
of spiritual life within the individual Christian. But the Spirit has a great part in enduing the believer for a life
of ministry and service in the work of the kingdom of God. Spiritual ministry and service are always pictured
in the Scriptures as being accomplished by the power of the Holy Spirit rather than through human abilities: ".
. . This is the word of the Lord unto Zerubbabel, saying, Not by might, nor by power, but by my spirit, saith
the Lord of hosts" (Zec. 4:6).
a) The Holy Spirit baptizes and infills believers, giving power for service. The familiar words of the
Great Commission, as expressed in Mark 16:15, "Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every
creature," are followed, as stated in Luke 24:49, by the further command from the Lord, ". . . but tarry ye in
the city of Jerusalem until ye be endued with power from on high." This baptism with the Holy Ghost and fire

180
(Lk. 3:16), and the peculiar anointing of power that would come as a result, was to be a new phase in the work
of the Holy Spirit. Jesus had promised, "And behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you: but tarry ye
in the city of Jerusalem, until ye be endued with power from on high" (Lk. 24:49). Again, just before His
Ascension, He had enlarged upon this promise by telling the disciples, "Ye shall receive power, after that the
Holy Ghost is come upon you: and ye shall be witnesses unto me both in Jerusalem, and in all Judea, and in
Samaria, and unto the uttermost part of the earth" (Acts 1:8).
This mighty ministry of the Holy Spirit must not be confused with His other activities in relation to the
children of the Lord. The Baptism with the Holy Ghost is distinct from, and subsequent to, His regenerating
work in the hearts of the unsaved. This baptism is especially that men might have the necessary spiritual
power to carry on the ministry which has been committed to them. In a later section we will study the entire
subject of the Baptism with the Holy Ghost. (See IV. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit.)
b) The Holy Spirit reveals and gives understanding of the Word of God. The chief tool which the
Christian worker needs and uses, is the written Word of God - the Bible. Here is contained God's complete
revelation to Man, pointing to the means of salvation and giving instructions in how to live the Christian life.
One of the most important ministries of the Holy Spirit is to reveal the truths of God's Word to the heart of the
believer. Inasmuch as the Word was written by men who were moved upon by the Spirit of God (2 Pt. 1:21),
He may rightly be said to be its Author. Certainly the author of a book is best able to explain what is really
meant by its contents. The remarkable thing is that every believer can have the Author of the Bible as his
own personal Teacher and Guide. Not only can He, the Holy Spirit, give understanding as to the Scripture's
meaning, but He is also able to lead one to the experience of the truths contained in its pages, making it a
Living Word.
c) The Holy Spirit helps the believer to pray. Along with a study of the Word of God, prayer is the
chief source of the Christian's strength for his daily life and his constant battle with the enemies of his soul.
The Holy Spirit is vitally connected with both these sources of Christian life and power.
Likewise the Spirit also helpeth our infirmities: for we know not what we should pray for as we ought:
but the Spirit it self "'Himself," NASBI maketh intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered.
And he that searcheth the hearts knoweth what is the mind of the Spirit, because he maketh intercession for
the saints according to the will of God (Rom. 8:26,27).
Praying always with all prayer and supplication in the Spirit ... (Eph. 6:18).
But ye, beloved, building up yourselves on your most holy faith, praying in the Holy Ghost ... (Jude 20).
The Spirit's ministry in prayer is very precious. Praying in the strength and wisdom of the flesh can be
very difficult and trying. It is hard to realize the presence of God to Whom you are praying. It is hard to
exercise faith for things you cannot see. It is almost impossible to know how to pray about things that are
beyond your human understanding. But all this is changed when the Holy Spirit anoints the heart and mind.
The presence of God becomes real; the Spirit opens the understanding; and faith is simple, as God is so real.
As one is lifted up in the Spirit, spiritual things become more real than temporal things, and it is quite
natural to become burdened for eternal matters. Added to all this, the Holy Spirit gives wisdom to know how
to present petitions to the Father, constantly reminding of the promises which He has given. Many times the
Holy Spirit will enable the intercessor to pray in other tongues concerning problems which one could never
understand in the natural, but which are wondrously met as the believer prays "with the Spirit" (1 Cor.
14:14,15). Praying under the anointing and guidance of the Holy Spirit becomes one of the Christian's most
precious experiences.
d) The Holy Spirit gives power for preaching the Word of God. Paul testified: "And my speech and
my preaching was not with enticing words of man's wisdom, but in demonstration of the Spirit and of power. .
." (I Cor. 2:4). Again he says: 'For our gospel came not unto you in word only, but also in power, and in the
Holy Ghost. . ." (1 Thes. 1:5). Peter recognized the presence of the Holy Spirit in his preaching as he testified
before the Jewish Sanhedrin at Jerusalem. He declared, "And we are his witnesses of these things; and so is
also the Holy Ghost. . ." (Acts 5:32).

181
Effective preaching of the Gospel must be under the anointing of the Holy Spirit. Nothing is more
impossible than to try to bring men to realize the value, and their need, of spiritual things, unless the message
is delivered in the power of the Holy Spirit. Jesus testified that He was especially anointed for His preaching
ministry (Lk. 4:18,19). If this was necessary for Him, it most certainly is for all lesser servants of the Cross.
The signs which were to follow the preaching of the Gospel were important, for they demonstrated the
authority which the preachers held under God. But the signs were not the preaching of the Gospel; they were
but the evidences of the authority. The message they were to preach was the gospel of salvation through the
name of the Lord Jesus, and the call to repentance. "Now then we are ambassadors for Christ, as though God
did beseech you by us: we pray you in Christ's stead, be ye reconciled to God. For he hath made him to be sin
for us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him" (2 Cor. 5:20,21). This is
the message of the preacher, and God has given the Holy Spirit to give power to the preaching. It is the
Gospel of Jesus Christ, not the miracle accompanying it, that is the power of God unto salvation (Rom.
1:16,17). Let us who thrill to the message of Pentecost never fail to bear this thought in mind!
e) The Holy Spirit gives the believer spiritual gifts for ministry to others. The subject of spiritual
gifts is brought before us in 1 Corinthians 12:4-11 and Romans 12:6-8. That they are to be used in spiritual
service for ministry to others is clearly taught in I Corinthians 12:7: "But to each one is given the
manifestation of the Spirit for the common good" (NASB). The subject is thoroughly discussed in a later
section, but is mentioned here to show its relationship to ministry and service.

4. The Holy Spirit's work in connection with resurrection.


a) He will raise the bodies of believers in the last day. "But if the Spirit of him that raised up Jesus
Christ from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up Christ from the dead shall also quicken your mortal
bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you" (Rom. 8:11). The body is a definite and important part of man's
being. It is included in Christ's Redemption (Rom. 8:23). As Christ was raised from the dead, and now lives
in a glorified body, so each believer, who dies in Christ, will experience a similar resurrection. This is
attributed to the power of the indwelling Holy Spirit. We do not understand the mystery, but we are here told
that the Holy Spirit will "quicken" or "make alive" our mortal body. "For our conversation is in heaven; from
whence also we look for the Savior, the Lord Jesus Christ: who shall change our vile body, that it may be
fashioned like unto his glorious body, according to the working whereby he is able to subdue all things unto
himself" (Phil. 3:20,21).
b) The Holy Spirit gives a foretaste of this resurrection by healing our mortal bodies. The
expression "shall also quicken your mortal bodies by his Spirit" seems to also give promise of the Holy Spirit
bringing strength and healing to the believer now. Ephesians 1:13,14 speaks of the Holy Spirit being "given
as a pledge [down payment] of our inheritance, with a view to the redemption of God's own possession"
(NASB). Thus the pledge, or foretaste, of resurrection life is healing of the mortal body now. Paul speaks
about this resurrection life being manifested "in our mortal flesh" (2 Cor. 4:10,11).

II. THE MINISTRY OF THE HOLY SPIRIT AS THE COMFORTER


The Apostle John has recorded a name which Jesus gave to the Holy Spirit that is not used in any other
book of the New Testament. Apparently he was the inspired writer chosen to reveal the name "Comforter" to
the Church. Though not found anywhere else, it has, next to "The Holy Spirit," become the favorite term for
designating the Third Person of the Godhead.
The importance of the ministry of the Holy Spirit as the Comforter can be realized from the words of
Jesus: "Nevertheless I tell you the truth; it is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the
Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you" (Jn. 16:7). Apparently, Jesus
considered it more important for His disciples that the Holy Spirit be present with them, than that He, in His
bodily presence, abide with them. Jesus was geographically limited by His incarnation. But the Comforter

182
would dwell in each believer and thus have a worldwide ministry through them.
Two important expressions are used in John 14:16, with regard to the coming of the Comforter that must
not be overlooked. First, Jesus spoke of Him as "another Comforter." This word "another" is the clue to the
meaning of the word "Comforter." The word used here means another of the same kind. The Holy Spirit is
not another kind of Comforter, but another of the same kind as Jesus had been. Whatever Jesus was to that
little band of disciples, the Holy Spirit would be to them. In fact, Jesus said, "I will not leave you
comfortless: I will come to you" (Jn. 14:18). The words translated "comfortless" here literally means
"orphans." Jesus did not leave His disciples as orphans; in fact, He did not leave them at all. He departed as
the suffering Christ, only to come to them again in the Holy Spirit. Christ is not restricted to a position in
Heaven; He dwells in our hearts. Jesus dwells in us in the same way that the Comforter dwells in us. Being
full of the Spirit means being full of Jesus. This is not saying that Jesus and the Spirit are the same. But just
as Jesus was full of the Spirit, so is the Spirit in His presence full of Jesus. If the Spirit can dwell in the Son,
then the Son, in His glorified state, can dwell in the Spirit. Jesus was in the Father, and the Father was in
Jesus so that those who saw the Son saw the Father. We are in Christ and He is in us. Thus we read: "So then
after the Lord had spoken unto them, he was received up into heaven, and sat on the right hand of God. And
they went forth, and preached everywhere, the Lord working with them, and confirming the word with signs
following" (Mk. 16:19,20). The Lord was in Heaven; but He was also on earth in the power of the Spirit,
working His same signs and miracles. This is possible only because each Member of the Trinity is
Omnipresent, and each is present in the others.
Secondly, Jesus said of the Comforter, "that he may abide with you for ever." The promised Comforter
was given in a permanent sense. He abides with the believer forever. As long as there is a Church, there will
be a Comforter. We may expect that the Spirit's permanence in the Church will result in the same works of
power and blessing as in all ages. It is through the Spirit that Jesus is to us "the same, yesterday, and today,
and forever" (Heb. 13:8).
The word translated "comforter" in the KJV is the Greek word parakletos. The modem understanding of
the word "comforter" is no longer adequate to describe the ministry of the Holy Spirit. We think of a
comforter as one who consoles in the time of sorrow. The Spirit does not only console us in our sorrow, but
rather gives strength and victory over our sorrows. It is true that the disciples were sorrowful over the
announced departure of their Lord, but the other Paraclete was to remove that sorrow by taking the place of
Jesus.
Some versions translate with the word "advocate"; for the word parakletos obviously means "advocate"
when applied to Jesus in 1 John 2: lb: "And if any man sin, we have an advocate [paraclete] with the Father,
Jesus Christ the righteous. . ." We understand that an advocate is one who represents another or pleads the
cause of another. That this is one of the real functions of the indwelling Spirit is clear from Romans 8:26:
"Likewise the Spirit also helps in our weakness. For we do not know what we should pray for as we ought,
but the Spirit Himself makes intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered" (NKJV). The Son
and the Spirit are both Advocates of our cause and Intercessors for us. The Spirit intercedes from within us,
while the Son intercedes at the Throne of Grace.
Closely akin to the above meaning is that of "helper": "The Spirit also helpeth our infirmities" (Rom.
8:26). The most literal meaning of parakletos is "one called to one's side to help." The Comforter does not do
for us what we ourselves can do, but He does help us do whatever we attempt for God. God has chosen to
work through human instruments, but only when such instruments are yielded to the Holy Spirit.
There is yet another meaning of the word parakletos. The verb form from which Laos comes means "to
beseech" or "to exhort." It is used in Romans 12: 1: "I beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God,
that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice." The Spirit not only comforts, encourages, intercedes and helps;
but He also entreats, exhorts, and beseeches. He is a persuader. Without the persuasion of the Holy Spirit, no
preaching could succeed, nor could sound doctrine long endure uncorrupted. No consideration of the Spirit's
office work would be complete that did not take into account His beseeching, convicting, and convincing
operations.

183
However, when all definitions have been considered, we will still have to agree with A. J. Gordon who
said:
The name is the person himself, and only as we know the person can we interpret his name. Why attempt
to translate this word any more than we do the name of Jesus? ... Certain it is that the language of the Holy
Ghost can never be fully understood by an appeal to the lexicon. The heart of the church is the best dictionary
of the Spirit. While all the before-mentioned synonyms are correct, neither one is adequate, nor are all
together sufficient to bring out the full significance of this great name, "The Paraclete."
The ministry of the Comforter is given in detail in the following four passages from the Gospel of John:
And I will pray the Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, that he may abide with you forever;
even the Spirit of truth; whom the world cannot receive, because it seeth him not, neither knoweth him: but ye
know him; for he dwelleth with you, and shall be in you. I will not leave you comfortless: I will come to you
(Jn. 14:16-18).
But the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my name, he shall teach you
all things, and bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you (Jn. 14:26).
But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of truth,
which proceedeth from the Father, he shall testify of me. . . " (Jn. 15:26).
Nevertheless I tell you the truth; It is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the Comforter
will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you. And when he is come, he will reprove the
world of sin, and of righteousness, and of judgment: of sin, because they believe not on me; of righteousness,
because I go to my Father, and ye see me no more; of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged. I
have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now. Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth, is
come, he will guide you into all truth: for he shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear, that
shall he speak: and he will shew you things to come. He shall glorify me: for he shall receive of mine, and
shall shew it unto you. All things that the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he shall take of mine,
and shall shew it unto you (Jn. 16: 7-15).
In these passages the ministry of the Holy Spirit is divided into four phases. Let us consider them under
these four headings: (1) He is our Teacher, (2) our Reminder, (3) the Revealer of Jesus, and (4) the Reprover
of the world.

A. He Is Our Teacher - "The Spirit of "Truth": "He shall teach you all things" (Jn. 14:26).
1. He guides into truth: "He will guide you into all truth' (Jn. 16:13).
The Spirit's work is to guide into all truth. Half truth is sometimes worse than ignorance. Christ desires
that we come to a full knowledge of all Divine truth relative to Redemption, and to God's glory.
The Holy Spirit guides into the truth of God's Word, revealing the hidden meaning, making its teachings
clear, and causing even the most familiar passages to radiate with new beauty and meaning. Because the
Bible is a spiritual book, the reader needs someone to teach him and lead him into its truths. (See Acts
8:30,31; Lk. 14:45; 1 Cor. 2:14.) Who better can guide than He Who first inspired its writers?
Note the ignorance of the disciples before they received the infilling of the Spirit. They failed to
comprehend what Jesus meant when He referred to the "leaven of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees" (Mt.
16:6-11). They could not grasp the meaning of His parables (Mk. 4:10). They failed to perceive what Jesus
referred to when He spoke of the death of Lazarus as a sleep (Jn. 11:11-14). They completely missed the
truth concerning His Resurrection (Jn. 20:9).
However, after the Day of Pentecost they were like different men, giving wonderful expositions of Old
Testament passages, being perfectly familiar with their meaning. They could fully understand the
scripturalness of His Resurrection now (Acts 2:25-31). Before Pentecost, they could not see that Jesus must
suffer; but now they understood the Old Testament prophecies of His crucifixion (Acts 4:25-28). Many of the
sermons they preached were but expositions of passages from the Old Testament Scriptures (Acts 2:16-21;

184
3:12-26; 7:2-53). What a wonderful insight to truth they now had!

2. He acts as God's mouthpiece for revealing His words and desires:


"But whatsoever he shall hear, that shall he speak" (Jn. 16:12,13).
a) This probably refers, in its largest application, to the Holy Spirit inspiring chosen men to write
the New Testament scriptures. Paul declares that He received the marvelous truths contained in his epistles
by revelation (Gal. 1:12-16; Eph. 3:3-5). This was, no doubt, accomplished through the ministry of the
Comforter, the Spirit of Truth.
b) He also speaks to individual Christian's hearts revealing what God would have each to do in his
service for the Lord. Note how the Spirit guided Philip to join the Ethiopian eunuch, that he might lead him
to Christ (Acts 8:26-29). See also the Spirit leading Paul with regard to where he should minister (Acts 16:6-
10).

3. He reveals things that are yet to come: "He will show you things to come" (Jn. 16:13).
a) Blessings ahead in one's own spiritual life. First Corinthians 2:9-12 speaks of the things ahead for
the child of God which he has never imagined. This refers to the fullness of the glorious Redemption that is
in Christ Jesus. Paul declares: "But God hath revealed them unto us by his Spirit. . ." (1 Cor. 2:10). There are
also wondrous spiritual truths in relation to the Lord which have not yet been grasped, and Paul prays that
these may be made known (Eph. 1:17-21). The Comforter continually stirs up the heart of each Christian to a
fuller endeavor in seeking the fullness of God.
b) Dispensational truth. The Holy Spirit will witness to those who will hear, as to what lies ahead for
the world and the Church, making the prophetic scriptures clear (Am. 3:7; Gn. 18:17). Each one should be
careful, though, that no personal revelations are accepted which are not perfectly in keeping with the
teachings of Jesus and the written Word of God. The Paraclete has no independent teaching. Let no one say
that the Spirit has revealed anything which is in conflict with the plain teachings of Christ. Let us beware of
any so called (new) movements of the Spirit where Christ's teachings are said to be outdated or over-ruled by
new revelations. No teaching which belittles the Word of God can possibly come from the Holy Spirit.
c) What lies ahead in the pathway of the believer. When God chooses certain men for specific tasks,
His call is brought to their heart by the Holy Spirit. Many times He will make known certain things that lie
ahead and prepare the individual worker for unforeseen eventualities. Agabus was sent by the Holy Spirit to
tell Paul of the dangers that lay ahead for him at Jerusalem (Acts 21:10,11); thus, Paul was strengthened and
prepared for the coming conflict. It is important that the Christian be sensitive to the readings of the Spirit in
relation to these things.

B. He Is Our Reminder.
". . He shall ... bring all things to your remembrance. . ." (Jn. 14:26). Man's memory, as every other
function of his being, has suffered as the result of the Fall. He needs, and has, a wonderful Reminder in the
Comforter, the Holy Spirit.

1. Reminding of the Word of God:


He shall ... bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you" (Jn. 14:26).
Much trouble and heartache would be saved the servant of the Lord if he were more mindful of the Word
that has been given. Peter would never have denied his Lord if he had remembered what Jesus had said unto
him sooner (Mt. 26:75). The disciples would not have had to spend those three harrowing days and nights
while Jesus was in the grave, nor would they have doubted the women who told of His Resurrection, if they
had only remembered what He had said about His Death and Resurrection (Mt. 16:21; 17:22,23; 20:18,19; Jn.

185
2:22; Lk. 24:6-11). Peter's, and the Early Church leader's, prejudices against Gentiles were overcome when
they remembered the word of the Lord (Acts 11:15-18). In times of persecution, when the Devil would
whisper that one is out of God's will, how precious to remember John 15:18-20:
If the world hate you, ye know that it hated me before it hated you. If ye were of the world, the world
would love his own: but because I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you.
Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant is not greater than his Lord. If they have persecuted
me, they will also persecute you; if they have kept my saying, they will keep yours also.
In times of chastening, when one is tempted to think God does not love him, or He would not have
allowed this, how comforting to remember that it is "whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth
every son whom he receiveth" (Heb. 12:6).

2. Reminding of a special promise God has given in the past.


How many times Paul must have been encouraged as the Holy Spirit reminded him of that night in the
castle in Jerusalem, when ". . . the Lord stood by him, and said, Be of good cheer, Paul: for as thou hast
testified of me in Jerusalem, so must thou bear witness also at Rome" (Acts 23:11), especially in the great
storm at sea (Acts 27:24,25). How precious to be reminded of God's Faithfulness in all the days that have
gone by, and to be assured that He will watch over His own now! "Blessed be the Lord, that hath given rest
unto his people Israel, according to all that he promised: there hath not failed one word of all his good
promise, which he promised by the hand of Moses his servant" (I Kgs. 8:56).

3. Bringing to memory thoughts and scriptures when one is preaching or dealing with a soul about
his spiritual need.
How many times just the right passage has been brought to mind!

C. He Is the Revealer of Jesus.


"He shall testify of me" (Jn. 15:26); 'He shall glorify me" (Jn. 16:14).
These promises of Christ were certainly fulfilled in the Early Church, and whenever the ministry of the
Holy Spirit is honored. Whenever the Spirit is powerfully moving, be sure that Jesus is powerfully glorified.
Through the operation of the Holy Spirit there is a three-fold revelation of Jesus Christ.

1. Christ is revealed to the believer by the Holy Spirit.


"He shall glorify me: for he shall take of mine, and shall shew it unto you. All things that the Father hath
are mine: therefore said 1, that he shall take of mine, and shall shew it unto you" (Jn. 16:14,15). No one
knows Jesus as the Holy Spirit does. He was with Christ through the eternities and throughout His earthly
ministry, even to His sacrifice on the Cross. As the servant of old told Rebekah of the unknown and unseen
bridegroom, Isaac (Gn. 24:33-36), so the Holy Spirit reveals the glories of the Christian's Heavenly
Bridegroom.

2. Christ is revealed in the believer by the Holy Spirit.


"But when it pleased God, who separated me from my mother's womb, and called me by his grace, to
reveal his Son in me, that I might preach him among the heathen. . ." (Gal. 1:15,16). "My little children, of
whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you. . ." (Gal. 4:19). (See also Eph. 4:14; 2 Cor. 3:18.)
One of the great purposes of salvation is to restore Man to the image of God from which he fell through sin.
After conversion, the Holy Spirit seeks to fashion the new babe in Christ into Christ's own image, and to
implant His likeness within his heart. The fruit of the Spirit (Gal. 5:22,23) is a description of the character of
Christ; and as this is found in the life of the believer, so he is growing "unto the measure of the stature of the

186
fullness of Christ" (Eph. 4:13).

3. Christ is revealed through the believer by the Holy Spirit.


"He will not speak on his own initiative ... he shall glorify me" (Jn. 16:13,14, NASB). The Holy Spirit
never magnifies Himself, nor yet the human vessel through whom He operates. He came to magnify the
Person and ministry of Jesus Christ. Whenever He is truly having His way, Christ, and none other, is exalted.
Note the heart of Peter's sermon on the Day of Pentecost: "Therefore let all the house of Israel know
assuredly, that God hath made that same Jesus, whom ye crucified, both Lord and Christ" (Acts 2:36). See
what Philip, under the guidance of the Holy Spirit, spoke about: "Then Philip opened his mouth, and began at
the same scripture, and preached unto him Jesus (Acts 8:35). In Old Testament times, God was manifested
through the Law and the Prophets. In the days of His flesh, Jesus was the manifestation of God to the world.
Now, God manifests Himself through the Holy Spirit's revelation of Christ through human vessels.

D. He Is the Reprover and Convicter of the World.


"Of sin, because they believe not on me; of righteousness, because I go to my Father, and ye see me no
more; of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged" (Jn. 16:9-11). We have studied this ministry of
the Holy Spirit in a previous lesson. (See I. The Work of the Holy Spirit, Sec. A.2.b) The Holy Spirit convicts
... )

III. THE FRUIT OF THE SPIRIT


"But the fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith [lit., "faithfulness"
NASBI, meekness, temperance: against such there is no law" (Gal. 5:22,23). "For the fruit of the Spirit is in
all goodness and righteousness and truth" (Eph. 5:9); "But now being made free from sin, and become
servants to God, ye have your fruit unto holiness, and the end everlasting life" (Rom. 6:22).
We have come, now, to the very heart of the practical manifestation of the Christian life. It is by the fruit
of character, that is manifested in his daily life, that the Christian gives evidence of the reality of the life of
Christ within. Jesus said,
Do men gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles? Even so every good tree bringeth forth good fruit; but
a corrupt tree bringeth forth evil fruit. A good tree cannot bring forth evil fruit, neither can a corrupt tree
bring forth good fruit... Wherefore by their fruits ye shall know them (Mt. 7:16b-20).
The fruit of the Spirit is the true characteristic of the Christian life. The "blessed man" of Psalm chapter
one is said to "be like a tree planted by the rivers of water, that bringeth forth his fruit in his season" (Ps. 1:3).
The principal purpose for a tree is that it may bring forth fruit. Jesus had no place for a tree that did not
produce fruit. "Now in the morning as he returned into the city, he hungered. And when he saw a fig tree in
the way, he came to it, and found nothing thereon, but leaves only, and said unto it, Let no fruit grow on thee
henceforward for ever. And presently the fig tree withered away" (Mt. 21:18,19). "Every branch in me that
beareth not fruit he taketh away. . ." (Jn. 15:2).
"The fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness,
temperance" (Gal. 5:22,23). The true Christian virtues are the fruit of the Spirit, not the fruit of human effort.
We have the fruit of the Spirit when we have the Spirit. We can achieve fruitbearing only by living in
cooperation with the indwelling Fruitbearer. The fruit of the Spirit is the character of Christ, produced by the
Spirit of Christ, in the follower of Christ. The more completely one is infused with the Spirit's presence, the
more emphatic will be the manifestation of the fruit of the Spirit in his living and working. Only when he is
full of the Holy Spirit does he exhibit the full fruition of Christian virtues. A great many persons are
endeavoring to produce the fruit of the
Spirit through the entirely natural processes of character building, such as: the exercise of the will,
esthetic culture, mental science, the pursuit of philosophy, education in ethics, etc.; all of which is very

187
commendable from the human point of view. It is much better to be moral, ethical, cultured, well-informed,
decent, friendly, honorable and patient than to be the opposite; however, these above-named virtues, achieved
by purely human effort, are not the fruit of the Spirit, but an imitation of it. They are wax fruit in contrast
with real fruit; just as beautiful as the real to view from a distance, but immeasurably inferior to the taste.
When Christ is fully formed in the believer by the indwelling of the Spirit, true Christlike virtues will be the
natural result - a result as natural as that of the growth of apples on an apple tree. If he is devoid of fruit, he is
obviously devoid of the Spirit of Christ.
Paul's list of the characteristics of the fruit of the Spirit is actually the Sermon on the Mount in a nutshell.
It is the ideal of Christian living in its most concentrated expression. The thirteenth chapter of 1 Corinthians
is merely an extension of Galatians 5:22,23. Paul emphasizes the same principle of Christian life when,
writing to the Philippians, he says: "Finally, brethren, whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are
honest, whatsoever things are just, whatsoever things are pure, whatsoever things are lovely, whatsoever
things are of good report; if there be any virtue, and if there be any praise, think on these things" (Phil. 4:8).
Any concept of Christianity which does not have as its pattern of character the fruit of the Spirit is a false
concept. The greatest treasure of the believer is this golden chain composed of nine precious links on which
is engraved, "the fruit of the Spirit."
The Apostle Peter agrees with the Apostle Paul exactly when he says:
Whereby are given unto us exceeding great and precious promises: that by these ye might be
partakers of the divine nature, having escaped the corruption that is in the world through lust. And beside
this, giving all diligence, add to your faith virtue; and to virtue knowledge; and to knowledge temperance;
and to temperance patience; and to patience godliness; and to godliness brotherly kindness; and to
brotherly kindness charity. For if these things be in you, and abound, they make you that ye shall neither
be barren nor unfruitful in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ (2 Pt. 1:4-8).

A. The Contrast Between the Works of the Flesh and the Fruit of the Spirit.
The list of the graces of the fruit of the Spirit, as recorded in Galatians 5:22,23, is preceded by a list of
what Paul calls the "works of the flesh."
Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these; adultery, fornication, uncleanness,
lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft, hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife, seditions, heresies, envyings,
murders, drunkenness, revellings, and such like: of the which I tell you before, as I have also told you in time
past, that they which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom of God (Gal. 5:19-21).
The fruit of the Spirit is manifest; it cannot be hid. So likewise are the works of the flesh. A Spirit-filled
man can be distinguished for his fruit. A carnal man can be identified by his works. The manifestation of the
believer's character is called "fruit," while that of the carnal unbeliever's is called "works." A fleshly man is
one who is not dominated by the indwelling Spirit of God. The struggle in the personality is a struggle
between self and Christ. If self wins, self becomes the center of the personality and the person becomes self-
centered. If Christ wins, He becomes the center of the personality and the person is Christ-centered. The
result of an ego-centric life is the manifestation of the works of the flesh. The result of a Christ-centered life
is the manifestation of the fruit of the Spirit.
The principle of fruitbearing is the principle of life. Fruit is not made, it grows. Samuel Chadwick,
referring to the passage in Galatians chapter five, has said:
The most striking feature of the contrast is the emphatic change from works to fruit. Works belong to the
workshop; fruit belongs to the garden. One comes from the ingenuity of the factory; the other is the silent
growth of abounding life. The factory operates with dead stuff; the garden cultivates living forces to their
appointed end. Works are always in the realm of dead things. Every building is built out of dead material.
The tree must die before it can be of use to the builder. There is no life in stones and brick, in steel joists and
iron girders. They are all dead and in the process of disintegration. Nothing material lasts. Man's best works
fail and fade, crumble and pass away ... Fruit does not come of man's labor. It requires his diligence, but it is

188
neither his invention nor his product. He does not make the flowers. No skill of his brings the golden harvest
of the fields, or the luscious fruit upon the trees. When man has done all he can, then God begins and life
proceeds. Fruit is God's work. The phrase "fruit of the Spirit" assigns the graces of the Christian character to
their proper source. They are not of man's producing."
So the difference between the works of the flesh and the fruit of the Spirit is quite apparent. The flesh
produces works; the Spirit produces fruit. The one requires self-effort; the other no effort of the flesh. The
one is the product of the factory; the other is of the garden. The one is dead; the other is alive. The one is of
the flesh; the other of the Spirit.

B. The Secrets of Fruitbearing.


In John 15:1-8, Jesus teaches us the importance and the secrets of fruitbearing. In this passage He speaks
of those who have "no fruit," and they are "cast forth as a branch and is withered" (v.6). Others are described
as having "fruit," "more fruit," and "much fruit," and "fruit that abides." The fruit that He referred to is,
without doubt, the fruit of the Spirit - the true essence of spiritual life.
The first secret of fruitbearing is abiding in Christ. "Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear
fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in me. I am the vine, ye are the
branches: he that abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit: for without me ye can do
nothing" (vv.4,5). Fruitbearing is the result of the life of Christ, the Vine, flowing through the branch of the
life of the believer. Jesus said, "Without me [lit. "apart from me" or "separated from me" ye can do nothing"
(v.5). Hence, the branch must abide in the Vine.
It is important to realize that the fruit of the Spirit in the life of the believer is not directly the result of the
Baptism with the Spirit. Every believer has the Holy Spirit abiding in him, and as he continues to abide in
Christ will experience the fruit of the Spirit in his life. Certainly, one who is "full of the Holy Ghost" will
experience "more fruit,""much fruit," and "fruit that remains" in his life; but again, this comes from abiding in
Christ. The fact that every believer can have the fruit of the Spirit in his life explains why some deeply
spiritual Christians have never given evidence of having received a Pentecostal experience. The fruit does not
come as the result of the Baptism with the Spirit, but of abiding in Christ. This also explains why some, who
have received the Baptism with the Spirit, may not be manifesting the qualities of the fruit of the Spirit.
Many who are baptized with the Spirit fail to go on to live in the fullness of the Spirit. Many of the Galatians,
as well as some of the Corinthians, who had received the Pentecostal anointing, were at the same time devoid
of love. They had experienced the fullness at one time, but they were not living in the fullness. We err in
supposing that being baptized in the Spirit at a single experience is the crowning attainment of the Christian
life. The crowning attainment is a daily Spirit-filled life, abundant in the fruit of the Spirit. If the Spirit Who
abides in us is grieved and quenched, if we walk in the flesh rather than in the Spirit, we can expect a fruitless
life. This subject will be enlarged upon later in this study.
It is tremendously important to realize the necessity of abiding in Christ. "Every branch in me that
beareth not fruit he taketh away" (v.2)
This refers to Christians - or those who once became such - not to mere professing believers. The
expression "in me" clearly shows that some who are taken away for failure to produce fruit were originally
true branches in the Vine. They were branches, but they did not continue in contact with the Source of life
long enough to come to bear fruit.
Note that it is the branch that is taken away, not the fruit. Verse five says: "Ye are the branches." The
people who say that they who are "once saved are always saved" would like us to believe that God rejects
only the "fruit" of the apostate, but not that man himself Nevertheless, the Word says that the reprobate
branch is removed and cast into the fire, because it bears no fruit. It is not unreasonable to expect fruitfulness
of the believer inasmuch as it is God Who provides the elements for it. The believer has one sole
responsibility, which is to abide in Christ. The fruit is the natural product of abiding. However, if one does
not abide, he bears no fruit, and, consequently, he is cast away.

189
The second secret of fruitbearing, which Jesus gives us in John chapter fifteen, is found in verse two:
"Every branch that beareth fruit, he purgeth it, that it may bring forth more fruit." This suggests the process of
pruning. Every branch that does not bear fruit is taken away, but the branch that does bear fruit is pruned that
it might bear even more fruit. The pruning process in the life of a sincere Christian is never an easy one.
Pruning suggests chastening, and ". . . no chastening for the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous:
nevertheless afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto those who are exercised thereby"
(Heb. 12:11). Leaves may be very beautiful, but trees that are given to growing excessive leaves seldom
produce much fruit. Sometimes the Lord must cut away some of the "leaves" of self-indulgence from the life
of the Christian that he might bear "more fruit," and even "much fruit." Lest he should have a tendency to
draw back from this disciplining of his life, let the believer remember that Jesus said, "My Father is the
husbandman" (Jn. 15:1). He is the One Who holds the knife and the pruning shears. We may safely trust
ourselves to His loving care-

C. What Does It Mean to Abide in Christ?


In answering this question, keep in mind the figure of the vine and the branches. The branch is an integral
part of the vine. It grows from it, and must never be severed from the vine; so that nothing will ever come
between the branch and the source of its life. Considering the believer's relationship to Christ, this would
mean an unbroken fellowship with Him. This relationship is sustained first by an unwavering faith in what
Christ has done for him, and what he is in Christ. The believer must continually rejoice in the saving grace of
Jesus Christ and constantly realize that he is redeemed, justified, born into the family of God, placed as a son
and heir and joint-heir with Jesus Christ. As a result of these glorious realizations, he will then remain
constant in thanksgiving and praise, communion in prayer, and conscious fellowship with the Lord. There
will be an ever-increasing earnest endeavor to yield to His abiding Holy Spirit, to obey His commands, and to
walk in His will. He must "live in the Spirit'(Gal. 5:25), be "led of the Spirit" (Gal. 5:18), and"walk in the
Spirit" (Gal. 5:16,25).

D. The Difference Between the Gifts of the Spirit and the Fruit of the Spirit.
It is of the greatest importance to a vital spiritual life and ministry that these two areas of spiritual
blessing be fully understood in their relationship to each other. They are not the same. There must never be
any confusion between them. One is not a substitute for the other. No one must ever say, as some have, "I do
not believe in the gifts of the Spirit; I believe in love." The gifts have their place and the fruit has its place, but
they are in entirely different categories of spiritual blessing.
Note the following differences between these two: The gifts of the Spirit have to do with spiritual
capabilities - what one can do in the service of the Lord. The fruit of the Spirit has to do with spiritual
character - what one is in the Lord. The gifts are received as a result of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit. The
fruit is the result of the New Birth and of abiding in Christ. Gifts are received instantly, while the fruit
develops gradually. Gifts, of themselves, are not a means of judging the depths of one's spiritual life, but the
fruit is the basic criterion of the development of spiritual life and character. There are varieties of gifts, but
there is only one fruit of the Spirit. Let us enlarge on these thoughts.
Spiritual gifts indicate spiritual capabilities, while the fruit denotes spiritual character. There are many
natural gifts and talents with which people are endowed at birth. Without these inbred tendencies no one
could really excel in any field (i.e., art and music). Jesus used the parables of the "talents" and the "pounds"
to indicate that certain men were given these talents to use, and for which use they were held responsible. So
in the spiritual realm, the Holy Spirit, at His Divine choosing, bestows certain spiritual capabilities to be used
in spiritual service. The fruit of the Spirit, has nothing to do with what a person may be able to do in the
service of the Lord. As we shall see, it will not have a great deal to do with what he does for the Lord, but
how he does it.
The manifestation of gifts of the Spirit seem to have to do with the outpouring of the Spirit on the Day of

190
Pentecost. Certainly the Apostles, and others, were possessed of abilities which they did not manifest before
they were baptized with the Holy Spirit. Jesus plainly indicated that the fruit, about which He spoke, recorded
in John chapter fifteen, was the
result of abiding in Him, the Vine.
The gifts of the Spirit are bestowed by the Holy Spirit "dividing to every man severally as he will" (I Cor.
12:11). These divine abilities are apparently given virtually instantly. The bestowal of the Holy Spirit on the
Day of Pentecost was "suddenly." "And they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to speak with
other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance" (Acts 2:4). It seems that one moment they were not able to
speak with tongues and the next moment they were. Acts 19:6 confirms this fact, for we read of the believers
at Ephesus: "And when Paul had laid his hands upon them, the Holy Ghost came on them; and they spake
with tongues and prophesied." Fruit, on the other hand is always the result of a slow, gradual development.
Because fruit suggests traits of character, it would of necessity involve a period of development.
There is a tendency among many to look with awe upon one who has many gifts of the Spirit as though
this indicated a super-spiritual individual. It is well to realize that gifts are not, of themselves, the indication
of the depth of one's spiritual life. Paul said of the Corinthian church that they came "behind in no gift" (1
Cor. 1:7); in fact they were rather noted for the exercise of, at least some of, the gifts of the Spirit. At the
same time the Apostle accuses them of being carnal and guilty of allowing many situations within their midst
that were not evidences of spiritual advancement. Saul, the first king of Israel, was noted for his possession
of the gift of prophecy. Just about the time of his anointing as king we read: ". . . and the Spirit of God came
upon him, and he prophesied among them. And it came to pass, that when all that knew him before time saw
that he prophesied among the prophets, then the people said one to another, What is this that is come unto the
son of Kish? Is Saul also among the prophets?" (1 Sm. 10:10,11). Later in his reign, after he had dishonored
the Lord and disobeyed His word, and God said He would no longer hear Saul's prayers, and the Spirit of the
Lord departed from him (1 Sm. 16:14), Saul got among a group of prophets and the Spirit of the Lord came
upon him and he prophesied (I Sm. 19:23,24). But this certainly did not indicate that Saul was again a
spiritual man. The measure of the development of the fruit of the Spirit in an individual's life is, however, a
real indication of the steadfastness of his abiding in Christ. (See also Balaam, as an example of one with gifts,
but little spiritual life [Nm. 22-271.)
There are varieties of gifts, but one fruit of the Spirit. In 1 Corinthians 12:8-10, Paul lists nine different
gifts of the Spirit. Other passages, such as Romans 12:6-8; Ephesians 4:11; and I Peter 4:10,11, indicate that
there may be many more. But there is only one fruit of the Spirit, which is love. It is unscriptural to speak of
the "fruits of the Spirit." What is listed in Galatians 5:22,23 are eight characteristics of the fruit of the Spirit,
love. All these other virtues which are mentioned are but facets of love. When the Spirit of God comes into
one's life, He invariably sheds abroad His Love in the heart. In Notes From My Bible, by D.L. Moody, this
characterization of love is found in terms of all these other virtues, as follows:
Joy is love exulting.
Peace is love reposing.
Longsuffering is love untiring.
Gentleness is love enduring.
Goodness is love in action.
Faith is love on the battlefield
Meekness is love under discipline.
Temperance is love in training.

E. The Relationship Between the Gifts of the Spirit and the Fruit of the Spirit.
While there are certain definite differences between the gifts and fruit of the Spirit, there is also a very
vital relationship between these two. It is not by chance that the thirteenth chapter of 1 Corinthians comes
right between the twelfth and the fourteenth chapters. Chapters twelve and fourteen deal with the gifts of the
Spirit, while chapter thirteen is all about love, the fruit of the Spirit. This emphasizes the importance of

191
having the fruit of the Spirit in close relation to the gifts. Paul makes it very clear that the gifts without the
fruit are powerless and of little use. In fact, he goes as far as to say that they are "nothing."
If I speak with the tongues of men and of angels, but do not have love, I have become a noisy gong or a
clanging cymbal. And if I have the gift of prophecy, and know all mysteries and all knowledge; and if I have
all faith, so as to remove mountains, but do not have love, I am nothing" (1 Cor. 13:1,2 NASB).
As has been stated above, love is the very essence of the fruit of the Spirit. So what Paul is saying is that
though he has the gift of speaking with other tongues, of prophecy, wisdom, knowledge and faith, and does
not have the fruit of the Spirit, these gifts mean absolutely nothing. The development of the inner nature of a
Christ-like character must be behind any use of the spiritual gift. While he is emphasizing the negative fact
that the gift without the fruit is of no value, one must recognize the positive truth that the ministry of the gifts
of the Spirit, accompanied by the fruit of a spiritual life is of great power and usefulness in the work of the
Lord. The Holy Spirit is as much interested in character as He is in power. Every Spirit-baptized servant of
the Lord needs to realize the importance of both of these blessings. (This subject is discussed again in Sec. VI.
The Gifts of the Spirit, see J. The Relationship Between the Gifts and The Fruit of the Spirit.)

F. Detailed Characteristics of the Fruit of the Spirit.


1. Love: "Now the fruit of the Spirit is love" (Gal. 5:22).
It would be impossible to over-emphasize the prominence of this gracious virtue as the chief
characteristic of the Christian life. 'Beloved, let us love one another: for love is of God: and every one that
loveth is born of God, and knoweth God. He that loveth not knoweth not God; for God is love" U Jn. 4:7,8).
Thus, love is the evidence that one has been born of God. Not only is it the inner evidence, it is also the outer
evidence. Jesus said, "By this shall all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to another" (Jn.
13:35). He also gave His disciples the command: ". . . Love your enemies, do good to them which hate you,
bless them that curse you, and pray for them which despitefully use you" (Lk. 6:27,28). This is impossible to
the natural man; it cannot be produced by human effort. Such love can only be the product of the Love of
God being shed abroad in one's heart by the Holy Ghost (Rom. 5:5). The love which the Spirit produces is
something more than ordinary human affection, however sincere. It comes from abiding in Christ and
experiencing His Love flowing through the soul. Love is the cement which binds all the other virtues of the
fruit of the Spirit together into a united whole. It is the common denominator of all Christian character. One
cannot love and fail to have any of the other virtues. To be filled with the Spirit is to be filled with love.

2. Joy: "For the kingdom of God is not meat and drink; but righteousness, and peace, and joy in
the Holy Ghost" (Rom. 14:17).
Joy is love's reaction to God's mercies, blessings, and benefits. Christian joy is not, however, dependent
on circumstances. The joy which is a facet of love trusts God even in the most trying circumstances. Human
joy looks at things upon earth and is affected by the condition of earth. Christian joy - a fruit of the Spirit -
looks heavenward and is unaffected by surrounding conditions, because Heaven's benefits are unvarying. Joy
accepts trials as Divine blessing in disguise. The true Christian life is a joyful life. Those who would
suppress all emotion in Christian worship, and who call all enthusiasm and rejoicing emotionalism, do not
rightly interpret the Word of God. Not one sentence of condemnation of emotion can be found in God's
Word; but it does not teach emotionalism. Joy is natural to Christianity. Paul uses the word "joy" and
"rejoice" seventeen (17) times in the short epistle to the Philippians. Emotionless worship is cold worship.
Emotion is the condition of being inwardly moved. Emotionalism is the seeking of emotion as an end in itself
- emotion for emotion's sake. We carefully distinguish between emotional extravagance and the true
operations of the Holy Spirit. In accordance with the teaching of the Scripture, we exercise control over our
feelings so as not to selfishly interrupt more profitable phases of worship and the ministry of the Word. On
the other hand, we believe in singing joyfully, in praying earnestly, in preaching zealously, in testifying
forcefully, and in giving cheerfully; "for the joy of the Lord is your strength" (Neh. 8: 10). When the Spirit of

192
God fills an individual, the joy of the Lord is bound to be there, 'for in thy presence is fulness of joy" (Ps. 16:
1 1).
3. Peace: "For the kingdom of God is not meat and drink; but righteousness, and peace, and joy in
the Holy Ghost" (Rom. 14:17).
Peace is deeper and more constant than joy. Jesus said, "Peace I leave with you, my peace I give unto
you: not as the world giveth, give I unto you" (Jn. 14:27). Paul speaks of "the peace of God, which passeth all
understanding" (Phil. 4:7). Peace with God is obtained as the result of being justified by faith (Rom. 5:1).
But the fruit of the Spirit, peace, is an inner characteristic which manifests itself in peaceableness with others.
It signifies freedom from a quarrelsome, contentious or party spirit. It seeks to live peaceably with all men.
Thus the Spirit-filled believer may not only know peace with God, but he may have "the peace of God which
passeth understanding" (Phil. 4:7), because of the promise, "And the God of peace shall be with you" (Phil.
4:9).

4. Longsuffering - Patience.
Virtually all modem translators render this word "patience." This is not a very prevalent characteristic of
the human spirit. Most of us are a little short of that gracious virtue of patience. It is, however, a very special
characteristic of our loving Lord, and the Christian needs an ever closer abiding in Christ that this grace may
become part of his life in Christ. It has been previously noted that "Longsuffering is love untiring." It is love
persevering through the storm and the flood. As each believer realizes how longsuffering the Lord has been
with him it will enable him to be more patient with others. God is patient in seeking to win the unsaved: "The
Lord ... is longsuffering to us-ward, not willing that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance"
(2 Pt. 3:9). "But thou, 0 Lord, art a God full of compassion and gracious longsuffering, and plenteous in
mercy and truth" (Ps. 86:15). How much today's Christian needs the Holy Spirit's help in this area of
Christlikeness! This may very well be the place where he needs Him the most. James admonishes: "But let
patience have her perfect work, that ye may be perfect and entire, wanting nothing" (Jas. 1:4).

5. Gentleness - Kindness.
The NASB, NIV, and numerous other modern versions render this word as "kindness." It is nowhere else,
in the New Testament, translated as "gentleness." The word is frequently used to depict God's dealings with
His people. They in turn bring glory to Him when they manifest this same graciousness to others. Kindness
is love dealing with others in their faults. Perhaps nothing more frequently discredits one's testimony and
ministry than unkindness. No conceivable circumstance can possibly justify, on Christian grounds, unkind
treatment of others. No matter how firm one must become in reproof, he never needs to become unkind.
There is no greater mark of greatness and nobility of character than the ability to reprove in kindness.
"Reprove, rebuke, exhort with all longsuffering" (2 Tm. 4:2). "Love suffereth long, and is kind" (1 Cor.
13:4).

6. Goodness: "For the fruit of the Spirit is in all goodness and righteousness and truth" (Eph. 5:9).
The goodness mentioned here has reference to works and acts of goodness, to goodness shown to others,
to practical works of love. If a man is truly good at heart, he does good to others. There is a kind of
pharisaical, self-righteous goodness which is more of a blight to Christianity than a recommendation. Selfish
goodness could well be a kind of badness. "Goodness is love in action." It is love heaping benefits on others.
The Christian does good because he is good. Negative goodness is not sufficient. When the Holy Spirit
pervades the being, there is a positive outflow of goodness to all men.

7. Faith. (Faithfulness)
The majority of translators render this word as "faithfulness," rather than"faith." It has to do with

193
character as it relates to others. J. Lancaster is quoted as saying: "While faith in God and His Word is the
basis of our relationship with Him, and the avenue through which His blessings flow into our lives, what is in
view here is the faithfulness of character and conduct that such faith produces." The fruit of a tree is not for
the tree, but for others. Thus, each of these beautiful characteristics indicate the Christian's attitude to those
with whom he comes in contact. Two thoughts have been suggested from this particular virtue. The first is
expressed in the word "trustworthiness." Jesus said to the two who multiplied their talents, "Well done, thou
good and faithful servant: thou has been faithful over a few things. . . ." (Mt. 25:21,23), suggesting the
characteristic of trustworthiness. According to this interpretation, the one who bears the fruit of the Spirit will
keep his word with others; he will be faithful to his covenants, promises, duties and obligations. The true
Christian does not shirk responsibility.
The second word is "trustfulness." In his commentary on Galatians, Martin Luther says:
In listing faith among the fruits of the Spirit, Paul obviously does not mean faith in Christ, but faith in
men. Such faith is not suspicious of people, but believes the best. Naturally the possessor of such faith
will be deceived, but he lets it pass. He is ready to believe all men. Where this virtue is lacking, men are
suspicious, forward, and wayward and will believe nothing, nor yield to anybody. No matter how well a
person says or does anything, they will find fault with it, and if you do not humor them, you can never
please them. Such faith in people, therefore, is quite necessary.

What kind of life would this be if one person could not believe another person?
Paul plainly teaches this characteristic of love: Rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in the truth; beareth
all things, believeth all things. . . ." (I Cor. 13:6,7).
Both of these viewpoints are possible, and certainly trustworthiness and trustfulness are both necessary
virtues. A true Christian will be neither unfaithful nor suspicious.

8. Meekness.
Jesus said, "Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me; for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find
rest unto your souls" (Mt. 11:29). Meekness is slowness to anger and to take offense. The meek are not
boisterous, noisy, or selfishly aggressive. They do not strive, quarrel, or contend. They are not argumentative
or boastful. However, meekness must not be confused with shyness, timidity, or weakness, which are
characteristics of an inferiority complex. W. E. Vine comments: "It must be clearly understood, therefore,
that the meekness manifested by the Lord and commended to the believer is the fruit of power ... the Lord was
'meek' because He had the infinite resources of God at His command."15 Spiritual meekness is not cowardice
nor lack of leadership. Moses was the meekest man in Israel, yet he was their greatest leader. He was humble
and patient, but he was also capable of firmness and great courage. Rather than a disqualification for
leadership, meekness is an essential to it. Jesus said, in the Sermon on the Mount, "Blessed are the meek; for
they shall inherit the earth" (Mt. 5:5).

9. Temperance - Self-Control.
The word "temperance" is in reality "self-control." Among the graces of the Spirit, which are the fruit of
abiding in Christ, none is more important than self-control. "He that is slow to anger is better than the
mighty; and he that ruleth his own spirit than he that taketh a city" (Prv. 16:32). Temperance is true self-love.
He who respects himself, who considers his body to be a temple of the Holy Spirit, will exercise control over
his own impulses. True temperance is control over not only food and drink, but over every phase of life.
Temperance means full self-control. It means control over anger, carnal passion, appetites, desire for
worldly pleasure, and selfishness. Before one can rule a city, a community, a club, a church or a nation he
must first be able to rule his own spirit. Paul treats this subject admirably in his letter to the Corinthians; he
says:

194
All things are lawful unto me, but all things are not expedient [profitable]: all things are lawful for me,
but I will not be brought under the power of any. Meats for the belly and the belly for meats: but God shall
destroy both it and them. Now the body is not for fornication, but for the Lord; and the Lord for the body.
And God hath both raised up the Lord and will also raise us by his power (1 Cor. 6:12-14).
What? know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost which is in you, which ye have of
God, and ye are not your own? For ye are bought with a price: therefore glorify God in your body, and in
your spirit, which are God's (1 Cor. 6:19,20).
In concluding his remarks concerning the nine graces of the fruit of the Spirit, as Paul enumerates them in
Galatians 5:22,23, Samuel Chadwick makes this interesting statement:
In newspaper English, the passage would read something like this: The Fruit of the Spirit is an
affectionate, lovable disposition, a radiant spirit and a cheerful temper, a tranquil mind and a quiet manner, a
forebearing patience in provoking circumstances and with trying people, a sympathetic insight and tactful
helpfulness, generous judgment and a big-souled charity, loyalty and reliableness under all circumstances,
humility that forgets self in the joy of others, in all things self-mastered and self-controlled, which is the final
mark of perfecting.
In summarizing the subject of the Fruit of the Spirit, it is emphasized that these characteristics are not
imposed upon the Christian from without, but are the result of the life of Christ within. They describe the
character of Jesus Christ in the life of the believer. J. Lancaster explains:
In some ways the term "Christlikeness" is inadequate, since the Christian is called, not merely to resemble
Christ, but to share His very life. With deference to a great Christian classic, the life of the believer is more
than the imitation of Christ; it is becoming "a partaker of the divine nature" (2 Peter 1:4). One might be bold
enough to suggest that "Christness" would be nearer the mark, since the believer is more than a copy of
Christ; he is part and parcel of His very being, "bone of His bone, flesh of His flesh," as Paul daringly puts it
in Ephesians 5:30. Our likeness to Christ is therefore not something applied from without - a cosmetic
transformation produced by the formulae of some religious make-up department - but a genuine likeness
produced by an intimate relationship with Him. Christ's own analogy of the vine and the branches upholds
this (John 15). The branches are not merely "vine-like," they are part of the vine; likewise the fruit does not
merely resemble grapes, but possesses their inherent structure and taste.

IV. THE BAPTISM WITH THE HOLY SPIRIT


We come now to a study of that powerful experience which was responsible for the miraculous growth of
the Christian church in the apostolic and post-apostolic years, and which has been the principal cause of the
dynamic revival that has swept the world since the turn of the 20th century - the greatest revival, in terms of
numbers, that the world has ever experienced. According to the recently published World Christian
Encyclopedia, there are in the world today some 51,000,000 believers in Pentecostal churches, who have
experienced the Baptism with the Holy Spirit, beside 11,000,000 more in other churches who enjoy the
fullness of this blessing.
No attempt is made, here, to exalt the empowering ministry of the Holy Spirit, above the Redemptive
Work of Christ. It is recognized that the principal work of the Holy Spirit is in exalting Christ. But it is also
affirmed, that Christ's finished work makes provision for a fullness of the Spirit beyond regeneration, of
which believers may or may not avail themselves. The greatest promise to the whole world is, of course: '. . .
that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have everlasting life" (Jn. 3:16); but the greatest
promise to the Church is: "But ye shall receive power after that the Holy Ghost is come upon you. . ." (Acts 1:
8).
The Baptism with the Holy Ghost is the second of the four cardinal truths upon which the Foursquare
Gospel is founded - Jesus Christ the Baptizer with the Holy Ghost. It is of the most vital importance in
connection with the spiritual life and service of every believer. The Baptism with the Holy Ghost is the secret
of the Church's power. It is the greatest need in every sphere of Christian activity, that the message of

195
salvation might be proclaimed with the Divine unction, which alone can insure its success.
It is now our purpose to deal with (1) the name of this experience, (2) its definition, purpose, and
necessity, (3) for whom it is provided, (4) conditions for obtaining, (5) how to receive, (6) the manner of its
reception, (7) evidences and results, and (8) additional infillings of the Spirit.

A. The Name of the Experience.


It is important in dealing with scriptural truths and experiences, that we adhere to scriptural names,
otherwise one cannot be sure that he has received the true scriptural experience. It is not wise to tamper with
the revelation of God's truths as He has seen fit to give them.

1. Negatively.
a) It is not "The Second Definite Work of Grace." This expression is nowhere used in the Bible,
though we hear it a great deal in certain religious circles. We would not say that we do not believe in a
second work of grace, for we are anxious to receive all that God has for us; but if there is a second work of
grace, perhaps there is a third, fourth, fifth, etc. In other words we believe in a continual growth in grace (2
Pt. 3:18). This, however, does not describe the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.
b) It is not "The Second Blessing." Here again, is an expression not used in Scripture. Undoubtedly
God has a second, and many other blessings for His children; but to call a definite, spiritual experience by this
name is not biblical. Receive every blessing possible from the Lord, but realize that "The Second Blessing" is
not what God calls the outpouring of the Holy Spirit.
c) It is not "Sanctification." Sanctification is the scriptural name for something quite different from the
Baptism with the Holy Spirit. This subject has been dealt with under Soteriology.
d) It is not "Holiness." Holiness is a blessed scriptural word, but it describes an attribute of character
rather than an experience. It is developed, not received as a gift or single blessing.

2. Positively - is "The Baptism with the Holy Spirit."


The scriptural name for the Holy Spirit coming upon the lives of Christian men and women is "The
Baptism with the Holy Ghost." Notice the explicit language of the following scriptures: ". . . he shall baptize
you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire . . ." (Mt. 3:11); "I indeed have baptized you with water: but he shall
baptize you with the Holy Ghost" (Mk. 1:8); 'For John truly baptized with water: but ye shall be baptized with
the Holy Ghost not many days hence" (Acts 1:5).
This great experience must be called by its right name. Others, no doubt, have had the same experience in
former days, who have failed to call it by its scriptural name. As a result, they have failed to pass the truth on
to others. To say that these other names mean the same thing is to confuse God's blessings, purposes, and
provisions for His own.

B. What the Baptism with the Holy Spirit Is.


1. Negatively.
a) It is not the New Birth. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit is subsequent to, and distinct from, His
Regenerative Work. A full Christian experience should certainly contain both; but this distinction must be
made, because many are genuinely saved who have never been filled with the Spirit. The following facts
prove this distinction.
(1) The apostles were converted under the ministry of Jesus - Jn 1:35-50; Lk. 10:20; Jn. 13:10,11: Jn.
15:3. They were commanded to tarry, and were instantly filled with the Spirit at least two years later (Lk.
24:49; Acts 1:13,14; 2:1-4).
(2) The Samaritans were saved under the ministry of Philip - Acts 8:5-8,12. They were baptized with

196
the Holy Ghost under the ministry of Peter and John some days later (Acts 8:14-17).
(3) Paul was converted on the road to Damascus by a personal vision of the resurrected Christ -
Acts 9:3-9. He was baptized with the Holy Ghost under the ministry of Ananias three days later (Acts 9:17-
19).
(4) The twelve men at Ephesus were "believers" - according to Paul's own words to them: "Have ye
received the Holy Ghost since ye believed?" or 'Did ye receive the Holy Ghost when ye believed?' (Acts
19:2). These believers were baptized in water and later received the Baptism with the Holy Spirit subsequent
to the laying on of the apostle's hands (Acts 19:2-7). The second translation of verse two, as given above, is
followed by many other modern versions. Those who teach that all who are saved receive the Baptism with
the Holy Spirit at the same time as salvation, use this translation to seek to prove their point. But the answer
of these believing Ephesians to the question: "Did ye receive the Holy Ghost when you believed?" was "We
have not so much as heard whether there be any Holy Ghost" (Acts 19:2). Yet, they were believers. One,
then, can be a believer and not have been filled with the Spirit. There need not be a long period of time
between salvation and the fullness of the Spirit, but the Baptism with the Spirit is an additional experience to
the New Birth.
b) It is not Sanctification. As has been noted under Soteriology, Sanctification is a manifestation of
God's Grace entirely different from the Baptism with the Holy Ghost. The two augment each other, but are
vitally different in character and purpose. Sanctification has to do with separation to God, and purification for
His service. It is two-fold: (1) instantaneous (Jn. 15:3; 1 Cor. 6:11; Heb. 10:10-14), this phase of
Sanctification refers particularly to the believer's standing in Christ;
(2) progressive (1 Thes. 5:23; Heb. 6:1; 12:14), this refers to the daily process by which the believer's
actual condition is brought up to his standing.
c) It is not a reward for years of Christian service, nor is it the zenith of Christian experience.
This should be clearly understood, for many have adopted the idea that to have received the Baptism with the
Holy Spirit marks them as superior in spirituality, and worthy of some special dispensation from God. On the
contrary, believers were taught to expect the fullness of the Spirit immediately after conversion and water
baptism. ". . . Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins,
and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost" (Acts 2:38). In other words, the Baptism with the Spirit is
available to new-born babes in Christ.
The Baptism with the Holy Spirit is not something to have, but something to use. It is not the height of
spiritual experience, but one of the tremendously essential foundations for further development and service. d)
An error corrected. There are those who teach that the Holy Spirit was poured out once and for all on the Day
of Pentecost, and we need to expect no further experiences of this kind, either individually or collectively.
Note, however, that Peter in quoting Joel 2:29, did not say: "Now is fulfilled that which was spoken by
the prophet Joel." If he had, there would be nothing more to expect. The prophecy would be fulfilled. But
what he did say was: "This is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel." Peter gave his listeners to
understand - this is what Joel was prophesying about; leaving them, and us, to expect further similar
manifestations. Notice the specific wording in Scripture when a prophecy is finally fulfilled: 'All this was
done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophet, saying, Tell ye the daughter of Sion, Behold
thy King cometh unto thee, meek, and sitting upon an ass, and a colt the foal of an ass" (Mt. 21:4,5); "And
they crucified him, and parted his garments, casting lots: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the
prophet, they parted my garments among them, and upon my vesture did they cast lots" (Mt. 27:35).
Pentecost was not the fulfillment. There have been many since that day. The full consummation of Joel's
prophecy is still in the future when all the accompanying signs will attend (Joel 2:30,31).
Furthermore, the above mentioned position is untenable because the book of Acts records at least four
other occasions when the Spirit was poured out after the Day of Pentecost: Acts 8:14-17; 9:17; 10:44-46;
19:2-7.
The Baptism with the Holy Ghost was given once and for all, as far as the Church in general is concerned

197
- He was made available. The gift of eternal life was offered once and for all at Calvary. But to suggest that
every believer is filled with the Spirit is just like asserting that every creature is saved for eternity. There
must be a definite, individual acceptance and experience of each.
If the Spirit was poured out only at Pentecost, then those 120 or so were the only ones who received the
Baptism with the Holy Spirit. Salvation is not by proxy, nor is it handed down from one generation to
another; neither is the Baptism with the Spirit. Each must be received individually.

2. Positively.
a) The Baptism with the Holy Ghost is a definite experience, subsequent to salvation, whereby the
Third Person of the Godhead comes upon the believer to anoint and energize him for special service. This
experience is designated, in the New Testament, as the Spirit "falling upon," "coming upon," or being "poured
out upon" the yielded believer in a sudden and supernatural manner.
b) The promise of the Father. "And, behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you..." (Lk. 24:49).
"And being assembled together with them, commanded them that they should not depart from Jerusalem, but
wait for the promise of the Father.... (Acts 1:4). These promises are of great encouragement to the seeking
heart. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit is not something which he must persuade the Father to give him.
God took the initiative and promised the Holy Spirit. This great experience did not originate with men.
Furthermore, the Father will not forget that which He has promised. In addition, He is abundantly able to
fulfill the promise which He has given.
c) A gift. '. . . Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of
sins, and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost" (Acts 2:38). "And we are his witnesses of these things;
and so is also the Holy Ghost, whom God hath given to them that obey him" (Acts 5:32). If the Baptism with
the Holy Spirit is a gift, then it is free and cannot be worked for, merited, or deserved in any manner. The
Spirit is not received as a reward for hours of prayer, nor because of deep sacrifices made. The Spirit comes
as a free gift of God's Grace. Receive Him freely!
d) The Command of the Lord. "And being assembled together with them, commanded them that they
should not depart from Jerusalem, but wait for the promise of the Father, which, saith he, ye have heard of
me" (Acts 1:4). "And we are his witnesses of these things; and so is also the Holy Ghost, whom God hath
given to them that obey him" (Acts 5:32). 'And be not drunk with wine, wherein is excess; but be filled with
the Spirit . . ." (Eph. 5:18). The matter of receiving the fullness of the Spirit is not left to the believer's whim
or fancy. Here is a strict command of the Lord, and each one has a responsibility to obey. Failure to do so
constitutes disobedience.

C. The Purpose and Necessity of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.
1. Power for service.
The chief purpose of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is that the believer might have power for Christian
service. It may well be that the greatest promise given to the Christian is that given by Jesus to His disciples
just prior to His Ascension: "But ye shall receive power, after that the Holy Ghost is come upon you: and ye
shall be witnesses unto me both in Jerusalem, and in all Judaea, and in Samaria, and unto the uttermost part of
the earth" (Acts 1:8). This power for special service is the distinctive result of having been filled with the
Spirit.
Jesus was anointed with the Holy Ghost before He began His public ministry and He performed His
mighty works by the power of the Spirit. He preached and healed under the anointing of the Holy Spirit.
The Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because he hath anointed me to preach deliverance to the captives, and
recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are bruised ... (Lk 4:18).
How God anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Ghost and with power: who went about doing good, and
healing all that were oppressed of the devil; for God was with him (Acts 10:38).

198
But if I cast out devils by the Spirit of God, then the kingdom of God is come unto you (Mt. 12:28).
As great as were the Savior's acts, He promised that His disciples would perform greater works through
the power of the Spirit, Whom He would send unto them when He returned to the Father. "Verily, verily, I
say unto you, He that believeth on me, the works that I do shall he do also; and greater works than these shall
he do; because I go unto my Father" (Jn. 14:12). It is probable that Jesus was referring to the disciples' works
as being greater in quantity rather than in quality.
The disciples were transformed into different men after the Holy Spirit came upon them at Pentecost. In
John 20:19 they are seen huddled together behind closed doors "for fear of the Jews." That very same group
of men could not be kept behind closed doors (Acts 5:17-20), and they became as bold as lions before the
Jewish authorities in the power of the Holy Spirit. Hear them say to the Jewish rulers: "Whether it be right in
the sight of God to harken unto you more than unto God, judge ye. For we cannot but speak the things which
we have seen and heard" (Acts 4:19,20). Hear them pray: "And now, Lord, behold their threatenings: and
grant unto thy servants, that with all boldness they may speak thy word
... and they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and spake the word of God with boldness" (Acts 4:29-31).
Stephen had power: "And Stephen, full of faith and power, did great wonders and miracles among the
people ... And they were not able to resist the wisdom and the spirit by which he spake" (Acts 6:8,10). Paul
preached in power: "And my speech and my preaching was not with enticing words of man's wisdom, but in
demonstration of the Spirit and of power.. ." (1 Cor. 2:4).

2. Power for spiritual warfare.


The believer needs the fullness of the power of the Holy Spirit upon his life because of the very nature of
the task which has been committed to him. He is sent out to accomplish a spiritual task, and this is not
possible without spiritual ability. Moreover, the Christian worker is opposed by great forces from the enemy,
and the conflict is in the spiritual realm; thus, he needs spiritual ability and power to be successful in his
work. "For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the
rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in the high places" (Eph. 6:12). Spiritual
weapons are provided: "For though we walk in the flesh, we do not war in the flesh: (for the weapons of our
warfare are not carnal, but mighty through God to the pulling down of strongholds;) casting down
imaginations, and every high thing that exalteth itself against the knowledge of God, and bringing
into captivity every thought to the obedience of Christ. . ." (2 Cor. 10:3-5). There is no substitute for the
power of the Holy Spirit. He who refuses or resists Him is helpless: Greater is he that is in you, than he that is
in the world" (1 Jn. 4:4).

3. Power for "overflow."


Jesus challenged, ". . . If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. He that believeth on me, as the
scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. (But this spake he of the Spirit, which
they that believe on him should receive; for the Holy Ghost was not yet given; because that Jesus was not yet
glorified)" On. 7:37-39). Note particularly the words "out of." The power is to flow "out of" the believer. It
is not enough that the Lord has the power, the individual worker must have it too. An outflow can only be an
overflow. God's servants are more than empty channels. They are vessels. The Lord is looking for those
whom He can so fill with His presence and power that they will flow over to others. The only real blessing
one can bring to others is that which is the overflow of his own experience with God. It is not how much he
can hold, but how much he can overflow.
Note the great promise of Ephesians 3:20: "Now unto him that is able to do [ALL ... ALL that we ASK ...
ALL that we ASK or THINK ... ABOVE ALL that we ASK or THINK ... ABUNDANTLY ABOVE ALL
that we ASK or THINK ... ] EXCEEDING ABUNDANTLY ABOVE ALL that we ASK or THINK." What a
promise! But see the closing statement: "according to the power that worketh in us." It is not enough that God
has all this exceeding, abundant power; the believer must have it before he can be mightily used of God.

199
Jesus gave His disciples power to heal the sick and to cast out demons (Mt. 10:1). It was His power, to be
sure, but He bestowed it on them. Believers today may have the same power through the fullness of God's
Holy Spirit.

4. Power for ability.


Power from on high is "ability" from heaven. God-given ability to do God-given tasks and to carry out
God-given commissions. It is the ability of a Person who abides within. It is the ability to follow Divine
guidance into fields known only by God. It is ability to respond to Divine providence. It is ability to exalt the
Lord Jesus Christ. It is ability to love divinely as Jesus loved. It is ability to preach Christ with conviction
and persuasion. It is, moreover, ability to exercise spiritual gifts for the edification of the Church. It is,
further, ability to suffer persecution for the Lord's sake. It is, also, ability to live a holy life above the sordid
standards of the world. Finally, it is ability to work for God; to work lovingly, willingly, faithfully, and
untiringly; ability to work until Jesus comes, or until earth's race is r(Jn.

D. For Whom Is the Baptism with the Holy Spirit?


It has been noted above that the receiving of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit was a command of Jesus. It
was a promise of the Father and a gift of both Father and Son. The important thing to know is to whom this
command, this promise and this gift applies. No one responds to a command which he is not sure applies to
himself, nor does he seek what he is not certain is available. It is important that we know whether the Lord
has singled out a special class of people for this outstanding experience or if it applies to a wider group of
Christians.

1. Negatively.
a) It is not simply for those who lived in apostolic days. It is surprising the number of Christians who
believe that the Pentecostal outpouring of the Spirit was just for those who lived at that time - that they
needed a supernatural enduement of power which, for some reason or other, the Church does not need today.
This idea is certainly not in keeping with the words of Peter on that memorable day of the first outpouring:
"Repent, and be baptized every one of you ... and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost, for the promise
is unto you, and to your children, and to all that are afar off, even as many as the Lord our God shall call"
(Acts 2:38,39). It is hard to imagine one confining such a promise to any sort of limitation as far as time is
concerned. Peter referred to the present generation of his day when he said "the promise is unto you." He
specifically included the next generation with the words, "and to your children." One would gather that he
was thinking of future generations when he said, "and to all that are afar off." Some might limit that to a few
hundred years, but it is hard to say the next words do not mean every Christian of every future day - "even as
many as the Lord our God shall call." The Baptism with the Holy Spirit is for the Church of God in all ages.
God is no respecter of times, within the Church age, anymore than He is respecter of persons. There were no
needs, problems or urgencies existing in the Early Church times that do not still exist today. As long as the
Great Commission still is in effect, binding us to the duty of world-wide evangelization, there will still be a
provision for power to fulfill the Commission.
b) It is not simply for ministers, missionaries, and those in special service for the Lord. If there is
one truth emphasized in the New Testament, it is that of the unity of the Body of Christ and the importance of
every member to that Body. The Apostle Paul plainly and emphatically teaches that no one member is of
greater importance than another.
And the eye cannot say unto the hand, I have no need of thee: nor again the head to the feet, I have no
need of you. Nay, much more those members of the body, which seem to be more feeble are necessary: and
those members of the body, which we think to be less honorable, upon these we bestow more abundant honor;
and our uncomely parts have more abundant comeliness. For our comely parts have no need: but God hath
tempered the body together, having given more abundant honor to that part which lacked: that there should be

200
no schism in the body; but that the members should have the same care one for another (1 Cor. 12:21-25).
If this be true, then every Christian is of equal importance to the accomplishing of God's Perfect Will
through His Church. The humblest Christian, who is walking in the center of God's Will, is just as much a
servant of the Lord as the most famous preacher of his day. One is called to one ministry, and another to
another (Rom. 12: 3-8). God is concerned with faithfulness wherever He has placed each one. Often it is the
more difficult to be faithful in what seem to be small places than it is to be faithful in the larger. Every
Christian needs the Baptism with the Holy Spirit to be able to fulfill his part in the great scheme of
ministering the
Gospel to a needy world.
c) It is not simply for a special privileged class. Peter had to learn that the fullness of the Spirit was
for Gentiles as well as Jews (Acts 10:34,35, 44-48; 11:15-18). The Lord is no respecter of persons and plays
no favorites. Every one is treated the same and God's gifts are free to all alike.
Neither must one think that after he has received the Baptism with the Spirit he is better than others. All
of God's gifts are of Grace, and that which is received freely in no wise contributes to the personal
glorification of the individual. The glory all belongs to Him - the Great Giver. The reception of the Fullness
of the Spirit never increases one's personal prestige, but rather serves to increase his responsibility. If one has
great power, God has a right to expect greater service.
d) It is not simply for matured Christians. There is a good deal of sentiment abroad that the Baptism
with the Holy Spirit is only for those who are deeply matured in their Christian life, and one must wait until
he achieves such a position before he can hope to receive. It is significant that the Lord baptized the
Samaritan Christians just a few days after their conversion (Acts 8:14-17). Those in the house of Cornelius
were filled with the Spirit almost immediately after believing the word which Peter was preaching to them. In
fact, it seems that the sermon was interrupted by the Holy Ghost falling upon them (Acts 10:44-46).

2. The youngest believer needs, and can have, this gift of God.
It is for power for service, and that is needed just as soon as one enlists under the banner of the Lord.
Christians were taught to expect the Baptism with the Holy Ghost immediately after Conversion and Water
Baptism (Acts 2:38). 2. Positively - for all who believe.
The Baptism with the Holy Spirit is for all, in all ages, who believe on Jesus Christ as Savior and Lord
and are children of God through Him. It is intended to be the normal Divine provision for a fully adequate
Christian work and witness, available to all believers of all stations, all times, all races, and all callings.

E. Conditions for Obtaining the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.


What is necessary before one can receive this marvelous experience? Are there some necessary
preliminary steps which must be taken? The Scriptures indicate the following conditions which must be met:

1. Repentance from sin.


When the multitude came to Peter on that memorable Day of Pentecost and cried, "Men and brethren,
what shall we do?" He replied, "Repent ... be baptized ... and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost" (Acts
2:37,38). Repentance, then, is the very first step. The Holy Spirit cannot operate where sin holds sway. (See
also Acts 17:30.)

2. A definite experience of salvation.


Repentance must be followed by faith in Jesus Christ for salvation. Repentance, of itself, is only
negative. A positive faith is necessary before the New Birth takes place. Luke 11:13 stresses the fact that it is
"your heavenly Father" who gives "the Holy Spirit to them that ask." One must be in the family of God before

201
he can expect this Gift of the Father. The Holy Spirit is the Gift of the Father, and only those who have been
saved can call Him "Father." 'And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your
hearts, crying Abba, Father" (Gal. 4:6).

3. Water Baptism.
Again, attention is called to Peter's words to those on the Day of Pentecost who cried, 'Men and brethren,
what shall we do?" Peter replied, 'Repent ... and be baptized. . ." (Acts 2:37,38). The order seems to be:
Repentance, Regeneration, Water Baptism, and then the Baptism with the Holy Ghost. Each step of
obedience opens the way for the next. It is not dogmatically claimed that one who has not been baptized in
water could never receive the Fullness of the Spirit; but, inasmuch as Water Baptism is a step of obedience, it
is necessary. No one who is knowingly and willingly disobedient to any of God's commands can have faith to
receive the Fullness of the Spirit. Faith always follows obedience.
It is interesting, though, to notice that in two cases recorded in the book of Acts, the outpouring of the
Holy Spirit preceded Water Baptism. It seems that Saul of Tarsus, the Apostle Paul, was healed of his
blindness and filled with the Spirit as Ananias laid his hands on him in the house of Judas on the street called
Straight. "Brother Saul, the Lord, even Jesus, that appeared unto thee in the way as thou camest, hath sent
me, that thou mightest receive thy sight, and be filled with the Holy Ghost." After this we read: "And
immediately there fell from his eyes as it had been scales: and he received sight forthwith, and arose, and was
baptized" (Acts 9:17,18).
We know that those who were gathered in the house of Cornelius, at Caesarea, believed the word Peter
preached and were filled with the Spirit right then. Peter, seeing this, said, "Can any man forbid water that
these should be baptized, in the name of the Lord" (Acts 10:44-48). We note that in both of these cases the
Holy Spirit came upon new believers before they had a chance to be baptized in water. However,
immediately after their acceptance of Christ they were baptized. For those who are believers, and are seeking
the Fullness of the Spirit, Water Baptism would be a necessary step. Many have received the Fullness of the
Spirit as they were brought up out of the waters of baptism.

4. A deep conviction of need.


There must be a real hunger and thirst for more of God before one will receive the Baptism with the
Spirit. God does not give such gracious gifts except as they are sincerely desired and deeply appreciated.
"Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness: for they shall be filled" (Mt. 5:6). "If any
man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink ... (But this spake he of the Spirit, which they that believe on him
should receive ... )" (Jn. 7:37-39). "As the hart panteth after the water brooks, so panteth my soul after thee, 0
God. My soul thirsteth for God. . ." (Ps. 42:1,2).

5. A measure of consecration.
Inasmuch as a person is yielding himself for a baptism of power for service, there must be a surrender of
the self-will to the Will of God. Henceforth, one is willing to be led in the path of His choosing. Do not
confuse this yieldedness of the will with a complete abandonment of the will, in the sense that one becomes
will-less. This is dangerous, for it leaves one open to the power of evil spirits. At all times, one is in full
possession of his will and all his faculties. It does mean the changing of the center of one's will from self to
Christ. He makes the greatest use of the person's will who is willing to yield that will to the Spirit of God for
His direction and control.

F. How to Receive the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.


Having considered the meaning, the purpose, the necessity, as well as some of the main conditions that
must be met for the receiving of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit, it is our purpose now to consider just how

202
one obtains this rich blessing from the Lord. This is not an easy question to answer, inasmuch as God is not
confined to just one method of fulfilling His promises, nor are any two human beings exactly alike in their
reception of spiritual things. There are, however, certain general principles which can be observed and which
serve as a guide to the sincere seeking soul. The following basic truths will provide some help in this area.

1. By faith.
That we might receive the promise of the Spirit through faith" (Gal. 3:14). "(But this spake he of the
Spirit, which they that believe on him should receive." (Jn. 7:39). Everything we receive from the Lord is
done so by faith: ".. for he that cometh to God must believe. . ." (Heb. 11:6). There is no other way. The
Baptism with the Spirit is not primarily a matter of feelings, of signs or evidences. It is a matter of believing
that God will send His Promise upon us - that Jesus will baptize with the Holy Spirit.
However, it should be clearly understood that when one takes something from the Lord by faith, he
actually gets it. Do not confuse receiving something by faith with merely hoping for it, thinking that you have
received, or just taking for granted that the Spirit has come. One can believe, merely from a mental
standpoint, that he is saved, yet never experience the transforming power of regeneration in his life. Real
faith gets through to an actual experience, and there is an assured witness that one has been truly born of the
Spirit. Likewise, with the Baptism with the Holy Spirit. There is such a thing as believing that one has
accepted the Fullness of the Spirit by faith, without having Him come upon him in mighty power. Keep your
heart open before the Lord with an expectant faith until you actually know the Spirit has baptized you. Do not
substitute thinking for experiencing. When the Spirit comes in His fullness, no one needs to be told that He is
there. Still, it must be kept in mind that the Spirit will come only as one believes the promises of God. Faith
operates in the following ways:
a) Faith in the promise of God. Faith is not centered in oneself, but on the fact that God has promised
to give the Holy Spirit, and He will keep His word.
If a son shall ask bread of any of you that is a father, will he give him a stone? or if he ask a fish, will he
for a fish give him a serpent? or if he shall ask an egg, will he offer him a scorpion? If ye then, being evil,
know how to give good gifts unto your children: how much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy
Spirit to them that ask him? (Lk 11:11-13).
. . . What things soever ye desire, when ye pray, believe that ye receive them, and ye shall have them (Mk.
11:24).
b) Faith that the promise is for you. "For the promise is unto you . . (Acts 2:38,39). "For every one
that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh findeth; and to him that knocketh it shall be opened" (Lk. 11:10). A
general belief in the promise of God is not sufficient. There must be a personal appropriation of the promise
of the Spirit. It is not a case of personal worthiness, but of God's promise to each one individually because of
the worthiness of Jesus. He is no respecter of persons, and if He has bestowed the Spirit on others who are
saved by grace, He will also hear and meet the cry of each one who comes in sincerity. It is not glorifying to
the Lord to believe that He will do for one of His children what He will not do for all.
c) A persistency of faith that will not be denied. The two parables of Jesus in Luke 11-5-10 and 18:1-
8, emphasize the importance of a consistency, and persistency, of faith which will not be denied. Sometimes
the Lord may delay the granting of this request because receiving the Baptism with the Holy Spirit marks a
great turning point in one's Christian experience, and the Lord is concerned that the motives and desires of the
seeking heart might be fully tested. Many have been the most discouraged just before the Spirit came in His
fullness. Stand on God's promise until it is completely fulfilled.
d) Faith will be manifest in praise and thanksgiving. Realizing the greatness of what God has
promised, and that which He is about to do, should cause the heart to rejoice and overflow with thankfulness.
Almost invariably the Holy Spirit comes as one is praising the Lord. Praise is a manifestation of faith. Praise
can be given to God, even when one does not feel like doing so. Thankfulness and praise to God are not to be
centered in one's feelings, but in the Greatness of God. God is the same, regardless of how one may feel. He

203
is always worthy of the adoration of His own.

2. By a full yieldedness of the entire being, in order that the Holy Spirit might have His own way.
This is often the most difficult condition to fulfill, After one realizes his need of the Baptism with the
Spirit, and comes to the Lord for this Blessing, there is still the matter of the yieldedness of his various
faculties to the control of the Spirit. It is generally easier to do something for one's self, than to yield to
another to do it for him. John said, concerning Jesus, "He shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with
fire" (Lk. 3:16; Mk. 1:8; Mt. 3:11). When the subject of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is mentioned,
people usually think of the Holy Spirit - and rightly so. But it must be realized that this mighty experience is
primarily an encounter with the Lord Jesus Christ. Peter confirmed our Lord's personal association with this
Pentecostal experience when, on the Day of Pentecost, he said, "This Jesus hath God raised up, whereof we
all are witnesses. Therefore being by the right hand of God exalted, and having received of the Father the
promise of the Holy Ghost, he hath shed forth this which ye now see and hear " (Acts 2:32,33). When one
receives the Baptism with the Holy Spirit, he is yielding to Christ. If he rejects the Pentecostal experience he
is rejecting a distinct ministry of Jesus Christ. There must be a baptizer in order for there to be a baptism.
One must yield himself completely to the one who is immersing him in the waters of baptism. Likewise, one
must yield to the One Who is baptizing him in the Holy Spirit. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit, then, is a
total yielding to the Lord Jesus Christ. Thus, it brings the recipient into a new and more intimate relationship
with Jesus Christ.
This thought of yieldedness is perhaps the fundamental thought behind the entire Spirit-filled life and
ministry. Every phase of service after this must be the result of yielding to the power and presence of the
Holy Ghost. Thus God seeks to teach, right from the start, the secret of yielding to Him.
Here is something that it is virtually impossible to tell another how to do. Some have sought for the
fullness of the Spirit for years, and wondered why they did not receive the full anointing. Upon receiving,
they have testified that, had they only known how to yield to the Spirit, they could have received years before.
But each must learn this important lesson for himself, for God wants every individual to know how to let
Him have His way in the days to come. There is something blessedly individualistic about this great
experience with God, and it seems that the Lord has left it so that each may learn for himself.
It is vitally important, however, to realize that at no time does the Lord require a believer to surrender his
own personality. Many of the satanic cults of the present day seek to bring a person to the place of the
negation of his own personality. This is dangerous, and the Lord does not work this way. He has given each
one the personality which he possesses and He would operate through it. The Holy Spirit does not take the
place of the individual. He simply seeks to shine through him, enhancing and glorifying the human talents
and his entire being. He does not supply a new set of functions, but utilizes those which are already there and
which are yielded to Him. This, again, emphasizes the individualistic nature of God's dealings with His
children.
Moses was amazed as he turned aside to see the bush that was burning on the backside of the desert (Ex.
3:2,3). The thing that impressed him was not that the bush was aglow, but that it was not consumed.
Likewise, when the Holy Spirit sets the hearts and lives of believers aglow with the fiery glory of His
presence, the individual personality is not consumed. The dross is consumed, but the life itself becomes
radiant with God's glory.

3. A word about "tarrying" for the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.
In the early days of the twentieth century outpouring of the Pentecostal Baptism with the Holy Spirit, it
was quite customary to speak of "tarrying" for the Baptism with the Spirit. The idea of "tarrying" for the
Pentecostal experience came from two verses of Scripture: "And, behold I send the promise of my Father
upon you; but tarry ye in the city of Jerusalem, until ye be endued with power from on high" (Lk. 24:49).
"And, being assembled together with them, commanded them that they should not depart from Jerusalem, but

204
wait for the promise of the Father. . ." (Acts 1:4).
In obedience to these commands, the disciples did tarry a number of days; in fact, until the Day of
Pentecost, at which time the Comforter descended in His initial coming, from which time He was to abide in
the Church for ever. It was necessary for the disciples to wait for the promise, because the Advent of the
Comforter was set for a certain day, just as the
Advent of the Son was set for a certain day. Clearly, the disciples could not have received before that set
day. Before the Day of Pentecost, it was necessary to wait for the promised Comforter; since the Day of
Pentecost, the abiding Comforter waits for the believer. We conclude, therefore, that it is not now necessary
to wait for the Spirit.
An examination of every passage in the book of Acts, which mentions the Holy Spirit baptism, reveals
that in every case the believers who received the blessed experience, received it in the very first prayer
meeting, or on the very first occasion when it was sought. The apostles did not hold "tarrying" meetings; they
held "receiving" meetings. Now, because of the careless use of the word "tarry," many hungry seekers have
been given the impression that the Spirit baptism can only be received after weeks or months of tarrying.
Those who have been given this impression find it hard to exercise faith for immediate reception. Seekers
should be taught that the Spirit is willing to fill them as soon as they open their hearts, yield their lives, and
exercise faith.
There is a distinct difference between a tarrying meeting and a prayer meeting for the reception of the
Spirit. He who tarries for the Spirit believes that he will receive when God is ready. He who prays for the
Spirit knows that He will come when the seeker is ready. Note the manner in which the Holy Spirit was
received in the revival at Samaria:
Now when the apostles which were at Jerusalem heard that Samaria had received the word of God, they
sent unto them Peter and John: who, when they were come down, prayed for them that they might receive the
Holy Ghost ... then laid they their hands on them, and they received the Holy Ghost (Acts 8:14-17).
When the Apostles from Jerusalem came to Samaria they found a great revival in progress. Many had
been gloriously saved, but none had received the Holy Ghost. The apparent reason for this was that they had
received no teaching on this subject. When Peter and John had taught concerning the Holy Spirit, they held a
prayer meeting with the new converts; after which, they laid hands on them and the Spirit was poured out. In
Samaria there was no "tarrying," but there was certainly praying.
The question might well be asked, in the light of what has been said above, why so many pray so long
before receiving? The Bible does not record one case of a person's seeking for long periods of time before
receiving. However, the biblical examples are taken from an era of more or less ideal conditions. Faith was
high and doctrinal teachings were quite uniform. The Apostles were men of great faith and spiritual power
who created high expectancy in those who heard them. Unfortunately, such is not always the case today, and
many seek for a deeper experience hardly realizing what they are seeking, and with little faith to cause them
to expect immediate results. However, Jesus is the same as in those Early
Church days, and the reception of the Spirit need not differ any today from what it was at that time. This
is being witnessed in many churches where apostolic conditions are present.
In addition to things already mentioned, it should be added that the following conditions, if they existed,
would cause delay in receiving the fullness of God's promise: weak faith, unholy living, imperfect
consecration and ego-centric motives.
Weak faith could be caused by a meager knowledge of the blessing to be received and the notion that long
periods of "tarrying" are invariably necessary before receiving. Appropriating faith must believe that the
blessing is available now.
It should not be hard for anyone to understand that the Spirit Who is HOLY would not care to operate
through unholy channels. Thus, unholy living could be a real barrier to receiving His fullness. Paul has a
great passage on the necessity of cleansing before a vessel can be "meet for the master's use." (2 Tm. 2:19-
21). There must be an experience of cleansing preceding one's Baptism with the Holy Spirit.

205
Imperfect consecration is, likewise, a hindrance to receiving. The Baptism with the Spirit is given to
empower one for service. Unless one is willing to yield himself for whatever service the Lord may choose,
why should the Lord fill him? Any who seek the Fullness of the Spirit without any intention of serving the
Lord, whatever He chooses, need to heed Paul's admonition in Roman's 12:1.
Finally, let it be observed that ego-centric motives may be a widely prevalent reason for delay in
receiving the Baptism with the Holy Spirit. Does one seek God's Fullness only in order that he may not be
behind others in the church in relation to attainment? Does one seek only for the joy of an emotional
experience; or that he may be esteemed as spiritual? One's desire to receive the Baptism with the Spirit must
not be for any selfish purpose, but rather for the purpose of being more useful to God for the winning of souls
and the extension of His kingdom. In too many of our churches the Pentecostal experience is held up as a
badge of spiritual prestige, rather than a means of godly living, radiant witnessing, and powerful service.

G. The Manner in which the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is Received.
A brief outline shows the various ways in which this great experience was received in the Early Church.
God is a God of infinite variety, and we must not think that there is any stilted form in which the Spirit is
received.

1. Suddenly, while sitting and expecting Him to come (Acts 2:1-4).


2. Instantly and unexpectedly, while listening to a sermon (Acts 10:44-46).
While these men were not specifically expecting the Holy Spirit to come in this manner, they were in an
expectant attitude; and their hearts were open to God's truth, whatever that might be.
3. Through prayer and the laying on of the apostles' hands (Acts 8:14-17; 9:17; 19:6).
4. Through the seeker's personal prayer and faith (Lk. 11:9-13; Jn. 7:37-39).

H. The Evidence and Results of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit.
An experience so great and so important as the Baptism with the Holy Spirit undoubtedly will be
accompanied by unmistakable evidences, so that the recipient will have no doubts whatsoever that he has
indeed received the Promise of the Father. Some of the evidence is manifested immediately, while others
continue on a permanent basis as one walks in the Fullness of the Spirit.

1. Immediate evidences.
a) Speaking with other tongues as the Spirit gives utterance (Acts 2:4; 10:44-46; 19:6). The question
of the initial evidence of the reception of the gift of the Holy Spirit is one of paramount importance to all who
hunger to be filled with the Spirit. It is logical that the supernatural experience of the Baptism with the Holy
Spirit would be accompanied by some definite and unmistakable sign by which the seeker would be assured
that he had received. There are many operations of the Spirit, but only one Baptism with the Spirit. If there
were no particular supernatural evidence of the Baptism with the Spirit, by which it could be distinguished
from all other operations of the Spirit, how could anyone be assured of the experience? We believe that the
initial evidence of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit is that of speaking with other tongues as the Spirit gives
utterance. The evidence of the Spirit's fullness on the Day of Pentecost was that of speaking with other
tongues by the prompting of the Holy Spirit. "And they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to
speak with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance" (Acts 2:4). The manifestation of the Spirit on the
Day of Pentecost was the original outpouring of the empowerment of the Church. It was the pattern for the
Pentecostal experience. What the disciples did when they were first filled, we reasonably expect all to do
who are filled in the same sense. Inasmuch as the purpose of the anointing was to give power to witness, it is
not surprising that the sign of the experience was manifested in their utterance.

206
In addition to the initial outpouring of the Spirit, as recorded in Acts 2:4, we have the account of the
reception of the Spirit by the believers in the house of Cornelius given in Acts 10:44-46a:
While Peter yet spake these words, the Holy Ghost fell on all them that heard the word. And they of the
circumcision which believed were astonished, as many as came with Peter, because that on the Gentiles also
was poured out the gift of the Holy Ghost. For they heard them speak with tongues, and magnify God.
It is interesting, and important, to note how the Jews who came with Peter knew that these Gentiles had
received the Holy Ghost experience that the disciples received on the Day of Pentecost. The Scripture says
that they knew because "they heard them speak with tongues." This verse reads literally, "for they hearing
them continuing to speak with tongues." Their speaking in tongues was no brief confusion of syllables, but a
full and flowing speaking of a language which brought amazement to the hearers. Now if those present were
convinced that the Gentiles had an equivalent Holy Ghost experience to that enjoyed by the Jews on the
grounds of their speaking with tongues, then tongues must be the unmistakable sign or initial evidence of the
Pentecostal experience. One can know, today, that his baptism is a genuine Pentecostal experience,
equivalent to that of the disciples, when he experiences speaking with other tongues by the power of the
Spirit. One does not seek the tongues, but the Spirit Himself; however, he does seek such a sign as will make
him sure that he has been filled in biblical fashion.
A third account of believers receiving the Fullness of the Spirit, where it is specifically mentioned that
they spoke with tongues, is recorded in Acts 19:6. "And when Paul had laid his hands upon them, the Holy
Ghost came on them; and they spake with tongues, and prophesied." This was in the city of Ephesus. The
theory, that some have advanced, is that the Spirit's anointing with the evidence of speaking with other
tongues was only given when a new racial group accepted the Gospel, such as the Jews at Pentecost, the
Samaritans in Philip's revival, and the Gentiles in the house of Cornelius. But this theory breaks down here in
Acts 19:6, where no new ethnic group can be distinguished. The same could be said of the Corinthians, who
certainly spoke with tongues.
Some oppose tongues, as the exclusive initial evidence, on the grounds that tongues are not always
mentioned in the Bible in connection with the Baptism with the Holy Spirit. It is true that three accounts say
nothing of tongues, but the omission is due to the brevity of those accounts. In the record of the outpouring
on the Samaritans (Acts 8:14-19) no mention is made of an accompanying sign, but the fact that Simon was
willing to pay money for the power to impart the gift of the Spirit shows that some audible or visible sign
made the gift spectacular. It is logical to assume that he heard them speak with tongues.
In Acts 4:31 there is no mention of tongues. But this could well have been a refilling of those who were
initially baptized on the Day of Pentecost. "And when they had prayed, the place was shaken where they
were assembled together; and they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and they spake the word of God with
boldness."
In Acts 9:17 we do not read that Paul spoke with tongues when he received the Spirit; but that he did is
quite certain from his testimony, "I thank my God, I speak with tongues more than ye all" (1 Cor. 14:18).
In this connection, two thoughts should be noted. First, the first and last biblical accounts of the reception
of the Holy Spirit (Acts 2:4; 19:6) mention that the recipients spoke with tongues. Secondly, in every account
of outpourings of the Holy Spirit, where any sign is mentioned, tongues is signified. Where no signs at all are
spoken of there is strong evidence that the recipients did so speak.
The Pentecostal Fellowship of North America is an association of twenty-two of the largest Pentecostal
denominations in North America. The statement of faith, to which all member groups must agree, has as its
Fifth Point: "We believe that the full gospel includes holiness of heart and life, healing for the body and the
baptism in the Holy Spirit with the initial evidence of speaking in other tongues as the Spirit gives utterance."
There are some who teach that the initial evidence of tongues is not always necessary to assure that one
has received the Fullness of the Spirit, but that any of the other gifts of the Spirit could be the evidence of the
Pentecostal experience. These sometimes mention Acts 19:6 where we read: "they spake with tongues and
prophesied." It is never claimed that all that one will do, when filled with the Spirit, is to speak with tongues.

207
Other gifts may well be manifested. All that is claimed here is that the newly baptized believers at Ephesus
did speak with tongues - as well as prophecy. Why is it claimed that speaking with tongues is the sign of the
filling more than any other gift of the Spirit? Because all of the gifts of the Spirit were more or less
manifested in Old Testament times, with the lone exception of speaking with other tongues and its
accompanying gift of interpretation of tongues. Note: The word of wisdom - Joshua (Dt. 34:9) and Solomon J
Kgs. 3:9-12); the word of knowledge - Bezaleel (Ex. 31:3); faith - Abraham (Gn. 15:6); gifts of healing -
Elijah (1 Kgs. 17:17-23) and Elisha (2 Kgs. 4:18-37); working of miracles - Elijah (2 Kgs. 1:10), Elisha (2
Kgs. 6:4-7), and Moses (Ex. 7:10,20); prophecy - Isaiah, David (2 Sm. 23:2), and Balaam (Nm. 24:2);
discerning of spirits - Ahijah (1 Kgs. 14:1-6) and Moses (Ex. 32:17-19). God was doing a new thing at
Pentecost - something never experienced before - and the sign accompanying it was something never
witnessed previously. Thus, it was a most significant sign.
b) Important points to note:
(1) Speaking in tongues is not the Baptism with the Holy Spirit - it is the initial evidence, but not the
only one.
(2) Do not seek to speak with tongues as though it were the Baptism with the Holy Spirit - seek more
of God and yield to Him. He will take care of the rest.
(3) It may well be true that some have apparently spoken in tongues who have not received the
Baptism with the Holy Spirit - the word apparently is used because it is believed that many of these are not
real languages at all. The Devil has a counterfeit for this gift as he does for all others. But, the earnest seeker
for more of God need have no fear whatever that he is going to receive anything but God's best (Lk. 11:11-
13).
(4) Other immediate evidences of a new experience of the anointing of the Spirit in the life will
include: praise to God (Acts 2:11; 2:47; 10:46); an overflowing joy (Acts 2:46); a deep burden and desire to
preach or testify about Jesus (Acts 1:8; 2:14-18; 3:31; 19:6).

2. Permanent Evidences.
a) Jesus Christ glorified and revealed as never before (Jn. 14:21-23; 15:26; 16:13-15). The Holy
Spirit centers all things in Christ. A new love is born for Him which will increase as one follows on in the
Spirit-filled life. The Holy Spirit makes one able to comprehend the Greatness of the Savior - His Person and
provisions (Eph. 1:17-23). It is recognized that many of these scriptures are realized through the ministry of
the Holy Spirit as the Comforter, who indwells all believers. But it has been experienced that all ministries of
the Holy Spirit are enhanced as a result of the Pentecostal Baptism with the Spirit.
b) A deeper passion for souls. One cannot read the history of the Early Church, immediately after
Pentecost, without realizing how there was a burning desire to proclaim the way of salvation (Acts 2:14-41;
4:19-20; 5:29-33; 6:8-10; 11:22-24; 26:28,29).
c) A greater power to witness (Acts 1:8; 2:41; 4:31-33; Jn. 15:26,27; 1 Cor. 2:4,5).
d) A new power in, and spirit of, prayer (Acts 3:1, 4:23-31; 6:4; 10:9; Rom. 8:26; Jude 20; Eph. 6:18;
1 Cor. 14:14-17).
e) A deeper love for, and richer insight into, the Word of God (Jn. 16:3).
f) The manifestations of the gifts of the Spirit (1 Cor. 12:4-11).

I. Additional Fillings with the Holy Spirit.


The Pentecostal Baptism with the Holy Spirit is a definite experience in a Christian's life, but it is more
than an experience - it is a Life. An experience is of little value if it does not leave a permanent impression on
one's life. This is particularly true of the Baptism with the Spirit. A short season of spiritual ecstasy is very
blessed while it lasts, but its value is questionable if it does not lead to a permanent possession of spiritual
power. The Baptism with the Holy Spirit should - and does - lead into a Spirit-filled life. Paul admonished

208
the Christians: "And be not drunk with wine, wherein is excess; but be filled with the Spirit. . ." (Eph. 5:18).
Literally he said, 'Be being filled with the Spirit." This is to be a continuous experience. We briefly outline
four additional fillings which the disciples received after the Day of Pentecost. The book of Acts seems to
indicate that there is one baptism, but many infillings.
1. For defending the Faith.
"Then Peter, filled with the Holy Ghost, said unto them, Ye rulers of the people, and elders of Israel . . ."
(Acts 4:8). Following the healing of the lame man at the Beautiful gate of the Temple, and the great sermon
Peter preached in Solomon's porch, the disciples were imprisoned. The following morning, the Sanhedrin
brought them out and asked the question, "By what power, or by what name have ye done this?" The bold and
inspiring answer which Peter gave was the result of his being "filled with the Spirit." This was a new
experience for humble men, but the Holy Spirit enabled them for the occasion. Jesus had told them that just
such times would come, but that the Holy Spirit would teach them what to say in such an hour. "And when
they bring you unto the synagogues, and unto magistrates, and powers, take ye no thought how or what thing
ye shall answer, or what ye shall say: for the Holy Ghost shall teach you in the same hour what ye ought to
say" (Lk. 12:11,12). The results were that the leaders "marveled" (Acts 4:13).

2. For rebuking the power of the Devil.


"Then Saul, (who also is called Paul) filled with the Holy Ghost, set his eyes on him, and said, O full of
all subtilty and all mischief, thou child of the devil, thou enemy of all righteousness, wilt thou not cease to
pervert the right ways of the Lord?" (Acts 13:9,10). On the island of Cyprus, Paul was ministering to the
deputy of the country, Sergius Paulus, when the sorcerer Elymas sought to turn the deputy away from the
faith. Paul received a special anointing of the Spirit and rebuked him in no uncertain words. When Satan
seeks to hinder the Word of God, we may expect special infillings that he may be overcome and the ministry
not be hindered.

3. To give disciples new boldness and power.


"And when they had prayed, the place was shaken where they were assembled together; and they were all
filled with the Holy Ghost, and they spake the word of God with boldness" (Acts 4:31). The Sanhedrin had
just commanded the disciples, and threatened them, "that they speak henceforth to no man in this name" (Acts
4:17); but the disciples resorted to prayer and, as a result, a new filling with the Spirit came upon them and
they received Divine boldness and power to continue preaching the Word of God.

4. Grace and power to endure persecutions for the sake of the Gospel.
"And the disciples were filled with joy, and with the Holy Ghost" (Acts 13:52). As the result of great
success in preaching the Gospel in Antioch of Pisidia, ". . . The Jews stirred up the devout and honorable
women, and the chief men of the city, and raised persecution against Paul and Barnabus, and expelled them
out of their coasts. But they shook off the dust of their feet against them, and came into Iconium. And the
disciples were filled with joy, and with the Holy Ghost" (Acts 13:50-52). No one particularly enjoys being
persecuted. But these received a special filling of the Holy Spirit at such a time. The Greek verb used here is
in the imperfect tense, signifying that they were being constantly - every day - filled with the Holy Spirit.
They were being subjected to persecution every day; why not a fresh infilling every day?

V. OFFENSES AGAINST THE HOLY SPIRIT


Although the six offenses against the Holy Spirit which are mentioned in the New Testament have been
divided into those committed by unbelievers and those by believers, there may be some overlapping either
way.

209
A. Offenses Committed by the Unbeliever.
1. Resisting the Holy Spirit.
"Ye stiffnecked and uncircumcised in heart and ears, ye do always resist the Holy Ghost: as your fathers
did, so do ye" (Acts 7:51). These words were spoken by Stephen as he spoke to the unbelieving Sanhedrin.
The Holy Spirit seeks to speak to the heart of the unbeliever and lead him to God. The Spirit is patient and
persistent, but it is possible to resist all His pleadings (Gn. 6:3). These spiritual leaders of Israel, in Acts
chapter seven, were convinced of the truth of what Stephen was telling them, but would not yield their hearts
(Acts 6:10).

2. Insulting or doing despite unto the Holy Spirit.


"Of how much sorer punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy, who hath trodden under foot the
Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he was sanctified, an unholy thing, and
hath done despite unto the Spirit of grace?" (Heb. 10:29). It is the office of the Holy Spirit to present the
Saving Work of Jesus Christ to the unsaved. When he refuses to accept Jesus Christ, he is really insulting the
Love of God, manifested in His Grace, and as much as says either that he does not need salvation or does not
believe Christ can save him. To resist the Spirit's appeal is, therefore, to insult the Godhead and cut off all
hope of salvation.

3. Blaspheming the Holy Spirit - the unpardonable sin.


Wherefore I say unto you, All manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men: but the
blasphemy against the Holy Ghost shall not be forgiven unto men. And whosoever speaketh a word against
the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but whosoever speaketh against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be
forgiven him, neither in this world, neither in the world to come (Mt. 12:31,32). This is the most serious
offense against the Holy Spirit, for there is no forgiveness for one who commits it. What is the blasphemy
against the Holy Spirit? (Note Mt. 12:22-30.) The Pharisees had accused Jesus of working miracles by the
power of the Devil. Jesus had cast out that demon by the power of the Holy Spirit. Therefore, it is attributing
the work of the Holy Spirit to the Devil. Note Mark 3:28-30, especially verse thirty: 'Because they said,"
referring to Jesus, "He hath an unclean spirit." This sin could be committed by a Christian, as well as an
unsaved person, if he is not careful.

B. Offenses Committed by a Believer.


1. Grieving the Holy Spirit.
"And grieve not the holy Spirit of God, whereby ye are sealed unto the day of redemption. I-et all
bitterness, and wrath, and anger, and clamor, and evil speaking be put away from you with all malice..." (Eph.
4:30,31). To grieve means to make sad or sorrowful. We do this as individuals, when we allow anything in
our heart, or when we do or say anything, unlike Him. Verse thirty-one gives some examples of that which
grieves the Holy Spirit. One only grieves when he first loves.

2. Lying to the Holy Spirit.


"But Peter said, Ananias, why hath Satan filled thine heart to lie to the Holy Ghost, and to keep back part
of the price of the land?" (Acts 5:3). When one consecrates anything to the Lord, and then does not follow
through on that consecration, he is lying to the Holy Spirit. It may be money, time or service. If a believer
does not intend to be faithful to his promise, he had better not make the consecration in the first place. Peter,
in verse four of Acts chapter five, tells Ananias, "thou hast not lied unto men, but unto God."

210
3. Quenching the Holy Spirit.
"Quench not the Spirit" (1 Thes. 5:19). The thought of quenching suggests a fire. Unbelief and fleshly
criticism may serve to put out the fire of the Holy Spirit's moving. This is usually done in the assembly, when
the Spirit is manifesting Himself in the worship of the congregation. It is better not to criticize than risk the
danger of hindering the moving of the Spirit.

VI. THE GIFTS OF THE SPIRIT


A thorough treatment of the doctrine of the Holy Spirit cannot be made without a full discussion of the
Gifts of the Spirit. Three chapters of the New Testament, as well as parts of two others, are devoted
exclusively to the subject. There are approximately one hundred New Testament references to the subject of
spiritual gifts, or to the exercise of one or another of those listed in I Corinthians chapter twelve; and this
number is exclusive of the miracles of Jesus recorded in the Gospels. In spite of the frequent manifestation of
the Spirit in the New Testament Church, the majority of books on doctrine and theology ignore spiritual gifts
or devote a mere paragraph or two to their discussion, much of which is negative with the inference that gifts
would cease at the end of the apostolic age. There is not the slightest inference in the New Testament that any
endowment of the Holy Spirit would cease before seeing "face to face" and before "that which is perfect" is
come (1 Cor. 13:10-12).
The Foursquare Declaration of Faith says regarding spiritual gifts: We believe that the Holy Spirit has the
following gifts to bestow upon the believing church of the Lord Jesus Christ: wisdom, knowledge, faith,
healing miracles, prophecy, discernment, tongues, interpretation; that, According to the degree of grace and
faith possessed by the recipient, these gifts are divided to every man severally, as He, the Holy Spirit will; that
they are to be earnestly desired and coveted, in the order and proportion wherein they prove most edifying and
beneficial to the church ....

A. The Background for Spiritual Gifts.


1. The promise given.
It was to be expected that special spiritual enablement would be provided in order that the Church might
carry out the Divine mission committed to her by the Lord Jesus Christ. Jesus instructed His followers to go
with the Gospel, but first to wait for enduement with power from on high (Lk. 24:47-49). With the giving of
"The Great Commission," Jesus promised, "These signs shall follow them that believe"; such signs as: casting
out demons, speaking with "new" tongues, and recovery of sickness by the laying on of hands. When Jesus
announced His return to the Father, He promised His followers that He would send the Comforter Who would
abide forever, Who would teach them all things, Who would bring all His sayings to their remembrance, Who
would guide into all truth, Who would convict of sin, righteousness and judgment and Who would testify of
Him.
2. The promise fulfilled.
Then, on the Day of Pentecost, the promised Holy Spirit was poured out upon the waiting Church with
visible and audible signs, and they began to speak in the tongues predicted in The Great Commission. The
believers were filled with the Holy Spirit (Acts 2:2-4); they were so thoroughly enabled by the Spirit's power
that everywhere their ministry is marked by the supernatural. The Apostles were not mere guardians of
orthodoxy; they were ambassadors of Christ equipped with Divine capabilities. They had a Divine work to do
and they had Divine power with which to do it; thus, it must always be. The Church's mission is much more
than propagating a new philosophy or calling to a new morality; it is delivering men from the bondage of
Satan; it is binding and loosing in the name of Jesus (Mt. 16:19). Philosophizing and moralizing can be done
with mere human capabilities, and such is not unimportant, but delivering from bondage and bringing to
repentance and faith require an anointing of the Holy Spirit (2 Cor. 3:4-6). Certainly, God accepts and honors
all human talent dedicated to His service, but He enhances that dedicated talent with the Spirit's glow lifting it

211
to a new level. God can and often does take natural capacities and transform them into spiritual operations.
(Ex. 35:29-35; Rom. 15:13,14; Ti. 1:7-9; 2 Tm. 2:2).

B. The Vocabulary of Spiritual Gifts.


The nature of spiritual gifts can be determined to a large degree by the vocabulary employed to refer to
them. The first reference to the gifts as a general class of phenomena is found in I Corinthians, which was
written in about 55 A.D. Chapters twelve to fourteen are devoted in their entirety to spiritual gifts. The first
seven verses of chapter twelve deal with the gifts as a class and provide a vocabulary for their description.
The gifts are called:

1. Spirituals, "pneumatika."
"Now concerning spiritual gifts, brethren, I would not have you ignorant." (v.1) Note that the word "gifts"
is in italics, meaning that it is not found in the original Greek. The first reference to the spiritual phenomena
called spiritual gifts classifies them merely as "spirituals" or "things of the Spirit." Exactly the same
descriptive is used in verse one of chapter fourteen (14:1). The reference probably is to the gifts, although in I
Cor. 14:28 the same word, pneumatikos (masc. gender) is to "spiritual persons." F.F. Bruce, in his
commentary on 1 Corinthians, takes pneumatika as referring to the "persons endowed with spiritual gifts."
The "spirituals" in one sense are "gifts," but they are more than gifts as will be shown.

2. Spiritual gifts, "charismata."


"Now there are diversities of gifts..." (v.4). The Greek word charisma, which is rendered "spiritual gift,"
comes from the basic word charis, which means "grace." A charisma, then, is an enablement, an endowment
or a blessing bestowed freely by God. The text in Corinthians refers to the "gifts" as "spirituals" because they
are capacities freely bestowed by the Holy Spirit. They cannot be merited or earned and they are of Divine
origin. They are operated through Spirit-filled persons, but in a real sense they are gifts to the Church, the
Body of Christ (1 Cor. 12:11-27).

3. Administrations, "diakoniai."
"And there are differences of administrations.. ." (v.5). Administrations is better translated (NKJV)
"ministries." The "spirituals" are "gifts" in regard to their origin and source, but they are "ministries" in regard
to their application. He who exercises his spiritual gift in the body ministers to the body. There are as many
kinds of ministries as there are spiritual gifts and spiritual offices. The "gifts" are not merit awards, nor are
they bestowed primarily to benefit the possessor; the Spirit imparts the charismata that there might be
ministry to the body. Their value resides in their capacity to minister to the body spiritual profit and
edification.

4. Operations, "energemata."
"And there are diversities of operations . . ." (v.6). The "spirituals" are "operations" in the sense that they
are gifts and ministries "operated" by the Holy Spirit. The Greek word for "operation" is energema which
means active principle" or "effect." The English word "energy" comes from the same root. The spiritual gifts
are activities of the Spirit bringing spiritual effects; they are operations energized by the Spirit producing
effects in the body. A gift that does not operate nor minister nor produce an effect is of little value.

5. Manifestations, "phanerosis."
"But the manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to profit withal" (v.7). Every operation of the
"spirituals" is a manifestation of the Spirit. Manifestation is defined as an "outward evidence." The gifts of

212
the Spirit bring the Holy Spirit into outward evidence in the body. The operation of the gifts causes the
believers to be aware of the presence of God, producing the effects of praise and worship. Every Spirit-filled
believer is given some capacity for the manifestation of the Spirit. Verse seven reads: "But the manifestation
of the Spirit is given to EVERY MAN to profit withal." The exercise of a gift is a manifestation of the Spirit
primarily, not of the gifted person, and the test of its genuineness is that it profits the whole body.

6 .Diversity, "diairesis."
See verses four through six of I Corinthians chapter twelve. The idea behind the word "diversity" is that
of distribution. God does not intend that only a few gifts operate through one or two persons. There are many
different spiritual gifts, more than the nine chosen for mention in 1 Corinthians twelve. There may be as
many gifts as there are useful functions in the Church. Every believer should have some manifestation of the
Spirit, and there should operate in the body every variety of gift. God is a God of infinite variety. The
"spirituals" are of great variety, but there is one Lord and one Holy Spirit operating in the great variety of
spiritual manifestations and ministries.

C. The Purpose of Spiritual Gifts.


The purpose of the spiritual gifts is the edification of the Church. If the exercise of the gifts does not
edify and build up the body they are valueless. 'Even so ye, forasmuch as ye are zealous of spiritual gifts
[spirituals], seek that ye may excel to the edifying of the church" (I Cor. 14:12). "Let all things be done unto
edifying" (1 Cor. 14:26b). The words "edify" and "profit" are used eight (8) times in I Corinthians with
relation to the operation of spiritual gifts. Gifts are bestowed with the purpose of bringing spiritual profit and
edification to the whole body. If a gift is exercised without love, or merely as a personal display, a golden
bell is changed into a clanging brazen cymbal.
There are said to be three effects of the gift of prophecy: "He that prophesieth speaketh unto men to
edification, and exhortation, and comfort" (1 Cor. 14:3). All three of these effects build up and profit the
Body of Christ.

1. Edification.
The word "edification" comes from the Greek word oikodome, which basically means "the act of building
a structure." The vocal gifts are intended to effect the building of the temple of Christ's Body.

2. Exhortation.
The word "exhortation" translates the Greek word paraklesis which means to exhort or encourage; it is
related to the word Paraclete, the name Jesus gave to the Holy Spirit. The name "Barnabas" was said to mean
"Son of Consolation" or "encouragement." The Greek word translated "consolation" is the same paraklesis.
What a blessing and profit Barnabas was to the whole Church, especially the church at Antioch! (Acts
11:2226). The verb form of paraklesis (exhortation) is frequently translated "I beseech you." He that exhorts
the church may stir and motivate believers to do God's whole Will. Hebrews 10:24 provides a good example
of this kind of exhortation: "And let us consider one another to provoke unto love and to good works. .

3. Comfort.
The word "comfort" from paramuthia here means "to sooth, comfort, console." It was predicted that the
Church would suffer persecution. The Body often needs the ministry of consolation in a time of sorrow.
There is a process of growth and maturity in the exercise of spiritual gifts. In order that the Church might
receive profitable edification, God desires that the gifts be exercised maturely: "Brethren, do not be children
in understanding ... but in understanding be mature" (1 Cor. 14:20, NKJV). First Corinthians fourteen

213
contains the Apostle's teaching about the mature use of spiritual gifts. Where the gifts are in operation, this
teaching should be diligently given.

D. The Gifts Enumerated in First Corinthians Chapter Twelve.


The gifts of the Spirit enumerated in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve, according to many, are nine (9) in
number. However, in verse twenty-eight of the same chapter, Paul, after repeating the mention of miracles,
healings and tongues, adds the gifts of helps and governments without making any distinction in
classification. Nor does the Apostle distinguish sharply between the offices of apostles, prophets, and
teachers and the endowments of miracles, hearings, and tongues. Apparently, when God set apart a person for
an office, He bestowed upon him a spiritual enablement that corresponded with the office or ministry.
Perhaps the mention of two additional gifts in verse twenty-eight (12:28) was made for the purpose of
showing that the number could be lengthened considerably. Some have seen a need to fix the number of gifts
at nine (9) to correspond to the nine fruit of the Spirit, but a careful search will reveal other fruit of the Spirit
in addition to the nine listed in Galatians chapter five. Paul mentions seventeen (17) works of the flesh, then
ends the list with the phrase "and such like." If the flesh can produce seventeen works and more, the Spirit can
produce an endless number of virtues that are some aspect of LOVE. In 1 Corinthians 12-14, Paul mentioned
the gifts that were well known to the Corinthians; in Romans he introduces other gifts that illustrated his
purpose of discussion. August Hermann Cremer, eminent theologian and Greek scholar, who wrote before
the latter day Pentecostal outpouring, said regarding the gifts, their function and their number:
The place, therefore, that each member has in the community he has by virtue of a "charisma," which he
is to administer to his brethren (1 Pet. 4:10). Natural powers as such are useless to the life of the body of
Christ; what it needs must, like itself, be spiritual. Charismata, then, may be defined as powers and capacities
necessary for the edification of the church, bestowed by the Holy Spirit upon its members, in virtue of which
they are enabled to employ their natural abilities in the service of the church, or are endowed with new
abilities for this purpose. According to 1 Cor. 12:11,18; Rom. 12:5-8; Eph. 4:11, the "charismata" form the
basis of the offices in the church. There can be no office without a charisma; but not all charismata are
applicable to the exercise of an office. Those that correspond to the permanent and invariable needs of the
church form the basis of offices, the others do not ... Since the number of the charismata must correspond to
the needs of the church, it follows that the lists in 1 Cor. 12, Eph. 4, and Rom. 12 cannot be taken as
exhaustive.21

1. Word of wisdom.
This is not the gift of wisdom in general, but the gift of a "word of wisdom." However, by itself, it is not
necessarily a vocal gift. "Word" (logos) is defined as a "concept," "idea," "saying," "subject matter,"
"reason," "narrative" or "doctrine." If the idea of "utterance" had been meant, probably the Greek word rhema
would have been used instead of logos. Working together with prophecy, the "word of wisdom" could
function as a vocal gift. It is likely that this is the gift that operated in Stephen in Acts 6:10: 'And they were
not able to resist the wisdom and the spirit by which he spake." Acts chapter fifteen records the first Council
of the apostolic church to settle a dispute. The conclusion they reached is expressed as follows: "For it
seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us, to lay upon you no greater burden than these necessary things..
."(Acts l5:28).The mind of the Holy Ghost was probably conveyed to the apostles by a "word of wisdom."
While "wisdom" has many meanings, used in contrast to "knowledge" it probably means an insight for
"practical conduct or action." In the life of the local church there are times when important decisions need to
be made concerning a course of action to take. The operation of a "word of wisdom" could provide the
Spirit's guidance. (See I Cor. 2:13-16.)

2. Word of knowledge.
This gift of a word of knowledge may be referred to by Paul's statement in I Corinthians 1:5: "That in

214
everything ye are enriched by him, in all utterance, and in all knowledge . . ." If a "word of wisdom" gives
insight to the church for practical action, a "word of knowledge" must bring to light the principles of doctrine
that form a basis for the action. This gift may bring scriptural truth to the attention of the church, or it may
reveal facts that are needed for further action. Paul had confidence that spiritual knowledge operated in the
church when he said: "And I myself also am persuaded of you, my brethren, that ye also are full of goodness,
filled with all KNOWLEDGE, able also to admonish one another" (Rom. 15:14). John probably exercised the
gift of a word of knowledge to discern the spiritual conditions of the seven churches to which he wrote in
Revelation, chapters two and three. These gifts of the word of wisdom and word of knowledge are for the
guidance of the church for knowledge and action, they are not for personal guidance. Silas was a prophet, but
it is never recorded that he gave guidance to Paul in his decisions. When Paul did not know which way to
turn at Troas, God gave him a vision of the Macedonian man calling him to preach in Greece; yet Silas was
with him at the time. Gifts are given to exhort, edify and comfort the assembled church. Gifts of revelation
work in harmony with the Word of God, never contradicting its teaching; for the inspired Word is called a
"more sure word of prophecy" (2 Pt. 1:19).

3. Special faith.
Nearly all writers on the gifts refer to the gift of faith as that of "special faith." The reason for this is that
the gift of faith differs from saving faith and the normal Christian faith, "without which it is impossible to
please God" (Heb. 11:6). All faith is alike in nature, but the gift of special faith differs from other faith in
degree and in application. "Special faith" works often in conjunction with hearings and miracles. The gift of
faith is seen in operation in the healing of the lame man at the gate of the temple recorded in Acts chapter
three. Peter had the miraculous faith to command the lame man to rise and walk in the name of Jesus.
Donald Gee writes concerning this faith:
It would seem to come upon certain of God's servants in times of special crisis or opportunity in such
mighty power that they are lifted right out of the realm of even natural or ordinary faith in God - and have a
divine certainty put within their souls that triumphs over everything.
Perhaps Jesus was describing this quality of faith when he said to His disciples, "Have faith in God" (Mk.
11:22). The Greek of Mark 11:22 reads literally: "Have the faith of God." Jesus suggested in the next verse
that with this divinely imparted faith one might say to the mountain, "Be removed and cast into the sea" and it
would happen. The mountain symbolized any apparently impossible obstacle to the mission of the Church.

4. Gifts of healings.
While it is inferred that all the "spirituals" are charismata (gifts), the term is actually attached only to this
one of hearings. In the Greek, both of the terms, "gifts" and "hearings," are plural. This fact would suggest
either that there are many gifts of healing for different diseases, or that each exercise of the healing power is a
separate gift. Nowhere in the New Testament is a person said to have "the" gift of healing. Most of the
evangelists and pastors who have had great ministries of prayer for the sick have disclaimed possession of a
gift of healing. Certainly no one has had a ministry of healing every sick person. Jesus healed all who came
to Him on some occasions, but He was limited on other occasions by lack of faith on the part of the people
(Mt. 13:58). What is certain, is that God has made provision that physical healing would be a ministry of His
Church, and that gifts of hearings would operate along with faith. Healing is so common in the ministry of
Jesus and in that of the Apostles, that a church without gifts of "cures" would seem far removed from the
Bible pattern. In addition to gifts of hearings, all elders (pastors) are to be ready to anoint with oil all the sick
who call for them, and to pray over them the prayer of faith; God has promised to raise up the sick and to
forgive their sins (Jas. 5:14-16).
In The Great Commission recorded by Mark (Mk. 16:15-18), Jesus promised that signs would follow the
ministries of those who witnessed to the saving Gospel. One of the signs would be that the sick would
recover after the laying on of hands by believers. As long as it took to preach the Gospel to every creature,

215
signs were to follow those who believed, including that of the miraculous healing of the sick. The clause
"them that believe" would suggest that the signs or "gifts" were not to be exercised by the Apostles only, but
by all who had faith. In the command and promise of Jesus, the 'laying on of hands" was to be the outward
expression of faith and love on the part of those who would pray, and would show that God uses faithful
believers as a channel of His power. The anointing with oil, according to James chapter five, also involved
the laying on of hands, with the oil symbolizing the work of the Holy Spirit. When Jesus sent forth the twelve
disciples to minister, they, according to Mark: "anointed with oil many that were sick, and healed them" (Mk.
6:13). The believer is the vehicle of power, but the healing is the Spirit's work.
While on some occasions the sick are healed through the faith of the one who prays, faith on the part of
the afflicted person is important and sometimes essential: "Paul, observing him intently and seeing that he had
faith to be healed, said with a loud voice, 'Stand up straight on your feet!'And he leaped and walked' (Acts
14:9b,10,NKJV). Paul was exercising the gifts of faith and hearings, nevertheless his command to stand up
was given after he discerned that the lame man had faith to be healed. The need for the afflicted to have faith
suggests that candidates for healing might well benefit from "faith building" teaching. The most effective
faith building comes through the Word of God: "So then faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the Word of
God" (Rom. 10:17). Old Testament promises of healing are found in: Ex. 15:26-, Ex. 23:25; Dt. 32:39; 2
Kgs. 20:5; Ps. 30:1,2; Ps. 103:3; Ps. 107:17-22; Is. 53:5; 38:4,5. New Testament healing passages are: Mt.
4:23; 8:16,17; 8:8; 10:8; Mk. 3:14,15; Lk. 4:40; 9:6; Acts 3:1-11; 4:30; 5:15,16; 8:7; 28:8; 1 Cor. 12:9; Jas.
5:14-16; 1 Pt. 2:24.

5. Operations of miracles.
The working of miracles is the translation of the Greek energemata dunameon, which literally rendered is
"operations of supernatural powers." As with the "gifts of hearings" both terms are plural. This is not a gift
that makes one a "miracle worker." It seems from the plurality of the expressions that each miracle or
supernatural manifestation of power is operated through one with a gift of faith (see Mt. 17:20; 21:20-22).
What is a miracle? "An event or action that apparently contradicts known scientific laws and is hence thought
to be due to supernatural causes, especially to an act of God .1123 In the New Testament, events of
supernatural origin are called "signs, wonders, and miracles" (Acts 2:22; 2:43; 6:8; 8:13; Heb. 2:4). The
Greek words translated "miracles, wonders and signs" are dunameis, terata, semeia. Literally, they mean,
"events of divine power," "events that cause wonderment" and "events that signify something" (about God or
His working). It is noteworthy that the term "wonder" is never used by itself; it is always used together with
the term "sign." God does not manifest His power just to cause wonderment; He always signifies or teaches
something with His miracles: ". . . God also bearing them witness, both with signs and wonders, and with
divers miracles [acts of power], and gifts of the Holy Ghost, according to His own will?" (Heb. 2:4).
Examples of miracles are: supernatural deliverances from imprisonments (Acts 5:18-20; 12:5-10; 16:23-
30); the striking with blindness of Elymas the sorcerer (Acts 13:8-12); the instant transportation of Philip
from Gaza to Azotus (Acts 8:39,40); the raising from the dead of Dorcas (Acts 9:36-42) and Eutychus (Acts
20:9-12); and Paul's shaking off the poisonous viper without receiving harm (Acts 28:3-5). The healing of the
sick and the casting out of demon spirits may be classified as gifts of miracles when there is great sign value,
as in the case of Paul in Ephesus where great soul winning resulted: "And God wrought SPECIAL miracles
[lit. "not ordinary miracles"] by the hands of Paul: so that from his body were brought unto the sick
handkerchiefs or aprons, and the diseases departed from them, and the evil spirits went out of them" (Acts
19:11,12); and in the case of Peter in Jerusalem when just his shadow falling upon the sick brought healing
(Acts 5:12-15).

6. Prophecy.
The word "prophet" is a transliteration from the Greek prophetess which is derived from two words: pro
which means "before," and "forth" or "for, in behalf of," and pheml which means to "declare, speak."
Together, the word prophetes can mean "one who predicts" (tells beforehand), "one who speaks forth," or

216
"one who speaks for or in behalf of." Since the office of the prophet begins in the Old Testament, the basic
definition should begin there. The Hebrew word for "prophet" is nabi, which means "to announce, witness or
testify." The office of a prophet is clearly defined: "I will raise them up a Prophet from among their brethren,
like unto thee, and will put my words in his mouth, and he shall speak unto them all that I shall command
him" (Dt. 18:18). The prophet is one who speaks to the people, on behalf of God, the words that God puts in
his mouth. This is confirmed by the words of the Lord to Moses when Moses disclaimed ability to speak to
Pharaoh: "See, I have made thee a God to Pharaoh: and Aaron thy brother shall be thy PROPHET. Thou shalt
speak all that I command thee: and Aaron thy brother shall speak unto Pharaoh..." (Ex. 7:1,2). Aaron is called
the prophet of Moses because he spoke in behalf of Moses, delivering Moses' message. The same idea of
speaking "for" God is borne out by the testimony of Jeremiah the prophet: "Then the Lord put forth his hand,
and touched my mouth. And the Lord said unto me, Behold, I have put my words in thy mouth" (Jer. 1:9).
Sometimes the prophet would speak forth in God's behalf a message to the people for their times; often he
would predict coming events; in either case, he was simply speaking forth the Lord's message.
Several qualifications for a prophet and tests of his authenticity are given in Deuteronomy, chapters
thirteen and eighteen: · He is one taken from among his brethren (18:18).
· He is to speak to his brethren in the Name of the Lord (18:19).
· He may with his prophecies show signs and wonders (13:1).
· If he prophesies anything contrary to God's Law already revealed (Scripture), he is to be rejected in spite
of any signs or wonders (13:1-3). (God may permit false prophets to test our obedience to His Word.)
· If he predicts the future and the prediction fails to come to pass as he prophesied, he is to be rejected
(18:20-22).
In the New Testament, there are two kinds of prophets: those who occupy the office of a prophet (Eph.
4:11), and those in the Church who possess the gift of prophecy. Those of the first category are among the
ministry gifts; those of the second could include any Spirit-filled believer. Not all can occupy the office of a
prophet ("The Lord gave some Apostles, and some Prophets . . ."), but according to I Corinthians 14:31, "Ye
may all prophesy one by one." Thus, having the gift of prophecy does not make one a "Prophet" (ministry
gift).
Among the gifts listed by Paul in 1 Corinthians, prophecy is that most earnestly to be desired
(14:1,5,24,25,39). Its importance is indicated by the fact that some form of the word is found twenty (20)
times in 1 Corinthians chapters 12-14. The gift of prophecy is defined as: "But he that prophesieth speaketh
unto men to edification, and exhortation, and comfort" (1 Cor. 14:3). The Amplified Version renders verse
three: "The one who prophesies ... speaks to men for their upbuilding and constructive spiritual progress and
encouragement and consolation." Predicting future events is not associated with the gift of prophecy; this is a
function of the prophetic office. The gift operates to (spiritually) build up the local church body. When the
church faces a problem of missing facts, or a need for wisdom for practical action, a word of knowledge or a
word of wisdom may operate in conjunction with the gift of prophecy. A word of wisdom may have assured
the Apostles in their knotty decision, deliberated and recorded in Acts chapter fifteen (See Acts 15:27,28).
When the conclusion of the council was delivered to the Gentile church in Antioch by Judas and Silas, who
were prophets, Luke reports: "Now Judas and Silas, themselves being prophets also, exhorted the brethren
with many words and strengthened them" (Acts 15:32, NKJV). Normally, in the operation of the gift of
prophecy, the Spirit heavily anoints the believer to speak forth to the body, not premeditated words, but words
the Spirit supplies spontaneously: to uplift and encourage, incite to faithful obedience and service, and to
bring comfort and consolation. The words need not be in archaic English, nor in a loud and altered voice, nor
spoken in first person. More will be written on the practical exercise of vocal gifts in section E. Special
Instructions on the Gifts of Tongues and Prophecy.

7. Discerning of spirits.
"Discerning of spirits" comes from the Greek diakriseis pneumaton. The Greek word deakreisis is

217
defined, "to discern,""to discriminate" or"to distinguish." The verb form is used in Hebrews 5:14: "But strong
meat belongeth to them that are of full age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to
discern both good and evil." Paul uses the verb several times in 1 Corinthians; in 6:5 he uses it to question in
regard to a dispute whether they had anyone wise enough to "judge between his brethren" (as to who was in
the right). In 11:29 Paul uses the word to reproach the Corinthian brethren who had not "discerned" the
Lord's body (discerned the meaning of the communion bread for bodily health and healing). Quite clearly, the
gift of discerning of spirits is the capacity to discern the source of a spiritual manifestation whether it is the
Holy Spirit, an evil spirit, or merely the human spirit. In 1 Corinthians 14:29, Paul says: "let the prophets
speak two or three, and let the other [s] judge [discern - diakrino I." This seems to infer that someone with the
gift of discernment should be present when the gift of prophecy is used. Apparently, in Corinth the gift of
discernment was as common as that of prophecy ("let the others [pl. I judge [discern]"). All Spirit-filled
believers are, in a measure, able to judge vocal gifts operations on the basis of whether they are spiritually
edifying to the body. The exercise of gifts is not infallible; if an utterance (prophecy or interpretation of
tongues) is not received, the speaker should not be offended or unreachable, but should humbly pray for better
sensitivity to the Spirit and for more wisdom in the use of his gift. On the other hand, believers should heed
the admonition of Paul in 1 Thessalonians 5:19,20: "Quench not the Spirit. Despise not prophesyings [lit.
prophecies]." Careful scriptural teaching on spiritual gifts will avoid immature and misguided manifestations
on one hand, and fear, distrust and quenching the Spirit on the other hand. It should be noted that the gift of
"discerning of spirits" is not that of judging people, but rather the spirit behind the manifestation, whether
Holy, evil or human.
8. Kinds of tongues.
This is literally "kinds of tongues" (Greek -gene glosson). The term "kinds" doubtless refers to the fact
that there are "new tongues," and "tongues of men and angels" (1 Cor. 13:1). Some tongues are human
languages, as on the Day of Pentecost (to show that the Gospel was for all races and nations); some tongues
are of heavenly origin (of angels, used for praise and prayer where the mind is superseded: 1 Cor. 14:2; Rom.
8:26,27). Of these last, it is said that the speaker in tongues speaks to God, speaks mysteries and that no one
understands him. Tongues as a "sign" (1 Cor. 14:22) may be known languages by which witness is given to
the unsaved; since the unsaved may be of any one of a number of tongues, there must therefore be various
"kinds." If one employs tongues only in private devotion, the kind is not important; they will probably be new
tongues or Spirit-given heavenly tongues.
It is very important to observe that there are several different uses of tongues. Paul A. Hamar, in his
commentary on 1 Corinthians, remarks:
There is an acknowledged difference between tongues as the evidence of the baptism of the Holy Spirit
and in individual praying, and tongues as a gift (as used here). The difference is basically one of purpose: one
is to edify one's own spirit; the other to edify the congregation.
When the Apostle asks the question in 1 Corinthians 12:30: "Do all speak in tongues?", admittedly, the
form of the question infers a negative answer. Paul is not speaking here of tongues as the initial evidence of
the Baptism of the Spirit, but of tongues as the congregational gift accompanied by interpretation. Not all had
the gift of tongues, but all had received tongues as the evidence of their baptism. Those who have the gift of
tongues may employ it to speak with God in praise, to pray or sing in the Spirit, or to speak forth in the
congregation; however public tongues speaking must be interpreted. If no interpreter is present, the one with
the gift of tongues must hold his peace. Those who have a gift of tongues for public manifestation should
pray for the accompanying gift of interpretation of tongues. If the tongues speaker does not know whether an
interpreter is present, he must be ready to interpret his own utterance (1 Cor. 14:13,28). Apparently, tongues
together with interpretation are equivalent to prophecy; except that, tongues are addressed to God, while
prophecy is addressed to the congregation (I Cor. 14:5,14,15; Acts 2:11; 10:45,46).
The following is a summary of the discernibly different uses of speaking in tongues:
(1) The initial physical evidence of the Baptism in the Holy Spirit (Acts 2:4; 10:45,46; 19:6).
(2) Praying in tongues as a prayer language, when the mind is by-passed and the spirit communes

218
directly with God (I Cor. 14:2,14,15; Romans 8:26,27).
(3) Tongues with interpretation, for the spiritual edification of the church body (1 Cor. 14:5,26-28).
(4) Tongues together with interpretation, as a "sign" to the unbeliever (1 Cor. 14:22). (The tongues
may be a sign of the presence of God, or they may act as a sign when the unbeliever understands the language
spoken.)

9. Interpretation of tongues.
The word "interpretation" translates the Greek word hermeneia, from which is derived the English word
"hermeneutics" (the science of interpretation). The Greek word may have several meanings: "translation,"
"explanation" or "interpretation." The verb form of the word is used several times (Jn. 1:38,42; 9:7; Heb. 7:2)
where it has the meaning of "translation." The noun form hermeneia is found only in 1 Corinthians chapters
twelve and fourteen, where it is used of the spiritual gift. The basic meaning of the word suggests more the
idea of "explanation" or "interpretation"; it need not, therefore, be expected that the interpretation of an
utterance in tongues be a literal word by word translation, but rather an explanation of the meaning. The
interpretation may reasonably vary in length from the utterance in tongues. Where the gift of tongues is
exercised for the edification of the church, or as a sign gift, interpretation is essential, for Paul limits the gift
of tongues to personal prayer language unless accompanied by interpretation (1 Cor. 14:13,27,28). Those
who have the gift of tongues are admonished to pray for the gift of interpretation (I Cor. 14:13).
The question often arises concerning the number of interpreters to be used in any one service. Verse
twenty-seven of 1 Corinthians chapter fourteen says: "If any man speak in an unknown tongue, let it be by
two, or at the most by three, and that by course; and let ONE interpret." The Greek word for "one" is heis,
which is the number one. The Greek word can have the meaning "someone," but since the numbers "two" and
"three" are used in the same verse, it would follow that "one" is used as a number, which is its usual meaning.
Not all the versions and the commentators are in agreement on the clause, "Let one interpret"; the NIV
renders it, "Someone must interpret." Nevertheless, the KJV, the NKJV, the RSV, the NASB, the Amplified,
Wiest's Expanded Translation, Rotherham's Emphasized Bible, and Marshall's Interlinear translate heis as the
number "one." Commentators such as Grosheide, Alford, Godet, Clarke, and Plummer take the word "one" as
a number. Pentecostal and charismatic writers are not agreed; therefore, one should not be dogmatic. If one
person is to interpret in any one service, it does not follow that the same interpreter will function at all
services. More will be said in the next section about prophecy, tongues and interpretation.

10. Helps, "antilempsis."


That the nine (9) gifts listed in I Corinthians 12:8-10 do not constitute the total number of charismata is
indicated in a summary at the close of the same chapter (vv.28-30). Paul lists three ministry gifts: apostles,
founders of the church; prophets, who exhort and motivate the church; and teachers (or pastors), who instruct
the church. After that, six of the charismata are listed: miracles, hearings, helps, governments, tongues and
interpretation. Two of the charismata are new to the list: helps and governments.
The word "helps" comes from the Greek word antilempseis, which is used only once in the New
Testament. The verb form (antilambano) occurs in three passages, one of which gives good indication of the
meaning of the gift: "I have shewed you all things, how that so laboring ye ought to support [antilambano] the
weak, and to remember the words of the Lord Jesus, how he said, It is more blessed to give than to receive"
(Acts 20:35). Paul was addressing the Ephesian elders, into whose hands the care of the Ephesian church was
being placed. They were charged to feed the flock in the Word of God (v.28) and to fortify against false
teachers (vv.29,30); but, they were instructed also to carry on a ministry of "helps" (antilempsis) for the
benefit of those who were "weak" physically and economically, that is who were sick and needy.
Just anyone cannot be assigned to a ministry to the sick and poor. One must have a spiritual burden for
and a God-given love for the needy and afflicted. Human compassion helps, but to this must be added a
Divine call and the Spirit's anointing; for without such spiritual endowment, one will quickly become

219
discouraged and critical. Besides, a ministry to the weak does not merely administer spiritual sedatives and
stop-gap relief, it leads out of weakness to strength (Heb. 11:34). For every kind of work which the Church
must do, God has supplied a corresponding spiritual gift.

11. Governments, "kubernesis."


As in the case of the gift of helps, the Greek word translated "governments" (kubernesis) is found only
once in the New Testament. However, the noun form kybernetes occurs twice, referring each time to a
shipmaster (Acts 27:11; Rv. 18:17). The verb form means "to steer," "to be a helmsman." The gift of
governments, then, would seem to describe a spiritual capacity given to certain leaders to steer the church
through storms and difficult seas. On the basis of 1 Timothy 5:17, some have reasoned that there were two
classes of elders in the churches, teaching elders and ruling elders. It has been suggested that some of the
elders who did not minister the Word may have exercised their ministry in the business and structural affairs
of the church. Paul Hamar suggests: 'It may have involved elders who did not labor in the Word and doctrine,
but who were charged with some form of leadership and distributional The modern term "cybernetics," which
comes from the same Greek word, is the name for the science of control over operations and processes by
means of computers. The Church has need of leaders whom the Holy Spirit can use to keep the Church on an
even keel.

E. Special Instructions on the Gifts of Tongues and Prophecy.


The entire fourteenth chapter of 1 Corinthians was written to instruct the Church on the proper use of
spiritual gifts, especially the vocal gifts of tongues, interpretation of tongues and prophecy. Some have
inferred that Paul wrote to the Corinthians to discourage the use of tongues. Such cannot be the case, because
he said in verse five: "I would like every one of you to speak in tongues..." (NIV). The Apostle who said, "I
thank my God I speak with tongues more than ye all . . ." (v.18) was not discouraging tongues; but, he was
prohibiting uninterpreted tongues in public meetings. He wanted all of them to use tongues as a prayer
language (vv.2,4). Apparently, the Corinthians thought that when the Spirit moved they were expected to
exercise their gift, even if they all spoke at once, and even if there was no interpretation. They did not know
that the spirit of the gifted person was subject to his personal control (v.32). They overlooked the fact that
God gives believers endowments to use intelligently, in accordance with Scripture, and for the sole purpose of
the spiritual edification of the whole body. The gifts really belong to the Church more than they belong to the
individuals who exercise them; therefore, they must not be used selfishly, ostentatiously, nor without love
(Ch.13). The use of the vocal gifts among members of the body must not be so all consuming that the ministry
of teaching the Word and preaching the Gospel are despised or displaced (vv.27,29). The opposite, of course,
is also true. The gifts are a great blessing when they are in submission to scriptural pattern and to wise
spiritual leadership.

1. The priority of prophecy.


'Follow after charity [love], and desire spiritual gifts, but rather that ye may prophesy" (14:1). Prophecy
is the vocal gift of preference. It is said that tongues plus interpretation are equal to prophecy (v.5). This is
not quite true. Verse thirty-nine says: "Wherefore, brethren, covet to prophesy, and forbid not to speak with
tongues." The tongues referred to must have been with interpretation, for Paul had already forbidden them to
speak in tongues without interpretation. The conclusion is that tongues are to be permitted, but prophecy is to
be coveted and encouraged. Both gifts belong in the Church, but prophecy is preferred. Prophecy
accomplishes the edification in one operation; it is more direct and with less chance for distraction. Tongues
are primarily directed to God, and are preferred for prayer and praise; prophecy is preferred for the
edification, exhortation and comfort of the Church.

2. The private use of tongues.

220
The most prevalent use of the gift of tongues is that of tongues as one's prayer language (vv.2,14,15;
Rom. 8:26,27). Some have suggested that Jesus spoke in tongues inwardly when He prayed for the deaf and
dumb man in Mark 7:34, for the same Greek word stenazo is used which is used in Romans 8:26 and
translated "groanings which cannot be uttered." Prayer in tongues is normal for a Spirit-filled Christian.
Believers are commanded thus to pray: "Praying always with all prayer and supplication in the Spirit. . . "
(Eph. 6:18). (See also Eph 5:18,19.) Prayer in the Spirit promotes a deepening of the prayer life and the
spiritual development of the personality. Many critics of tongues infer that tongues speaking may be
unsettling to the mind's sanity. The fact is that psychological studies have shown that tongues speaking tends
to integrate and solidify the personality and make possessors of the gift more able to cope with life's
problems.26 Paul, in Romans 8:26,27, suggests that the Spirit can help our weakness in prayer which derives
from our lack of knowledge of what to pray for and about. The Spirit who knows our need better than we
know it prays through us in groanings that cannot be uttered, accomplishing intercession on a higher level
than that of our conscious petitioning.

3. Tongues and interpretation.


There are three uses of the gift of tongues which are in addition to tongues as the initial physical evidence
of the Baptism with the Holy Spirit:
(1) Tongues exercised in worship as a prayer language, which is a powerful channel of
communication with God and a vehicle for praise.
(2) Tongues as a "sign" to unbelievers (1 Cor. 14:22,23) - a "sign" is not necessarily a means of
converting the unsaved. According to Paul (vv.22-24), it is prophecy that convinces the unbeliever; the
tongues "sign" rather witnesses to the unbelief and doom of the unrepentant. In verse twenty-one, he had
said, referring to the quotation from Isaiah: '. . . with men of other tongues and other lips will I speak unto this
people; and yet for all that will they not hear me, saith the Lord." (See Is. 28:11-13.) Nevertheless, the "sign"
when given by God is necessary.
(3) Tongues is a vocal gift directed to the church which must always be interpreted. If the tongues
speaker is not certain of the presence of an interpreter, he is to hold his peace or pray that he himself may be
enabled to interpret (vv.13,28).

4. Prayer and praise in the Spirit.


Much has already been written on this aspect of tongues as a Spirit provided vehicle for prayer and praise.
However, there is an exercise of tongues in prayer and singing in the Spirit that calls for interpretation.
"What is it then? I will pray with the spirit, and I will pray with the understanding also: I will sing with the
spirit, and I will sing with the understanding also" (v.15). That this is ministry to the body (perhaps a smaller
group) is indicated by verse sixteen: "Else when thou shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that occupieth
the room of the unlearned [ungifted] say Amen at thy giving of thanks, seeing he understandeth not what thou
sayest?" Clearly, this exercise differs from tongues as a private prayer language as described in 1 Corinthians
14:14,28.

5. Limitations on tongues and prophesyings.


Apparently, the meetings in Corinth were so much given to the exercise of vocal gifts, especially tongues
speaking both with and without interpretation, that all other ministry was reduced or eliminated. First
Corinthians chapter fourteen was written to put vocal gifts in perspective and to give teaching on the mature
exercise of the gifts. Chapter twelve (vv.4-6) had already emphasized the need for variety in the distribution
of gifts. If all the gifts are to be exercised, and if all believers are to exercise some gift (v.11), the vocal gifts
must not occupy the whole body life. Prophecy and tongues with interpretation exercised in scriptural order
are very edifying, but there must also be anointed teaching, preaching of the Gospel, and other ministries.
Therefore, utterances with tongues must be held to two or three with proper interpretation. Prophesyings

221
likewise must be restricted to two or three in any one gathering. Supernatural utterances must not be so
numerous as to become commonplace. This may have happened in Thessalonica, prompting Paul to write the
warning, "Despise not prophesyings" (1 Thes. 5:19,20). An important fact about the operation of gifts is
expressed by the Apostle in verse thirty-two: "And the spirits of the prophets are subject to the prophets."
Then he adds: "For God is not the author of confusion, but of peace, as in all churches of the saints" (v.33).
All those who exercise vocal gifts should pray for wisdom in the recognition of those moments in the service
when an utterance is edifying. Only in very rare occasions should one who is ministering be interrupted by an
utterance. The Holy Spirit is a gentleman (dove). There are any number of pauses in a believers' service
where a gift for the edification of the church may be exercised; there is no need for any one to be interrupted.
There are exceptions, but they are rare.

6. Not to be considered infallible.


Another principle for the exercise of the gifts is that no operation wrought through human instruments is
infallible. The gift of the discerning of Spirits should be operative in every assembly where the gifts are
exercised. This does not mean that a public pronouncement of judgment must be made upon every operation
of a vocal gift. Paul wrote: "Let two or three prophets speak, and let the others judge [discern]" (1 Cor. 14:29,
NKJV). All Spirit-filled believers have some measure of ability to judge whether utterances are spiritually
edifying. If all are to discern, then it must be that each discerns whether the utterance has spiritual value for
himself; and if it does have value and application, he should receive the message and act upon it in his own
life. Not all messages are meant to apply to all present. If the utterance is totally from a human spirit and
unedifying, then one with the gift of discernment may declare the utterance unprofitable. If the utterance is
from a spirit of evil, then it should be denounced and the believers warned. Leadership ought to covet the gift
of discernment. "You must want love more than anything else; but still hope for the spiritual gifts as well,
especially prophecy" (1 Cor. 14:1,JB).

F. The Gifts of the Spirit Listed in Romans Chapter Twelve.


1. Prophecy and Ministry.
In the study of the gifts enumerated in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve, at least eleven (11) were identified,
along with the mention of three of the ministry gifts (to be studied in the next section). In the present list in
Romans chapter twelve, only one gift is common to the list in Corinthians - that of prophecy. Of the vocal
gifts operative in Corinth, apparently only prophecy was exercised in Rome. However, since prophecy was
the vocal gift of preference, it accomplished the purpose of all edification, exhortation and comfort. Here
Paul adds the fact that "faith" is the operational principle underlying prophecy, and that prophecy must be
exercised in proportion to the measure of one's faith. This "faith" is not the saving faith that all possess as a
gift, nor "the Faith" in the sense of Christian doctrine, but the faith associated with works of power (Mt. 9:29).
To the church at Rome, Paul mentions the gift of "ministry" (diakonia) which probably included a number
of gifts. In 1 Corinthians 12:5, Paul had written: 'And there are varieties of ministries [diakonia] and the same
Lord" (NASB); which suggests that all gifts are ministries or vehicles of service to the body. After the
mention of "prophecy" and "ministry," the focus is turned away from the gift itself to the person who
exercised the gift.
2. The teacher and his teaching.
God does not impart gifts in the Church merely to satisfy one's instinct for acquisition, but rather that the
things of God may be ministered from one to another and that the Church may be built up spiritually. When
God provides the teaching of Divine truth, He gives really two gifts. He gives to the Church a teacher, and
along with the teacher, God gives a Divine enablement to teach, a gift of teaching. But a teacher is of little
value unless he exercises his gift. In Romans 12:7, Paul is saying, in effect, "If someone is a God-anointed
teacher, let him use his gift to teach"; the proof that one is a teacher is seen in the fact that he is practicing
constructive teaching. A title does not make one a minister, but the fact that he ministers. What authenticates

222
a God-given teacher are pupils who are growing in grace and knowledge under his teaching gift (1 Cor. 2:10-
16; 2 Tm. 2:2; 1 Tm. 5:17; 1 Jn. 2:20,27).

3. The exhorter and his exhortation.


Exhortation (paraklesis) was said by Paul, in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve, to be one of the exercises of
the prophet. Since "he who exhorts" is mentioned here N.8), in addition to the one who prophesies (v.6), it
would appear that there were those in Rome who were called "exhorters." Barnabas was called "the son of
exhortation [paraklesis]" (Acts 4:36, Rotherham, ASV). Since Paul frequently uses the verb "to exhort" in the
sense of "to implore," "to urge," "to beseech," or "to entreat" (see Romans 12:1), probably the work of the
"exhorter" was that of arousing and motivating the church to patient endurance, brotherly love and good
works. The author of Hebrews was an exhorter when he implored:
Let us hold fast the profession of our faith without wavering; ... and let us consider one another to
provoke unto love and to good works: not forsaking the assembling of ourselves together, as the manner of
some is; but EXHORTING one another: and so much the more, as ye see the day approaching (Heb. 10:23-
25).
Some religious groups recognize an office of the exhorter and grant a ministerial credential to correspond
to it. (See Acts 9:31; 11:23; 14:22; 15:31,32; 16:40; 20:2; 1 Thes. 5:14-22).

4. The giver and his liberality.


In the Church, there are those who have a gift of "giving." This is not one who administers the charities of
the church. This giver is one who shares his own possessions with others with great liberality. "He that
giveth" translates the Greek, ho metadidous. The term is found in Ephesians 4:28: ". . . but rather let him
labor, working with his hands the thing which is good, that he may have to give [metadidonai] to him that
needeth." The same word is used in Luke 3:11 by John the Baptist: ". . . He that hath two coats, let him impart
[metadoto] to him that hath none; and he that hath meat [food], let him do likewise." This is not institutional
giving, but personal sharing. The gifted giver may channel his gifts through the church, but he is more than
an official who distributes the gifts of others; he is a giver of his own things who, motivated by the Holy
Spirit, gives with extraordinary generosity. An example of such giving is found in 2 Corinthians chapter
eight. Paul, writing to the Corinthians about the collection for the poor, said: "Moreover, brethren, we make
known to you the grace [charis] of God bestowed on the churches of Macedonia: that in a great trial of
affliction the abundance of their joy and their deep poverty abounded in the riches of their liberality ... And
this they did, not as we had hoped, but first gave themselves to the Lord, and then to us by the will of God" (2
Cor. 8:1,2,5, NKJV). Then, using the Macedonian churches (Philippi, Thessalonica, Berea) as an example, he
urged the Corinthians (the gifted church) to manifest the same gift of giving for the poor. He said further:
"Therefore, as ye abound in everything, in faith, and utterance, and knowledge ... see that ye abound in this
grace [gift] also" (2 Cor. 8:7). Paul uses the word "grace" (charis) here in the same sense as the word "gift"
(charisma). He calls the gifts (charismata) which the Corinthian church possessed "graces."W. E. Vine gives
one of the meanings of "grace" as "the power and equipment for ministry. 1127 This definition of "grace" as a
spiritual gift is borne out by
Paul's statement in 1 Corinthians 1:4,5,7: "I thank my God ... for the GRACE of God which is given you
by Jesus Christ; that in every thing ye are enriched by him, in all utterance, and in all knowledge ... so that ye
come behind in no gift [charisma] waiting for the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ..." All believers, out of
love and compassion and a sense of responsibility to Christ's kingdom, will give to the church and to the
needy. Beyond this normal giving, there are those who, gifted by the Holy Spirit, give with extraordinary
liberality, even out of affliction and poverty.

5. The leader and his diligence.


Paul hints in 1 Timothy 5:17 that there were elders of the church other than those who ministered the

223
Word of God. The Church has need of a number of different kinds of leadership. In verse eight of Romans
chapter twelve, the Apostle says: ". . . if it [a man's gift] is leadership, let him govern diligently.. ." (NIV).
The same Greek word, translated "he who leads" in Romans 12:8, is found in 1 Thessalonians 5:12: "And we
urge you, brethren, to recognize those who labor among you, and are OVER YOU in the Lord and admonish
you, and to esteem them very highly in love for their work's sake. . ." (NKJV). Many of God's choice men
occupy executive positions of leadership, administration, management of funds, personnel guidance, strategy
planning and missionary oversight. These are often thought of as being outside the realm of the Holy Spirit's
moving. But in fact, these leaders are as needful of spiritual endowments as any who preach or teach. Some
of the most spiritually powerful people in Church history have also been the leaders of the church. God has a
spiritual gift of leadership which He has bestowed upon the Church; believers should pray constantly that
their leaders, including their pastors, may enjoy a powerful anointing of the Spirit upon their offices (Heb.
13:7,17,24; Eph 6:18-20; 2 Cor. 1:11; Col. 2:2-4; 1 Tm. 2:1-3).
Some have believed that the gift of leadership listed in Romans chapter twelve is the same as that called
"governments" in 1 Corinthians 12:28. This is possible; however, entirely different Greek words with
different basic meanings are employed. The gift listed in Romans 12:8 has the meaning of "being over"
others as their leader; while that in 1 Corinthians 12:28 has more the meaning of guidance through all kinds of
seas (a helmsman). Both kinds of leadership are needed in the Church; one person very well might have both
capacities. It is encouraging to know that the leaders of Christ's Church do not have to exercise their offices
with merely human wisdom and ability. The characteristic virtue of spiritual leadership is declared to be
"diligence." Perhaps the Apostle was describing this diligence in 2 Corinthians 11:28 when he spoke of his
"care of all the churches." (See also 1 Cor. 12:15.)

6. The cheerful mercy-shower.


It is quite possible that the gift described here in Romans 12:8 as "he who shows mercy" may be the same
gift listed in I Corinthians 12:28 as "helps." The Greek word for "have mercy" is eleeo, which is defined as "to
have pity or mercy on," "to have compassion." Mercy is said to be an attribute of God: "But God, who is rich
in mercy, for His great love wherewith He loved us . . ." (Eph. 2:4). Nearly always, the sick who cried out to
Jesus exclaimed, "Have mercy on me!" It would seem that as a gift in exercise in the church, "showing
mercy" would be a ministry of care for the sick and afflicted by means of visitation and prayer. In all
probability, the "gifts of hearings" were exercised by those with the ministry of showing mercy. All believers
have some responsibility to show such mercies to the poor and afflicted, but there are those who by being
gifted by the Lord carry out works of compassion as an anointed ministry. There are those who by the Spirit's
anointing are "hilarious givers" (2 Cor. 9:7), who share readily with the needy; there are others with a
different gift who share their love, compassion, time and presence in order to heal and restore the poor and
afflicted. It is like the God of all mercy and compassion to place such gifted people in the Body of Christ.
Such are not vocal gifts, but works of love that speak as loudly as words. The God of variety certainly does
administer a blessed variety of Spirit-anointed gifts and ministries, one to match every need in the Church.

G. The Ministry Gifts.


The Apostle Paul, writing to the Ephesian church, declared a remarkable truth concerning the spiritual
leaders in the body of Christ:
But to each one of us GRACE was given according to the measure of Christ's GIFT. Therefore it says,
"When He ascended on high, He led captive a host of captives and He gave GIFTS to men" (Ps. 68:18) ... And
He GAVE some as apostles, and some as prophets, and some as evangelists; and some as pastors and
teachers, for the equipping of the saints for the work of service, to the building up of the body of Christ (Eph.
4:7-12, NASB).
The remarkable truth was that spiritual offices in the Church were to be thought of as gifts from Christ to
His body. Therefore, men cannot make themselves leaders, nor can they be made such by the whim of others

224
(Rom. 1:5; 1 Cor. 1:1; 2 Cor. 1:1; Gal. 1:1,16). The Church must set apart, as spiritual leaders and ministers,
those whom God has called and chosen (Acts 13:1-3); because, when Christ gives a man to the Body of
Christ, He first endows the man with a spiritual gift that corresponds to his office. Some Bible teachers draw
a sharp distinction between the ministry gifts and the charismata, contending that the former are gifts of Christ
while the charismata are gifts of the Spirit (pneumatika). That all Divine offices and enablements are gifts of
the Triune God is seen in Paul's introduction to the charismata: "Now there are diversities of gifts, but the
same SPIRIT. And there are differences of administrations [ministries], but the same LORD. And there are
diversities of operations, but it is the same GOD which worketh all in all [all things in all men]" (1 Cor. 12:4-
6). Furthermore, Paul intermingles offices with endowments in his summary of the charismata: "And God
hath set some in the church, first apostles, secondarily prophets, thirdly teachers, after that miracles, then gifts
of hearings, helps, governments, diversities of tongues" (1 Cor. 12:28). Three offices are listed along with
five spiritual gifts. In Romans chapter twelve, where the Apostle lists seven gifts, he mixes two gifts
(charismata) with five kinds of possessors of gifts. It all adds up to the conclusion that all divinely ordained
men are given a gift of enablement, and every spiritual gift equips for some ministry. Of course, not every
exercise of a gift makes one a leader over others as those described in passages such as Ephesians 4:11;
Hebrews 13:7,17, 24; 1 Thessalonians 5:12; Acts 20:28; 1 Peter 5:1-4; or 1 Timothy 5:17; but whether leaders
or followers, there are spiritual gifts that divinely equip the saints to build up the Body of Christ. The Bible
does not put as wide a gulf between leaders and believers in general as men tend to do; nevertheless, the
offices of the Church are a Divine gift, without which the Church cannot be adequately matured, directed and
protected from error. The offices and their endowments are as follows:

1. The Apostle.
The Apostles were the first leaders of the Church, first in time (Mt. 10:1-2; Lk. 22:14,15; Eph. 2:20), first
in authority (Mk. 6:7; Acts 1:21-26), first in ministry (Acts 2:37; 6:1-4), and first in the lists (Eph. 4:11; 1
Cor. 12:28). The Apostles were those commissioned and sent forth by Jesus to initiate and direct the
preaching and teaching of the Gospel and, together with Him, to found the Church (Eph. 2:20; Rv. 21:14).
The title "apostle" comes from the Greek word apostolos, which means a messenger, one sent with a
commission, an Apostle of Christ." The basic idea expressed by the word "apostle" is that of one sent as a
representative of another and who derives his authority from the sender. In the classical Greek, apostolos also
meant "a fleet of ships, an expedition." From the latter, the meaning is extended to "one commissioned and
sent to another country," thus "a missionary." The verb apostello means to "send from or away."
Who in the New Testament are called "apostles"? The first group to be called "apostles" were the twelve
disciples of Jesus (Mt. 10:2; Lk. 6:13), which number had been reduced to eleven by the fall of Judas (Acts
1:26). In addition to the twelve, several others are called "apostles"; such as: Barnabas (Acts 14:14), Silas and
Timothy (1 Thes. 2:6), James (1 Cor. 15:7), Paul (Rom. 1:1), and probably Andronicus and Junias (Rom.
16:7). The last two who were Paul's kinsmen may be referred to in 2 Corinthians 8:23 as messengers (Gr.,
apostolos) of the churches. Epaphroditus is called, by Paul, the messenger (apostle) of the Philippian church
(Phil. 2:25). It appears that the term "apostle" was used with several different meanings: (1) The twelve
apostles of Jesus (Mt. 10:2; 19:28; Lk. 22:14); (2) all those commissioned by Jesus (70?) (120?) (See 1
Corinthians 15:5,7.); (3) Paul as a special apostle to the Gentiles (Gal. 2:7-9); and (4) certain associates of
Paul in his ministry to the nations (Acts 14:14; Rom. 16:7).
Different levels of apostleship seem to be set forth in 1 Corinthians 15:4-10: ... He rose again the third day
according to the scriptures: and that he was seen of Cephas, then of the twelve ... After that, he was seen of
James; then of all the apostles. And last of all he was seen of me also, as one born out of due time. For I am
the least of the apostles, that am not meet to be called an apostle, because I persecuted the church of God. But
by the grace of God I am what I am: and his grace which was bestowed upon me was not in vain; but I
labored more abundantly than they all: yet not 1, but the grace of God which was with me.
A comparison between verses five and seven will show that the Apostle made a clear distinction between
"the twelve" (v.5) and "all of the apostles" (v.7). Grosheide comments on verse seven: "There is thus an

225
analogy with verse 5: there it was Peter first and then the twelve; here James first and then a greater circle of
apostles."
Finally, Paul refers to himself as the last and the least of all the apostles. If Paul is the "last of all" the
apostles (men who had seen the Lord Jesus, see 1 Cor. 9:1), then there cannot be apostles in the true sense in
later times. The larger circle of apostles probably included the seventy whom Jesus personally commissioned,
or even the one hundred twenty who received the Spirit's fullness on the Day of Pentecost. That these latter
were not considered to be apostles on the same level with the Twelve is borne out by passages such as Acts
1:22-26 and Revelation 21:14. Barnabas, Silas, Andronicus and Junias could well have been among the
seventy (70) or the one hundred twenty (120) who were witnesses to Jesus' Resurrection (Acts 1:21,22). Paul
seems to class himself in a third category of apostles, "one born out of due time," one to whom the Risen Lord
had appeared after His Ascension. He had seen the Lord (1 Cor. 9:1); the signs of an apostle had appeared in
his ministry (2 Cor. 12:12); he had received the right hand of fellowship from the Jerusalem Apostles, and
authority from them to carry the Gospel to the Gentiles. Subsequent history demonstrated Paul's apostleship
in that he was used of the Lord to pen more books of the New Testament than any other human author. Yet,
the fact that Paul was forced to contend so strongly for his own apostleship shows that the Early Church had
set exceedingly high qualifications for the office of an apostle (1 Cor. 9:1; 2 Cor. 12:11,12). Those who
claimed apostleship falsely were strongly condemned (2 Cor. 11:13; Rv. 2:2). The Apostles are called the
foundation of the Church; a structure can have only one foundation (Eph. 2:20). Around Paul at Antioch, a
circle was formed of men such as Barnabas, Silas, Timothy, Titus and Epaphroditus who were called apostles
in the sense that they were commissioned by the church at Antioch to be "missionaries" (one meaning of the
word apostolos). In this last sense, there have been "apostles" in every age of the Church, men with mighty
gifts of the Spirit, men who through the power of the Risen Christ have pushed the frontiers of the Church out
to the ends of the earth. If they have not called themselves "apostles," they have wrought the works of
apostles. The title of "apostle" seems to belong to the first generation of the Church; however, the spiritual
endowments needed for apostolic work will continue to be poured out as long as there are unreached peoples
on the face of the earth. Jesus is still sending forth with a commission men who are given His authority over
powers of darkness, who have authority to bind and loose, and who preach the Gospel with the anointing of a
prophet. They work among us today.

2. The Prophet.
The prophet, whom Paul lists among the ministry gifts to the Church (Eph. 4:11), is second in importance
only to the apostles. The prophet was one who not only exercised the gift of prophecy, but who occupied a
place of leadership ministry along with the apostles and teachers (Acts 11:27; 13:1-3; 15:32; Eph. 2:20; 3:5).
In the Early Church, there were two classifications of prophets. Any member of the general body of
believers who ministered edification, exhortation and comfort through the gift of prophecy was called a
prophet (1 Cor. 14:24,31). Another group, consisting of such men as Barnabas, Silas, Judas, Agabus and
others mentioned in Acts 13:1, were spiritual leaders of the church (Acts 21:22); they are referred to by Paul
in Ephesians 4:11 as among the ministry gifts to the Church. Those of the latter group, although they
exercised the same gift of prophecy, possessed an additional charisma of leadership.
How did the gift of prophecy operate in and through those who exercised it?
a) The prophet speaks as the Lord's agent. He speaks that which the Lord wills him to speak. Peter
defines the function of the prophet as follows: "As each one has received a special gift [charisma], employ it
in serving one another, as good stewards of the manifold grace of God.
Whoever speaks, let him speak as it were, the utterances of God, whoever serves, let him do so as by the
strength which God supplies" (1 Pt. 4:10,11, NASB). In all gifted ministry there is a supernatural element.
b) Often the content of the prophet's message will be given extemporaneously at the time of
speaking. However, the message may be given beforehand during prayer or meditation. Many of the Old
Testament prophets received their message content in a dream, a vision, or during prayer, to be delivered to

226
the people at a later date (Is. 6:9-13).
c) Sometimes, the message content may consist of data well known to the prophet such as scriptural
truth or history. Both Peter on the Day of Pentecost (Acts 2:14-37), and Stephen before the Sanhedrin (Acts
7), delivered prophetic messages that were filled with quotations from the Old Testament. That both spoke in
the power of the Spirit is clear from the accounts in Acts. The word used to describe Peter's utterance, (2:14)
apophthengomai, is the word used in the clause "and began to SPEAK with other tongues" (Acts 2:4); a term
used to express the speech of prophets, seers and oracles. Stephen concluded his message with a vision of
Christ "standing on the right hand of God" (Acts 7:56). It appears from this, that a prophet may employ
Scripture in his messages, in which case the Holy Spirit directs him in the choice of material and in its
application to specific situations. A prophet may be moved strongly by the Spirit to set forth a certain
scriptural passage, in which instance the Spirit also provides a special boldness and power of communication:
"And they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and they spake the WORD of God with boldness [parresia]"
(Acts 4:29-31); "Praying always with all prayer and supplication in the Spirit ... for me ... that I may speak
boldly [with parresia], as I ought to speak" (Eph. 6:18-20). Not all preaching is prophecy by any means, but
much preaching becomes prophetic where great unpremeditated truth or application is provided by the Spirit,
or where special revelation is given beforehand in prayer and is empowered in the delivery. When one speaks
in tongues, the mind is inactive (1 Cor. 14:14); but when one prophesies, the Spirit operates through the mind
to supply a message: "However, in the church I desire to speak five words with my mind, that I may instruct
others, rather than ten thousand words in a tongue" (1 Cor. 14:19, NASB). Here the Apostle is not contrasting
gifted utterance with non-gifted speech; he is contrasting tongues with prophecy; for the entire fourteenth
chapter of 1 Corinthians is written to compare uninterpreted tongues with prophecy.
d) Before the New Testament was written, many of the apostolic prophets were used of the Spirit, to
reveal the Gospel plan of salvation; for it was only dimly prefigured in the typology of the Old Testament
(Eph. 2:20). This prophetic revelation later became incorporated in the Epistles: "... Whereby, when ye read,
ye may understand my knowledge in the mystery of Christ, which in other ages was not made known unto the
sons of men, as it is now revealed unto his holy apostles and PROPHETS by the Spirit.. ." (Eph. 3:4,5).
e) While prophecy is more "forth-telling" than it is "fore-telling," sometimes it may involve
prediction of the future. The book of Acts records two predictive prophecies of Agabus (Acts 11:27,28; Acts
21:10-14), the first relative to the impending famine in Judea, the second pertaining to Paul's soon coming
imprisonment in Jerusalem. Both prophecies were fulfilled. It should be noted, regarding the second
prediction of Agabus in Acts 21:11, that Paul did not change his plans as a result of the prophecy, nor at the
entreaty of his friends. This teaches that prophecy may be given to reveal or confirm a coming event, but not
to provide personal guidance. Paul respected the prophecy of Agabus which revealed only what Paul already
knew (Acts 20: 22,23), but he followed his own understanding of God's will for his future. God may reveal
the future, but we are not to "enquire of prophets" concerning the future. Those who walk by faith live one
day at a time leaving the unknown future to God.
f) It is often asked whether prophetic utterances ought to be phrased in first person ("I the Lord"),
or in third person ("Thus saith the Lord" or "The Lord would have"). When someone exercises a vocal gift,
he speaks as the Spirit supplies thoughts; the Spirit reveals, the prophet speaks. God does not speak, but
reveals to the prophet what He wants said. Paul said: "Let the PROPHETS speak two or three and let the
other[s] judge" (I Cor. 14:29). Since the messages of the prophets are subject to being judged (discerned), it
seems more consistent with humility for the prophet to speak in the third person as did Agabus in Acts 21:11.
Paul declared that the things which he wrote in 1 Corinthians chapter fourteen were the commandments of
the Lord (I Cor. 14:37); yet, he expressed his precepts in the third person. Meyer Pearlman writes on this
question: "Many experienced workers believe that interpretations and prophetic messages should be given in
the third person.1129 Luke declares, concerning those who were filled with the Spirit on the Day of
Pentecost: "And THEY began to speak with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance" (Acts 2:4). God
did not speak with tongues, the believers spoke as they were enabled by the Spirit. God does not normally
speak through men as passive megaphones; He reveals to prophets His Will, enabling them to speak what He
supplies. Often God spoke directly to the prophet; but when the prophet delivered the message to the people,

227
he said, "Thus saith the Lord" or something equivalent to it. Today, many are of the opinion that prophetic
utterance is better phrased in contemporary language rather than with archaic words, except where actual
Scripture may be incorporated.

3. The Evangelist.
'Evangelist" comes from the Greek word euangelistes, which is defined as "one who proclaims good
news." The English word "gospel" translates another form of the same Greek word. An evangelist, then, is
one who devotes himself entirely to "preaching the gospel," especially the message of salvation. The term
"evangelist" is used only three times in the New Testament (Acts 21:8; Eph. 4:11; 2 Tm. 4:5). Nevertheless,
Paul lists the evangelist as one of the ministry gifts to the Church (Eph. 4:11). Only Philip is specifically
called an "evangelist" (Acts 21:8); but workers such as Timothy (2 Tm. 4:5), Luke (2 Cor. 8:18), Clement
(Phil. 4:3) and Epaphras (Col. 1:7; 4:12) may have functioned as evangelists. Paul's words to Timothy
suggest that his true calling was that of the evangelist: 'Preach the word; be ready in season, and out of season;
reprove, rebuke, exhort with great patience and instruction ... But you, be sober in all things, endure hardship,
do the work of an evangelist, fulfill your ministry" (2 Tm. 4:2,5, NASB). (See also 1 Tm. 1:18; 4:14.) Paul
quite clearly describes an evangelist when he refers to an unnamed worker (most scholars identify him as
Luke): "And we have sent with him the brother, whose praise is in the GOSPEL throughout all the churches"
(2 Cor. 8:18).
The clearest picture of an evangelist at work is found in Acts chapter eight, which describes the ministry
of Philip, who is specifically called an "evangelist" (Acts 21:8). The following characteristics of Philip's
ministry form a pattern of New Testament evangelism:
a) Philip preached the Word of God, especially declaring the heart of the Gospel, which is Christ the
Savior. He "preached Christ unto them" (8:4,5,35).
b) There were many who believed and were baptized (8:6,12).
c) Mighty miracles of healing followed his preaching and many were delivered from demon spirits
(8:6,7). The healing miracles gave greater effectiveness to Philip's ministry (8:6,8).
d) Philip was ready to witness about Christ as the Savior to whole cities, or to one individual.
Leaving Samaria, he was directed to the chariot of the treasurer of Ethiopia (8:26), whom he led to Christ
(8:35-38). The true soul winner has a passion for souls that makes him adaptable to mass evangelism or
personal evangelism.
e) Philip's evangelistic ministry took him from city to city (8:40).
The picture of the evangelist in the New Testament, and in the post-apostolic period, was that of one
preaching the gospel message of salvation from church to church and from city to city. Eusebius, the great
church historian of the fourth century described the evangelist: "And they scattered the saving seeds of the
kingdom of heaven far and near throughout the whole world ... Then starting out on long journeys they
performed the office of evangelists, being filled with the desire to preach Christ to those who had not yet
heard the word of faith.1130 (See Rom. 15:20,21).

4. The Pastor-teacher
In the grammatical structure of Ephesians 4:11, the term "teacher" does not have a definite article, as do
all the preceding terms for the ministry gifts. It seems, therefore, that "teacher" is to be taken together with
"pastor." This does not mean that the terms are interchangeable. There may be teachers who are not pastors,
but there cannot be pastors who are not teachers (Acts 20:28-30). In churches where there were several
elders, some might have had a ministry of leadership who were not teachers (1 Tm. 5:17), but the real pastor
was a teacher, 'Especially those whose work is preaching and teaching" (1 Tm. 5:17b, NIV). One of the
necessary qualifications for a bishop (pastor, elder) was that he be 'apt to teach" (1 Tm. 3:2; 2 Tm. 2:24). A
true pastor, then, will have the charisma of teaching (Rom. 12:7; 1 Cor. 12:28).

228
The word "Pastor" (Gr.,poimen), used to refer to the spiritual leader of a local church, is found only once
in the New Testament (Eph. 4:11). However, the figure of the church as a 'flock" (Gr., poimen), and of the
work of the spiritual leader of the church as "shepherding the flock of God" (Gr.,poimaino), is found several
times (Jn. 21:15-17; Acts 20:28; 1 Pt. 5:14).
The idea of Israel as the flock of God and of Jehovah as their shepherd is a common figure in the Old
Testament (Ps. 23:4; Ps. 80:1,2; Is. 40:11; Jer. 23:4; 25:34-38; Ez. 34; Zec. 11). In the New Testament, Jesus
uses the figure of the shepherd and the sheep in John chapter ten, where He calls Himself the 'Good
Shepherd." Besides the title "Good Shepherd," Jesus is also called the "Great Shepherd" (Heb. 13:20), the
"Chief Shepherd" (1 Pt. 5:4), and the "Gentle Shepherd" (Is. 40:11). Pastors of the churches are merely
'under-shepherds," serving under the "Chief Shepherd." The words "pastor" and "shepherd" come from the
same Greek word, poimen.
The fact that teaching was the principal goal of The Great Commission as given by Matthew (Mt.
28:19,20), shows the importance of the ministry of the teacher. The book of Acts reinforces this observation:
"And daily in the temple, and in every house, they ceased not to teach and preach Jesus Christ" (Acts 5:42).
(See also Acts 11:26; 13:1; 15:35; 20:20; 28:31; 1 Cor. 4:17; Col. 3:16; 2 Tm. 2:2.) In view of the importance
of teaching, it should not be surprising that one of the special endowments of the Holy Spirit would be the
capacity to teach. The prophet inspired, exhorted, comforted and motivated the church; the teacher instructed
the church in sound doctrine guarding the flock from false teachers with their destructive teachings. The
church at Antioch enjoyed a balanced ministry from prophets and teachers who administered anointed
exhortation and evangelism and anointed teaching. Some have concluded that the charisma of a "word of
wisdom" was the prophet's gift, and that the operation of the "word of knowledge" was the teacher's gift. The
Apostle John referred to the anointing enjoyed by true teachers: "But ye have an unction from the Holy One,
and ye know all things" (1 Jn. 2:20). (See also 1 Jn. 2:27.) There is a tendency to think of the prophet as one
who speaks supernaturally, and of the teacher as one who imparts the findings of merely natural scholarship.
The difference is not between the supernatural and the natural; the difference between the two is a difference
in the manner by which the Holy Spirit operates in the two ministry gifts. The anointing upon the prophet is
more sudden and impromptu, with the goal of motivation; the anointing upon the teacher is more measured,
operating to illuminate the Word of Truth and give ability to communicate accurately. For every ministry in
the Body of Christ there is a spiritual charisma.

H. Other Probable Spiritual Gifts.


It has already been pointed out that the lists of spiritual gifts in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve, Romans
chapter twelve and Ephesians chapter four, are not intended to be exhaustive. The following are phases of
ministry that may require a special endowment of the Holy Spirit:

1. Hospitality.
Peter appears to categorize "hospitality" as a spiritual gift: "Use hospitality one to another without
grudging. As every man hath received the gift [charisma], even so minister the same one to another, as good
stewards of the manifold grace of God" (1 Pt. 4:9,10). Hospitality was very important to early Christians, it
was a necessary qualification for bishops: "A bishop then must be blameless ... given to hospitality, apt to
teach..." (1 Tm. 3:2). Perhaps in the modem world, particularly in the cities, Christian workers are not
normally entertained in the people's homes, but hospitality may be manifested in the contemporary world by
loving interest in and concern for the needs of others.

2. Intercession.
A basic exercise of the Christian life is prayer. Prayer is to the spiritual life what breathing is to physical
life. However, prayer in the Spirit "with groanings that cannot be uttered" is a charisma of the Spirit (Rom.
8:26,27). Prayer in the Spirit is the potential of all Spirit-filled believers; but most need to "stir up the gift" (1

229
Tm. 4:14; 2 Tm. 1:6). Perhaps prayer and praise in the Spirit are aspects of the gift of tongues or
interpretation of tongues; in any case, they are charismatic operations of the Spirit in the believer (Eph.
5:18,19; Col. 3:16; 1 Cor. 14:15).

3. Witnessing.
Witnessing is one of the primary goals of the Church of Jesus Christ. Jesus promised, "But ye shall
receive power, after that the Holy Ghost has come upon you: and ye shall be witnesses unto me. . ." (Acts 1:
8). Witnessing is not specifically said to be a spiritual gift, but the capacity to witness effectively is clearly
declared to be the result of the outpouring of the Holy Spirit upon the believer. Since there are many, like
Paul, who have a special ministry of witnessing, God may give a special endowment for it: "Having therefore
obtained help of God, I continue unto this day, witnessing both to small and great . . ." (Acts 26:22). (See also
Acts 23:11.) Two passages declare that witnessing is a special work of the Spirit: "And we are his witnesses
of these things; and so is also the Holy Ghost, whom God has given to them that obey him" (Acts 5:32); 'And
it is the Spirit that beareth witness, because the Spirit is truth" (1 Jn. 5:6b). It appears that the more one is
yielded to the Spirit, the greater will be his ability to witness effectively.

I. Gifts for Special Abilities.


1. Old Testament spiritual gifts for special skills.
In the Old Testament, special gifts of the Spirit were given to artisans who served in the construction of
the Tabernacle:
And Moses said to the children of Israel, "See the Lord has called by name Bezaleel the son of Uri, the
son of Hur, of the tribe of Judah; and He has filled him with the Spirit of God, in wisdom and understanding,
in knowledge and manner of workmanship, to design artistic works, to work in gold and silver and bronze ...
and to work in all manner of artistic workmanship." (Ex. 35:30-33, NKJV).
This passage provides a typology for the work of the Holy Spirit who supplies, in the new dispensation,
special endowments for believers who are God's workmen, building the Body of Christ.

230
2. Spiritual music, prose, and poetry.
If God supplied supernatural gifts for every skill needed in the building of the Tabernacle and its
furnishings, will He not also supply in this age a spiritual enablement to correspond with every kind of service
needed in building the Holy Temple of which Christ is the Foundation and Chief Cornerstone? Might this not
include the composing of spiritual music, the mastery of musical instruments that aid worship, the writing of
Christian literature that edifies spiritually, and even the building of structures that serve for worship and
teaching?

3. Spiritual capacitation for every work in the Body of Christ.


If anyone has a service that is useful to Christ's Church, should he not expect that God will endow that
service with a special unction, so that no work in Christ's Body need be done in merely human strength?
Therefore, ". . . if any man minister, let him do it as of the ability which God giveth: that God in all things
may be glorified through Jesus Christ. . ." (1 Pt. 4:11).

J. The Relationship Between the Gifts and the Fruit of the Spirit.
1. The importance of love.
Critics of the operation of spiritual gifts often say, "I would rather have love than tongues or miracles."
Fortunately, they are not mutually exclusive alternatives. One does not have to choose between love and
miracles, nor between the Gifts of the Spirit and the Fruit of the Spirit. The Spirit bestows both the fruit and
the gifts; both are essential for a complete Church. The great "love chapter" of the Bible, I Corinthians
chapter thirteen, is sandwiched between the two great "gift chapters"; not as an alternative, but as an
undergirding for the gifts. Paul said: "Follow after charity [love], and desire spiritual gifts . . ." (1 Cor. 14:1).
It is true that the exercise of the gifts without love has no value (I Cor. 13:1-3). If the possession of gifts is
only an "ego trip," or a "status symbol," then they are less than useful. If he who exercises a gift is
unreachable, having no concern to edify the whole body, then he is nothing (1 Cor. 13:2). We do not seek
gifts, the Holy Spirit distributes them as He will; but the fruit of the Spirit should be the quest of every Spirit-
filled believer: "Follow after [pursue] charity [love] . . ." (1 Cor. 14:1). When the fruit of the Spirit ripens in
the believer's life, the Holy Spirit will, no doubt, bestow gifts upon those who desire them for the edification
of the Body and for the glory of God.

2. How all the fruit is contained in love.


The Apostle, enumerating the fruit of the Spirit, said: "But the fruit of the Spirit is LOVE, joy, peace,
longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance. . ." (Gal. 5:22,23). He had just declared
that the works of the flesh were such as adultery, idolatry, envyings, wrath, strife, etc. The works of the flesh
were plural (works). When he enumerated the fruit, he said 'The fruit of the Spirit IS LOVE [singular]". All
the virtues that follow love are really aspects of love. The flesh manifests many vile works. The Spirit
manifests love which is a spiritual jewel with its eight sparkling facets. Love is the basic qualification for the
ministry of gifts; it also ought to be the underlying motive for the desire of the gifts. In the vocal gifts, love
makes the difference between clanging brass and heavenly music.

231
CHAPTER SEVEN
THE DOCTRINE OF DIVINE HEALING

Introduction
I. The reasonableness of Divine Healing
A. God is definitely interested in the human body
B. There is a vital relationship between the soul and spirit of man and his physical body
C. Man's needs are twofold
II. The origin of sickness
A. Historically
B. Physiologically
C. Correctively
III. The spiritual nature of sickness
A. Sickness is in the world because of sin
B. Certain sickness is the result of specific sin
C. Sickness as a discipline
IV. Healing and the Will of God
V. The Scripturalness of Divine Healing
A. Divine Healing in the Old Testament
B. Healing in the ministry of Jesus
C. Healing in the ministry of the disciples
D. Healing in the Early Church
VI. Healing through the Church age
VII. Healing and the Atonement
A. Atonement was made for healing in the Old Testament
B. Forgiveness of sins and healing of diseases go hand in hand in the Bible
C. Redemption from the curse of the Law
D. Isaiah chapter fifty-three
E. The Passover and The Lord's Supper
VIII. Why Jesus healed the sick
A. Because of the promises of His Word
B. In order to reveal His Will
C. To manifest the Works of God
D. Because of compassion
E. Because of faith - not only in His ability, but also His willingness
IX. Why Christians should seek Divine Healing
A. Because it is a solemn command
B. Because of the spiritual blessing it will bring
C. Because it is glorifying to God
X. Methods of administering Divine Healing
A. Pray for yourself
B. Ask someone else to pray for you
C. Call for the elders of the church
D. By laying on of hands
E. Special miracles through handkerchiefs and aprons
F. Spiritual gifts of healing
XI. Why are not all healed?
A. Some seek healing before salvation
B. Some seek healing for wrong purposes
C. Some look to the minister rather than to Christ

232
D. Disobedience
E. Because of some unconfessed sin in the life
F. Because of unbelief
G. Failure to stand in faith until the answer comes
XII. How to retain Divine Healing
A. Keep in an atmosphere of faith
B. Keep praising the Lord for what He has done
C. Keep testifying of what God has done
D. Feed your faith on the Word of God
E. Contend in faith for your healing
F. Walk in obedience to God's Will - His Word
G. Start, and continue, service to the Lord
XIII. Divine Life for the body
XIV. Answers to objections
A. The day of miracles is past
B. Why are many Christians not healed?
C. Why not also believe in raising the dead, and other miracles promised in Mark 16
D. Now that medical science is perfected, God expects His people to use medicine for healing
E. If Divine Healing always worked, no Christian would ever die
F. There are cases of failure in the New Testament
G. Divine Healing is taught only by false cults
H. Divine Healing puts more emphasis upon the body than upon the soul
I. If God created herbs and drugs, does He not expect man to use them for hearings
J. The miracles recorded in Matthew 8:16,17 completely fulfilled the prophecy of physical
healing in Isaiah 54:45
K. If healing is in the Atonement, Christians who are sick must conclude that they are sinners
L. Failure by many to receive healing weakens the faith of the whole Church

233
The Doctrine of Divine Healing

INTRODUCTION
Section fourteen of the Declaration of Faith of the International Church of the Foursquare Gospel states:
"We believe that Divine Healing is the power of the Lord Jesus Christ to heal the sick and the afflicted in
answer to believing prayer; that He who is the same yesterday, and today and forever has never changed but is
still an all-sufficient help in the time of trouble, able to meet the needs of, and quicken into newness of life,
the body, as well as the soul and spirit, in answer to the faith of them who ever pray with submission to His
divine and sovereign will."
This precious doctrine is one-fourth of the Foursquare Gospel and should not be neglected by those who
minister the Word of God. In some circles, there is a good deal of misunderstanding, and opposition, with
regard to Divine Healing. This is due to a failure to accept and comprehend the full teaching of the Word of
God on this subject. It will be the purpose of this section to deal with: (1) The Reasonableness of Divine
Healing, (2) The Origin of Sickness, (3) The Spiritual Nature of Sickness; (4) Healing and the Will of God,
(5) The Scripturalness of Divine Healing, (6) Divine Healing Through the Church Age, (7) Healing and the
Atonement, (8) Why Jesus Healed the Sick, (9) Why Christians Should Seek Divine Healing, (10) Methods of
Administering Divine Healing, (11) Why All Are Not Healed, (12) How to Retain Divine Healing, (13)
Divine Life for the Body, and (14) Answers to Objections.

I. THE REASONABLENESS OF DIVINE HEALING


In the light of all that is revealed in the Scriptures, it is not to be thought unreasonable that the Lord
should heal the physical afflictions of those who seek His aid. It is not the purpose of this section to deal with
the reasonableness of physical healing merely from an acceptable rational standpoint. The thought to be
emphasized is that, based on the Word of God and what it reveals about God's Will, His Purpose and His
Power, it is wholly reasonable to believe that God is interested in the physical, human bodies of those who are
His children through the New Birth. The following facts bear witness to this. It is not necessary for a
Christian to try to persuade God to take an interest in his physical needs. From Creation on, God has certainly
done this. The promises of God and the revelations of His concern for man's physical needs have always far
outstripped man's faith to receive them.

A. God Is Definitely Interested in the Human Body.


The vital relationship of the human body to God's program is set forth in 1 Corinthians 6:9-20. From this
passage we quote;
Meats for the belly, and the belly for meats: but God shall destroy both it and them. Now the body is not
for fornication, but for the Lord; and the Lord for the body. And God hath both raised up the Lord, and will
also raise up us by his own power. Know ye not that your bodies are the members of Christ? shall I then take
the members of Christ, and make them the members of an harlot? God forbid. What? know ye not that he
which is joined to an harlot is one body? for two, saith he, shall be one flesh. But he that is joined unto the
Lord is one spirit. Flee fornication. Every sin that a man doeth is without the body: but he that committeth
fornication sinneth against his own body. What? know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost
which is in you, which ye have of God, and ye are not your own? For ye are bought with a price: therefore
glorify God in your body, and in your spirit, which are God's (1 Cor 6:13-20).
In verse thirteen, a double assurance is given: "Now the body is ... for the Lord; and the Lord [is] for the
body." Not only are the soul and spirit of man intended to be for God, but his body also is "for the Lord." But
then Paul adds the revealing thought that God has not only provided for the needs of man's spiritual nature,
but He has also provided for his physical needs - "The Lord is for the body." Note the following:

1. Man was created in the image of God.


"And God said, Let us make man in our image, after our likeness: . . . So God created man in his own

234
image, in the image of God created he him. .." (Gn. 1:26,27). While this applies particularly to the spiritual
nature of man, the "image of God" must have some relation to man's body as well. This is evidenced by a
truth suggested in Genesis 9:6: "Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by man shall his blood be shed: for in the
image of God made he man." We know that death only affects the life of the body. It does not kill the soul
(Lk. 12:4,5). Yet, the reason for this warning of judgment upon one who kills man's body is, "for in the
image of God made he man." The image of God, then, must have some relationship to man's physical body.

2. The human body is included in Christ's Redemption


Even we ourselves groan within ourselves, waiting for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of our body"
(Rom. 8:23). The body of a Christian belongs to God because it was purchased by Him. "What? know ye not
that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost which is in you ... and ye are not your own? For ye are bought
with a price?" (1 Cor. 6:19,20). Many, who never question God's claim upon the soul and spirit, practically
deny His possession of the body as well. God is definitely interested in both.

3. The body of a Christian is a member of Christ.


'Know ye not that your bodies are the members of Christ?' (1 Cor. 6:15). Again it is emphasized that it is
the body, not the soul or spirit, of man that is here in view.

4. God is deeply concerned about the sanctity of the body of His children.
Verses 15-18 of the passage in 1 Corinthians chapter six make this dramatically clear. Some sins, Paul
emphasizes, are particularly against the physical body. God is just as much concerned about these sins as He
is about those which touch only the soul.

5. The human body of the Christian is the temple of the Holy Spirit.
"Know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost?" (1 Cor. 6:19). One has only to consider
how deeply interested God was in every detail of the Tabernacle in the wilderness, and the Temple in
Jerusalem, to realize how concerned He is with this physical frame which is the dwelling place of His Holy
Spirit.

6. Christians are urged to glorify God in their physical bodies.


"Therefore glorify God in your body, and in your spirit, which are God's" (1 Cor. 6:20). To glorify God
by the right attitude of one's spirit is a commonly accepted truth of the Christian life, but the admonition here
is to glorify Him in the physical part of one's being. Both aspects of man's being are said to be God's.

7. Christians are urged to present their body as a living sacrifice to God.


I beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice,
holy, acceptable unto God. . . ." (Rom. 12:1). Again, note that it is the body, not the soul or spirit, which is
here specified. After Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego came out of the fiery furnace unscathed,
Nebuchadnezzar spake, and said, "Blessed be the God of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, who hath sent
his angel, and delivered his servants that trusted in him, and have changed the king's word, and yielded their
bodies, that they might not serve nor worship any god, except their own God" (Dn. 3:28). The great monarch
was impressed with these three faithful followers of the Lord, because they "yielded their bodies" in sacrifice
to the Lord.

8. The human body is to be resurrected.


"And God hath both raised up the Lord, and will also raise up us by his own power" (1 Cor. 6:14).
Resurrection is real. Christians will live in the same body, resurrected and glorified, throughout eternity.
Because of this, it is important to God what happens to it now. The earnest of the believer's inheritance (Eph.
1:14) of resurrected, immortal life, is healing and health for his body now.

B. There Is a Vital Relationship Between the Soul and Spirit of Man and His Physical Body.

235
Conditions in the body affect the soul. When well in body, one's disposition is almost always cheerful.
When sick in body, it is not unusual for a person to be depressed in his spirit.
Likewise, conditions in the soul and spirit will affect the body. Good news will exhilarate the body and
cause one to walk with a light step, while sad news often makes one walk as with leaden feet. "Statistics
reported in 1948 indicated that two thirds of the patients who went to a physician had symptoms caused or
aggravated by mental stress.112
There is such a close relationship between the soul and the body of man, it is difficult to see how God
could be interested in, and make provision for, one without the other. Many seem to believe that the spiritual
life should be supernatural and the physical life merely natural. There will never be perfect harmony until all
is given to God for His care and keeping. God is interested in both soul and body - the whole man. The right
thing is always the healthy thing.

C. Man's Needs Are Two-fold.


The human being has two distinct natures. He is both a material and spiritual being. When Adam sinned,
both parts of his nature were affected by the Fall. This is true of all men ever since, for they have inherited
his fallen nature. Man's soul is corrupted by sin; his body is exposed to disease. The complete plan of
Christ's Redemption includes both natures of Man, and provides for the restoration of his spiritual life, at the
same time providing for the results of sin as seen in his physical being. A complete redemption must offset
the full effect of sin and meet the total need of Mankind. This is illustrated in the ministry of Jesus Who
healed all the sick who came to Him, as well as shedding His precious blood for the forgiveness of sin. It is
also indicated by the double commission given to the disciples: "Go ye into all the world, and preach the
gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved ... they shall lay hands on the sick
and they shall recover" (Mk. 16:15-18).

II. THE ORIGIN OF SICKNESS


A clear understanding of the origin of sickness is absolutely essential to any grasp of the subject of Divine
Healing. No one will ever have the right kind of faith to believe God for healing until he sees sickness as God
sees it. Nor will he be able to see sickness as God sees it until he knows how sickness originated.
In this section of study we shall undertake to show that sickness is the result of sin, and its presence in the
world must be traced directly to the influence and power of Satan. We shall look at this fact historically,
physiologically, and correctively.

A. Historically.
There is little room for disagreement that sickness is the result of the coming of sin into the world.
Created as he was, in the image of God, if man had not sinned, he certainly would not have suffered pain,
weakness and disease in his body. Paul makes it very clear that death is the result of sin. 'Wherefore, as by
one man sin entered into the world, and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men, for that all have
sinned. . ." (Rom. 5:12). Death is sickness matured. Death is the result of sin. Therefore, sickness must also
be the result of sin, since the greater (death) contains the lesser (sickness). This means that if there had been
no sin in the world there would have been no sickness. This general principle, that sickness is the result of sin
and may be traced to the influence and power of Satan, is specifically illustrated in the following:

1. The affliction that came upon Job.


'So went Satan forth from the presence of the Lord, and smote Job with sore boils from the sole of his foot
unto his crown" (Jb. 2:7). Language could not make it clearer that Job's affliction came from Satan. It was
God who healed him: "And the Lord turned the captivity of Job, when he prayed for his friends" (Jb. 42:10).
2. Those whom Jesus healed were oppressed of the Devil.
"How God anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Ghost and with power: who went about doing good,
and healing all that were oppressed of the devil; for God was with him" (Acts 10:38).

236
3. The woman who had been bowed over for eighteen years.
'And ought not this woman, being a daughter of Abraham, whom Satan hath bound, lo, these eighteen
years. be loosed from this bond on the Sabbath day?" (Lk. 13:16).

4. The prophetic outline of Jesus' ministry.


As He stood in the synagogue in Nazareth, Jesus opened the scroll of the prophet Isaiah to the sixty-first
(61st) chapter and began to read the prophetic message which outlined His earthly ministry "The Spirit of the
Lord is upon me, because he hath anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor ... to preach deliverance to the
captives, and recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are bruised. . ." (Lk. 4:18). Mankind
was bound and the prison keeper was Satan.

5. Enmity between Satan and the seed of the woman.


In the garden of Eden, enmity was pronounced between Satan and the seed of the woman (Gn. 3:15), and
he has harassed the human race ever since.

6. The man in Corinth turned over to Satan for the destruction of the flesh.
"To deliver such an one unto Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day
of the Lord Jesus" (I Cor. 5:5). When Paul would see the man in the church at Corinth who was guilty of
incest disciplined that his spirit might be saved, he delivered him to Satan - no doubt that some physical
affliction would come upon him so that he could no longer continue in his sin.

7. Sickness is among the curses of the broken Law.


Among the curses which God said would come upon Israel because of their sin, are a number of physical
diseases (Dt. 28:15,22,27,28,35).

8. Paul's "thorn in the flesh."


If Paul's 'thorn in the flesh" was a physical affliction, as many believe it was, it is very clear from whence
it came; for the text says, specifically, that it was "the messenger of Satan." (2 Cor. 12:7).

9. Satan bound during the Millennium.


There will be no sickness on earth during the Millennium: "And the inhabitant shall not say, I am sick . .
." (Is. 33:24); "They shall not hurt nor destroy in all my holy mountain. . . ." (Is. 11:9); ". . . The Sun of
righteous-ness [shall] arise with healing in his wings" (Mal. 4:2). It is highly significant that Satan will be
bound in the Bottomless Pit all during this time (Rv. 20:2,3).

10. Jesus rebuked sickness.


In healing the sick, Jesus sometimes dealt with them as He did with demons, showing that He considered
sickness the work of the Devil. In the case of demon possession: "And Jesus rebuked him. . . . And when the
devil had thrown him in the midst, he came out of him and hurt him not" (Lk. 4:35). In the case of healing
Peter's mother-in-law: "And he stood over her, and rebuked the fever; and it left her. . . ." (Lk. 4:39).

B. Physiologically.
1. All sickness is the result of sin - ultimately.
Hospitals, asylums, sanitariums and other institutions throughout the land are tangible evidence to the
presence of sin and its manifestation in the human body. This does not mean that every time a person
becomes sick he has committed some particular sin. But it does mean that had there been no sin in the world
there would have been no sickness.

2. Some sickness and afflictions are the result of specific sins.


Jesus said to the man who was healed at the Pool of Bethesda: ". . . sin no more, lest a worse thing come

237
upon thee" (Jn. 5:14). The disciples recognized this principle of sin causing sickness when they asked the
question, "Master, who did sin, this man or his parents, that he was born blind?" (Jn. 9:2). They were wrong
in this case, but the principle remains in others. There are certain sins which are directly against the body, and
expose one to diseases. "There is no soundness in my flesh because of thine anger; neither is there any rest in
my bones because of my sin ... My wounds stink and are corrupt because of my foolishness ... My loins are
filled with a loathsome disease: and there is no soundness in my flesh. I am feeble and sore broken ... My
heart panteth, my strength faileth me: as for the light of mine eyes, it also is gone from me" (Ps. 38:3-10).
"For my life is spent with grief, and my years with sighing: my strength faileth because of mine iniquity, and
my bones are consumed" (Ps. 31:10).

3. The findings of physicians and psychologists.


Physicians and psychologists are more and more coming to the realization that anger, hatred, fear, and a
sense of guilt are responsible for a large percentage of even organic diseases. Stomach ulcers, arthritis, and
heart trouble are among those which result from some of the above mentioned attitudes of the soul. Hatred
and fear are sin. Jesus condemned hatred as murder (Mt. 5:21,22), because it is the cause of murder. Jesus
condemned the seed of murder, not only the full-grown fruit of the out-ward act. Fear is sin. "For whatsoever
is not of faith is sin" (Rom. 14:23). A guilty conscience, the result of unconfessed and unforgiven sin, is the
basic cause of many people's physical illnesses.

4. The misuse of the body.


Misuse of the body, in relation to diet and morals, or in not taking proper care of it, is sin. God gave
Israel moral and dietary laws, which if disobeyed would be constituted sin. He gave them these laws because
He knew they were good for their bodies, and He wanted His people to care for their physical beings.
Disregard for these principles often brought sick-ness or physical weakness.
If the body of the Christian belongs to God, is bought with a price, and is the temple of the Holy Ghost,
he should see to its proper care. Overeating, overworking and lack of proper rest and exercise are sins against
the body. Many Christians and ministers are guilty here.

C. Correctively.
1. Because of man's disobedience or sin.
God sometimes allows sickness to come upon His children as a chastening measure because of their
disobedience or sin. (Heb. 12:5-13). This, again, points out the relationship between sickness and sin.
The Psalmist pictures this chastening process at the hand of the Lord. 'Fools because of their
transgression, and because of their iniquities, are afflicted. Their soul abhoreth all manner of meat: and they
draw near unto the gates of death. Then they cry unto the Lord in their trouble, and he saveth them out of
their distresses. He sent his word, and healed them, and delivered them from their destructions" (Ps. 107:17-
20).
However, it must be clearly understood that chastening is not punishment; it is correction. All judgment
for the sins of a believer were borne by Christ on the Cross of Calvary.

2. Because of God's love for His children.


Furthermore, God does not chasten His children because He is angry with them. Chastening is always
administered in love, and because He wishes to correct them for their good and His glory.
And ye have forgotten the exhortation which speaketh unto you as unto children, My son, despise not
thou the chastening of the Lord, nor faint when thou art rebuked of him: for whom the Lord loveth he
chasteneth, and scourgeth every son whom he receiveth. If ye endure chastening, God dealeth with you as
with sons ... But if ye be without chastisement, whereof all are partakers, then are ye bastards, and not sons
(Heb. 12:5-8).
Unfortunately, parents often chasten their children because they are angry with them. "Furthermore we
have had fathers of our flesh which corrected us ... For they verily chastened us after their own plea-sure. . ."

238
(Heb. 12:9,10). This has usually been because they were taken by surprise by the child's misbehavior and
have become angry, resulting in the expression of their anger being taken out on the child. God is never taken
by surprise. He knows what His children will do, and thus is prepared ahead of time to deal with them in
accordance with His Love -however severe the suffering may appear to be. Note again, that Paul's purpose in
committing the incestuous man at Corinth to Satan was love for his soul: "that the spirit may be saved in the
day of the Lord Jesus" (1 Cor. 5:5).

3. Because of failure to rightly discern the Lord's body.


Paul illustrates the principle by showing that the reason some of the Corinthian saints were weak and
sickly, and some had already died, was because they had failed to rightly discern the Lord's body in their
observance of the communion ordinance. (1 Cor. 11:27-30). He adds: 'For if we would judge ourselves, we
should not be judged. But when we are judged, we are chastened of the Lord, that we should not be
condemned with the world"(1 Cor. 11:31,32).

4. Because of murmuring against God-appointed leaders.


Disobedience and murmuring, on the part of the children of Israel, brought plagues upon their bodies.
Note the result of Miriam's criticism of her brother Moses, as God's chosen leader (Nm. 12). Also, when the
congregation murmured against the leadership of Moses, plagues were sent among the people and thousands
died (Nm. 16:46-50).
There can be no doubt that some afflictions which Christians are enduring, even today, are the result of
their own disobedience and sin. Some people do not need to be prayed for to be healed, as much as they need
to repent of their disobedience and sin. Many have become physically well the moment they have confessed
their sin and asked God for forgiveness. Others who have cherished malice in their hearts toward another,
have been healed when they forgave the one who had wronged them.

III. THE SPIRITUAL NATURE OF SICKNESS


Too long, a wide distinction between sin and sickness has been made. It has been taught, or taken for
granted, that the former must be dealt with from a spiritual point of view, while the latter, being purely
physical, must be dealt with through natural means. However, more and more it is being recognized that
sickness has a spiritual significance as well. If it can be shown that sickness has a spiritual character, then the
reasonableness of a spiritual remedy, Divine Healing, will be established. The following three facts, which
are a summary of what has been presented above, clearly establish the spiritual nature of physical sickness:

A. Sickness Is in the World Because of Sin.


Sickness is in the world because of sin, which is in the spiritual realm, and the activity of Satan, who is a
spiritual being. Therefore, its original source is spiritual.

B. Certain Sickness Is the Result of Specific Sin.


Certain sicknesses are known to be the direct result of certain specific sins. There is, therefore, a close
relationship between the sickness and the sin; thus, a spiritual significance to these diseases.

C. Sickness as a Discipline.
God sometimes allows sickness to come upon His children as a disciplinary measure - and this because
He loves them. These sicknesses must have a spiritual significance, because they have a spiritual purpose - to
correct the steps of the child of God.
If, then, sickness is a spiritual thing, a cure must be found which is itself spiritual. No remedy which
reacts only on the physical will meet the full need. The physician's remedy may be able to alleviate the
physical symptoms, but it is not able to deal with the spiritual cause behind the physical symptoms. Many
doctors and psychiatrists have admitted that a vast majority of their patients would be well physically if they

239
could have their spiritual needs met. Divine Healing treats the physical need through the spiritual realm and
thus gets to the very heart of the sick person's need.
The forgiveness of sins and the healing of diseases are related to each other in a number of passages of the
Word of God. "Who forgiveth all thine iniquities; who healeth all thy diseases . . ." (Ps. 103:3). "And the
inhabit-ant shall not say, I am sick: the people that dwell therein shall be forgiven their iniquity" (Is. 33:24).
"And the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up; and if he have committed sins,
they shall be forgiven him" (Jas. 5:15).
The fact that great spiritual blessing always accompanies physical healing is proof of the interrelationship
of the two. In fact, many experience that the spiritual blessing received is even greater than the physical relief
which comes by the touch of God's Power. Anything that falls short of meeting the spiritual need behind the
physical sickness is not a sufficient cure.

IV. HEALING AND THE WILL OF GOD


The greatest hindrance to God's children enjoying Divine Healing and health is the lack of clear
knowledge of God's Will in the matter. It centers around the nagging uncertainty as to whether it is God's
Will to heal all who come to Him today. The question is not one of God's ability to heal. Every professing
Christian believes that God has the ability to do any-thing He chooses to accomplish. The vast majority of
those who make no profession of salvation still believe in God, and that He can perform the miraculous if He
wills to do so. The question, again, is not one of ability but willingness. We commonly dismiss this as a
matter of course without any sense of what is involved here. Actually, we are insulting God when we adopt
this attitude. Instead of saying to Him, "I know you would if you could," we are telling Him, "I know you
could if you only would." We are casting reflections on God's willingness to do good for His children.
What strange thoughts many have had with regard to God's Will. Too long they have looked upon it as
something which must be accepted as the final token of sacrifice on their part. Kenneth MacKenzie states:
The will of God has been a deep shadow on their pathway, obscuring the light of present blessing with its
possible decrees of sorrow. It has been a skeleton in their closet, which they have prayed to stay behind
closed doors. It has been a presence from whose cold embrace they have pleaded to be released. Their dread
of His will has impelled them to school themselves to be ready for its visitation as for the pestilence that
sweeps through the land. The will of God is associated with sick rooms, poverty, loss, bereavement, funerals,
the open grave. The will of God, to such, is always dressed in black. And this conception of His will gives us
sickly Christians, weak faith, empty joy, puny conquests. With many, no thought of the will of God is given,
until some calamity presses into their lives, and then they awake to such sad surmisings as we have noted.
When we say, in prayer, "Thy will be done," are we always impressed with its significance? God's will is not
a vindictive judge, exercising the keen scrutiny of inevitable retribution. Ah, how we have placed a libel upon
our Father's great heartedness in all these miserable thoughts of Him! His will is a blessed companion, which
illumines our way, cheers our spirits, makes glad our lives and brings fruitfulness to all that we do.
Let us seek to know God's Will in this matter of healing for the sick today. Is He willing to do it? Does
He think it wise to? Is it part of His plan for us at the present time? The importance of finding the scriptural
answers to these questions is emphasized by the fact that according to F.F. Bosworth: "It is impossible to
boldly claim by faith a blessing which we are not sure God offers, because the power of God can be claimed
only where the will of God is known ... Faith begins where the will of God is known ."
Because they have not taken time to learn from God's Word what is His Will, and what are His provisions
for healing, most people add to their petition, "If it be thy will." There was one in Christ's day who had this
kind of faith. He was a leper, and he came to Jesus saying, "Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean.
And he [Jesus] put forth his hand, and touched him, saying, I will: be thou clean. And immediately the
leprosy departed from him" (Lk. 5:12,13). The "I will" of Christ canceled the "If thou wilt" of the leper.
Thus the man who had faith that Christ could, had his faith exercised by the word of Jesus until he believed
Christ would.
The theology of the leper, when he first came to Jesus, is almost universal today. "If thou wilt, thou

240
canst." The moment we say "If it be thy will" in prayer for the healing of the sick, we are throwing all the
responsibility on God. We are making God responsible for the sickness, for we are saying the Lord could
heal if He only would. This is not scriptural. The Lord puts the responsibility on the one who is seeking His
healing touch. The father who brought his son to Jesus at the foot of the mountain of transfiguration cried, "If
thou canst do anything, have compassion on us and help us. Jesus said unto him, If thou canst believe, all
things are possible to him that believeth" (Mk. 9:22,23). The father, by his words, "If thou canst," was putting
the responsibility on the Lord; but He im-mediately returned the responsibility to the father, "If thou canst
believe, all things are possible to him that believeth."
The question is often asked concerning whether prayer for the sick should include the statement, "If it be
Thy will.' Every sincere Christian wants God's Will. If it can be shown that sickness is better for him than
healing, he should be resigned to sickness; but if healing is purchased for him, as the Word of God declares,
and promised to the Church as a Divine provision of the Unchanging God, then he will boldly ask the Lord to
heal him, assuming on the basis of the Scripture, that it is His Will. Must we doubt the Will of God to do
something He has promised? Do we pray, "Lord save me, if it be Thy will?" "If's" defeat faith. No one can
take a benefit by faith if he doubts its availability. One ought, however, to discover whether the matter is
according to the Will of God before he prays. If the sickness is a discipline, then one ought to pray first for
guidance into victory or into maturity, after which he may pray for healing. If one is in doubt about the nature
of a sickness, he ought to pray for insight into the trial. If one feels that sickness is a temporary testing, he
ought to pray for grace to bear his trial. However, normally, one need not pray "if," but may assume that God
desires to fulfill His promise.
God is Good, and wills the blessing and the health of all His children. Note His desire, expressed by
John, for blessings for the entire man: "Beloved, I wish above all things that thou mayest prosper and be in
health, even as thy soul prospereth" (3 Jn. 2). No doubt Paul had this three-fold blessing in mind when he
wrote: ". . . and I pray God your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of
our Lord Jesus Christ" (1 Thes. 5:23).
If sickness is of the Devil, certainly God does not will it upon any of His blood-bought children. For
centuries, people have been taught the traditions of men rather than the Word of God, and thus they are not
sure whether it is God's Will to heal them. God tells us His ways are far above our ways (Is. 55:8,9), and the
sooner we dismiss the traditions of men and turn to the Word of God the better.
The only sure way to learn what is God's Will regarding healing for the sick is to search the Word of God
and ascertain what it says on the subject. In every plan made by God for His people, in every age, physical
health and healing were included. Those who believed fully in His Word, and obeyed Him, enjoyed this
blessing. We will now turn to the Word and see what provision He has made for the healing of His people in
every period of human history.

V. THE SCRIPTURALNESS OF DIVINE HEALING

A. Divine Healing in the Old Testament.


It is not possible in this work to undergo an exhaustive study of healing in the Old Testament, but many
of the outstanding cases will be referred to and the principal promises studied.
The first case of Divine Healing recorded in the Bible is: "So Abraham prayed unto God: and God healed
Abimelech, and his wife, and his maidservants; and they bare children. For the Lord had fast closed up all the
wombs of the house of Abimelech, because of Sarah Abraham's wife" (Gn. 20:17,18).
What has been frequently referred to as the Old Testament Divine Healing Covenant was given to Israel
very shortly after their miraculous escape from Egypt and the crossing of the Red Sea. At the very beginning

of those long years of journeying and wandering, on their way to the Promised Land, we read:
... There he made for them a statute and an ordinance, and there he proved them, and he said, If thou wilt
diligently hearken unto the voice of the Lord thy God, and wilt do that which is right in his sight, and wilt

241
give ear to his commandments, and keep all his statutes, I will put none of these diseases upon thee, which I
have brought upon the Egyptians: for I am the Lord that healeth thee (Ex. 15:25,26).
The words from verse twenty-five, "there he made for them a statute and an ordinance," indicate that this
was more than a passing promise for an individual situation. This was to be a permanent covenant to be
incorporated into the very life of God's people. There is no record that God ever rescinded the promise He
made here. In fact, He put one of His redemptive names, Jehovah Rapha, right into this legal agreement.
Literally, God said, "I am the Lord thy Healer." This great promise still applies today, for God did not say, "I
was," as though to indicate some time past. Nor did He say, "I will," as though to indicate some uncertain
time in the future. But He said, "I Am," indicating the great eternally, unchanging Nature of God, Himself.
He used this great name once again when Moses, on the occasion of his call to go to Pharaoh and demand the
release of Israel from bondage, asked God:
Behold, when I come unto the children of Israel, and shall say unto them, the God of your Fathers hath
sent me unto you; and they shall say to me, What is his name? what shall I say unto them? And God said unto
Moses, I AM THAT I AM: and he said, Thus shalt thou say unto the children of Israel, I AM hath sent me
unto you (Ex. 3:13,14).
Jesus said this great name when speaking to the Jews, "Before Abraham was, I am" (Jn. 8:58). And the
writer of Hebrews expressed it in the familiar words, "Jesus Christ the same yesterday, and to day and for
ever" (Heb. 13:8).
Exodus 15:26 does not leave any doubt that it was God's Will to heal all who were sick. That God kept
His covenant is shown in Psalm 105:37: "He brought them forth also with silver and gold: and there was not
one feeble person among their tribes."
This universal condition of health among the people of Israel continued as long as they kept their part of
the covenant. But when Miriam grieved the Lord by criticizing the leadership of her brother, Moses, she was
smitten with leprosy (Nm. 12:1-10). She had broken the covenant. When she repented, and when Moses
prayed to God to heal her, she was delivered (Nm. 12:11-14). Thus God showed that He was still the One
Who healed.
Again, as recorded in Numbers 16:41-50, the congregation sinned and a plague destroyed a great
company of them. However, when they repented and again met the conditions of the covenant God had given
them, the Lord healed them and the plague was stayed. Thus, He once again showed that He was Jehovah
Rapha, the God who healed, not some, but all.
Israel continued to enjoy the health that God had promised until, once again, they broke the covenant.
They ". . . spake against God, and against Moses. . . ." (Nm. 21:5), and "fiery serpents" went among them to
destroy them. When they once again met God's conditions through repentance, God healed all who looked to
the brazen serpent on the pole (a picture of Calvary, see Jn. 3:14). He was still The Great Physician who
healed all who looked to Him.
Other Old Testament Scriptures which show God's willingness to heal the sick are:
Exodus 23:25 - And ye shall serve the Lord your God, and he shall bless thy bread, and thy water; and I
will take sickness away from the midst of thee.
Deuteronomy 7:15 - And the Lord will take away from thee all sickness, and will put none of the evil
diseases of Egypt, which thou knowest, upon thee; but will lay them upon them that hate thee. Deuteronomy
30:20 - That thou mayest love the Lord thy God, and that thou mayest obey his voice, and that thou mayest
cleave unto him: for he is thy life, and the length of thy days: that thou mayest dwell in the land which the
Lord sware unto thy fathers, to Abraham, and to Jacob, to give them.
Psalm 34:19 - Many are the afflictions of the righteousness: but the Lord delivereth him out of them all.
Psalm 91:9,10 - Because thou hast made the Lord, which is my refuge, even the most High, thy
habitation; there shall no evil befall thee, neither shall any plague come nigh thy dwelling.
Psalm 103:2,3 - Bless the Lord, O my soul, and forget not all his benefits: who forgiveth all thine
iniquities; who healeth all thy diseases . ["Who healeth all" is just as permanent as "Who forgiveth all."]
Psalm 107:20 - He sent his word, and healed them, and delivered them from their destructions.
Proverbs 4:20-22 - My son, attend to my words; incline thine ear unto my sayings: Let them not depart
from thine eyes; keep them in the midst of thine heart. For they are life unto those that find them, and health

242
to all their flesh.

Other Old Testament Examples of healing:


Miriam healed from leprosy Nm. 12:12-15
People healed from the plague 2 Sm. 24:25, Nm. 16
A widow's son raised from the dead 1 Kgs. 17:17-24
The Shunamite woman's son raised from the dead 2 Kgs. 4:18-37
Naaman healed from leprosy 2 Kgs. 5:1-15
Hezekiah's life extended fifteen years 2 Kgs. 20:1-11
Job healed of his sore affliction Jb. 42:10-13

The question of Divine Healing in the Old Testament is not at all uncertain or doubtful. That Jehovah
was the Physician of the Israelites is clearly evidenced by the above examples, together with numerous other
promises. The only questions that might arise would be: "May God be expected to heal others besides
Israel?"; and "As God declared Himself 'I am Jehovah thy Physician,' in Exodus 15:26, did He mean that His
healing ministry was to be in a permanent capacity?" "How can we know that this covenant of healing applies
to any but to the nation of Israel, and in that day only?"
The answer to these important questions is found in a study of the compound names of Jehovah. The
names of God are expressive of Him-self, and were chosen for that purpose. Some things in God's plan never
change, and never cease to exist because they are the manifestation of the very Nature of God. The Lord
never ceases to do some things because they are the acts resultant from His very Character. God does what
He does, because He is what He is. "I am the Lord, I change not" (Mal. 3:6). James says of the Lord: "Every
good gift and every perfect gift is from above, and cometh down from the Father of lights, with whom is no
variableness, neither shadow of turning" (Jas. 1:17). The name Jehovah is God's name when He is dealing in
covenant relationship with His people. It means, 'The eternal, self-existent, unchanging God." There are
seven compound names which, along with the name Jehovah, reveal His covenant relationship with Israel; but
also, because He never changes, reveal His REDEMPTIVE relationship to His people today. Note these
seven com-pound, redemptive names of Jehovah:
JEHOVAH-JIREH "The Lord will provide" Gn. 22:14
JEHOVAH NISSI "The Lord our Banner" Ex. 17:8-15
JEHOVAH-SHALOM "The Lord our Peace" Jgs. 6:24
JEHOVAH-RAAH "The Lord our Shepherd" Ps. 23:1
JEHOVAH-TSIDKENU "The Lord our Righteousness" Jer. 23:6
JEHOVAH-SHAMMAH "The Lord is Present" Ez. 48:35
JEHOVAH-RAPHA "The Lord thy Physician" Ex. 15:26

The Jehovah of the Old Testament is the same as Jesus in the New Testament. Compare the following set
of Scripture verses: 'A voice of one crying! - In the desert, prepare ye the way of Jehovah, make smooth in the
waste plain a highway for our God" (Is. 40:3, Rotherham). 'For this is He who was spoken of through Isaiah
the prophet, saying a voice of one crying aloud! In the wilderness prepare ye the way of the Lord, straight by
making his paths" (Mt. 3:3, Rotherham). For Whom was John preparing the way? Isaiah calls Him Jehovah.
Note also Jeremiah's words: "Lo! days are coming declareth Jehovah, when I will raise up to David a
righteous BUD and he shall reign as KING and prosper, and shall execute justice and righteousness in the
land. In his days shall Judah be saved, and Israel abide securely - and this is his name where by he shall be
called -Jehovah our Righteousness" (Jer. 23:5,6, Rotherham). Now who is it who shall reign as King on the
throne of David? Is it not the Lord Jesus Himself? Who is it that is the Lord our Righteousness? Is it not
Christ the Lamb of God Who died for our sins that He might be "made unto us ... righteousness" (1 Cor.
1:30)?
Jehovah never changes. What the Lord's name, by its meaning, reveals Him to be, that He will always
continue to be. Every one of the seven compound names of Jehovah are given to reveal some aspect of the
Lord's eternal relationship to His people. Therefore, what He revealed Himself to be to Israel, by His name,

243
so He will be to His Church, through Jesus Christ.

TO ISRAEL
JEHOVAH-JIREH - "The Lord will provide" (Gn. 22:14)
JEHOVAH-NISSI "The Lord our Banner" (Ex. 17:15) "His banner over me was love" (Sg. 2:4).
JEHOVAH-SHALOM "The Lord our Peace" (Jgs. 6:24)
JEHOVAH-RAAH "The Lord our Shepherd" (Ps. 23:11)
JEHOVAH-TSIDKENU "The Lord our Righteousness" (Jer. 23:6)
JEHOVAH-SHAMMAH "The Lord is Present" (Ez. 48:35 )(Ez. 48:35)
JEHOVAH-RAPHA "The Lord thy Physician" (Ex. 15:26)

TO THE CHURCH
"My God shall supply all your need according to his riches in glory by Christ Jesus" (Phil. 4:19).
"Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down his life for his friends" (Jn. 15:13).
"For he is our peace" (Eph. 2:14).
"I am the good shepherd" (Jn. 10:11).
"Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us ... righteousness" (1 Cor. 1:30).
"I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee" (Heb. 13:5).
"The prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up" (Jas. 5:15).

It is therefore beyond dispute that if Jehovah has remained constant in all the relationships revealed by
His names, through the Old Testament centuries, and through the present Church age, He must have
continued constant in His relationship as HEALER of the body. If He is still our Provider, our Banner, our
Peace, our Shepherd, the Ever-present One, and our Righteousness, then He is still our Great PHYSICIAN
-"The same yesterday, and to day and for ever" (Heb. 13:8).

B. Healing in the Ministry of Jesus.


We are still dealing with the topic of the Will of God, relative to
healing those who come to Him. There can be no doubt that it was God's Will to heal His people in Old
Testament times. We now wish to find the revelation of His Will for those of us who live in the New
Testament era. First, we will learn from the ministry of Jesus.
There is certainly no better way to find God's Will regarding physical healing than by a close study of the
ministry and teachings of the Lord Jesus as recorded in the Gospels. Jesus was the expression of the Father's
Will. In His entire life and ministry He was "The Word," speaking out the Will of God. He said, "For I came
down from heaven, not to do mine own will, but the will of him that sent me" (Jn. 6:38). He literally acted
out the Will of God. Therefore, when we see Jesus healing the multitudes who came to Him, we see the
Father revealing His Will. ". . . The Father that dwelleth in me, he doeth the works" (Jn. 14:10). The healing
of the sick was done, then, as a revelation of God's Will for Man. Thomas Holdcroft concludes:
A total of twenty-seven individual miracles of healing credited to Jesus are to be found in the Scriptures,
as well as ten occasions recording the general healing of large numbers of people. His ministry dealt with a
wide variety of human ailments: demon possession, sickness, disease, accident, and even death ... In each
instance, Jesus freely and frankly presented Himself as an object of faith to be sincerely believed. In the face
of such an impressive ministry of healing, it is truly remarkable that He should promise His disciples,
"Greater works than these shall [ye I do" (John 14:12). In ministering to physical needs, our Lord healed by a
word, by a touch, and by physical anointing; He healed those near at hand and at a distance, He healed on the
Sabbath, He healed both individuals and groups at large. Among the twenty-seven instances of healing, there
are seven cases in which a demon was cast out; on eleven occasions friends brought the sufferer; on six
occasions the patient himself made an appeal; on three occasions our Lord per-formed the healing while at a
distance. He healed eight persons by a touch; He healed seven by speaking a word; three were healed in a
ceremony in which He spat and touched the patient; and in one instance He healed by effecting a gradual cure
(John 4:52 - "He began to amend")

244
The following is a list of the individual hearings performed by Jesus during His ministry here on earth, as
recorded in the four Gospels:
Two blind men Mt 9:27-31
Dumb demoniac Mt 9:32-33
Deaf and dumb man Mrk 7:31-37
Blind man healed Mrk 8:22-26
Widow's son raised from dead Lk 7:11-16
Woman bowed over Lk 13:11-17
Man with dropsy Lk14:1-6
Ten lepers Lk 17:11-19
Ear of the High Priest's servant Lk 22:50-51
Nobleman's son Jn 4:46-54
Impotent man at Bethesda Jn 5:1-15
Man born blind Jn 9:1-38
Lazarus raised from the dead Jn 11:1-45
Demoniac in synagogue at Capernaum Mk 1:23-27; Lk 4:33-36
Centurion's servant Mt 8:51-13: Lk 11:14
Blind and dumb demoniac Mt 12:22-23; Lk 11:14
Syrophoenicians woman's daughter Mt 15:21-28; Mk 7:24-30
Mary Magdalene Mk 16:9; Lk 8:2
The leper Mt 8:2-4; Mk 1:40-45; Lk 5:12-15
Peter's mother in law Mt 8:14-15; Mk 1:29-31; Lk 4:38-39
Man with legion of demons Mt 8:28-34; Mk 5:1-20; Lk 8:26-39
Palsied man Mt 9:2-8; Mk 2:1-12; Lk 5:17-26
Woman with issue of blood Mt 9:20-22; Mt 5:25-34; Lk 8:43-48
Jarious' daughter raised from the dead Mt 9:23-26; Mk 5:35-43; Lk 8:49-56
Man with withered hand in synagogue Mt 12:9-13; Mk 3:1-5; Lk 6: 6-11
Demoniac child Mt 17:14-21; Mk 9:14-29; Lk 9:37-43
Blind Bartimaeus (2 blind men - Mt) Mt 20:29-34; mk 10:46-52; Lk 18:35-43

In addition to these, there are the following occasions when Jesus healed many at one time: Mt. 4:23-25;
8:16; 12:15; 14:14; 14:34-36; 15:30; 19:2; 21:14; Lk. 6:17-19. These are inspiring occasions, for we read that
there were, at times, "multitudes" who came or were brought for healing, and in these accounts we read such
expressions as: "He healed all that were sick," "and He healed them all," "and He healed their sick," "and as
many as touched Him were made perfectly whole."
As impressive as this list of marvelous miracles is, John tells us: "And many other signs truly did Jesus in
the presence of his disciples, which are not written in this book" (Jn. 20:30); also, "And there are also many
other things which Jesus did, the which, if they should be written every one, I suppose that even the world
itself could not contain the books that should be written" (Jn. 21:25).
It is a remarkable thing, and one worthy of a great deal of consideration, that Jesus healed every one who
came to Him, or who was brought to Him, for healing. In addition to the great variety of individual needs that
were presented to Him, there were those times, as we have noted above, when there must have been huge
multitudes of sick folk brought to Him. Yet, He never turned one of them aside. He never refused to heal any
one. You would expect that there might have been a few, or even one, to whom He would say, "I am sorry, it
is not my will, or my Father's will, to heal you." Never once do you read of the least suggestion of this
sentiment. One

would have expected that, if it is not God's Will to heal all who come to Him for healing in the Church
age, there would have been some suggestion of this in the ministry of Jesus. Yet, how fortunate that such was
not the case; for if Jesus had for some reason or other refused even one, millions of those who seek healing,
and do not immediately receive it, would claim exemption on the basis of that one.

245
C. Healing in the Ministry of the Disciples.
So much was it God's Will to heal the sick in the days when Jesus ministered on earth, that He extended this
ministry to His disciples, giving them power to heal the sick, raise the dead and cast out demons. The
ministry of Jesus, while He was here in the flesh, was almost entirely limited to the sphere of His physical
presence. Thus, the blessed influence of His Compassion and Power was greatly enlarged by enduing others
with the same Divine ability. "And when he had called unto him his twelve disciples, he gave them power
against unclean spirits, to cast them out, and to heal all manner of sickness and all manner of disease" (Mt.
10:1).

1. The Twelve given power and sent forth.


And he called unto him the twelve, and began to send them forth two by two; and gave them power over
unclean spirits. . . . And they went out and preached that men should repent. And they cast out many devils,
and anointed with oil many that were sick and healed them (Mk. 6:7-13).
And when he had called unto him his twelve disciples, he gave them power against unclean spirits, to cast
them out, and to heal all manner of sickness and all manner of disease ... These twelve Jesus sent forth, and
commanded them, saying ... as ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is at hand. Heal the sick,
cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast out devils: freely ye have received, freely give (Mt. 10:1-8).

2. The seventy given power and sent out.


"And after these things the Lord appointed other seventy also, and sent them two and two before his
face.... And into whatsoever city ye enter ... heal the sick that are therein . . ." (Lk. 10:1-9). The results of this
commission were quite evident: "And the seventy returned again with joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are
subject unto us through thy name" (Lk. 10:17). Jesus seemed not at all surprised at this report, and that the
demons were subject unto His name. He said, I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven. Behold, I give
you power to tread on serpents, and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and nothing shall by any
means hurt you. Notwithstanding in this rejoice not, that the spirits are subject unto you; but rather rejoice,
because your names are written in heaven" (Lk. 10:18-20).
Matthew 10:8 is very significant in revealing God's Will to heal, not a few, but many. The disciples were
not to be sparing in their use of the healing power given to them. Jesus said, "Freely ye have received, freely
give." Undoubtedly the power given to the Twelve, and to the seventy, is the same power Jesus promised as a
permanent possession and was received by the Church on the Day of Pentecost. (Jn. 14:16,17; Lk. 24:49; Acts
1:8)

D. Healing in the Early Church.


The book of Acts opens with the writer, Luke, calling attention to his "former treatise," the Gospel of
Luke, in which he gave an account "of all that Jesus began both to do and teach." Christ's ministry on earth is
described as what He taught and did. The latter word must certainly refer to His miracles of healing. We are
told, here, that during those years of ministry before His death, burial, resurrection, and ascension. Jesus
began to do and teach. The strong inference is that He continued to do the same after His return to the Father.
This He accomplished through His disciples - all believers who are members of His Body. Christ, the living
Head, still ministers through the Church, His Body. The book of Luke is one man's inspired record of what
Jesus "began both to do and teach in His, earthly ministry; while the book of Acts is his inspired account of
that which Jesus continued to do and teach after His ascension on high. We then recognize the book of Acts
as a further revelation of God's Will relative to healing the sick.
If Christian believers are members of the Body of Christ, of which Christ is the motivating, guiding Head,
then what Christ did while He was bodily present on the earth He should be continuing to do through the
members of His spiritual Body. When Peter said to the lame man at the Beautiful gate of the temple, "In the
name of Jesus Christ of Nazareth rise up and walk" (Acts 3:6), and then reached out "and took him by the
right hand, and lifted him up" it was as though Jesus Christ reached out and touched him, through a member
of His own Body, Peter. If Christ had been physically present and able to touch the lame man he certainly

246
would have been made whole and able to walk. Why not the same when one of His Body, Peter, touched the
afflicted in the name of Jesus? The multitude rushed to Solomon's porch "greatly wondering" at the miracle.
Peter said, "Ye men of Israel, why marvel ye at this? ... The God of Abraham, and of Isaac, and of Jacob, the
God of our fathers, hath glorified his Son Jesus ... God hath raised [him] from the dead" (vv.12-15). In other
words, Peter was saying, "Jesus is alive. He is not dead. Why then should He not be still manifesting the
same power and miracles He performed before His crucifixion?" This, the Living Christ working through His
Body, the Church, is the true picture of Christian ministry today. This is demonstrated in the following
examples from the book of Acts:

Healing Performed Through the Apostles


The lame man (Peter) Acts 3:1-10
Many healed (Peter) Acts 5:12-16
Wonders and miracles (Stephen) Acts 6:8
Revival in Samaria (Philip) Acts 8:5-8
Aeneas (Peter) Acts 9:32-35
Tabitha (Dorcas) raised from the dead (Peter) Acts 9:36-42
Crippled man at Lystra (Paul) Acts 14:8-10
Paul raised up at Lystra Acts 14:19,20
Demon cast out (Paul) Acts 16:16-18
Special miracles (Paul) Acts 19:11,12
Eutychus (Paul) Acts 20:7-12
On the isle of Melita (Paul) Acts 28:8,9

Nothing has been changed, as far as God's provisions for the needs of Mankind are concerned, since those
apostolic days. Christ has died and risen again, the Holy Spirit has been poured out, and The Great
Commission is still in force. The ravages of sin and its dire results are still manifest in our world today.
Physicians, with all their knowledge and dedication, are still baffled by afflictions and diseases. No one can
prove that the God, Who never changes, has ever altered His Will concerning the healing of disease. Jehovah
Rapha - I am the Lord that healeth thee" (Ex. 15:26).

VI. HEALING THROUGH THE CHURCH AGE


Dr. A.J. Gordon quotes Dr. Gerhard Uhlhorn as saying: "Witnesses who are above suspicion leave no
room for doubt that the miraculous powers of the apostolic age continued to operate at least into the third
century. 116 Dr. Gordon then makes the important comment:
Prove that Miracles were wrought, for example, in the second century after Christ, and no reason can be
thereafter urged why they might not be wrought in the nineteenth [and we add "the twentieth"] century. The
apostolic age, it must be admitted, was a peculiarly favored one. So long as the men were still living who had
seen the Lord, and had companied with Him during His earthly ministry, there were possible secrets of power
in their possession that a later generation might not have. It is easy to see, therefore, that this period might be
especially distinguished by the gifts of the Spirit. And yet the Savior seems to be careful to teach that there
would be an augmenting rather than a diminishing of supernatural energy after His departure. "But ye shall
receive power after that the Holy Ghost is come upon you." "Verily, verily I say unto you, he that believeth on
me the works that I do shall he do also, and greater works than these shall he do; because I go unto my
Father." But, conceding certain marked advantages possessed by the immediate followers of Christ, if we find
in history that there is no abrupt termination of miracles with expiration of the apostolic age, then we must
begin to raise the question why there should be any termination at all, so long as the Church remains, and the
ministry of the Spirit is perpetuated .
Indeed, history shows that healing by the direct power of God continued through the entire Church age to
the present time.
Note the testimonies of some of the Church Fathers:

247
Writing in 165 A.D., more than sixty-five years after the death of John, the last of the Apostles, Justin
Martyr says: "For numberless demoniacs throughout the whole world and in your city, many of our Christian
men, exorcising them [casting out] in the name of Jesus Christ, who was crucified under Pontius Pilate, have
healed, and do heal, rendering helpless and driving the possessing devils out of men, though they could not be
cured by all the other exorcists, and those who used incantations and drugs."
Writing in 192 A.D., Irenaeus declares: Those who are in truth the disciples receiving grace from Him do
in His name perform miracles so as to promote the welfare of others, according to the gift which each has
received from him. . . . Others still heal the sick by laying their hands upon them, and they are made whole.
Yea moreover, as I have said, the dead even have been raised up, and remained among us for years."
Writing in 216 A.D., Tertullian says: "For the clerk of one of them who was liable to be thrown upon the
ground by an evil spirit was set free from his affliction, as was also the relative of another, and the little boy
of a third. And how many men of rank, to say nothing of the common people have been delivered from devils
and healed of diseases."
Writing in 250 A.D., Origen testifies: "And some give evidence of their having received through their
faith a marvelous power by the cures which they perform, invoking no other name over those who need their
help than that of the God of all things, and of Jesus ... For by these means we too have seen many persons
freed from grievous calamities, and from distractions of mind, madness, and countless other ills which could
be cured neither by men or devils.""
Writing in 275 A.D., Clement of Alexandria says: "Let them [young ministers], therefore, with fasting
and prayer, make their intercessions, and not with well arranged, and fitly ordered words of learning, but as
men who have received the gift of healing confidently, to the glory of God."
Writing in 429 A.D., Theodore of Mopsueste declares: "Many heathen amongst us are being healed by
Christians from whatever sickness they have, so abundant are miracles in our midst."
In 500 A.D., Gregory the Great (believed to be the first Pope) gave away his inherited fortune, and
became a missionary to Briton, praying for the people and anointing them with oil in the name of the Lord,
quoting James 5:14,15.
John Wesley, speaking of the period after Constantine, says: "The grand reason why the miraculous gifts
were so soon withdrawn was not only that Faith and Holiness were well nigh lost, but that dry formal
orchodox men began to ridicule whatever gifts they had not in them-selves, and to decry them all as either
madness or impostures."
From Gregory's day until the Reformation, the world went through a dark age, both in respect to the
progress of spiritual things and the advancement of learning. But with the dawn of the Reformation returned
the evidence of God's supernatural works.
The following is an excerpt from The Confessions of Faith of the Waldenses, a deeply spiritual sect of
Christians in the twelfth century, the followers of Peter Waldo: "Concerning this anointing of the sick, we
hold it as an article of faith and profess sincerely from the heart that sick persons, when they ask it, may
lawfully be anointed with the anointing oil by one who joins with them in praying that it may be efficacious to
the healing of the body, according to the design and end and effect mentioned by the apostles; and we profess
that such an anointing performed according to the apostolic design and practice, will be healing and profitable
."115 Count Zinzendorf, a Bishop of the Moravian movement [United Brethren], a close friend of John
Wesley, a deeply sincere man with a burden for World Evangelization, says of his Church: 'To believe against
hope is the root of the gift of Miracles, and I owe this testimony to our Beloved Church, that Apostolic
powers are there manifested. We have undeniable proofs thereof. In the healing of maladies in themselves
incurable, such as Cancer, Consumption, and when the patient was in the agonies of death, all by means of a
prayer or word."
The following excerpts are from John Wesley's Diary:
· March 19,1741 - "Judith Williams, who was in grievous pain of both body and mind. After a short time
of prayer, we left her. But her pain was gone ... her body so strengthened that she immediately rose, and the
next day went abroad." II, 437).
· Oct. 3,1756 - "My disorder returned as violent as ever; but I regarded it not while I was performing the
service at Snowfields in the morning, nor afterwards at Spitalfields; till I went to the Lord's Table to

248
administer. A thought came into my mind,'Why do I not apply to God in the beginning rather than the end of
an illness?" I did so, and found immediate relief..." (IV, 188).
· Sept. 2, 1781 - "I believe it my duty to relate here what some will esteem a most notable instance of
enthusiasm. Be it so or not, I aver the plain fact. In an hour after we left Taunton, one of the chaise-horses
was on a sudden so lame that he could hardly set his foot to the ground. It being impossible to procure any
human help, I knew no remedy but prayer. Immediately the lameness was gone, and he went just as he did
before." N1,334 ).

John Wesley was certainly not an ignorant fanatic, but a learned man, a graduate of Oxford University.
The great revival which God entrusted to him actually saved England from moral and civil ruin. He was one
of the outstanding characters of history, either religious or secular. If his testimony be disregarded, then no
human testimony can be regarded as of value. He has given undeniable witness of God's mighty power in
bodily healing, and of the truth that the day of miracles is definitely not passed.
In this brief review of history, an array of witnesses has been presented whose unquestionable testimonies
should remove any doubt that Divine Healing has continued from the Old Testament days, during Christ's
lifetime, the days of His disciples and apostles, after the Apostles' death, the early Church Fathers, and down
through the ages to our own generation. Jehovah Rapha - "the Lord thy Physician" - is "the same yesterday,
to day and for ever' (Heb. 13:8). Thus God has shown His willingness to heal in every age of the world's
history. Innumerable miracles of healing in the present day bear witness that His Will has not changed to this
present hour. The Bible and history are in perfect agreement on this point.

VII. HEALING AND THE ATONEMENT


We learned, in our study of Soteriology, that the word "atonement" literally means "covering." It is an Old
Testament word which signifies what an Israelite received as he brought his prescribed offering to the priest
for his sin. His sins were covered until the blood of Jesus Christ would be shed for the remission, not merely
the covering, of his sin. (Heb. 10:1-18). However, it has become quite common, in theological circles, to use
this word "atonement" in a broad manner as referring to the fullness of the Sacrifice which Jesus made on
Calvary, and all that was accomplished for believers there. It is in this larger sense that the word is here used
as we discuss Divine Healing and the Atonement.
The most positive answer to the question concerning God's Will with regard to healing today, is found in
the relationship between Divine Healing and the Atonement. No doubt is entertained regarding Christ's
ability to heal, but the heart of the matter centers around the question: Did Christ make special provision for
the healing of the body.? Is this blessing included in the Atoning Sacrifice which He made on Calvary's
Cross? We believe the Bible teaches that this is so, and Thomas Holdcroft agrees: "Healing is not so much an
end in itself-, it may rather be seen as the appropriation of one more vital aspect of the total victory of Jesus
Christ.""'

A. Atonement Was Made for Healing in the Old Testament.


Leviticus 14:1-32 describes the method by which an Israelite, who was afflicted with leprosy, could be
healed. Six different times the expression is used, in this passage, "The priest shall make an atonement for
him" (vv.18-21,29,31). The ceremonial instructions given to the priests and people in Old Testament times are
recognized to be types of the Sacrifice and provisions made by Jesus Christ on the Cross. The antitype must
be true to the type, so it is suggestive of the fact that Jesus also made atonement for sicknesses when He was
offered.
Numbers 16:46-50 describes a great plague that was running rampant through the camp of Israel because
of their sin. The plague was stayed, and the people healed, when an "atonement" (vv.46,47) was made for
them.
Numbers 21:5-9 recounts the occasion when, because of the sins of the people of Israel, "fiery serpents"
were causing affliction and death among the people. Healing was wrought when Moses erected a serpent of
brass upon a pole, and those who had been bitten looked upon it. According to John 3:14,15 we read: "And as
Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up: that whosoever

249
believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal life." The serpent of brass upon the pole was clearly a
type of Christ's Sacrifice upon the Cross, and we may expect physical healing as we look in faith to Him, even
as the Israelites of old found deliverance looking at the brazen serpent.
Job 33:24,25 reads: "Then he is gracious unto him, and saith, Deliver him from going down to the pit: I
have found a ransom. His flesh shall be fresher than a child's: he shall return to the days of his youth. . . ."
The word "ransom" is literally, as the margin gives it, "atonement." It is significant that this promise deals
plainly with a physical blessing of healing and strength and that the word "atonement" is used here.

B. Forgiveness of Sins and Healing of Diseases Go Hand in Hand in the Bible.


In the Healing Covenant of the Old Testament, Exodus 15:26, it is definitely stated that if the children of
Israel would "diligently hearken unto the voice of the Lord... and do that which is right in his sight... and give
ear to his commandments, and keep all his statutes" the Lord would put none of the diseases of Egypt upon
them and would be their Healer. Thus, healing and health were based on obedience to the Lord. But this was
exactly the basis for the forgiveness of sin, under the Mosaic economy. So healing and the forgiveness of sins
were on the same basis in the Old Testament. In the New Testament, forgiveness of sins and healing are also
on the same basis - faith in the Sacrifice of Christ on Calvary.
Note also two other passages, one each from the Old and New Testaments, where this close relationship is
seen: "Bless the Lord, 0 my soul, and forget not all his benefits: who forgiveth all thine iniquities; who
healeth all thy diseases" (Ps. 103:2,3); "And the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord will raise him
up; and if he have committed sins, they shall be forgiven him" (Jas. 5:15).
Mark 16:16-18 reads in part: "He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved ... And these signs shall
follow them that believe; in my name ... they shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover." Notice that
the same believing to which is attached the promise of salvation, has joined to it also the promise of healing
for the sick. No Christian would doubt that 'He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved" applies to
anyone in every age of the Christian dispensation. Why should not "these signs shall follow them that
believe" likewise apply to anyone in every age of the Christian era?

C. Redemption from the Curse of the Law.


The key verse in this consideration is Galatians 3:13: "Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law,
being made a curse for us: for it is written, Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree. . . ." What is "the curse
of the law"? The answer is found in Deuteronomy 28:15-68. In the first fourteen verses of this chapter,
Moses enumerates the blessings of obedience of the Law. Then he lists the curses that would come because
of disobedience. It is significant that, among other things, the following physical diseases and afflictions are
mentioned: consumption (tuberculosis), fever, inflammation, extreme burning, emerods, scab, itch, mad-ness,
blindness, ailments of the knees and legs, great plagues of long continuance, sore sicknesses of long
continuance, all the diseases of Egypt, also every sickness, and every plague which is not written in the book
of the Law. These were the curses of the Law. But, "Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law."
Therefore, Christ has redeemed us from sickness. How did He do this? Upon the Cross of Calvary, for we
read: "Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree." Thus, in a way which we do not fully understand, the Lord
substitutionally bore our sicknesses on the Cross.

D. Isaiah Chapter Fifty-Three.


The great Redemption chapter of the Old Testament, Isaiah chapter fifty-three, teaches that Christ bore
our sicknesses, as well as our sins, on Calvary.
This is the great Atonement chapter of the Old Testament. Through the eye of prophecy, Isaiah is
describing the events which were to take place on Calvary hundreds of years after he wrote. Verse four reads:
"Surely he hath borne our griefs, and carried our sorrows. . . ." The word translated "griefs" is the Hebrew
kholee, which means "sicknesses." In Deuteronomy 7:15 we read: "The Lord shall take away from thee all
sicknesses [kholee]. . . ." This same word is translated "sicknesses" in: Dt. 28:61; 1 Kgs. 17:17; 2 Kgs. 1:2; 2
Kgs. 8:8; 2 Chr. 16:12, 21:15.
The word rendered "sorrows" in Isaiah 53:4 is the word makob. This word is translated "pain" in Job

250
14:22; 33:19 and Jeremiah 51:8.
Thus the literal translation of Isaiah 53:4 is: "Surely he hath borne our sicknesses, and carried our pain."
Rotherham's translation reads: "Yet surely our sicknesses he carried, and as for our pains he bore the burden
of them." Young's Literal Translation reads: "Surely our sicknesses he hath borne, and our pains he hath
carried them." The margin of the RSV gives the words "sicknesses" and "pains," as does the NASB.
Notice also the verbs in this fourth verse of chapter fifty-three. The word "borne" is the Hebrew verb
nasa, and the word "carried" is the Hebrew sabal. The Hebrew verb nasa means to bear in the sense of
suffering punishment for something. "And if a soul sin ... then he shall bear [nasa ] his iniquity." "And he
[Christ] was numbered with the transgressors, and he bare [nasal the sin of many..... (v.12) How did Christ
bear our sins?; vicariously, as our Substitute. If He bare our sins (v.12) vicariously, He must also have borne
our sicknesses NA) in the same way. The same verb [nasal is used for both.
The verb "carried" (sabal) also means to bear something as a penalty or chastisement. "Our fathers have
sinned ... and we have borne [sabal ] their iniquities" (Lm. 5:7). "He [Christ] shall see the travail of his soul,
and shall be satisfied ... for he shall bear [sabal] their iniquities" (Is. 53:11). How did Christ bear our
iniquities?; vicariously, as our Substitute. In the very same way, then, He also bore our pains (Is. 53:4).
If there could be any doubt with regard to this translation and interpretation, it must be forever removed
as we turn to Matthew 8:16,17, for here we have the Holy Spirit's own interpretation of Isaiah 53:4: "When
the even was come, they brought unto him many that were possessed with devils: and he cast out the spirits
with his word, and healed all that were sick: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet,
saying, Himself took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses."
Isaiah continues to describe the scene about Calvary in verse five: 'But he was wounded for our
transgressions, he was bruised for our iniquities: the chastisement of our peace was upon him, and with his
stripes we are healed." The word "stripes" is literally "bruise." It signifies the entire wounding, or bruising of
Christ, including the stripes that were laid on His back, the buffeting, the plucking out of His beard, the nails
driven into His hands and feet, the crown of thorns on His brow and the spear thrust into His side. All of His
bodily sufferings were in order that we might be healed. Peter bears this out when he quotes Isaiah 53:5:
'Who his own self bare our sins in his own body on the tree, that we, being dead to sins, should live unto
righteousness: by whose stripes ye were healed" (1 Pt. 2:24). Lest it might be thought that Peter was referring
to spiritual healing, it is noted that the word "healed" is the Greek iaomai, a verb that always speaks of
physical healing in the New Testament, and always in connection with healing of physical ailments.

E. The Passover and The Lord's Supper.


The Passover and The Lord's Supper both clearly teach that provision was made, not only for spiritual
deliverance, but for bodily health and strength as well. The blood of the lamb, which was slain on the night of
the first Passover in Egypt, was sprinkled on the lintel and the door posts of every Hebrew house to insure the
sparing of the life of the firstborn, who represented the entire family. The body of the lamb was eaten that the
people might receive physical strength for the journey which lay before them (Ex. 12:7,8).
Paul says, "For even Christ our Passover is sacrificed for us . . ." (1 Cor. 5:7). Here again, the type is
fulfilled in the antitype, Christ. The significance of the Passover in the Old Testament is carried on for us in
the observance of The Lord's Supper, or the communion service. Why did Jesus make a distinction between
the bread and the cup? Why did He differentiate between His body and His blood? It would seem that He
wanted His followers to realize that there was a difference in the provisions made by each. As in the Passover
observance, the blood is for the forgiveness of sin and the sparing of life, while the body is for the health and
strength of the physical man.
Paul has this great truth in mind in writing to the church at Corinth (1 Cor. 11:23-30). The Corinthian
church was making a feast out of The Lord's Supper and Paul rebuked them for the manner in which they
were desecrating this ordinance. He said: 'For he that eateth and drinketh unworthily [in an unworthy
manner], eateth and drinketh damnation [condemnation] to himself, not discerning the Lord's body. For this
cause many are weak and sickly among you, and many sleep" (1 Cor. 11:29,30). This condition of sickliness
and premature death among the Corinthians was due to the fact that they had not discerned the Lord's body.
There are many Christians today who have not realized the efficacy of the Lord's body for their physical

251
strength and healing. Some may have already died for this same reason. Not realizing the provision made for
their body -"With his stripes ye are healed" - they have not appropriated by faith what He made available.
Thomas Holdcroft declares:
The conclusion to be drawn from the foregoing facts is that healing was provided by Christ's atoning
death on Calvary, and it is appropriated by the exercise of faith. It is not something to be earned, nor
something to be coaxed from an unwilling God. Healing is an accomplished fact for every afflicted child of
God, and the only requirement or condition imposed by God is that believing faith must be exercised.
Healing is not a special favor, an award, or a providential gift dependent upon the benevolence; it is a special
provision of Christ's atonement available to all who meet the sole condition of appropriation. In being an
integral part of the finished work, healing is delivered from all capriciousness or uncertainty. 19

VIII. WHY JESUS HEALED THE SICK


Many false notions are being spread abroad concerning the healing ministry of Jesus while He was here
on earth. Some of these are merely the reasonings of men - often those who do not believe that Christ can be
expected to heal today. Some of these unscriptural ideas have to do with the reasons why Jesus healed the
sick during His earthly ministry. The following three reasons are most popularly advanced: (1) to
demonstrate His Power, (2) to vindicate His claim to Deity, and (3) to initiate the preaching of the Gospel.
With regard to the first of these - to demonstrate His Power - let it be observed that there is no
scriptural evidence of this. Jesus most certainly did not go about performing miracles just to show that He
could. If He merely wished to manifest His Power He would not have needed to heal everyone who came to
Him for healing. A few outstanding demonstrations would have been all that would have been necessary. He
had all power in heaven and in earth, but He did not use it to show that it was His. In fact, this was one area
of His life in which He was the most completely in full yieldedness to the Will of His Father. To have All -
power, yet to use it only for the glory of God, showed how completely He was dedicated to the Father's Will.
Certainly there was a purpose behind each miracle far more important than the mere show of power!
Regarding the second claim - to vindicate His claim to Deity - there is some scriptural basis. When the
scribes questioned Jesus' ability to forgive sins, He said to them, "For whether is easier, to say, Thy sins be
forgiven thee; or to say, Arise, and walk? But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power on earth to
forgive sins [a prerogative of Deity alone], (then he saith to the sick of the palsy,) Arise, take up thy bed, and
go unto thine house" (Mt. 9:5,6). One other incident suggests this same basic thought.
Now when John had heard in prison the works of Christ, he sent two of his disciples, and they said unto
him, Art thou he that should come, or do we look for another? Jesus answered and said unto them, Go shew
John again those things which ye do hear and see: the blind receive their sight, and the lame walk, the lepers
are cleansed, and the deaf hear, the dead are raised up, and the poor have the gospel preached to them (Mt.
11:2-5).
However, it seems that this is not the only, or even the most important, reason why Jesus healed the sick.
The fact is that all the miracles Jesus performed convinced only a few that He was their Messiah, the Son of
God. Multitudes cried out while He was hanging on the cross, "If he be the King of Israel, let him now come
down from the cross, and we will believe him ... for he said, I am the Son of God" (Mt. 27:42,43).
There is very sincere doubt regarding the third reason - to initiate the preaching of the Gospel. Some have
added the thought that the miracles were used for this purpose until the New Testament was written, and now
these are no longer necessary. This latter idea is without scriptural foundation, a purely gratuitous thought. It
is true that the performance of great miracles did draw multitudes to Jesus, but it is questionable that He did
these mighty works principally to draw crowds. In fact, on more than one occasion, He commanded the
healed person to tell no one about it (Mt. 8:4; 12:15,16; Mk. 7:36,8:26; Lk. 8:56). On some occasions He led
the needy out of the town, where the populace would have been, before He healed him (Mk. 7:33, 8:23).
A close study of Christ's miracles of healing shows that in the majority of these, a reason is given why
they were performed. These may be grouped in five or six classifications. We shall not presume to declare
all that was in the Lord's mind, but will confine ourselves to what is plainly stated in the record.

A. Because of the Promises of His Word.

252
"And he healed all that were sick: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet,
saying, Himself took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses" (Mt. 8:16,17).
B. In Order to Reveal His Will.
"And he entered again into the synagogue; and there was a man there which had a withered hand. And
they watched him, whether he would heal him on the Sabbath day; that they might accuse him. And he saith
unto the man which had the withered hand, Stand forth ... And when he had looked round about on them with
anger, being grieved for the hard-ness of their hearts, he saith unto the man, Stretch forth thine hand. And he
stretched it out: and his hand was restored whole as the other" (Mk. 3:1-5). (See also Luke 14:1-6.)

C. To Manifest the Works of God.


"Jesus answered, Neither hath this man sinned, nor his parents: but that the works of God should be
manifest in him" (Jn. 9:3). "Now a certain man was sick, named Lazarus, of Bethany ... When Jesus heard
that, he said, This sickness is not unto death, but for the glory of God, that the Son of God might be glorified
thereby" (Jn. 11:1-4).

D. Because of His Compassion.


On at least six occasions we are told that Jesus healed because He had compassion on those who were
afflicted. This was true of vast multitudes, (Mt. 9:35,36; 14:14); of two blind men (Mt. 20:34); a leper (Mk.
1:41); the maniac of Gadara (Mk. 5:19); the widow of Nain whose son Jesus raised from the dead (Lk. 7:13).
F. F. Bosworth has pointed out:
Modem theology magnifies the power of God more than it magnifies His compassion ... But the Bible
reverses this, and magnifies His willingness to use His power more than it does the power itself. In no place
does the Bible say that "God is power," but it does say, that "God is love." It is not faith in God's power that
secures His blessings, but faith in His love and in His Will.
It is not what God can do, but what we know He yearns to do, that inspires faith .
Hundreds needing healing have come or written to us, saying, concerning their need of deliverance, "the
Lord is able;" but their teaching, as well as their lack of teaching, have kept them from knowing that the Lord
is willing. How much faith does it take to say "the Lord is able?" The devil knows God is able, and he knows
He is willing; but he has kept the people from knowing this latter fact.

E. Because of Faith - Not Only in His Ability, but Also His Willingness.
1. Sometimes the faith of others rather than the sick person.
a) The centurion's servant - Mt. 8:5-13.
b) The nobleman's son - Jn. 4:46-53.
c) The four who brought the palsied man - Mk. 2:1-12.
d) The Syrophoenician woman's daughter - Mt. 15:21-28.
Many other cases could be cited: Mt. 9:32,33; 12:22,23; Mk. 5:35-43; 7:32; 8:22-26; Jn. 5:1-15.

2. Sometimes the faith of those who needed the healing.


a) The woman with the issue of blood - Mk.5:25-34. "For she said, if I may touch but his clothes, I shall
be whole." She had no Scripture to guide her in this. The idea started within her own heart. The healing came
entirely in response to her own faith. Jesus said, thy faith hath made thee whole ...
b) Two blind men - Mt. 9:27-31. "Jesus saith unto them, Believe ye that I am able to do this? They said
unto him, Yea, Lord. Then touched he their eyes, saying, According to your faith be it unto you."
c) A leper - Mt. 8:2-4.
d) Ten lepers - Lk. 17:11-19.
In the following two cases there was a combination of the faith of those who came and the compassion of
Jesus: a leper - Mark 1:40-45 and two blind men - Matthew 20:29-34.
In these cases, where the reason for the healing is plainly stated, the vast majority were healed either
because of definite, positive faith or because of the Compassion of the Lord. There is not a word in the Bible
to indicate that the Lord's Compassion has ever lessened, or that God has ever ceased to respond to the faith of

253
those who come.
In addition to the cases listed under the above six reasons for healing, the following five incidents are
recorded. In these no reason is stated. Perhaps we are to conclude that they were simply the result of the
Sovereign Will of Christ to overcome the work of the Devil: Mt. 8:14,15; 8:28-34; Mk. 1:23-27; Lk. 7:11-16;
13:10-13.

IX. WHY CHRISTIANS SHOULD SEEK DIVINE HEALING

A. Because It Is a Solemn Command.


When God has expressly declared that He is the Healer of His people, both in His Word and in living
example, are they at liberty to treat this ministry of His with complacent indifference? Fine Christian people
are often heard to say, "Yes, I think it is a beautiful truth. It must be delightful to live such a life of
momentary dependence upon God. But then, you know, few have such faith." It is no advantage to ourselves,
nor any glory to God, to say that others can have what we do not venture to possess. This is dishonoring to
God. He is no respecter of persons. This is sin (Jas. 2:9) and God does not sin. We have a solemn
responsibility to God to receive all that He can and will do for us.
God has declared Himself as the Healer of His people (Ex. 15:26,23:25; Dt. 30:20; Ps. 103:3). Shall we
obey and trust Him or not? Others may use means and get healing, but is this God's plan for us? Some ask
God to bless the means. If we have faith for that, why not for a real healing? It is not being said that God
does not sometimes bless means. He is full of Love and Compassion. But such believers are not standing on
covenant ground. They are simply taking their place with the rest of the world.
The point that must be settled is, what does God want His children to do? Are they free to choose? Will
our Father be as pleased with us if we fall short of His command as if we fulfill it?23

B. Because of the Spiritual Blessing It Will Bring.


Let it not be forgotten that Satan is the source of disease, and that sickness is not simply a physical
condition, but the reflection of a spiritual condition. Sin caused sickness; Satan caused sin. Then we must
seek a means of deliverance that will not only deal with the physical manifestation but with the spiritual
condition, and with the Enemy who has caused it.
The fact that, whenever a Christian receives healing from the supernatural touch of God there is always a
glorious spiritual blessing which accompanies it, proves that there is a spiritual condition behind the disease.
James says: "And the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up; and if he have
committed sins they shall be forgiven him" (Jas. 5:15). Here is the spiritual result.
Of course, if merely getting well of our sickness is the thing for which we are striving, then any device is
legitimate. But those who seek to dwell deep in God see a deeper meaning to the afflictions of the flesh.
They seek to learn spiritual victory through their sufferings and the defeat of the Enemy.
Jesus learned obedience by the things which He suffered. "Though he were a Son, yet learned he
obedience by the things which he suffered" (Heb. 5:8). "For it became him.... to make the captain of their
salvation perfect through sufferings" (Heb. 2:10).
Realizing, then, the spiritual nature of disease, and that Satan is behind it, and that God wants to teach His
children something, and accomplish a spiritual result in them, believers must look to God for the victory.
They will learn nothing spiritual by the use of means - not even by asking God to bless the means.

C. Because It Is Glorifying to God.


Some have taught that there are sicknesses which are for the glory of God. There is no scripture which
states this concept. A very simple study will show that glory to God was brought, not while the persons were
sick, but when they were healed. See the following: the palsied man let down through the roof (Mt. 9:8), the
multitudes (Mt. 15:31), the raising of the widow's son at Nain (Lk. 7:16), the woman bowed over for eighteen
years (Lk. 13:13), and the grateful leper (Lk. 17:15). In regard to the sickness of Lazarus, where Jesus said,

254
"This sickness is not unto death, but for the glory of God" On. 11:4), it is quite plain that no one gave any
glory to God until after Lazarus was raised from the tomb. Prior to this, the disciples were confused, Mary
and Martha were full of sorrow, and the friends of the family were full of doubt. "And some of them said,
Could not this man, which opened the eyes of the blind, have caused that even this man should not have
died?" (Jn. 11:37). The glory came to God after Lazarus was raised from the dead. 'Then many of the Jews
which ... had seen the things which Jesus did, believed on him' (Jn. 11:45). God wants to be glorified in our
healing. Our service is richer, our testimony clearer, if we have experienced the touch of God upon our body.
Healing magnifies the name of Jesus.

X. METHODS OF ADMINISTERING DIVINE HEALING


It has been noticed, in relation to other spiritual experiences, that God is a God of variety. His methods
are not stereotyped by any means. This is true also in relation to the manner in which Divine Healing is
administered. The following are six different ways in which people receive healing from the Lord.

A. Pray for Yourself.


James 5:13 says: "Is any among you afflicted, let him pray." Apparently, it is scriptural to pray for
yourself when afflicted.

B. Ask Someone Else to Pray for You.


James 5:16 instructs: ". . . pray one for another that ye may be healed."
Any sincere Christian who believes can pray for another. No ministerial credentials nor special gifts of
the Spirit are necessary.

C. Call for the Elders of the Church.


James 5:14-16 has often been called the New Testament Healing Covenant.
Is any sick among you? let him call for the elders of the church; and let them pray over him, anointing
him with oil in the name of the Lord: and the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him
up; and if he have committed sins, they shall be forgiven him. Confess your faults one to another, and pray
one for another, that ye may be healed. The effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much.
This should be the regular procedure for those in fellowship with a local church. These verses clearly
teach that God is no respecter of persons, but that all may be healed. The promise stipulates "Is any sick
among you?" There is no discrimination whatever. It is God's Will to heal any and all who will call. "The
prayer of faith" would be that prayer offered by the elders. There is a responsibility resting upon them. The
sick exercises his faith when he calls for the elders. The elders pray the prayer of faith. Some have gone so
far as to say that the elders were supposed to @massage" the sick person with oil, and this was the cause of
his recovery. There certainly is no oil known to medical science which can guarantee healing, regardless of
what the affliction is.
The text does not say that the oil healed the sick; it was "the prayer of faith," "and the Lord will raise
him." We believe the oil is a symbol of the Holy Spirit, Who quickens our mortal body (Rom. 8:11). Some
associate the oil, as the means of healing, with Hezekiah's poultice of figs (2 Kgs. 20:7). It is amazing how
people can have more faith in a little oil, or in a bunch of figs, than they do in the Power of God!

D. By Laying On of Hands.
"These signs shall follow them that believe; In my name ... they shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall
recover" (Mk. 16:17,18). It should be carefully noted here, that no mention is made of anointing with oil, or
of praying for the sick. All that is said is that those who believe shall lay their hands on the sick in the name
of Jesus. This is the method which Jesus used on a number of occasions. In the following scriptures Jesus is
said to have touched the sick, or laid His hand or hands upon them: Mt. 8:15; Mk. 6:5; 8:23,25; Lk. 4:40;
5:13; 13:13. Today, when the believing one lays his hands on the sick in the name of Jesus, it is as though the
hands of Jesus were laid thereon.

255
E. Special Miracles Through Handkerchiefs and Aprons.
"And God wrought special miracles by the hands of Paul: so that from his body were brought unto the
sick handkerchiefs or aprons, and the diseases departed from them, and the evil spirits went out of them"
(Acts 19:11,12). These were "special miracles" in that there were no scriptural instructions concerning them.
Paul must have simply been guided by the Holy Spirit in this matter. Many churches have followed a similar
pattern and have given out small pieces of cloth, over which prayer has been made, and sometimes they have
been anointed with oil. Some most remarkable miracles have been reported from the use of this method. It is
understood that the "prayer cloth" has no virtue in itself, but provides an act of faith by which one's attention
is directed to the Lord Who is the Great Physician.

F. Spiritual Gifts of Healing.


'For to one is given by the Spirit ... to another the gifts of healing . . (1 Cor. 12:9). "God hath set some in
the church ... then gifts of healings. . ." (1 Cor. 12:28). Inasmuch as this subject is covered thoroughly under
the Gifts of the Spirit, it will not be elaborated on here. Two things are of special interest. First, this is the
only gift of the Spirit which is in the plural. Suggested reasons for this are given in the study of the gifts.
Second, in the list of hearings wrought through the Apostles as recorded in the book of Acts, previously listed
in this chapter, it is of interest that in no case did the apostles pray for the sick to be healed. In several cases,
there was prayer about the sick person; but, the healing seemed to be administered by the power which had
been given them for this ministry. They probably had the "gifts of healing."

XI. WHY ARE NOT ALL HEALED?


If the Lord is Jehovah our Physician and never changes; if healing is provided in the Atonement of Jesus
Christ; if sickness is the work of the Devil and Jesus was manifested to destroy the works of the Devil; if God
is All-powerful; and if the Lord is full of Compassion, why then are not all who are prayed for instantly
healed of their diseases? We must conclude that the fault does not lie with God. It must be with man; either
in the one prayed for or in those who pray. One should realize, however, that the healing of the body, as
marvelous as that is, is not the most important thing that can happen to a person. Salvation and spiritual
growth are greater than physical health, and there, no doubt, are times when the spiritual blessing must be
given precedence over the physical. We thoroughly believe that God wants His children to enjoy both
benefits to the full, but sometimes hindrances do come in the way. Why some are not immediately healed is
explained by the following suggested reasons.

A. Some Seek Healing Before Salvation.


Divine Healing is one of the covenant blessings from the Lord. It is for the children of the kingdom, the
members of the family of God. As our Heavenly Father, He has taken a solemn responsibility to provide for
His own. This is not true concerning those who, because of their unbelief, are outside the family fold. This is
not to say that God will not sometimes heal those who are unsaved. Experience has taught that this is so, but
there is no promise which the unsaved can claim. God is very merciful and he does cause 'his sun to rise on
the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust" (Mt. 5:45), but the seeker cannot
come with any degree of positive faith. Perhaps the Lord heals an unsaved person for He knows this will lead
to his salvation. However, the rule would seem to be that one should accept Jesus Christ as his Savior and
Lord, and commit his life to the Will of God, before seeking healing for his body.

B. Some Seek Healing for Wrong Purposes.


The Lord does not heal simply that people may be more comfortable, or that they may use their health in
selfish, worldly pursuits. James says: "Ye ask, and receive not, because ye ask amiss, that ye may consume it
upon your lusts" (Jas. 4:3). Healing should be for the glory of God, and for His service.

256
C. Some Look to the Minister Rather Than to Christ.
While it is true that God uses human channels to bring to pass His marvelous works, it is important that
the one seeking healing look beyond the channel to the Source, and realize that no minister can heal anyone.
Jesus alone is the Great Physician. While it is true that Peter said to the lame man at the temple gate, "Look
on us" (Acts 3:4), in order to get his attention, but he immediately directed the man's attention away from
himself with the words, "Silver and gold have I none; but such as I have give I thee; In the name of Jesus
Christ of Nazareth rise up and walk" (Acts 3:6).

D. Disobedience.
As we have noted, from Exodus 15:26, healing is conditioned on obedience to the Word and the Will of
God. If one has been disobedient regarding commitments made to the Lord, or is resisting God's Will in his
life, it is doubtful if he can expect to be healed.

E. Because of Some Unconfessed Sin in the Life.


Healing is not a reward for personal holiness. It comes by the Grace of God, as all other blessings
purchased at the Cross. But known sin in the believer's life will hinder faith and the reception of what the
Lord has provided. "If I regard iniquity in my heart, the Lord will not hear me" (Ps. 66:18). "Confess your
faults one to another, and pray one for another that ye may be healed" (Jas. 5:16).

F. Because of Unbelief.
1. In the one who prays. - "The prayer of faith shall save the sick" (Jas. 5:15). "These signs shall follow
them that believe" (Mk. 16:17).
2. In the one prayed for - "He that cometh to God must believe that he is, and that he is a rewarder of
them that diligently seek him" (Heb. 11:6).

G. Failure to Stand in Faith until the Answer Comes.


"For ye have need of patience, that, after ye have done the will of God, ye might receive the promise"
(Heb. 10:36). While those to whom Jesus, and the early disciples, ministered received healing virtually
im-mediately, there seem to be times when there is a delay in the manifestation of the victory. Daniel
experienced a dramatic delay when he sought the Lord for twenty-one days. After this time, the word of the
Lord came to him:
Fear not, Daniel: for from the first day that thou didst set thine heart to understand, and to chasten thyself
before thy God, thy words were heard, and I am come for thy words. But the prince of the kingdom of Persia
withstood me one and twenty days: but, lo, Michael one of the chief princes, came to help me; and I remained
there with the kings of Persia. Now I am come. . . . (Dn. 10:12-14).
Disease comes from Satan, and there will be times when he will seek to hinder the deliverance. We need
to believe God's Word and stand in faith until the answer is manifested.

XII. HOW TO RETAIN DIVINE HEALING


Millions of God's people around the world are bearing testimony to a personal experience of the healing
touch of the Lord Jesus upon their body in answer to believing prayer. The vast majority of these have found
that this has been a permanent deliverance. Experience shows, however, that in some cases the symptoms
have returned, and because these people did not know what to do, they lost the healing God had wrought.
This has caused considerable bewilderment and not a little unbelief.
Does the Bible give any example of this? No, it does not, and we are thankful for this. If it did, some
would say it is scriptural to lose your healing. If the Bible contained only one account of a person losing his
healing, many would forget about the innumerable multitudes who were healed by Jesus, and would hide
behind the one who lost his; just as multitudes of cases of awful diseases are justified because of Paul's "thorn
in the flesh." How readily the human heart grasps at an excuse for unbelief
If symptoms of a physical infirmity, from which a believer has been healed, return, this does not mean

257
that he was not healed in the first place. There is nothing wrong with what God does. But human beings are
responsible individuals and can either cooperate with God's Will or resist it. Retaining healing requires
yielding to the Will of God. It is all too easy to put the blame on God and say, "Maybe I was not , really
healed after all." If God is willing to heal, then it certainly is God's Will that healing he retained. The answer
to this problem lies not in God but in the individual soul.
There are two principal reasons why Christians lose their healing. The first, is because of willful sin.
Soon after healing the man at the Pool of Bethesda, Jesus found him and said to him, "Behold, thou are made
whole; sin no more lest a worse thing come upon thee" (Jn. 5:14). Apparently, some sin was responsible for
the man's affliction, and Jesus warned that continued sin would result in even greater suffering. Willful sin
could be depriving many, today, of gracious hearings God has imparted. This does not mean that perfection
of life is necessary for one to continue to enjoy the blessing of his healing, but it does mean that a Christian
cannot live in known sin and keep the victory which God has given. We are not healed to live for the Devil.
The second, and more prevalent, reason why some lose their healing is that faith wavers. Healing is
received by faith; and if faith wavers, healing will waver. We retain what we receive from God in the same
manner in which we receive it. Many times it is necessary to contend for our faith. There is an enemy who
would accuse us and rob us of what God does in our behalf. "Whom resist, steadfast in the faith. . . ." (1 Pt.
5:9). One of Satan's chief occupations is to rob people of their faith. "Then cometh the devil, and taketh
away the word out of their hearts, lest they should believe" (Lk. 8:12). Once lose your faith and your
experience will soon follow. The following seven practical suggestions are given as to how to retain healing:

A. Keep in an Atmosphere of Faith.


Associate with those who believe. Faith will respond to the atmosphere with which it is surrounded.
Listening to those who doubt and criticize will discourage faith. Every Christian needs the refreshment and
spiritual strength that comes from the worship and study services of a good spiritual church.

B. Keep Praising the Lord for What He Has Done.


One needs to realize that he has been the recipient of the Marvelous Grace of God. He did not deserve the
healing he received. Let the glory and gratitude of God's Goodness ever continue to thrill your heart. It is
dangerous to think you are in any wise worthy.

C. Keep Testifying of What God Has Done.


Keep telling others of God's gracious goodness to you. This must be done with a real sense of humility,
and no thought that receiving healing from the Lord makes you better than others. Some have lost miraculous
hearings because they failed to testify of the deliverance God has wrought for them.

D. Feed Your Faith on the Word of God.


Do not look to the one who prayed for you. God may have used him, but he is helpless apart from the
Lord Jesus Christ. He was only the channel; God did the work. "Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the
word of God" (Rom. 10:17). Therefore the importance of reading and studying the Word! Quote the
promises of healing every day. "I am the Lord that healeth thee" (Ex. 15:26). "Himself took our infirmities
and bare our sicknesses" (Mt. 8:17). "With whose stripes ye were healed" (1 Pt. 2:24). Believe what God
says, not what you feel.

E. Contend in Faith for Your Healing.


Sometimes the Devil will tell a child of God that he is not saved. The best way to answer such a charge is
to realize that the Devil is a liar. "When he speaketh a lie, he speaketh of his own: for he is a liar, and the
father of it" (Jn. 8:44). Tell him that God says: "Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ and thou shalt be saved"
(Acts 16:31). Tell him, "I believe; therefore, I am saved." Quote: "If thou shalt confess with thy mouth the
Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thine heart that God hath raised him from the dead, thou shalt be saved"
(Rom. 10:9). Tell the enemy, "I believe in my heart, and I now confess Jesus as Lord, so I am now saved."
No one objects to this method of silencing the doubts that Satan would put in the believer's heart with regard

258
to his salvation. Why not deal with the symptoms of doubt regarding healing in the same manner? If you
want to know if you are saved you look to the Word, not to yourself and your feelings in the matter. If you
want to know if you are healed, look to what God says about it in His Word. Do not hesitate to take a firm
stand on God's unfailing promises.

F. Walk in Obedience to God's Will - His Word.


We are saved to serve and obey the Lord. We are healed to serve and obey the Lord. God's Will is
revealed in His Word. Faith, and all the blessings it brings, flourishes in the pathway of obedience.

G. Start, and Continue, Service to the Lord.


Do not be selfish with what God has given. Use the health and strength which He has imparted to you in
His work. Find a place of service in His church and be faithful to it. Faithfully bring your tithe into His
storehouse. Bring others to the Lord. There are multitudes who need God's Saving and Healing Power. God
has healed you by imparting His Life to you. Live wholly for God and enjoy the fullness of what He has done
for you.

XIII. DIVINE LIFE FOR THE BODY


The closer we draw to the Lord, and the more our faith reaches out to claim all the promises of God, the
more clearly we see that Christ Jesus provided for us a complete salvation; not only to die by, but to live by -
a salvation that embraces the entire man, spirit, soul and body. "For in him dwelleth all the fullness of the
Godhead bodily. And ye are complete in him . . ." (Col. 2:9,10). Jesus said, ". . . I am come that they might
have life and that they might have it more abundantly" (Jn. 10:10). This life which He has provided includes
His life for our bodies. Aimee Semple McPherson once wrote: "Divine healing ... is not performing a
ceremony, it is not wringing a petition from the heavens by the logic of faith and the force of your will, but it
is the inbreathing of the life of God. It is the living touch which none can understand except those whose
senses are exercised to know the realities of the world unseen."
Divine Healing is Divine Life in the physical body. It is part of that life which is "in Christ." Paul
testified to Christ's life in him: "I am crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in
me; and the life which I now live in the flesh, I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me, and gave
himself for me" (Gal. 2:20). Moses, of old, testified to this experience: 'That thou mayest love the Lord thy
God, and that thou mayest obey his voice, and that thou mayest cleave unto him: for he is thy life, and the
length of thy days: that thou mayest dwell in the land which the Lord sware unto thy fathers, to Abraham, to
Isaac, and to Jacob, to give them" (Dt. 30:20).
Here are two verses which are most explicit concerning the life of Christ in the mortal body: "Always
bearing about in the body the dying of the Lord Jesus, that the life also of Jesus might be made manifest in our
body. For we which live are alway delivered unto death for Jesus' sake, that the life also of Jesus might be
made manifest in our mortal flesh" (2 Cor. 4:10,11). This does not only mean spiritual life in our unseen
spirit, but His Life in our very flesh that is the mortal part of us - the physical body. This is blessed
identification with Christ to the effect that the mortal body is benefited thereby. Paul is not talking about a
new kind of living, but a new kind of life. ". . . For we are members of his body, of his flesh, and of his
bones" (Eph. 5:30). "Know ye not that your bodies are the members of Christ?" (2 Cor. 6:15). It is His Life -
the Life of the Head - that flows through the body: ". . . strengthened with might by his Spirit in the inner
man..." (Eph. 3:16); ". . . filled with all the fullness of God" (Eph. 3:19). Triumphant faith will not allow this
to be limited to spiritual needs alone. Think of the power of the fact ". . . that your body is the temple of the
Holy Ghost which is in you. . . ." (1 Cor. 6:19). Some people are not content to live in a dirty, broken-down
house. They immediately clean it up and strengthen its structure. When the Holy Spirit comes in, if we will
yield to Him, He will cleanse and heal the temple of the Christian's body.
Kenneth MacKenzie describes the relationship of His Life and Spirit and the body:
Divine Healing is just Divine Life. It is the union of our members with the very body of Christ, and the
inflowing life of Christ in our living members. It is as real as His risen and glorified body.

259
It is as reasonable as the fact that He was raised from the dead, and is a living man with a true body and a
rational soul today at God's right hand. That living Christ belongs to us in all His attributes and power. We
are members of His body, of His flesh, and His bones; and if we can only believe it, we may live upon the
very life of the Son of God.
No longer are we in bondage to the old sentiment that the body is a miserable tenement in which we
endure our confinement until at last we are released. But it becomes the scene of the sanctifying inworking
of the Holy Spirit, which, pressing into every niche of our being, permeates the whole with His Holy energy,
and insures the possession and experience of Christ's very life.

XIV. ANSWERS TO OBJECTIONS


In this section on Divine Healing, most of the objections to the doctrine of Divine Healing have been
anticipated and have been answered in substance, but because of rather widespread opposition to the doctrine
of Divine Healing by traditional teachers, there remains a need for answers to their common objections.
It is not that the objections are formidable, but that the Foursquare ministry needs to be able to give a
ready answer to every objector without hesitation or confusion. Not only must the teacher of healing be able
to meet the objectors themselves, but he must be able to remove the objections from the minds of sick people
who have been taught against Divine Healing.
The arguments, however, should not be used as a rule, unless there are real objectors present or there are
real doubts in the minds of people. It is far better to teach healing in a positive manner, dealing with the
scriptural promises and teachings, than to teach it in a controversial manner.
The objections take many forms, but they all may be covered under twelve headings. Some of the twelve
objections may overlap, but there is a real sense in which each differs and requires a different answer or
explanation.

A. The Day of Miracles Is Past.


The above conclusion has come to be universally accepted; in fact, many believe that the Bible teaches
the idea of an age of miracles. One risks his reputation for sanity in many quarters by even suggesting the
possibility of a modern miracle. Yet in an age when science is performing virtual miracles, it is strange that
those who believe in God at all should doubt that the Omnipotent One can and does at times perform works
that are above the usual working of natural law.
There are two classes of people who object to miracles; the rationalist who does not believe that miracles
have ever taken place; who believes that God has always limited His works to natural laws of the universe
which are known by man; and the traditionalist who believes that miracles were confined in an age or
dispensation of miracles after which God would work only by natural laws. The great trouble with both of
these classes is that they have made natural law too narrow; they have confined law within the narrow bounds
of definition made by the modern natural scientist, who has not investigated outside his laboratory. There are
laws, such as the law of faith, which the natural scientist has not investigated, yet which are as sure and
uniform as any 'so called" natural laws, and are amply proved by Church history. It is a fault of many natural
scientists that they admit as evidence only what will prove their presuppositions.
If the testimonies of miracles in Church History are discarded, then the reliability of all history is in
question and one must believe only what he himself has seen.
The philosophy of the rationalist can be disproved by proving just one miracle. There is one miracle
which has as much weight of evidence as any historical event, and which certainly cannot be disproved; that
is the Resurrection of Jesus Christ. When Jesus died on the Cross, the disciples were completely
disheartened. The women went out to embalm his body as a last respect to the memory of his remarkable life.
The men went back to their trades with their hopes blasted. There never would have been a Christian religion
without a Resurrection. Moreover, the disciples repeatedly testified unequivocally to the Resurrection of
Christ in the very place where the events of the Lord's Death and Resurrection took place. If the testimonies
were not true, the Jewish leaders could easily have proved their contentions to be false. Then, too, the

260
disciples had nothing to gain and everything to lose by preaching the Resurrection, unless they knew it to be
true. The Gospel writers were honest, intelligent men who were willing to die for their Resurrection doctrine;
therefore, they were, beyond question, sincere. Now there was no possibility of their being mistaken in what
they saw, because Christ appeared to many on several occasions, and they are in agreement about what
transpired (Acts 1:1-3). There is no historical event more firmly founded on evidence, none more obviously
real than Christ's Resurrection, which was the miracle of miracles. Whoever denies this miracle must be
prepared to doubt all history.
Now, if there has been one miracle, there can be thousands of miracles with equal probability. If Jesus
rose from the dead, why should it be improbable that the same power would quicken and heal the sick bodies
of God's children? (Rom. 8:11)
To the traditionalist, we answer that there is no such scriptural distinction as an age of miracles. The
Bible recognizes seven (7) dispensations or ages, which are as follows: Innocence (Gn. 1:28); Conscience
(Gn. 3:23); Human Government (Gn. 8:20); Promise (Gn. 12:1); Law (Ex. 19:8); Grace (Jn. 1:17); Kingdom
(Eph. 1:10). In every one of these dispensations there are recorded events which would be considered
contrary to the working of natural law, or miracles. Why should God consider it expedient to permit miracles
in each dispensation except the present one? Where is the statement in the Bible that miracles would cease to
be performed? Does not the Bible, on the contrary, represent God and Christ as being eternally the same?
(Mal. 3:6; Heb. 13:8; Jas. 1:17; Ps. 107:27.)
Beyond question, healing is in the Atonement (see Sec. VII) and certainly the benefits of the Atonement
extend throughout the present age of Grace.
One of the strongest arguments in favor of the continuance of miracles is that they did in fact continue,
according to some of the most revered saints and writers of Church history. (See Sec. VI.) Does not the
statement of Luke, in Acts 1:1-3, strongly infer that the works of Jesus were to continue under the operation
of the Holy Spirit? He refers to the Gospel of Luke as the book relating the things which Jesus began to do
and teach. (Compare also Jn. 14:12 and Mk. 16:17.)
If the age of miracles is past, then the same objectors would have to conclude that the possibility of
conversion no longer exists, because con-version is as miraculous and supernatural, as Divine Healing.
Some contend that healing was only a sign permitted in the first century to attest to the supernatural
character of Christianity; and that now healing is no longer necessary, because the truths of Christianity have
been confirmed. While some kinds of special miracles have been used as signs, it is clearly revealed that
Jesus healed not only as a sign, but because He had compassion upon the people in their painful state. (Mk.
1:41; Mt. 9:35-38; 14:14 and 20:34.) Who can say that Jesus is less compassionate today? Then, too, does not
each new century, or even generation, have its doubters and skeptics who oppose Christianity? Does not each
generation need signs also to attest the preaching of a religion which claims to be supernatural in its origin
and results? Every age is an age of miracles for those who have faith in God. Faith says "ALL THINGS
ARE POSSIBLE" (Mt. 19:26).

B. If Healing Is in the Atonement, Why Are Many Christians Not Healed?


It may be answered that Salvation is in the Atonement, but not all are saved. Victorious living is for all
Christians, but all do not live victoriously. Fruit of the Spirit is intended for every Christian life, but many are
lacking much in fruit bearing. Every promise of God's Word is accompanied with a provision, and the
provision must be met by the seeker before the blessing comes. In healing, the provision is faith. Where the
seeker does not have faith for healing, the healing is not, as a rule, forthcoming.
There are other reasons also, besides lack of faith, for failure to receive healing. One of these is wrong
teaching. There are many patient, pious Christians in traditional churches who are sick, and who do not
receive healing, because they are taught by their pastors that Divine Healing is not for today, or that it is of
satanic origin. Naturally, these people accept their sickness as a necessary evil of earthly life and try to be
patient until they can put off this earthly frame. But, if many of these people were taught the great truth of
vicarious healing, they would believe and receive bodily health. YE HAVE NOT, BECAUSE YE ASK
NOT" (Jas. 4:2).
Moreover, some Christians are sick because they constantly disregard the laws of nature. One cannot

261
expect to tempt God and have His favor. Those who live so as to imperil their bodily health, when it is
unnecessary, suffer the consequences, and are not likely to recover until they cease living wrongly. Such
cannot protest that healing does not work, for healing is promised to those who live in the Will of God (Jn.
5:14).
Again, medical science has been so exalted that most persons think of it as the sole source of healing
benefit. Medical science has indeed made great advances, and is a very worthy and needful profession, but it
is not the sole source of healing benefit. If all Christians would recognize God as a Source of healing, there
would be more faith and consequently less sickness among believers.
It is a mistake to judge the teaching of God's Word by the degree of success attained in any age. If every
Christian were sick, it would not change the plain teaching of God's Word. It would indicate only that men
were failing to meet God's requirements. But all Christians are not sick! On the contrary, there are thousands
who are, by faith, availing them-selves of the Atonement's provisions and receiving Divine Healing from the
Throne of Grace.

C. If One Believes in Healing, Why Not Also Believe in Raising the Dead and Other Miracles Promised
in Mark 16, Such As: Speaking with New Tongues, Taking Up Serpents, and Drinking Deadly Poisons?
Let it be noted, first of all, that raising the dead is not mentioned in The Great Commission of Mark
chapter sixteen. It is true that the twelve disciples, when sent on a preaching tour to announce the kingdom,
were commanded to raise the dead (Mt. 10:8), but this was not the permanent commission given to the
Church. The Church is not commanded to raise the dead, neither is such a promise given to the Church. The
Church is, however, instructed to lay hands on the sick, and it is promised that the sick will recover. (Mk.
16:16; Jas. 5:14-16). There is a difference between special miracles and covenant miracles. Special miracles
were performed as a sign to meet special circumstances, such as: turning water to wine, walking on the sea,
calming the storm, multiplying the loaves and fishes. These special miracles are not promised to the Church.
Miracles such as Divine Healing, Regeneration, the Spirit Baptism and the provision of needs, however, are
promised and may be claimed by God's people on the strength of the promises. Special miracles are for
special times and circumstances, but covenant miracles are for the whole age of Grace. Now this does hot
mean that special miracles will never occur in this day. It means only that they cannot be claimed on the
strength of any promise. Special circumstances in any age may give rise to special miracles, and there have
been many of such recorded in Church history. Faith is powerful and may bring Providence to man's aid in
many ways not specifically promised. There are many verified cases of the dead being raised in modern times
because of a powerful faith that would not surrender to death.
Now regarding taking up serpents and drinking poisons, these are included in The Great Commission and
are to be expected by the Church whenever circumstances warrant. Missionaries constantly witness to the
working of these promises. Many such are constantly facing the peril of poisonous water, but God gives
protection so that they are not harmed. Of course it would be tempting God to deliberately drink poison or
handle poisonous reptiles when there existed no purpose or need for so doing. Such would not be faith, but
presumption or intrepidity. Regarding the speaking with new tongues, this phenomenon is also part of The
Great Commission and it is promised to the Church in several places: I Cor. 12:14; Acts 2:4; Is. 28:1 1; Acts
10:46, 19:6.
It is plain that the above objection is no objection at all, because Foursquare people do believe in all the
miracles mentioned; they accept them as blessings for the Church by promise except raising the dead, and
they do not consider it a thing incredible that God should raise the dead if circumstances warranted.

D. There Was No Competent Medical Science in Bible Times: Therefore Jesus Healed the Sick; but
Now That Medical Science Is Perfected God Expects His People to Use Medicine for Healing.
The objection stated above is in error for three reasons:

1. There was a developed medical science in Bible times. As early as 400 B.C. there was a scientific
healing science. Hippocrates (460-370 B.C.), the father of medicine, developed a science of medicine to a
relatively high state. Some of his technique is still practiced today. Greece, Egypt and Rome had many

262
competent practitioners in Jesus' time. The Jews who adhered to the health regulations of the Law of Moses,
lived under hygienic conditions not greatly excelled today; be-cause the Law of Moses was given of God in
order to preserve a Holy Nation for the purpose of carrying out His plan of Redemption.

2. Medical science today is not able to cure all sickness. Furthermore, the medical science of today is
still in an experimental stage, and is unable to cure scores of diseases with which thousands are afflicted.
There are actually several common diseases and afflictions which are at present on the increase,
notwithstanding all the medical activity.
Now, most of the cases healed by Jesus in New Testament times would be given up by modem doctors;
so, if Jesus healed in His day because medicine was impotent, He will heal yet today, because medicine is still
impotent in so many kinds of sickness.

3. Divine Healing has nothing to do with the competence or incompetence of a natural healing
science.
However, Divine Healing is principally a spiritual blessing provided by the Atonement, not merely a
matter of physical cure. If medical science could cure every sick person on earth, it would not make Divine
Healing void. When medicine heals the body, the physician receives the credit, but when one is healed by the
power of a personal, loving Heavenly Father, the glory goes to God, and the person healed is blessed
spiritually and strengthened in faith.
One might likewise reason that sociology is now in a more advanced state; and that as a consequence, one
does not now need Divine regeneration. The fact is that some extreme liberals do reason in this manner. But,
the Atonement alone can satisfy for God the sin question. Reformation does nothing about past sin, nor does
it establish between God and man a covenant fellowship. Now Divine Healing is a part of the Atonement, the
physical benefit of the New Birth; and both benefits of the work of Calvary are intended as permanent
benefits for the entire age of Grace. Neither salvation nor healing are conditioned upon the improvement of
natural sciences. Natural sciences are good and will always be needed, but God's best way is the way of faith
in matters of which the Scriptures make promise.

E. If Divine Healing Always Worked, No Christian Would Ever Die.


Now it is not claimed by exponents of Divine Healing that death can be perpetually averted, nor was such
a claim made by the Apostles who certainly practiced Divine Healing with miraculous results. It is claimed
only that the faithful believer may have Divine health within the normal life span. Such a full life is described
in Job 5:26. The same Bible which teaches Divine Healing also sets a limit on the length of man's life. (Ps.
90:10, Heb. 9:27). Therefore, healing is provided for man, but only within the allotted life span. It is not
meant, however, that man though being a mortal body, should live in pain and suffering, nor die by an
affliction. Faith will secure for the believer a life of Divine health and vigor, and when death comes at the
appointed time, it can be without great suffering or disease. Of course imperfect faith and obedience
frequently hinders this full ideal physical state. But this provision is valid, notwithstanding, and is actually
appropriated by many believers.
Even if perpetual life could be secured by Divine Healing, it would not be desirable in this present body,
even in its most healthy state. The mortal body of Jesus was subject to natural fatigue, weariness and other
penalties of mortality. Divine health is a marvelous blessing for this present sojourn, but the redeemed
believer's aim is fixed on the heavenly city, the immortal life in a glorified eternal body.

F. There Are Cases of Failure in the New Testament.


Much is made of Paul's "thorn in the flesh" by opponents of Divine Healing. The fact is that no one
knows the exact character of his thorn, so it cannot be proved that the thorn was sickness. Whatever the thorn
was, Paul was delivered from it (Gal. 4:13-16; 2 Cor. 1:8-10). If the difficulty mentioned by Paul in Galatians
4:13-16 was sickness, it was not a permanent sickness, because he had it only "at first."
That Paul had no permanent serious affliction is quite easily proved by two facts: (1) Paul's strenuous life
of travel and labor could not have been carried on had he been seriously afflicted. When it is considered that

263
Paul constantly traveled under trying conditions; organized churches; suffered stonings, floggings, shipwrecks
and imprisonments; sustained himself by working with his own hands; and that he was always joyful and
confident; it would not appear likely that he was suffering with a serious sickness. (2) Paul mentioned all his
difficulties in 2 Corinthians 11:23-33, and not once does he mention a disease. The word translated
painfulness in verse twenty-seven, means literally (in the Greek) "travail." If Paul had a serious sickness, he
would have mentioned it in this list.
Some point to Galatians 4:15 as proof that Paul had an eye disease. However the words, "ye would have
plucked out your eyes and have given them to me," are a figure of speech, such as, "you would have given me
your right arm." Furthermore, the theory of oriental eye disease is not consistent with Paul's great activity.
There is another passage in which Paul refers to his thorn as a buffeting (2 Cor. 12:7). A buffeting infers
repeated blows, not a permanent state of sickness.
Regarding Epaphroditus, his case supports Divine Healing rather than raising an objection. Epaphroditus
was sick indeed, but God healed him (Phil. 2:25-27). It is not claimed that believers will never be sick under
any circumstances; when believers overtax their bodies or disobey the laws of nature, they are likely to be
sick; but when they turn to the Lord for healing, they receive it. Epaphroditus became sick as the result of a
very strenuous journey from Philippi to Rome, but God delivered him, a fact which supports the Healing
doctrine.
The reference to the case of Trophimus is so brief that little can be gathered from it. Paul did, it is true,
leave Trophimus sick (2 Tm. 4:20), but nothing is known about the faith of this obscure worker. Who can say
that he was not healed soon after, for healing is not always instantaneous. Certainly such a brief reference is
not sufficient to overthrow the great fund of Scripture in support of Divine Healing. Finally, the interpretation
of the Scripture rests upon its promises and teachings and not upon anything which happened to persons; for,
no matter how sure and simple are God's provisions for Man's needs, there will always be failures on Man's
part.

G. Divine Healing Is Taught Only by False Cults.


This statement is far from being true. Wesley, Luther and Zinzendorf taught and practiced Divine
Healing. They were the leaders of the Methodist, Lutheran and Moravian churches; and certainly none would
doubt that these are orthodox churches. Those who teach healing today, along with the Saving Power of the
blood of Jesus and the Deity of Christ, are no more unorthodox than were the above mentioned Church
leaders when they taught Divine Healing.
It is true that several false cults teach a kind of healing, but their doctrines of healing are far from being
similar to the orthodox, biblical doctrine of Divine Healing. The fact is that Satan has taken advantage of the
Church's failure to preach the whole Gospel by advancing healing cults which deny the efficacy of the blood,
and the Deity of Christ. The result is that many sick people are lured into false cults, when their bodily
healing should have been met within the true Church. That false healing cults are able to survive and steadily
grow is proof that they offer some-thing greatly desired by multitudes of people. Jesus always had
compassion on the multitudes and healed their sick, and Jesus is the same today and forever. That the true
Church should send the suffering away empty handed with a shallow excuse that God's Power no longer
works, is a great tragedy.
Furthermore, the healing taught by most of the false cults is not Divine Healing, but mind over matter, or
psychic healing. Now the physicians have admitted that mental healing is truly scientific in many respects,
but even so, it is only natural healing. When one is healed by Christian Science, God is not credited with the
recovery. The healing cults recognize God as only a principle and not a Person. When one is healed by a
principle, that is not Divine but natural healing. The teachers of orthodox Divine Healing believe that the sick
are healed by the direct Power of a Personal God who has compassion upon suffering Mankind. In cult
healing, the existence of sin and sickness is denied; but in orthodox healing, sin and suffering are admitted to
be real. However, Christ is recognized as the Victor over every foe of Man, the personal Savior of the world.
Finally, Satan has frequently counterfeited God's true blessings. Because some false cults imitate Divine
Healing is not a sign that all healing is false; on the contrary, it is some indication that there is a true Divine
Healing.

264
H. Divine Healing Puts More Emphasis upon the Body than upon the Soul.
If this objection is to be admitted, then the same objection must be made of the ministry of Jesus, because
the greater part of His ministry was devoted to healing the sick. Likewise, it would necessitate objection to
the ministry of the Apostles, for the book of Acts records healing miracles in all the revivals. (See Acts 8:5-8;
9:36-42; 14:6-10; 16:16-18; 19:11-12; 28:7-9.) Now, if the Lord Jesus and the disciples could preach and
practice Divine Healing without fear of over-emphasizing bodily needs, then the same may be done at any
time, if the procedure is kept scriptural and the teaching is properly balanced. Of course, it is possible to give
too much emphasis to any doctrine, but this is not necessarily so. Salvation for the soul and healing for the
body are inseparable benefits of Christ's Atoning Work. They should be preached together as aspects of the
same message. (Is. 53:4-5; 1 Pt. 2:24) To omit the healing message is to preach a partial Gospel. The good
news of salvation also concerns the mortal body which has been redeemed by a price. (1 Cor. 6:19-20)
It is a miracle to suppose that Divine Healing imparts only a physical blessing. The benefit received from
a healing touch is as much spiritual as it is physical. In Divine Healing, the recipient is made to feel the
nearness and providential care of a personal Savior and Lord; his faith is strengthened, and he is made doubly
aware of the great Love of God. It is true that faith mainly concerns the unseen, but while man is in a
temporal world he needs and benefits from God's material provision of blessing. Many who regularly pray
for financial blessing or providential care and protection scorn Divine Healing, but there certainly is no
difference in principle between one kind of benefit or the other. If the believer is not to pray for healing
because it over-emphasizes the material, then he must never pray for employment, money, food, clothing,
protection, or any other material benefit. If man profits in sickness, he would profit in poverty or misery also.
The early Christians practiced poverty far more than they suffered affliction of body.
Finally, let it be cautioned that healing ought never to be preached apart from redemption of the soul and
other fundamental truths of the Gospel. Healing is not a gospel of itself, it is one aspect of the Gospel of
Christ. Neither is the Gospel complete which omits the healing message. In addition, it is wise to conduct
healing instruction meetings before the sick are prayed for, in order that the proper relationship of healing to
the Gospel may be thoroughly understood; and also in order that only those are prayed for who are yielded to
God and possess some faith, that is, those who are to be prayed for publicly. It should always be made plain
that no power for healing is possessed by the one who prays, but that it is God's Power and Mercy. (Acts 3:12-
13)

I. If God Created Herbs and Drugs, Does He Not Expect Man to Use Them for Healing?
It is true that God created all herbs and plants, but He did not thereby sanction every use to which Man
would put their extractions. God created the poppy, but He did not sanction every use to which opium would
be put. God created the tobacco plant, but He did not intend that man should use the plant for drawing
nicotine into his body. Tobacco nicotine does make a splendid insecticide for killing harmful insects, but it
should not be used to kill human beings. Now while some herbs were, no doubt, created with a view to the
therapeutic use for Mankind as a whole, it does not follow that there is no other source of healing, nor that
healing by drugs is the best source of healing. God is merciful to all humanity, saved and un-saved, just and
unjust; He has provided mercy even for those who do not recognize Him as Lord, but cannot God provide a
better and more direct healing for those who are in close fellowship with Him?
The Bible does command the use of oil in praying for the sick, also figs and wine in one case each, but
none of these is recommended as a drug for healing. The Bible nowhere recommends drugs or physicians for
the redeemed. On the island of Melita, Paul prayed for the father of Publius and many sick people who were
healed by God's Power; yet, Luke, who was a physician, was present with Paul. If God wanted the believer to
call a physician, why did not Luke administer drugs to the people of the island? (Acts 28:8,9)
Oil is commanded for anointing in James 5:14-16, but it is clearly stated that it is the prayer of faith which
saves the sick and the Lord who raises him up, not the oil. Furthermore, would God permit an in-spired
Apostle to recommend oil for the healing of all sicknesses? Anyone knows that while oil may perform certain
minor benefits, it is certainly not a "cure all." It is not a panacea for all Man's physical ills. The oil is to be
used as a symbol only in praying for the sick. The anointing typifies the work of the Holy Spirit, who is the

265
Agent in healing. When a king or priest was inaugurated in Israel, he was anointed with oil which did him no
physical good, but which was symbolic of the Spirit of God who was thereafter to direct his reign or ministry.
The oil in healing indicates that the healing is performed by the Spirit of God, and not the elder who prays.
The account of Hezekiah's illness and healing is recorded in 2 Kings 20:1-11. In this account it is clear
that the poultice of figs was not the source of the healing. Hezekiah prayed and received assurance from God
that he would be healed and would receive fifteen years extension of life before the figs were applied. God
witnessed to His promise by causing the sun dial to go backward ten degrees. It is obvious that Hezekiah put
his sole trust in the Power of God, for if figs had such a curative value, he would have trusted the figs at once.
If figs are curative to the extent of being able to save life, why does not medical science of today exploit their
power? Furthermore, the recommendation of this poultice was made by Isaiah and not the Lord. If God had
inspired the recommendation, it was only an act of obedience such as Naaman's dipping in the River Jordan,
or Jesus' anointing of the blind man's eyes with clay.
Paul recommended that Timothy drink wine in the place of water (1 Tm. 5:23). It is contended by some
that the wine was prescribed as a remedy for Timothy's stomach trouble. One wonders if all the opponents of
Divine Healing would recommend that all their members suffering with stomach ailments cease drinking
water in favor of wine. If the water available were fit for drinking, it is certain that it would have been better
for the stomach than wine. Nothing is better for health than the generous use of pure water; but the water
where Timothy resided was very impure and harmful, and it was therefore doing harm to his health. The wine
was only a substitute for water, where good water was not available. Had wine been intended as a medicine it
would have been prescribed in addition to water. The fact that water was forbidden proves that the local
water was the source of his problem.
Physicians are frequently mentioned in the Bible, but certainly no-thing is said of their replacing Divine
Healing for God's believing children. Moses was educated in all the ways of the Egyptians, a people learned
in the use of herbs, but not once does he prescribe any medicine for the Israelites; on the contrary, God
promised him that obedience would assure the whole nation of a full Divine health.

J. The Miracles Recorded in Matthew 8:16,17 Completely Fulfilled the Prophecy of Physical Healing
in Isaiah 53:4,5. There Were No Subsequent Healings Necessary to Fulfill the Prophecy; Therefore,
Healing is Not for Today on the Grounds of Isaiah Chapter Fifty-three.
This objection is answered by two arguments:
1. The words translated "took" and "bore" are used of both bodily healing and soul salvation,
and used in the same sense.
If Jesus' first hearings completely fulfilled the prophecy that Christ would "take our infirmities and bear
our sicknesses," then the first con-versions would completely fulfill the prophecy that Christ would "bear the
sin of many" (Is. 53:11-12).
2. The word "fulfilled," as it is used in the Bible to mark fulfillments of Old Testament prophecy,
does not infer in its use that the event marked is the complete fulfillment and that there will be no such
similar events following. (See the discussion of this matter in Section VIL)

266
K. If Healing Is in the Atonement, Christians Who Are Sick Must Conclude That They Are Sinners.
Now, if some Christians are sick, it does not mean that they are necessarily sinners. They may be either
ignorant of the healing blessing, lacking in faith at present, or careless about definitely asking God for
healing. Salvation is in the Atonement, but that some do not receive salvation does not mean that Christ did
not die for them. Men are not saved until they exert faith and call upon the Lord. Healing is provided by the
Atonement, but it is received, like salvation, only by those who recognize the provisions and seek the
blessing. Faith is the requisite for receiving healing, and some Christians are weak in active faith. We are
saved by grace through faith, but we achieve many differing degrees of practical holiness and Divine blessing,
though perfect victory and blessing are provided for every saint by the Atonement.
There are many who are morally upright and spiritually devout, but because of the lean teaching which
they receive, they are unaware of the full provision of Calvary; and when they are sick, they resort to medical
remedies when they could have Divine Healing for the asking if they had known or cared to ask for it. ". . .
YE HAVE NOT, BECAUSE YE ASK NOT" (Jas. 4:2). No, sick Christians are not sinners any more than
others in this present imperfect state; they are merely underprivileged by wrong teaching.

L. Failure by Many to Receive Healing Weakens the Faith of the Whole Church.
Whoever could make such an objection could not understand faith. Hebrews 11:1 defines faith as
follows: "Faith is the substance of things hoped for, the evidence of things not seen." Faith is not dependent
upon sight nor circumstances. Faith believes even when it cannot see. While faith is strengthened somewhat
by seeing the working of God, faith will not be shipwrecked if it does not see. The fact overlooked in this
objection is that faith always brings to pass what it desires. If the Church has faith, its faith will bring things
to pass. Jesus never fails, and where prayer is offered for the sick, accompanied by faith, there will be signs
following: the Word of God assures that such will be so. (Mk. 16:17)
No one contends that everyone who is prayed for will be healed, but most believers must know that there
will be some failure when there is a provision to be met by those who seek healing, namely faith.
The opponents of Divine Healing are opponents because they have no faith in the Supernatural Power of
God. Lack of faith in the supernatural is lack of faith in the very heart of Christianity, which is not a mere
ethical society, social order, or fraternal brotherhood, but a supernatural religion vitalized by the Holy Spirit.
Those who believe in healing understand it sufficiently to know that all will not be healed for whom prayer is
offered, for accountable reasons. Those who do not believe in a supernatural Christianity have no vital faith
to lose, although they may otherwise be very splendid and pious persons.

267
Chapter 8
THE DOCTRINE OF THE CHURCH
Ecclesiology

Introduction
I. "Church" - its meanings
II . Uses of the term "church" in the New Testament
III. Uses of the term "church" not found in the New Testament
IV. The officers, ministers & leaders of the Church
V. The mission of the Church
VI. The ordinances of the Church
VII. The Church as the Body of Christ
VIII. The Church and the kingdom of God
IX. Other metaphors of the Church

268
The Doctrine of the Church
Ecclesiology

INTRODUCTION

Ecclesiology is the study of the Church in its nature, ordinances, ministry, mission and government.
In recent times there has been a renewed interest in the study of the doctrine of the Church. Every age has
had its particular doctrinal emphasis. Our age is no exception. Many contemporary theologians and Bible
scholars are saying that we need to restudy the doctrine of the Church in order that we may understand what
the Church is, and what its mission is in today's world. Several contemporary movements such as the
ecumenical and the charismatic movements have contributed to a resurgence of interest in the New Testament
pattern of the Church. A revival of the spirit of worship among Foursquare Gospel and other Pentecostal
churches has been accompanied by strong concern to better understand the life, ministry, and leadership of the
New Testament Church.
Since the Church is the Divinely constituted body through which the Gospel is preached and believers are
nurtured, the careful study and clear understanding of it are obviously important. The best place to begin such
a study is with definitions.

I. "CHURCH" - ITS MEANINGS


A. Kuriakon.
The English word "church" is derived from the word kuriakon which means "belonging to the Lord," a
word which is never applied to the Church in the New Testament period; although it is found twice in the
New Testament as an adjective applying to The Lord's Supper and to the Lord's Day (1 Cor. 11:20; Rv. 1:10).
In post-apostolic times the Greeks used the term kuriakon to designate the church building. The evolution of
the Greek kuriakon to the English word "church" can be seen in the Scottish work "kirk". The only words in
the New Testament used to designate a building as a place of worship are temple and synagogue (Acts 5:42;
Jas. 2:2, RV).

B Ekklesia.
In the English New Testament the word "church" is used invariably to translate the Greek word Ekklesia
(Mt. 16:18; 18:17; Acts 2:47; 9:31; 13:1; 14:23; 15:22; 16:5; 20:17,28; Rom. 16:4,5; 1 Cor. 12:28; Eph. 5:23-
29; Col. 1:18; Rv. 1:4,11). The word Ekklesia means "an assembly of people." The term is derived from two
Greek words, ek meaning "out from," and kaleo which means "to call." Originally, "the ones called out" had
reference to the legislative body of citizens of the Greek republic called from their communities to serve the
country. When we refer to a session of the State "Assembly," we are using the word "assembly" in exactly
the same way the Greeks used the term Ekklesia.
By New Testament times, when Jesus employed the word Ekklesia to designate the body He would build,
the word borrowed meaning from at least two sources: (1) the Jewish use of the word in the Greek Old
Testament (Septuagint) where it referred to the "congregation" of Israel, and (2) the Greek employment of the
word to refer to any assembly of people, whether a constituted body or an unorganized mob. An example of
the Jewish use is found in Acts 7:37,38: "This is that Moses,. . . that was in the church in the wilderness with
the angel which spake to him in the mount Sinai, and with our fathers: who received the lively oracles to give
unto us." The Jewish use of the word ekklesia, usually translates the Hebrew word quahal which was the Old
Testament word for the congregation of Israel in the wilderness. An example of the Greek use of ekklesia is
found in Acts chapter nineteen: "Some therefore cried one thing, and some another: for the assembly
[ekklesia] was confused; and the more part knew not wherefore they were come together [mob]" (Acts 19:32);
and "But if ye enquire anything concerning other matters, it shall be determined in a lawful assembly [official

269
legislative body]" (Acts. 19:39).
There is no doubt that Jesus chose the word translated "church" because it had been used to designate
God's people, but the word in the popular mind merely meant "ASSEMBLY". Because the Hebrew word
translated ekklesia was sometimes rendered "synagogue," there may have been a purpose in the choice of the
first in order to avoid confusion of the Church with the synagogue of Israel. When Jesus said, "And upon this
rock will I build my CHURCH" (Mt. 16:18), He placed emphasis not on the word CHURCH, but on the word
MY. The CHURCH is unique, not because it is called a CHURCH, but because it is the assembly of believers
who belong to Jesus, who constitute His Body.
II. USES OF THE TERM "CHURCH" IN THE NEW TESTAMENT
A. The Universal Body of Christ.
The Universal Church is composed of all genuine Christian believers of all ages, both on earth and in
paradise, the total Body of Christ. The total Universal Church will be assembled at the Marriage Supper of
the Lamb (Rv. 19:6-9) which will follow the Rapture of the Church. The following passages apply to the
Universal Church: Mt. 16:18; Eph. 3:10,21; 5:23-32; Col. 1:18,24; Heb. 12:22,23, "To the general assembly
and church of the firstborn, which are written in heaven, and to God the Judge of all, and to the spirits of just
men made perfect. . ." (Heb. 12:23).

B. The Local Church.


The local church is composed of Christian believers identified with a constituted body worshiping in one
locality (Rom. 16:1; Col. 4:16; Gal. 1:2,22; Acts 14:23). The members of a local church constitute the
Church even when they are not assembled, which fact can be seen in Acts chapter fourteen: "And when they
were come, and had gathered the church together, they rehearsed all that God had done with them.. .." (Acts
14:27) All genuine believers are members of the Universal Body of Christ; however all faithful believers are
to be identified with a local church where they assemble for worship, fellowship, and service with some
regularity (Heb. 10:24,25). Christians cannot properly be believers in isolation, for they are not believers
only; they are also disciples, brethren, and members of a body. The following statement is from the
Foursquare Declaration of Faith:

We believe that having accepted the Lord Jesus Christ as personal Savior and King, and having thus been
born into the family and invisible body or church of the Lord, it is the sacred duty of the believer, whenever
this lieth within his power, to identify himself with, and labor most earnestly for the upbuilding of God's
kingdom with the visible church of Christ upon earth.... (Jas. 5:14; Acts 11:26-30)1

C. The House Churches.


In New Testament times there were no church buildings; believers
met for worship wherever facilities were made available to them. Often they met in homes of believers:
"Aquila and Priscilla salute you much in the Lord, with the church that is in their house" (1 Cor. 16:19b).
When the church in a given community was very large, there were many house churches (see 1 Cor. 14:23);
however, the church of that community was considered one, and they all came together as often as possible.
In small communities, one house church may have accommodated the entire body (see Col. 4:15). One
reason why the churches usually had a plurality of elders was perhaps that there were several house churches
within the total body in the given community. In Acts chapter twenty, the Apostle Paul called together the
elders of the church in Ephesus: "And from Miletus he sent to Ephesus, and called the elders of the church"
(Acts 20:17). The church in Ephesus was one, but the large number of elders (pastors) suggests that the
Church often met in homes because of the lack of large church buildings. All of these house churches were,
however, one church of Ephesus: "Take heed therefore unto yourselves, and to all the flock, over the which
the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of God, which He hath purchased with His own
blood" (Acts 20:28). Every local church was considered to be the physical manifestation of the Universal
Church in that community. (See also Rom. 16:5.23, 1 Cor. 16:19; Phlm. 2.)

270
D. The Collective Church.
There are several New Testament passages in which reference is made to the visible Church on earth as
one Church: I Cor. 10:32; 15:9; Gal. 1:13; Phil. 3:6. In Acts 9:31, where reference is made to the peace which
the Church experienced after Saul's conversion, the King James Version reads "churches"; but in the Greek
text, as well as in other versions, the word is singular: "So the CHURCH throughout all Judea and Galilee and
Samaria had peace, being edified; and, walking in the fear of the Lord and in the comfort of the Holy Spirit,
was multiplied" (Acts 9:31, RV).
In several passages, the word CHURCH is used generically, that is, referring to the Church generally.
(See Mt. 18:17; 1 Tm. 3:15; 1 Cor. 12:28.)

E. The Churches Acting in Concert.


There are those who contend that the local churches were autonomous, subject only to the local leadership
which was selected by the vote of the congregation. There is no doubt that the local churches had much
liberty; certainly, they were not ruled rigidly by a central hierarchy, a fact demonstrated by the council on
doctrine and practice recorded in Acts chapter fifteen. However, that the churches acted in concert and
followed apostolic leadership is made clear by a number of scripture passages: Acts 14:23; Rom. 16:4; 1 Cor.
16:19; 14:33; 2 Cor. 11:28; M. 1:5. Paul instructed local churches on doctrine, practice and government; he
sent greetings on behalf of groups of churches of an area; he appointed elders over churches or instructed
fellow-workers to appoint officers. Paul wrote to Titus ordering: "For this cause left I thee in Crete, that thou
shouldest set in order the things that are wanting, and ordain elders in every city, as I had appointed thee" (Ti.
1:5).

III. USES OF THE WORD "CHURCH" NOT FOUND IN THE NEW TESTAMENT
A. It Is Not Used of a Building.
The Greek word ekklesia which is translated "church" always has reference to people; it never has
reference to a building. Today, one might say, 'There is a white church at the comer of Fourth and Main."
When the Bible speaks of the church at Ephesus, it refers to the congregation of Christian believers at
Ephesus. Inasmuch as no church buildings were built until the third century, no word was coined to refer to
one. When church buildings were built, a different word (kuriake), meaning "the Lord's house," was used to
refer to them. On the other hand, the use of one word to describe both the building and the congregation is a
natural development. Calling the building a church is a figure of speech called "metonomy" (the container put
for the contents). The same is found in 1 Corinthians 11:26: "For as often as ye ... drink this CUP" (We do
not drink the cup, but the contents). No harm is done in calling the sanctuary a 'church" as long as one keeps
in mind the real nature of the CHURCH.

B. Not Used for a Denomination.


During New Testament times no groups of Christians arose with separate name identities similar to
modern denominations. Therefore, the word 'church" did not come to be appended to the names of leaders or
doctrinal tenets, as in Lutheran Church or Baptist Church, to identify distinct ecclesiastical organizations.
The ideal condition for the Church on earth would, no doubt, have been one of universal unity in doctrine and
organization; however, when the main ecclesiastical body departed from Scripture in doctrine and practice, it
was inevitable that there would be reformations rejected by the parent system, forcing the faithful to form
distinct bodies. Since every wide-spread revival has brought reaction by the established church leadership,
the formation of newly created organizations to preserve doctrinal soundness and spiritual life have been
virtually unavoidable. The ecumenical movement has endeavored to bring the denominations to a corporate
reunion but when it has been accomplished, it has been at the expense of doctrinal and spiritual fullness. A

271
faith and practice acceptable to all has been a "least common denominator." Denominations may have been
God's way of preserving revival and missionary fervor. The members of denominational churches, however,
must keep in mind that the Church which is the Body of Christ is composed of all true believers, and that true
believers must be united in spirit to carry forward the Gospel of Christ in the world, for all will be caught up
together at the Coming of the Lord. That local churches should band together for fellowship and missions is
certainly a Bible truth (2 Cor. 8:1-19,23,24;'fl. 1:5).

IV. THE OFFICERS, MINISTERS AND LEADERS OF THE CHURCH

The amount of scriptural material relative to the organization and leadership of the apostolic church is not
large. The titles borne by New Testament church leaders were more descriptive of their ministries than of
their office and rank. Since the first members and leaders of the Early Church were Jews, familiar with the
synagogue, they patterned church organization somewhat after that of the synagogue; in fact, in one New
Testament passage, the Christian assembly is called a synagogue (Jas. 2:2, GO.

That there was organization in the New Testament Church is clearly seen from the following:
(1) when problems arose in certain ministry activities, leaders were appointed to administer those
activities (Acts 6:1-7)
(2) the disciples met regularly for worship; at first, every day; later, they met on the first day of the week
(Acts 2:46,47; 5:42; 20:7; 1 Cor. 16:2) (3) diligence was given to the appointment of proper leadership (Acts
1:23-26; 14:23; Ti. 1:5)
(4) qualifications for elders (bishops) and deacons are set forth in some detail (1 Tm. 3:1-13; 'B. 1:5-9; 1
Tm. 5:1,17-22; 1 Pt. 5:1-4; Acts 6:1-7; 20:28-35)
(5) each church had the authority to discipline or exclude certain members (Mt. 18:17; 1 Cor. 5:1-5; 2
Thes. 3:6-16; 1 Tm. 1:18-20)
(6) members are admonished to respect and obey church leaders (1 Thes. 5:12,13; Heb. 13:7,17,24)
(7) missionaries are sent forth by the church with official sanction (Acts 13:1-3)
(8) a council was convened in Jerusalem to settle for the whole Christian Church a dispute over doctrine
and practice (Acts 15:1-35).
It is not easy to classify the various ministers and officers mentioned in the New Testament; several
terms, such as "pastor, elder, and bishop," which we take for titles, are probably different ways of describing
the same function. Some terms like "minister" and "deacon" are different translations of the same Greek word
diakonos. Some offices, such as "apostle and prophet," are strictly by Divine appointment of the exercise of a
spiritual gift; while other offices are by human election or appointment based upon specified qualifications.
"Pastors and teachers" may be two kinds of ministers; or the terms may simply represent two functions of one
office. In spite of the difficulties involved, effort will be made to analyze each New Testament office.

A. Apostles.
The first exponents of the Christian gospel were the Apostles, who were also God's first ministry gift to
the Church.
And when it was day, He called unto Him his disciples: and of them He chose twelve, whom He named
APOSTLES (Lk. 6:13).
And as they went through the cities, they delivered them the decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the
APOSTLES and elders which were at Jerusalem (Acts 16:4).
And He gave some, APOSTLES; and some, prophets; and some, evangelists; and some, pastors and
teachers; for the perfecting of the saints (Eph. 4:11,12b).
Ye ... are built upon the foundation of APOSTLES and prophets, Jesus Christ being the chief corner stone

272
(Eph. 2:19,20).
The word "APOSTLE" is a transliteration of the Greek word apostolos which means "a messenger" or
"one sent on a mission." The original Apostles were those whom Jesus chose to be with Him, whom He
personally commissioned and sent forth (Mt. 10:2; Lk. 22:14). They were twelve in number. When Judas
Iscariot betrayed the Lord, leaving only eleven, another Apostle was chosen in his place (Acts. 1:15-26). The
names of the twelve Apostles are written in the twelve foundations of the new Jerusalem (Rv. 21:14).
The requirements for apostleship were: (1) to have been with the Lord (Acts 1:21,22) (2) to have been a
witness of the Resurrection (Acts 1:22) (3) to have seen the Lord (1 Cor. 9:1) (4) to have wrought signs,
wonders and mighty deeds (2 Cor. 12:12). The foundational Apostles were a fixed number of twelve.
There are others, however, who are called "apostles," such as: (1) Paul, who was given a vision of the
Lord and called personally by Jesus to be the apostle to the Gentiles (Rom. 11:13; 1 Cor. 9:1), who twelve
times declared himself to be an apostle (2) James, the brother of Jesus (I Cor. 15:7) (3) Barnabas (Acts 14:14)
(4) certain kinsmen of Paul (Rom. 16:7) and (5) certain unnamed apostles (1 Cor. 15:7). Apparently the term
"apostle" came to be used in a wider sense for those who had been with Jesus, such as: the seventy, the one
hundred twenty, etc., and especially of those who seemed to have a special commission to found new
churches. The terms "apostle" and "missionary" have the same meaning. That the term "apostle" was used in
the wider sense is obvious from the fact that there were those who falsely claimed to be apostles (2 Cor.
11:13; Rv. 2:2). If only the original Twelve had been recognized as apostles, no one else could have made a
claim to apostleship. It is important to keep clear, the distinction between the original Apostles and those who
were called "apostles" in the wider meaning of the term. Closely identified with the Twelve, would be men
such as: Paul, Mark, Luke, James, Jude, and the writer of Hebrews; all of whom were used by the Spirit to
write the New Testament.
Discussion often arises of whether there could be modern apostles. It would depend upon the meaning
given to the word "apostle." Obviously the Church can have only one foundation. After the close of the New
Testament Canon, no additional apostolic writers have been commissioned to add to Scripture. However if
the term "apostle" is used in the wider sense of one commissioned of the Lord to open new mission fields,
whose ministry is accompanied with signs and wonders, it would not be an inappropriate use of the word.
Nevertheless, it should be kept clear that apostles are a gift from God, commissioned by Him. The Church
was never authorized to create apostles. No apostolic succession was ever established. When Jesus the Chief
Shepherd returns, He will come to crown pastors (elders), not apostles (1 Pt. 5:1-4). Peter, who was certainly
an apostle, happily identified with the elders (1 Pt. 5:1). Will the end-time be a period of great pastors who
evangelize their whole areas?

B. Prophets.
The Church is said to be built upon a foundation of apostles and PROPHETS (Eph. 2:20): "And He gave
some, apostles; and some, prophets" (Eph. 4:11). While the prophets were next in rank to the apostles, they
were subject to the apostles (1 Cor. 14:37). Paul seemed to give the gift of prophecy the highest priority
among the spiritual gifts (1 Cor. 14:1-3). Prophecy is defined by Paul as follows: "But he that prophesieth
speaketh unto men to edification, and exhortation, and comfort ... he that prophesieth edifieth the church" (1
Cor. 14:3,4). This definition is demonstrated in Acts chapter fifteen: "And Judas and Silas, being prophets
also themselves, exhorted the brethren with many words, and confirmed them" (Acts 15:32). A less frequent
function of the prophet was that of predicting the future. On two occasions, a prophet named Agabus
predicted future events (Acts 11:27-29). His prediction of a future famine enabled the church to make
preparation to assist the poor in Judea. Later Agabus predicted Paul's imprisonment by the Jews in Jerusalem,
a prediction that came to pass; although, Paul made no attempt to avoid the trouble (Acts 21:10-15).
Prophecy had a vital function in relation to Timothy's enablement for ministry (1 Tm. 4:14). In his sermon on
the Day of Pentecost, Peter identified Joel's prophecy (2:28) with the Spirit's outpouring on the Church: "And
it shall come to pass in the last days, saith God, I will pour out of my Spirit upon all flesh: and your sons and
your daughters shall PROPHESY" (Acts 2:17).

273
The gift of prophecy remains in effect in the Church today, where spiritual gifts are recognized. In much
Pentecostal preaching, the spirit of prophecy is manifested.

C. Evangelists.
The evangelist is less easy to identify in the New Testament, because almost everyone did the work of
evangelism. Philip is the only one actually called an "evangelist" (Acts 21:8). Judging from Philip's ministry
in Samaria, an evangelist is one whose ministry is directed primarily toward winning the unsaved: "Then
Philip went down to the city of Samaria, and preached Christ to them" (Acts 8:5, NKJV). It is noteworthy
that his soul-winning ministry was accompanied with miracles and signs. Afterward, Philip was called to
preach to one man in the desert, the Ethiopian treasurer, whom he led to Christ. It is interesting to note that,
as much space is taken to tell of the one man's conversion as is taken to narrate the Samaritan revival story.
Timothy is not called an evangelist; but Paul admonishes him to do the work of an evangelist (2 Tm. 4:5). In
the Greek, the word "evangelist" is derived from the verb that is translated "to preach the gospel." An
evangelist, then, is one whose chief goal is to preach the Gospel with the object of soul winning. The above
described ministries of the apostle, the prophet and the evangelist were ministries to the Church in general;
those that follow are ministries to the local church.

D. Pastors.
While the term "PASTOR," as the spiritual leader of the local church, is found only once in the New
Testament (Eph. 4:11), it will be treated fully here for two reasons: (1) it is the term most commonly used in
the church today, and (2) the pastoral metaphor is employed in several passages (1 Pt. 5:2-4; Acts 20:28,29;
Jn. 10:1-16; 21:15-17; Heb. 13:20; 1 Pt. 2:25; Mk. 6:34; 1 Cor. 9:6,7). The favorite terminology of Jesus to
express His relationship to the people was as the "shepherd and sheep." It is natural, therefore, that those
entrusted with the care of the Lord's flock should be called "pastors."
It is difficult for people of the Western world to understand the close intimate relationship that existed
between the Palestinian shepherd and his sheep. No word could have better expressed the loving care and
mutual trust that should exist between the spiritual leader and his congregation than the word "PASTOR."
Other synonyms for pastoral office are used more frequently in the New Testament, but the title that has
persisted is that of "pastor."

E. Teachers.
Teachers are the fifth category of ministry gifts bestowed upon the Church by the Ascended Lord (Eph.
4:11). It is not absolutely clear whether the term "TEACHER" represented a distinct office or merely a
function of apostles and pastors (elders). That "teacher" was a distinct ministry is indicated by the fact that
there were "prophets" and "teachers" in the church at Antioch (Acts 13:1); and that "teachers" are listed along
with apostles and prophets as offices which God had set in the Church (1 Cor. 12:2). On the other hand, in
Eph. 4:11, "teacher" is not preceded by a definite article as are the other offices; therefore, the term may
merely indicate teacher as a function of pastors (pastor-teachers). Teaching is listed as a spiritual gift in
Romans 12:6,7; therefore, it might be exercised by any believer who is so gifted. Paul refers to himself as one
"appointed a preacher, and an apostle, and a teacher of the Gentiles" (2 Tm. 1:11). Paul admonishes Timothy,
a pastor, to exercise a teaching ministry (2 Tm. 2:2). The Great Commission strongly infers that teaching is
of primary importance in the ongoing work of the Church: "Go ye therefore, and teach all nations, baptizing
them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: TEACHING them to observe all things
whatsoever I have commanded you. . . ." (Mt. 28:19,20). Although teaching was a part of nearly all of the
New Testament ministries, there were those whose primary calling was that of teaching the Word of God.
Undoubtedly, there are those today whose ministry could be best identified as that of a "teacher."

F. Elders (presbyters).
"Elder" was a title borrowed from the synagogue and from the congregation of Israel. The term is used in

274
the New Testament about thirty (30) times, with reference to the elders of Israel. The Hebrew word for
"elder" was zaquen which meant "an older man." The Greek word presbuteros has the same meaning, and is
the source of our word presbyter. When Paul had founded a number of churches in Asia, he appointed elders
to be in charge of them (Acts 14:23). The elder was equivalent to the pastor, and was the most common title
for the person in charge of a local church (Acts 20:17,28; Ti. 1:5; 1 Pt. 5:1-4). The elders were supported
materially by their congregations, which were exhorted by the Apostle Paul to grant double honor
(honorarium) to the elders who ruled (governed or directed) well their churches. Worthy of very special
honor were those elders who labored in preaching and teaching (1 Tm. 5:17-19). Since the word "elders" is
usually plural, it is assumed that each church had several elders; the probable reason being that larger
congregations had to meet often in smaller groups in homes of members (I Cor. 11:20; 16:15,19). Some have
reasoned from the passage in l Timothy 5:17 that there were both "ruling elders" and "teaching elders." The
elders were men of faith and spiritual power, for the sick were directed to seek them out for anointing with oil
and the prayer of faith:
Is any sick among you? let him call for the ELDERS of the church; and let them pray over him, anointing
him with oil in the name of the Lord: and the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him
up and if he have committed sins, they shall be forgiven him (Jas. 5:14,15).

G. Bishops (overseers).
The King James Version translates the Greek word episcopos (from which is derived our word
"Episcopal") with the English word "BISHOP" A better translation of the word would have been
"OVERSEER," which is the literal meaning. The Church of England influence can be seen in the use of the
word "bishop." In the New Testament, "bishop" and "elder" are names for the same office, as can be seen
clearly from a comparison of Titus 1:5,6 with 1:7-9, and Acts 20:17 with 20:28, where the word "overseer" is
from the same Greek word translated "bishop" in other passages. In New Testament times the bishop or
overseer was over one church; it was not until the second century that the bishop or overseer came to be over
several churches. After the passing of the Apostles, there probably was a need for more extensive
organization; it is regrettable that this trend led to the Roman Hierarchy. (See also 1 Tm. 3:1-9, a passage in
which qualifications for the office of overseer (elder, pastor) are set forth.)

H. Deacons.
The Bible makes it quite clear that the two set offices of the local church were those of the elder and the
"DEACON." Deacons are mentioned directly in only two passages (Phil. 1:1; 1 Tm. 3:8-13); however, rather
detailed qualifications for deacons are set forth in the same chapter where the qualifications for overseers are
given. The Scriptures do not delineate the duties of deacons in the later New Testament church; but it is taken
for granted that their duties had to do with the management of the charities and business affairs of the
churches. The word 'deacon" is from the Greek word diakonos which means "servant." The deacons, then,
served the church in such a way as to free the elders for prayer and the ministry of the Word.
The first deacons were probably the seven who were chosen in the sixth chapter of Acts to serve tables
and administer the charities to the widows of the Jerusalem church. They are not called deacons in Acts
chapter six, but the verb form of the word deacon is found in the clause: 'their widows were neglected in the
daily MINISTRATION" (Acts 6:1). Two of the seven, Philip and Stephen, were also preachers, so it must not
be assumed that deacons performed only menial tasks.

I. Ministers.
The word "MINISTER" comes from the same Greek word that is translated "deacon." But there are a
number of passages where the word diakonos cannot refer to the office of the deacon. For instance, Paul,
writing to the Corinthians, said: "Who then is Paul, and who is Apollos, but MINISTERS by whom ye
believed, even as the Lord gave to every man?" (1 Cor. 3:5). And again, to the Ephesian church: "Whereof I
was made a MINISTER, according to the gift of the grace of God given unto me by the effectual working of

275
His power" (Eph. 3:7). Paul refers to himself as a minister five times, and several times refers to his younger
workers as ministers. The term apparently emphasizes the servanthood role of the preacher. The goal of the
spiritual leaders is that of equipping the saints for "ministry" (Eph. 4:12). All saints are expected to minister
(verb), but the title "minister" (noun) is in every case used only of those called to spiritual leadership. When
the pastor is called "the minister," the title "minister" is being used in a perfectly scriptural way.

J. Leaders (rulers).
The words "rule" and "ruler" are used several times in the King James Version to designate church leaders
(Rom. 12:8; 1 Tm. 5:17; Heb. 13:7,17,24). The New American Standard Version employs the words "lead"
and "leader," which seem more appropriate. "Remember those who LED you, who spoke the Word of God to
you ... Obey your LEADERS and submit to them; for they keep watch over your souls, as those who will give
account ... Greet all your LEADERS and all the saints" (Heb. 13:7,17,24, NASB).
There are some who are prone to depreciate leadership in the Church. That duly constituted and
recognized leadership is a biblical teaching is undeniable: "And we beseech you, brethren, to know them
which labor among you, and are OVER YOU in the Lord, and admonish you; and to esteem them very highly
in love for their work's sake" (1 Thes. 5:12,13a).

V. THE MISSION OF THE CHURCH


A. Preaching and Teaching.
The primary mission of the Church is declared in "The Great Commission," which Jesus gave to the
Apostles before His Ascension. A form of the commission is found in all four Gospels and in the book of
Acts, each writer reporting only a selected part of the total commission. Therefore, it will be necessary to
examine all five occurrences of Jesus' charge to the Church, in order to grasp the full scope of the
commission.
Mark emphasizes the Church's mission to "preach the gospel": ... Go ye into all the world and preach the
gospel to every creature" (Mk. 16:15). The importance of preaching may be indicated by the fact that the
words for preaching are found more than 115 times in the New Testament. There are two principal Greek
words translated "to preach":
(1) kerusso which means "to herald" (as a royal proclamation) and
(2) euangelizo which means "to preach the good news"; each of the above words occurs more than fifty
(50) times. In addition to preaching as a mission of the Church, Mark also accents the supernatural power of
the Holy Spirit that would accompany the preaching of the Gospel (Mk. 16:17-20).
The part of "The Great Commission" reported in Luke's gospel also emphasizes preaching: "And that
repentance and remission of sins should be preached in His name among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem.
And ye are witnesses of these things. And, behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you: but tarry ye in
the city of Jerusalem, until ye be endued with power from on high" (Lk. 24:47-49).
Luke's gospel discloses some of the content of the Church's preaching: "repentance and remission of sins
should be preached in His NAME." This content can be summarized as follows: (1) unbelievers are called
upon to repent of sins (2) the offer of the Gospel is forgiveness of sins (3) the Church's preaching is in the
NAME of Jesus (salvation from sin is by virtue of the Redeeming Work of Jesus). Luke records, both in his
gospel and in Acts, the Lord's charge regarding the necessary preparation for preaching: "But ye shall receive
power, after that the Holy Ghost is come upon you: and ye shall be witnesses unto me both in Jerusalem, and
in all Judea, and in Samaria, and unto the uttermost part of the earth" (Acts 1:8, cf. Lk. 24:49). (See also Jn.
20:21-23.)
According to both Luke and Acts, Jesus commissions the Church's preachers to be His witnesses; they are
not to preach the Gospel as hearsay, but to herald what they have first experienced: "That which we have seen
and heard declare we unto you, that ye also may have fellowship with us: and truly our fellowship is with the

276
Father, and with His Son Jesus Christ" (1 Jn. 1:3). (cf. Lk. 24:48; Acts 1:8; 10:40-43; 1 Cor. 1:17-24; 9:16).

Matthew's account of "The Great Commission" emphasizes the TEACHING mission of the Church:
All authority has been given to Me in heaven and in earth. GO therefore and make disciples of all the
nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, TEACHING them to
observe all things that I have commanded you, and lo, I am with you always, even to the end of the age (Mt.
28:18-20, NKJV).

The dual ministry of the Church of preaching and teaching is evident throughout the book of Acts:
And daily in the temple, and in every house, they ceased not to TEACH and preach Jesus Christ (Acts
5:42).
And they were continually devoting themselves to the apostles' TEACHING (Acts 2:42, NASB).
And when he [Barnabas] had found him [Saul], he brought him unto Antioch. And it came to pass, that a
whole year they assembled themselves with the church, and TAUGHT much people (Acts 11:26a). (See also
Acts 15:35; 18:11; 20:20; 28:31.)
Preaching is the recruiting and motivating ministry of the Church; teaching is the maturing ministry.
Through preaching, new babes are born into God's family; through teaching, the babes are matured from milk
to strong meat. It could be said that the Church's work is twofold: winning and weaning. (1 Cor. 3:1,2; Heb.
5:12-14)

B. Discipling.
"The Great Commission" in Matthew's gospel charged the Church to "Go and TEACH all nations"
(28:19). The Greek word translated "teach" is Sao, from mathetes which means "disciple." A mission of the
Church is that of "discipline all nations." Discipling is more than teaching. One may teach by communicating
a system of precepts. One disciples another by demonstrating truth with example. It is possible to tell others
how to be victorious; but he who disciples others shows them, by example, the victorious life. Those who
merely teach have pupils; those who disciple make followers - first of Jesus, then of the teacher. Paul said,
writing to the Thessalonians:
For our gospel did not come to you in word only, but also in power, and in the Holy Spirit and much
assurance, as you know what kind of men we were among you for your sake. And you became followers of
US and of the LORD, having received the word in much affliction, with joy of the Holy Spirit, so that you
became examples to all in Macedonia and Achaia who believe (1 Thes. 1:5-7, NKJV). The great strength of
the local church is its Christian community life. All learn from one another, draw strength from one another,
and grow together, under a Spirit-filled ministry.

C. Fellowship.
A mission of the Church is to sustain a fellowship of believers. The Early Church was rich in fellowship:
"And they continued steadfastly in the Apostles' doctrine and in FELLOWSHIP" (Acts 2:42). The Greek
word for "fellowship" is koinonia, which means "that which is had in common, or shared," "communion." The
passage in Acts goes on to define "fellowship":
And all that believed were together, and had all things in common" (Acts 2:44). The biblical word
"fellowship" is frequently misunderstood and misapplied. In terms such as "fellowship circle," 'fellowship
hall," and "fellowship day," the meaning of fellowship is related usually to games, dining, and social
interaction. The above mentioned activities, when they conform to biblical ethics, are perfectly innocent and
useful to the life of the Church; but when we reserve the biblical word "fellowship" to refer to them, we sadly
reduce our concept of fellowship (koinonia). The following are scriptural uses of koinonia: "The fellowship
of ministering to the saints" (2 Cor. 8:4b - charities); "They gave to me and Barnabas the right hands of
fellowship" (Gal. 2:9 - acceptance into the Body); "And to make all men see what is the fellowship of the

277
mystery" (Eph. 3:9a participation in the Body); "For your fellowship in the gospel" (Phil. 1:5a - participation
in salvation); "If any fellowship of the Spirit" (Phil. 2:1b - unity which the Spirit effects). Perhaps the Apostle
John, in his first letter, summarizes the clearest applications of biblical fellowship:
That which we have seen and heard declare we unto you, that ye also may have FELLOWSHIP with us:
and truly our fellowship is with the Father, and with His Son Jesus Christ ... If we say that we have fellowship
with Him, and walk in darkness, we lie, and do not the truth: but if we walk in the light, as He is in the light,
we have FELLOWSHIP one with another .... (1 Jn. 1:3,6,7).
Fellowship is, first of all, having a common relationship to the Father and the Son in the Body of Christ,
where we are united by the Spirit in bonds of love, unity, and singleness of purpose. This fellowship of
believers extends to all mutual activities that are God-honoring, including dining together in the "fellowship
hall."

D. Worship.
Jesus said that the Father seeks the worship of those who will worship Him in spirit and in truth (Jn.
4:23). An important mission of the Church is to promote and sustain an atmosphere conducive to worship,
prayer and praise: "But ye are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood, an holy nation, a peculiar people; that
ye should shew forth the PRAISES of him who hath called you out of darkness into His marvelous light. . . "
(1 Pt. 2:9).
In the Old Testament, the worship of God was usually accompanied by the offering of animal sacrifices.
The New Testament Church offers to God the sacrifice of PRAISE: "By Him therefore let us offer the
sacrifice of PRAISE continually, that is, the fruit of our lips giving thanks to His name (Heb. 13:15). "I urge
you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, to present your bodies a living and holy sacrifice, acceptable
to God, which is your spiritual service of worship" (Rom. 12:1, NASB).
It is one of the works of the Holy Spirit to assist the believer in prayer, intercession, worship and praise:
"Likewise the Spirit also helps in our weaknesses: for we do not know what we should pray for as we ought:
but the Spirit Himself makes intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered" (Rom. 8:26, NKJV).
An important aid in worship for the Spirit-filled believer is his prayer language, by which he is able to
worship God more perfectly than he can by the sole means of the human intellect: "For he who speaks in a
tongue does not speak to men but to God ... however in the Spirit he speaks mysteries ... He who speaks in a
tongue edifies himself" (1 Cor. 14:2,4a, NKJV). A spirit of worship, prayer and praise, almost without
exception, has brought revival, renewal and growth to the Church.

E. Missions and Evangelism.


"The Great Commission" implied world evangelization. Jesus intended that the Gospel should be carried
beyond Jerusalem, Judea and Samaria. The Gospel was "good news" for all nations, even for "the uttermost
part of the earth" (Acts 1:8). However, it took a devastating persecution to scatter the Gospel and the
evangelists as far as Antioch (Acts 8:1; 11:19,20). The Church has frequently needed special urging to get on
with her assigned task. William Carey, called the father of modern missions, had to overcome strong
resistance before he was freed to take the Gospel to India. The fact cannot be urged upon the Church too
strongly that all nations have not yet been discipled, and the uttermost part of the earth has not been reached.
Paul, the great missionary, challenged the Church with his testimony:
Through mighty signs and wonders, by the power of the Spirit of God; so that from Jerusalem, and round
about unto Illyricum, I have FULLY preached the gospel of Christ. Yea, so have I strived to preach the
gospel, not where Christ was named, lest I should build upon another man's foundation: but as it is written, To
whom he was not spoken of, they shall see: and they that have not heard shall understand (Rom. 15:19-21).
(See also 1 Cor. 10:14-16; Is. 52:10.)

F. Maturity of the Believer.

278
The Church has not completed her mission with making converts. A great part of the New Testament
pertains to teaching, edifying and maturing the believer. Paul explains very clearly the Lord's purpose for His
Body, the Church:
And He gave some as apostles, and some as prophets, and some as evangelists, and some as pastors and
teachers, for the equipping of the saints for the work of service, to the building up of the body of Christ; until
we all attain to the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, to a MATURE man, to the
measure of the stature which belongs to the fullness of Christ. As a result, we are no longer to be children ...
but ... we are to GROW UP in all aspects into Him, who is the head, even Christ" (Eph. 4:11-15, NASB).
The Bible speaks of growth and maturity in, and by means of, the following: (1) prayer, Col. 4:12; (2) the
Word of God, 1 Pt. 2:2; Col. 1:28; (3) the exercise of faith, 1 Thes. 3:10; (4) patience in testing, Jas. 1:2-4; 1
Pt. 1:7; (5) love, 1 Thes. 1:3; Col. 3:14; 1 Jn. 2:5; 4:12; (6) grace, 2 Pt. 3:18; (7) Christian works, Heb. 13:21;
(8) spiritual gifts, Rom. 1:11, d Heb. 6:1; 1 Cor. 3:1,2; 2 Tm. 2:15.

G. Ministry in the Home.


The mission of the Church extends into the home and concerns the life of the family, which fact is clear
from the following:

1. Jesus had great concern and love for children, Mk. 10:13-16.
2. In his epistles, Paul gives special instructions for all members of the Christian family, Eph. 5:33-6:4;
Col. 3:18-21.
3. The promise of the Holy Spirit was unto believers and their children, Acts 2:39.
4. When Paul made converts, he followed by witness to, or baptism of, the whole family, Acts 16:15,34;
18:8.
5. Church elders and deacons were required to have well regulated families, 1 Tm. 3:4,5,12; Ti. 1:6.
6. Many of the early churches were home churches, where the Gospel influenced the whole family life,
Col. 4:15; Rom. 16:5; 1 Cor. 16:19; Acts 21:4,5,8,9.

H. Ministry to Material Needs.


The Early Church had a sincere concern for the material needs of men, especially the Christian family.
This social concern arose, no doubt, from the teaching of Jesus, cf, Mt. 25:34-46; Lk. 10:25-37. The Church
is not charged to preach a "social gospel," but the Church cannot escape the social implications of the Biblical
Gospel. The Foursquare Church, inspired by the works of the founder, has from the beginning maintained a
commissary work, from which millions have been ministered to materially. That such ministry follows a
scriptural precedent is seen in the following:

1. The church in Jerusalem maintained a food service for widows, and in a time of crisis chose special
leadership from among the most spiritual men to solve the problems, Acts. 6:1-7.
2. When Dorcas of Joppa died, whose ministry was that of sewing garments for the poor and widowed,
Peter raised her from the dead, returning her to her work of charity, Acts 9:36-42.
3. In a time of famine in Judea, the Christians of Antioch, to a man, sent financial assistance, Acts
11:27-30.
4. During a later crisis, Paul and his workers took collections in all the Gentile churches for the poor
saints in Jerusalem.
Much of the book of 2 Corinthians relates to these collections. The passage, "The Lord loveth a cheerful
giver" (2 Cor. 9:7b), has reference to giving for material needs, cf. 2 Cor. 8,9.
5. Special instructions for the care of widows is given in Paul's letter to Timothy, 1 Tm. 5:3-10.
6. Christ's work of Redemption is for the whole person: spirit, soul and body.

279
The Church is the Lord's instrument for implementing His provided blessing. The Church, as well as
individual believers, must reflect the compassion of Jesus, which compassion is often best expressed in
sharing with the less fortunate. James wrote:
If a brother or sister be naked, and destitute of daily food, And one of you say unto them, Depart in peace,
be ye warmed and filled; notwithstanding ye give them not those things which are needful to the body; what
doth it profit? Even so faith, if it hath not works, is dead, being alone" (Jas. 2:15-17).

VI. THE ORDINANCES OF THE CHURCH (SACRAMENTS)

The ORDINANCES of the local church are outward rites or symbolic observances commanded by Jesus,
which set forth essential Christian truths. The term "ordinance" comes from the Latin word ordo, which
means "row" or "order"; then, by extension, "something commanded and enforced by the proper authority."
The ordinances are sometimes called SACRAMENTS. The word "sacrament" originally had as a meaning
"an oath of obedience taken by newly enlisted soldiers." The ordinances can be defined as "the outward sign
of an inward work," or "the visible sign of an invisible work of grace." The ordinances observed by the
Protestant churches are two in number, namely: Water Baptism and The Lord's Supper.
While only two ordinances were clearly and unmistakably commanded by Jesus, it is interesting to note
that during the history of the Church, as many as twelve outward observances have been referred to as
sacraments. The Roman Catholic Church observes seven sacraments, namely: (1) baptism, (2)
confirmation, (3) eucharist (mass), (4) penance, (5) extreme unction (anointing with oil of the sick), (6)
marriage, (7) orders (ordination of priests and consecration of nuns). However, the Early Church Fathers,
generally recognized Baptism and The Lord's Supper as the major sacraments. It was not until the twelfth
century that Peter Lombard (1100-1164), in his Book of Sentences, defined the number of sacraments as
seven (7); and it was not until the Council of Florence in the year of 1439, that the seven sacraments were
formally decreed by the Roman Church. It is important to observe that for more than a thousand years after
Christ, no recognized Christian author declared the number of ordinances to be seven.

A. Water Baptism.
That Jesus established Water Baptism as an ordinance is made clear in "The Great Commission," as
reported by both Matthew and Mark (Mt. 28:19; Mk. 16:16). Jesus, Himself, set an example for His Church
by submitting to baptism by His forerunner, John the Baptist (Mt. 3:13-17). Peter reechoed the command to
be baptized in his sermon on the Day of Pentecost (Acts 2:38,41). Throughout the book of Acts the Apostles
observed the ordinance, baptizing their converts: Acts 8:12; 8:36-38; 9:18; 10:47,48; 16:15; 16:33; 18:8;
19:5,6; 22:16. The spiritual significance of Water Baptism is taught in the epistles (Rom. 6:3; 1 Cor. 10:2;
Gal. 3:27).

1. The MANNER of Water Baptism is by immersion.


This is seen in the meaning of the Greek word baptizo, which clearly means to immerse, even by the
admission of scholars whose churches sprinkle, and by the biblical description of the manner of Jesus' baptism
in the river Jordan.
2. The FORMULA for Water Baptism is clearly stated in "The Great Commission" as " in the name of
the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit."
Statements about being baptized "in the name of Jesus" omit the longer formula, and emphasize the
Christian baptism as distinct from John's baptism.
The following from the Foursquare Declaration of Faith affirms belief in the doctrine of Water Baptism
and explains the significance of the ordinance:

280
We believe that water baptism in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Ghost, according
to the command of our Lord, is a blessed outward sign of an inward work, a beautiful and solemn emblem
reminding us that even as our Lord died upon the cross of Calvary so we reckon ourselves now dead indeed
unto sin, and the old nature nailed to the tree with Him; and that even as He was taken down from the tree and
buried, so we are buried with Him by baptism into His death; that like as Christ was raised up from the dead
by the glory of the Father, even so we should walk in newness of life.

B. The Lord's Supper.


Jesus, at His last Passover, instituted the ordinance of the taking of the bread and the fruit of the vine as a
memorial of His Atoning Death:
"This is my body which is given for you, this do in remembrance of me" (Lk. 22:19). In the book of Acts,
the observance of The Lord's Supper is referred to by the term "the breaking of bread." While the disciples
frequently broke bread as a love feast of fellowship, the feast was concluded with The Lord's Supper (Acts
2:42,46; 20:7,11; 27:35). The clearest evidence that the Church observed The Lord's Supper as a sacrament is
found in the teaching of the Apostle Paul in 1 Corinthians:
For I have received of the Lord that which also I delivered unto you, that the Lord Jesus the same night in
which he was betrayed took bread: and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and said, Take, eat: this is my
body, which is broken for you: this do in remembrance of me. After the same manner also he took the cup,
when he had supped, saying, This cup is the new testament in my blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it, in
remembrance of me. For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's death till he
come (I Cor. 11:23-26). (See also 1 Cor. 10:16-21; 11:20-22,27-34.)

1. Observe the following points relative to the nature of The Lord's Supper:
a) It is an act of obedience to the Lord's command. Whatever the blessings derived from the
observance of the ordinance, it is kept out of obedience to the Head of the Church (1 Cor. 11:23,24).
b) It is a memorial to the Atoning Death and shed blood of Jesus (1 Cor. 11:24; Lk. 22:19).
c) It is a proclamation, an act of confession by the Church, of faith in the efficacy of Christ's
Atoning Work, "ye do shew forth the Lord's death" (1 Cor. 11:26).
d) It is a statement of anticipation of the Return of Christ to finalize His Redeeming Work, 'ye do
shew forth the Lord's death till He come" (1 Cor. 11:26).
e) It is an experience of communion with the Lord in which the participant receives by faith the
strength and blessing of fellowship with the Savior, "The bread which we break, is it not the communion
[koinonia) of the body of Christ?" (1 Cor. 10:16).
f) It is a communion (koinonia) of believers at, the Lord's table, and a statement of the oneness of
the Body of Christ (1 Cor. 10:17).

2. Regarding the nature of the element of The Lord's Supper, there are four views:
a) Transubstantiation, the view of the Roman Catholic Church. According to this view, the
elements, when blessed by the priest, are changed into the actual physical body and blood of Jesus. This view
is contradicted by experience, for it has never been shown by any test that the elements are anything but bread
and the fruit of the vine. It is also contradicted by logic, for Jesus was still in His physical body when He
instituted the ordinance and said of the bread, 'this is my body."
b) Consubstantiation, held by Martin Luther. According to this view, the elements are unchanged,
but the actual body and blood of Jesus are "present with" the elements. These views are nowhere upheld by
Scripture. Further, they encourage superstition and overemphasize the physical over the spiritual blessings of
The Lord's Supper.
c) The observance of the supper is merely a memorial act that mediates no blessing. This is the
other extreme to the Catholic and Lutheran views.

281
d) The elements, when received by faith, mediate to the believer the spiritual benefits of Christ's
Death, held by Calvin and the majority of the reformers. The elements in themselves are only tokens, but
when received by faith, real communion with the Lord is experienced and the benefits of that communion
may be mediated. This seems to be the more scriptural view. (See 1 Cor. 10:16; 11:27,28,29.)
A word needs to be said about the warning against "eating and drinking UNWORTHILY" (I Cor. 11:27-
29). Many believers who have misunderstood these warnings have abstained from The Lord's Supper
unnecessarily. It should be noted that "unworthily" is an adverb modifying the verbs 'eateth" and"drinketh,"
and has to do with the MANNER of partaking, not with the unworthiness of the persons. The warning
referred to the greedy and intemperate manner of the Corinthians described in 1 Corinthians 11:20-22. No
one is "worthy" in himself to have communion with Jesus, but we have the privilege by virtue of the Atoning
Work which the elements symbolize. However, participants need to examine themselves in relation to their
manner of taking, and their attitude toward other believers. Participants, furthermore, should be certain to
discern the Lord's body, and not partake in an irreverent or frivolous manner. Partaking in faith can bring
great blessing, even spiritual and physical healing (1 Cor. 11:29,30).
The Foursquare Declaration of Faith states, regarding The Lord's Supper:
We believe in the commemoration and observing of the Lord's supper by the sacred use of the broken
bread, a precious type of the Bread of Life even Jesus Christ, whose body was broken for us; and by the juice
of the vine, a blessed type which should ever remind the participant of the shed blood of the Savior who is the
True Vine of which His children are the branches; that this ordinance is a glorious rainbow that spans the gulf
of the years between Calvary and the coming of the Lord ....

VII. THE CHURCH AS THE BODY OF CHRIST

While wise, Spirit-directed organization helps the Church to carry out her mission, the Church is not by
nature an organization, but rather, an organism. The Church is a living being, whose Divine life is provided
by the indwelling Spirit of Christ (Rom. 8:9).

A. The Vital Relationship to the Head.


The Lord Jesus, after His earthly mission, ascended to the right hand of the Father; but in a real sense He
is still in the world manifested through His Body, the Church. Paul expresses this relationship as follows:
"And hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the HEAD over all things to the church; which is
his BODY, the FULLNESS of him that filleth all in all" (Eph. 1:22,23).
The Church is Christ's body, by which He fulfills His earthly mission (Christ's fullness). The last two
verses of Mark's gospel express dramatically the relationship of Christ to the Church: "The Lord Jesus
therefore, on the one hand, after talking with them was taken up into heaven, and sat down on the right hand
of God; they on the other hand, going forth, proclaimed on every side, the Lord coworking, and confirming
the Word through closely following signs" (Mk. 16:19,20, Rotherham).
Jesus returned to the Father, but just before He left He promised, "Lo I am with you always." He is with
us, as a head is with a body. He is still working on earth more powerfully than before (Jn. 14:12); the
members of His Church are His arms and legs and mouth. The Church is the extension of the Lord Jesus
Christ. Jesus expressed this relationship with a different metaphor in John chapter fifteen: 'I am the vine, ye
are the branches: he that abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit: for without me ye
can do nothing" (Jn. 15:5).
The branches are to the vine what the body is to the head; in fact, the branches are the body of the vine.
As the branches of the vine bear fruit, so the work of Christ in the world must be done by the body (the
Church); but also, as the branches can do nothing severed from the vine, so the body can accomplish nothing
without the life and direction of the head (the Lord Jesus).

282
B. The Unity of the Body.
One of the strongest emphases of the "body' metaphor is that of the UNITY of the many members of the
Church. The Church (body) of Christ is not merely a collection of individuals who subscribe to its
philosophy; the Church is an organism, of which the members are interrelated parts. Paul describes the unity
of the Church in 1 Corinthians chapter twelve:
But now hath God set the members every one of them in the body, as it hath pleased Him ... But now are
they many members, yet but one body. And the eye cannot say unto the hand, I have no need of you ... And
whether one member suffer, all the members suffer with it; or one member be honored, all the members
rejoice with it (1 Cor. 12:18,20,21,26).
There are many ministries in the Church, but they are all coordinated by the Spirit to achieve one purpose:
"the equipping of the saints for service" (Eph. 4:12); there are many gifts of the Spirit, but they are all
exercised in harmony to accomplish one end: "the edifying of the body of Christ" (1 Cor. 12:4-7; 14:5,12,26);
there are many methodologies employed by the church, but they have one goal: "that the gospel of the
kingdom be preached in all the world for a witness" (Mt. 24:14; 28:19,20; Mk. 16:15).

C. The Importance of Each Member in the Body.


No member of the Body of Christ is unimportant or unnecessary: And the eye cannot say unto the hand, I
have no need of thee: nor again the head to the feet, I have no need of you. Nay, much more those members
of the body, which seem to be more feeble, are necessary ... That there should be no schism in the body; but
that the members should have the same care one for another (1 Cor. 12:21,22,25).
Corinthians chapter twelve, remarks: "No member is less a part of the body than any other member: all
are necessary. Variety of organs, limbs and functions is of the essence of bodily life. No organ could
establish a monopoly in the body by taking over the functions of the others. A body consisting of a single
organ would be a monstrosity.114

D. Submission in the Body.


There are many members of the Body of Christ; but there is but one Head, the Lord Jesus Christ. The
members cannot function properly without full submission to the Head who provides direction to the whole
Body (I Cor. 12:4-7): "And hath put all things under His feet, and gave Him to be head over all things to the
church" (Eph. 1:22). There are four respects in which the Christian believer must practice submission:
1. Submission to God, and to His Son Jesus, Eph. 5:24; Heb. 2:8; 12:9; Jas. 4:7.
2. Submission to the God appointed leaders of the Church, Heb. 13:17; 1 Cor. 16:16; Phil. 2:12; 1
Thes. 5:12,13.
3. Submission one to another in Christ, Eph. 5:21-6:9; 1 Pt. 5:5.
4. Submission to rulers of society, when such submission does not require disobedience to the plain
teaching of Scripture: Acts. 4:19,20; 5:29; Rom. 13:1-7; 1 Pt. 2:13-17.

E. The Body of Christ and the Local Church.


The Universal Body of Christ consists of the total number of genuine Christian believers of all ages, in
Heaven and on earth. It needs to be pointed out, however, that the New Testament Scriptures address all
earthly believers as functioning members of some local church. Unfortunately, there are many professing
Christians who think of themselves as belonging to the "mystical" Body of Christ, who believe that local
church relationship is optional or unnecessary. The following facts argue for the needs of local church
relationship:
1. Jesus assumed that His people would be related to a local church. Because the Church's founding
was yet future, Jesus refers to it by name only twice. The second reference pertained to cases of
disagreements between brethren, in which Jesus instructed: "And if he shall neglect to hear them (witnesses),

283
tell it unto the CHURCH: but if he neglect to hear the church, let him be unto thee as an heathen man and a
publican" (Mt. 18:17). It is obvious that a church that can arbitrate disputes among believers is a local church
to which members are in submission in the Lord.
2. All the epistles of the New Testament are addressed to local churches or to leaders of local
churches.
3. All ministries, which are God's gifts, are given to the local bodies to equip saints for ministry to
one another.
Apostles, prophets, evangelists, pastors and teachers can minister only to saints who assemble together in
fellowship (Eph. 4:11-16).
4. Believers are commanded by Jesus to partake of the holy communion together until His Return
(l Cor. 11:23-26).
5. The operation of the gifts of the Spirit can function only in a local body. Speaking of the
operation of the gifts, Paul said: "Seek that ye may excel to the edifying of the church" (1 Cor. 14:12).
6. As members of the Body of Christ, believers are related not only to Christ, the "Head," but
they are related one to another in the Body. "So we, being many, are one body in Christ, and every one
members one of another" (Rom. 12:5). An arm that decided to sever all relationship with the rest of the body
would be useless, even though it had communication with the head; for it would need blood pumped by the
heart and purified by the lungs and kidneys. (1 Cor. 12:14-17).
7. We are told that God places members in the Body as it pleases Him (1 Cor. 12:18).
8. In order for Christians to carry out the commission of Christ, there must be fellowship, growth
of the visible church, and the mutual work of evangelism and worldwide missions (Acts 2:41-47; 11:26-
30; 13:1-3).

F. Body Ministry.
The concept of the Church as the BODY OF CHRIST has been given new emphasis in recent years. This
new emphasis has led to important insights for worship and ministry. Too often ministry has been viewed as
coming exclusively from a rostrum or pulpit and only by designated clergy. When ministry is so conceived,
the members of the congregation become merely spectators, whose only activity is that of filling the pews.
The Bible picture of body life does not support such a limited view of ministry. God has, indeed, placed
spiritual leadership in the Church to preach and teach; but the object of their preaching, teaching and pastoral
care is that of perfecting the saints to minister one to another and to the world:
And He Himself gave some to be apostles, some prophets, some evangelists, and some pastors and
teachers, for the equipping of the saints for the work of ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ, till we
all come to the unity of the faith and the knowledge of the Son of God, to a perfect man, to the measure of the
stature of the fullness of Christ; that we should no longer be children ... but, speaking the truth in love, may
grow up in all things into Him who is the head - Christ (Eph. 4:11-15, NKJV)

From this concept of body ministry as expressed by the Apostle Paul, several facts are clear:
1. It is the Lord's intention that every member of the Body of Christ should have a ministry.
Every member of a human body contributes to the preservation, growth, health and activity of that body;
if some members do not function disease results. Many of the ills of the church have been the result of a non-
functioning membership. To achieve total participation in the work and worship of the church, God has
provided spiritual leadership to equip and mature the saints, and the gifts of the Spirit to empower and give
direction to them. (The Bible mentions some thirty (30) gifts of the Spirit which will be treated specifically in
another section.)
2. The central purpose of body ministry is that of the edification of the whole church (Eph. 4:12).
The test of the value and validity of body ministry, and of the exercise of the gifts, is in whether they
edify the Body of Christ. Peter wrote: "As every man hath received the gift, even so minister the same one to

284
another, as good stewards of the manifold grace of God" (1 Pt. 4:10). Ministry and gifts are a stewardship.
The believer's gift is not given primarily for his edification; it is a stewardship for others, for the church
family.
3. When the whole body ministers in unity and love, the result is spiritual and numerical growth:
"From whom the whole body, joined and knit together by what every joint supplies, according to the
effective working by which every part does its share, causes GROWTH of the body for the edifying of itself
in love' (Eph. 4:16, NKJV). Much is being said today about church growth. Optimum growth of the church
cannot be accomplished by the efforts of church leaders, pastors, evangelists and missionaries alone; ideal
growth results only when the entire church ministers.
4. When the whole church ministers, there must be present the adhesive force of LOVE.
Unless total church participation is motivated by, and carried out in, a spirit of love and submission to
leadership, the growth accomplished may be transient and the ministry performed may be less than edifying.
"Since you have purified your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit in sincere love of the brethren, love
one another fervently with a pure heart" (1 Pt. 1:22, NKJV). (See also, 1 Cor. 13; Gal. 5:13; Eph. 4:2,3,15,16;
3:17-19; Phil. 2:1-5; Col. 3:12-15; 1 Thes. 5:12,13.)

VIII. THE CHURCH AND THE KINGDOM OF GOD

The phrases "kingdom of heaven" and "kingdom of God" are found more than eighty (80) times in the
New Testament. The kingdom of God is obviously an important subject. Several questions arise, however, in
relation to the identity and manifestation of the kingdom of God: What is meant by the word "kingdom"? Is
the kingdom of God an inner spiritual reality, or is it an outwardly visible rule? Who are the subjects of the
kingdom? Are the kingdom of God and the kingdom of heaven identical? What relationship does the Church
have to the kingdom of God? Is the kingdom of God present or future? These and other questions will be
addressed, and as far as possible, answers from Scripture will be supplied.

A. The Meaning of the Word "Kingdom."


The Greek word basileia from which the word "KINGDOM" is derived has two principle meanings: (1)
"a king's rule, reign, dominion, or authority" and (2) "the territory or people over whom a king reigns." W.E.
Vine defines basileia as follows: "Basileia is primarily an abstract noun, denoting sovereignty, royal power,
dominion, e.g., Rev. 17:18, translated 'which reigneth,'lit.'hath a kingdom'(R.V. marg.); then, by metonymy, a
concrete noun, denoting the territory or people over whom a king rules" e.g., Matt. 4:8; Mark 3:24 .115 In the
Greek Old Testament, basileia translates the Hebrew word malkut which likewise has the two meanings: (1)
"royal reign" (Dn. 1:1) and then, (2) "king's domain." The word "kingdom" is used most frequently in the
New Testament with the first meaning of "reign" or "royal power." Regarding the meaning of the word
"kingdom," Dr. Ladd says: "The primary meaning of the New Testament word for kingdom, basileia, is 'reign'
rather than 'realm' or 'people 'A great deal of attention in recent years has been devoted by critical scholars
to this subject, and there is practically unanimous agreement that 'regal power, authority 'is more basic to
basileia than 'realm' or 'people.'

B. Is The Kingdom of God Present or Future?


The kingdom of God is both present and future. The kingdom as the realm of God's people of all
dispensations, over which Christ will reign in righteousness, is yet future; it will begin with the Second
Coming of Christ (2 Tm. 4:1; Rv. 11:15). The kingdom as the "reign" or "royal power" of God is present in
the Redeeming Work of Jesus who came to destroy the works of the Devil. Dr. Ladd states:
The kingdom has come in that the powers of the future kingdom have already come into history and into
human experience through the supernatural ministry of the Messiah which has effected the defeat of Satan.

285
Men may now experience the reality of the reign of God. In the future eschatological kingdom Satan will be
utterly destroyed, cast into a lake of fire and brimstone (Rev. 20:10) that men may be freed from every
influence of evil. However, God's people need not wait for the coming of the future kingdom to know what it
means to be delivered from Satanic power. The presence of Christ on earth had for its purpose the defeat of
Satan, his binding, so that God's power may be a vital reality in the experience of those who yield to God's
reign by becoming the disciples of Jesus. In Christ, the kingdom, in the form of its power, has come among
men.7

C. Is The Kingdom Inward and Spiritual, or Outwardly Visible?


The future (eschatological) kingdom will be an outwardly manifested kingdom over which Christ will
reign in power and glory. It will prevail over the whole earth and will fulfill the Old Testament prophecies to
the faithful remnant of Israel, concerning the Messiah's reign upon the throne of David (Is. 9:6,7; 11:1-10;
24:23; 32:1; Dn. 2:44; 7:18,27; Mi. 4:7). The New Testament saints will rule and reign with Christ as kings
and priests (Mt. 25:21,23; 1 Tm. 6:14,15; Rv. 5:9,10; 19:14-16; 20:4-6). The one-thousand-year reign of
Christ over the earth is known as His "Millennial Reign." Although the word "millennium" does not occur in
the Bible, it is the Latin word for "thousand years" (Rv. 20:4-6).
On the other hand, the present (soteriological) kingdom of Christ is spiritual and invisible, for it consists
of the kingship, power and authority of Jesus as Savior and Destroyer of Satan. That the kingdom of Jesus
was spiritual is made clear by two statements of Jesus. In the first, to the Pharisees, in answer to their
question about when the kingdom would come, He said: "The kingdom of God cometh not with
OBSERVATION: Neither shall they say, Lo here! or, lo there! for behold, the kingdom of God is WITHIN
you or in your midst" (Lk. 17:20b,21). In the second, to Pilate who asked Him if he were a king, He
answered: "My kingdom is not of this world" (Jn. 18:36,37). Jesus goes on to say, however, that He was born
to be a king over the realm of Divine Truth and that 'everyone that is of the truth heareth my voice." Jesus said
to Nicodemus, "Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God ... Except a man be born of
water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God" (Jn. 3:3,5). The born again ones enter into
His kingdom of the Divine saving truth of the Gospel. Jesus' present kingdom on earth is a kingdom of
GOSPEL, a fact which relates to the reason why the Gospel is called the "gospel of the kingdom" (Mt.
4:23,24; 9:15; 24:14; Mk. 1:14; Lk. 4:43). (c.f., Acts 1:3; 8:12; 19:8; 28:23,31.) Those who accept the Gospel
of Jesus also accept Him as sovereign Lord and Master and enter into His kingdom becoming "citizens of
heaven" (Phil. 3:20, NIV, NASB). The Gospel is the central message of Jesus' present kingdom or
"kingship," but this is not an abstract or passive gospel, but a dynamic gospel that is "the power of God unto
salvation" (Rom. 1:16). Writing to the Thessalonians about the Gospel, Paul said: "For our GOSPEL did not
come to you in word only, but also in power, and in the Holy Spirit and with full conviction' (1 Thes. 1:5,
NASB). The result of Paul's preaching to the Thessalonians was that they "turned to God from idols to serve
the living and true God" (1 Thes. 1:9b). That the believer presently enters the kingdom of God is clearly
declared: "For He delivered us from the domain of darkness, and transferred us to the kingdom of His dear
Son" (Col. 1:13, NASB). Jesus plainly declared that He brought the "kingdom" into this present age in the
form of "dominion" over Satan and his realm of darkness: "But if I with the finger of God cast out devils, no
doubt the kingdom of God is come upon you" (Lk. 11:20). The spiritual nature of the present "reign" of God
is affirmed by Paul in Romans: "For the kingdom of God is not meat and drink; but righteousness, and peace,
and joy in the Holy Ghost" (Rom. 14:17).

D. Are The Church and the Kingdom of God Identical?


The final and complete manifestation of the "eschatological" kingdom of God is yet future; but the
power, authority and message of the kingdom were introduced into the present age by Jesus, and bestowed
upon the Church, to whose Apostles He said, "Upon this rock will I build my church; ... And I will give unto
thee the KEYS OF THE KINGDOM of heaven" (Mt. 16:18,19a). The kingdom of God as a "domain" of God
is yet to come, but the kingdom as "dominion" has already broken into the present age and the Church
exercises the power of the kingdom. The Church is not identical to the kingdom of God, for the kingdom is

286
larger than the Church; however the Church is the present instrument of the kingdom and will inherit the
kingdom (Jas. 2:5; 2 Pt. 1:11).
The ultimate kingdom of God will include, not only the Church, but the Old Testament saints, the future
regathered remnant of Israel, and the righteous nations that will be a part of the Millennial Reign of Jesus (Mt.
25:32,33; Rv. 20:4,7,8; Is. 66:18-23; Jer. 3:16-18; 23:3-6; 31:10-12; Zec. 14:8,9).
E. Is the Kingdom of Heaven Different from the Kingdom of God?
Some Bible scholars (including the Scofield Chain Reference Bible editors, see footnotes on Mt. 3:2)
teach that "the kingdom of heaven," found only in Matthew, usually refers to professing Christendom, while
"the kingdom of God," used by Mark, Luke and John, refers to God's sovereign reign. There is no doubt that
Jesus, in His parables, sometimes extends the "kingdom" concept to include the sphere of outward profession
(Tares and Wheat, Mt. 13:24-30); however, a close comparison of the two terms "kingdom of God" and
"kingdom of heaven," as they are used in all four Gospels, will show that they have the same meaning. For
instance, in the Beatitudes, Matthew's gospel says that the poor will inherit the kingdom of heaven, while in
Luke's gospel they will inherit the kingdom of God (Mt. 5:3; Lk. 6:20); in Matthew, the disciples are sent
forth to preach that the kingdom of heaven is at hand; while in Luke, they announce that the kingdom of God
is at hand (Mt. 10:6,7; Lk. 9:2). (See also Mt. 4:17; Mk. 1:15.) In the very context where Jesus refers to the
parables (including that of the Tares and Wheat) as teaching the "mysteries of the kingdom," Matthew's
gospel refers to them as mysteries of the kingdom of heaven (13:11), while in Mark's gospel (4:11) they are
mysteries of the kingdom of God. In one passage in Matthew, Jesus uses both terms in the same figure of
speech with exactly the same meaning (Mt. 19:23,24); in one sentence, "it is hard for a rich man to enter the
kingdom of heaves'; in the next, "it is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for the rich
man to enter the kingdom of God." It is obvious from these comparisons that the terms "kingdom of heaven"
and "kingdom of God" were completely interchangeable in usage.

IX. OTHER METAPHORS OF THE CHURCH

The metaphors of the Church as the "body of Christ" and as "a holy nation," treated above, were given
special consideration: The Church as the Body of Christ because of its scriptural prominence and
contemporary application; the Church as a holy nation or "kingship" because of differences in interpretation
of the word "kingdom." However, the metaphors applied to the Church in Scripture are many, and properly
so, because no one metaphor can fully express the relationship of believers to Christ, to one another, and to
the world. Treatment will be given to twenty-four (24) additional metaphors, each of which adds something
to the total concept of the CHURCH.

A. The Church as the Lord's Family.


Jesus introduces us to the family relationship, teaching us to pray "Our Father Who art in heaven" (Mt.
6:9; Lk. 11:2). God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, is also OUR Father. Jesus prayed using the Aramaic
word ABBA; according to Romans 8:15, the believer in the spirit of adoption cries "Abba, Father." If we,
together with our Lord Jesus, call God "Father," then Jesus is our elder brother in the family of God (Heb.
2:10,11). The author of Hebrews declares that believers are members of God's family: "But Christ was
faithful as a Son in the household of His own Father, and we are members of this household [family, Beck] if
we hold on to the end" (Heb. 3:6, Phillips). As families are normally proud of the family name, so the Church
family exults in the Father's name (Eph. 3:14,15). As families receive an inheritance from the father, so the
Church awaits the heavenly Father's promised inheritance (Rom. 8:17). As good families observe a certain
pattern of conduct, so there is a given standard of behavior for God's household (1 Tm. 3:15). In the Old
Testament, the father of each household was, in effect, the priest over the household (Nm. 7:2); Jesus has
become the High Priest over God's Church family (Heb. 10:21-23; 2:17,18).
The idea of the Church as God's family and household is derived from the Old Testament where God's

287
people are the house (family) of Israel, a nation grown from the family of Jacob, nurtured through family
culture. That the Church is called God's family and household testifies to the basic importance of the family
as a societal institution. In the New Testament, especially in Acts, much is made of the effect of the Gospel
upon entire families: Acts 2:46; 5:42; 12:12; 16:15,33,34; 21:8,9; 1 Cor. 1:16; 16:15; 2 Tm. 4:19.
Although in the Old Testament, God is spoken of as the Father of the whole house of Israel (Is. 5:7; Ps.
98:3), He is never referred to as the Father of an individual. Apparently, calling God "Father" is a privilege
reserved for believers in Jesus Christ the Son.

B. The Church as a Fellowship of Believers.


The Greek word for "fellowship" is koinonia, which means "those having something in common." It came
to be applied to "those belonging to a society." Koinonia was applied to the Church as those having a common
salvation through a common faith in God and in His Son Christ Jesus: "That which we have seen and heard
we declare to you, that you also may have fellowship with us; and truly our fellowship is with the Father and
with His Son Jesus Christ" J Jn. 1:3, NKJV; c.f. I Cor. 1:9). As soon as the Church came into being, a strong
fellowship of faith, worship and service was established: 'And they continued steadfastly in the apostles'
doctrine and FELLOWSHIP, and in breaking of bread and in prayers" (Acts 2:42). The metaphor of the
"family" stresses the idea of a common "Father;" the metaphor of the "fellowship" stresses the idea of a
common mission, purpose, worship and action.
In America there is a strong inclination to privacy and individualism, but the Great Seal of the United
States contains the motto, E Pluribus Unum, meaning "in many one," one nation indivisible. Only a strong
sense of unity makes a great society. The Church is God's new society, held together by the unity of the
Spirit. Luke says about the apostolic church:
'And all that believed were together, and had all things common" (Gr., koinos) (Acts 2:44). The book of
Ephesians is the New Testament epistle in which the doctrine of the Church is most fully developed.
Ephesians does not use the word koinonia, but it is the only New Testament book to use the term "UNITY"
(Eph. 4:3-6,13). The Church as God's koinonia stresses the idea of a "society" whose primary characteristics
are unity and love. One practical expression of the Church's love was that of sharing with the needy.
Koinonia is sometimes translated "communicate," with the meaning of extending material help to the poor
and to those overtaken by misfortune. (See Phil. 4:14; 1 Tm. 6:18; Heb. 13:16; also Acts 2:45; 2 Cor. 8:4;
9:13; Gal. 2:10; Rom. 12:13.) The church's koinonia (also translated "communion") is celebrated at The
Lord's Supper, which symbolizes our common redemption by Christ's Atoning Death on the Cross (I Cor.
10:16,17; 11:23-34). John R.W. Stott, in a new commentary on Ephesians, wrote concerning its message:
The letter focuses on what God did through the historical work of Jesus Christ and does through His Spirit
today, in order to build His new society in the midst of the old. We have been raised from spiritual death,
exalted to heaven and seated with Him there. We have also been reconciled to God and to each other. As a
result, through Christ, and in Christ, we are nothing less than God's society, the single new humanity which
He is creating and which includes Jews and Gentiles on equal terms. We are the family of God the Father, the
body of Jesus Christ His Son, and the temple and dwelling place of the Holy Spirit. Therefore we are to
demonstrate plainly and visibly by our new life the reality of this new thing which God has done: first by the
unity ... of our common life, secondly by the purity and love of our everyday behavior.

C. The Church as a Team of Athletes.


Athletic events were as common in the Greek and Roman world as they are today. Paul, who was a keen
observer, frequently used the "athletic" metaphor. (See 1 Cor. 9:24-26; Gal. 2:2; 5:7; Phil. 2:16; 2 Tm. 2:5;
4:7; Heb. 12:1; 1 Tm. 6:12). The passage with the athletic metaphor that best applies to the Church is: 'That
ye stand fast in one spirit, with one mind STRIVING TOGETHER for the faith of the gospel" (Phil. 1:27).
The Greek word translated"striving together" is sunathleo, from athleo (our "athletics") meaning to "compete
as an athlete," and sun which means @with" or "together." Paul wants to hear from the Philippians that they
are in unity, 'playing as a team." The Church's greatest advancement and growth has not been the result of

288
individual efforts, but the result of the mutual effort and teamwork of the whole Family of God. If Christian
believers are like a team of athletes, they will display such characteristics as: dedication, teamwork,
cooperation, self-denial, self-control and unity.

D. The Church as the Lord's Army.


The idea of the Church as an army would probably not be a pleasant one for many, particularly for young
people. However, the Bible often refers to the battle against the powers of darkness in which the Church is
engaged. Some of our aversion to the military metaphor is removed when we remember that "the weapons of
our warfare are not carnal, but mighty through God to the pulling down of strong holds; casting down
imaginations ... and bringing into captivity every thought to the obedience of Christ" (2 Cor. 10:4,5). The
believer is further exhorted: "Put on the whole armor of God, that ye may be able to stand against the wiles of
the devil. For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the
rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high places" (Eph. 6:11,12). The Church
is engaged in a real warfare, but Christ is our Captain and we are assured of victory; in fact, Satan is already a
defeated foe. (See 2 Tm. 2:3,4; 1 Tm. 1:18; Eph. 6:10-17; 1 Cor. 9:7; 1 Pt. 2:11; Rv. 19:11-21; 20:7). The
Church on earth is called the church militant; the Church in Heaven is called the church triumphant.

E. The Church as the Lord's Flock.


The pastoral metaphor is a very familiar one. The spiritual leader of the local church is usually called the
"PASTOR" and the congregation is frequently referred to as the "FLOCK". The first eighteen verses of the
tenth chapter of John speak of Christ as the Good Shepherd and of His followers as the sheep of His fold.
Although the word "pastor" as the spiritual leader is found only once in the New Testament, both Paul and
Peter give vivid examples of the pastoral metaphor: "Take heed therefore unto yourselves, and to all the flock
... to feed [shepherd] the church of God" (Acts 20:28); "Feed [shepherd] the flock of God which is among you
... being examples to the flock; and when the chief Shepherd shall appear, ye shall receive a crown of glory
that fadeth not away" (1 Pt. 5:2-4). Peter would well remember the words of Jesus, spoken after the
Resurrection, which were three times repeated: "Lovest thou me?", "Feed my lambs" and "feed my sheep"
(Jn. 21:15-17). (See Ps. 23:1; 80:1; 100:3; 2 Sm. 7:7; Jer. 31:10; Mk. 6:34; Eph. 4:11; Heb. 13:20; Rv. 7:17.)

F. The Church as the Lord's School.


More than fifty (50) times Jesus is called or referred to as "Master" or 'Teacher" (both from the Greek
word didaskalos, from the verb didasko which means "to teach") or "Rabbi." The Gospels have much more to
say about Jesus as a Teacher than as a Preacher. That the local church was intended to be a teaching place is
clearly inferred by The Great Commission: "Having gone, then, DISCIPLE all the nations, baptizing them
into the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit, TEACHING them to observe all things
whatsoever I commanded you; and behold, I am with you all the days until the completion of the age" (Mt.
28:19,20, IGEB) (cf. NIV, NASB, NKJV, RSV, JB, etc. on Mt. 28:19). Jesus used two different words for
"teach" in His commission: the first is matheteuo (28:19), meaning "to make disciples"; and the second
didasko (28:20), which is the common word for "to teach." The emphatic term in the commission is "make
disciples"; "go" and "teaching" are participles which are subordinate to the main verb, "make disciples."
Making disciples involved both teaching and preaching; but it required more, namely, bringing the adherents
to a level of discipleship to which the teachers had been brought. Teaching and preaching may often fall on
deaf ears, but he who disciples brings his followers by word and example to be like himself. However, we do
not make men our disciples, but disciples of Jesus.
Jesus' method of discipline is clearly revealed in a passage in Mark's gospel: "And He went up on the
mountain and called to Him those He Himself wanted, and they came to Him. Then He appointed twelve,
that they might be with Him and that He might send them out to preach, and to have power to heal sicknesses
and to cast out demons" (Mk. 3:13-15, NKJV). Mark lists three aspects of making disciples: (1) "that they
might BE WITH HIM" (learning by example) (2) "that He might send them out TO PREACH" (learning to

289
communicate) and (3) "and to have power to HEAL sicknesses and to CAST OUT DEMONS" (learning to
minister). None of these aspects is learned by mere verbal instruction; the pupil must imbibe of his master's
spirit, as Elisha took upon himself the mantle of his teacher, Elijah. The word "disciple" was the first name
given to the early Christians (Acts 11:26). The crowning virtue that characterizes one as a disciple of Jesus is
that of LOVE On. 13:35) (See also: Mk. 8:34; Jn. 1:43; 21:19-22; Lk. 5:11,27,28; 1 Thes. 1:6,7; 1 Pt. 2:21;
5:3; 1 Tm. 1:16; 4:12; Ti. 2:7).

G. The Church as Servant or Steward.


The principal words of church life are servanthood words: "minister" or "ministry" from the Greek
diakonos, diakonia which means "servant, service," probably originally "one who served tables" (Jn. 12:26);
"servant" from doulos, meaning "slave" (Mt. 24:45; 25:14; Gal. 5:13); "steward" from oikonomos, who was
the "servant who administered the household" (Lk. 12:42; 1 Cor. 4:1,2; Ti. 1:7; 1 Pt. 4:10). Two other words
translated 4 1 minister" are huperetes, which originally meant "a servant who rowed a ship" (Acts 13:5), and
leitourgos, meaning a "public servant" who served the community at his own expense (Rom. 15:16).
That all Christian officers, ministers, workers and leaders are SERVANTS is clearly seen from the
following:
(1) The example Jesus set by assuming the place of a servant (Mk. 10:42-45; Mt. 20:27,28).
(2) The spirit of the world is to lord it over other people; the Lord's ministers serve one another (1
Pt. 5:3; 1 Cor. 9:19; Gal. 5:13; Lk. 22:24-28).
(3) The believer's service is a stewardship of which he will give account (Mt. 25:14-30), and the
greatest virtue in stewards is to be found faithful (1 Cor. 4:1,2; Mt. 25:21).
(4) Believers are to be in subjection to one another, and to those who are placed over them in the
Lord; furthermore, leadership and guidance are ministries in themselves (Eph. 5:21; 1 Thes. 5:12; Acts
20:28; 1 Pt. 5:2,3; Heb. 13:7,17,24).
(5) Paul, who had apostolic authority, called himself a "servant of Jesus Christ" (Rom. 1:1).
(6) Words expressing servanthood are used more than 300 times in the New Testament.
(7) The charge to all mature believers is to minister, that is, to serve one another (Eph. 4:12).

H. The Church as a Building.


The metaphor of the Church as a building is suggested in the following scripture passages: 1 Cor. 3:9-15;
Eph. 2:20-22; Mt. 16:18; 21:42; 1 Pt. 2:4-7; Lk. 6:46-49; Acts 4:11; Rom. 15:20; Ps. 118:22. From these
scriptures, a number of architectural figures are derived:
(1) Christ is the Foundation and the "Chief cornerstone" of the Church; it is worthy of note that Psalms
118:22, "The stone which the builders refused is become the head of the corner," quoted by Peter in I Peter
2:7, is found five (5) times in the New Testament: Mt. 21:42; Mk. 12:10,11; Lk. 20:17; Acts 4:11. (See also
Is. 8:14; 28:16; Dn. 2:34,35; Rom. 9:32,33.)
(2) Believers are the building materials or "lively stones."
(3) Ministers are said to be builders, Christ being the master Builder and Architect.
(4) There are no isolated "stones," all are built into the building.
(5) Believers must take heed as to what kinds of materials they are, and how they build (1 Cor. 3:9-15).

I. The Church as a Mystery.


One of Paul's strongest concepts of the Church was that of the Church as "mystery. It must be noted that
the Bible word "mystery" has a different meaning from that attached to it in modern English. In ancient
Greece, the mysteries were secrets of the mystery religions, revealed only to those initiated into them. The
secrets were not mysterious in the modern use of the term; they were clearly understandable by the initiated.
God's mysteries are truths that could be known only by Divine revelation concerning Redemption and the

290
Church; they are clearly revealed to believers in the Scriptures. One of the mysteries is the Church, which
was not revealed in the Old Testament. The prophets predicted that God would bless the Gentiles, but they
did not reveal that Gentile believers would share equally with Israel in the Body of Christ.
To be specific, that the Gentiles are fellow-heirs and fellow-members of the body, and fellow-partakers of
the promise in Christ Jesus through the Gospel (Eph. 3:4-6; NASB; Col. 1:25-27). Paul considered that God
had given him a special ministry to declare the doctrine of the church as mystery (Eph. 3:3,4). The glory of
this "mystery" is said to be the truth and fact of "Christ in you, the hope of glory" (Col. 1:27).

J. The Church as the Lord's Field.


The Bible frequently employs the agricultural metaphor. Paul wrote to the Corinthian church: "Ye are
God's husbandry [field]" (1 Cor. 3:6-9). In God's field (the Church) there are planters, cultivators and reapers,
but it is really God who gives the increase. Workers must not quarrel over their relative importance; God
calls and places each in his Divinely determined office. The workers are indispensable, but the Divine
"husbandman" gives the vine its life and growth (Jn. 15:1,2). Diligent work in God's field brings reward; Paul
wrote to Timothy: "The hardworking farmer ought to be the first to receive his share of the crops" (2 Tm. 2:6,
NASB). The agricultural parables in Matthew chapter thirteen speak of the seed (the Word), different soils
(hearers of the Word), and varying degrees of yield: thirty, sixty, and one hundred fold (Mt. 13:3-8,18-23).

K. The Church as a Royal Priesthood.


Peter introduces the metaphor of the Church as a royal priesthood: You ... are being built up a spiritual
house, a holy PRIESTHOOD, to offer up spiritual sacrifices acceptable to God through Jesus Christ (1 Pt. 2:5,
NKJV). But you are a chosen generation [race],a royal PRIESTHOOD, a holy nation, His own special
people, that you may proclaim the praises of Him who called you out of darkness into His marvelous light (I
Pt. 2:9, NKJV).
The Church no longer needs priests, in the Old Testament sense, to offer up animal sacrifices; Christ
Jesus has made, once for all, the perfect Atoning Sacrifice of Himself for our Redemption. The Church,
however, offers up "spiritual sacrifices" of praise, worship and thanksgiving to God (Heb. 13:15). The
Church also intercedes and prays for rulers and all Mankind (1 Tm. 2:1-4).
One of the great truths of the Church is that of the "priesthood of all believers." Every believer in Christ
has access to the throne of God by the merits of Jesus: "For through Him we both have access by one Spirit to
the Father" (Eph. 2:14-18, NKJV). (See also Heb. 4:14-16.)
As "priests," believers have been given a ministry of reconciliation: "God ... has given us the ministry of
reconciliation ... and has committed to us the word of reconciliation. Therefore we are ambassadors for
Christ, as though God were pleading through us: we implore you on Christ's behalf, be reconciled to God" (2
Cor. 5:18-20, NKJV). In consecration, the believer offers himself to God as a "living sacrifice" holy and
acceptable (Rom. 12:1). Other sacrifices which the believer offers to God are: "brotherly love" (Eph. 5:1,2),
"good works" (Heb. 13:16), "material possessions" to assist others (Heb. 13:16), and "ministry" for others
(Phil. 2:17).

L. The Church as the Bride of Christ.


One of the most attractive metaphors of the Church is that of the Church as the BRIDE of Christ. This
metaphor is used by John the Baptist, (Jn. 3:29), by the Apostle Paul (I Cor. 11:2; Eph. 5:21-32); and by the
Apostle John (Rv. 19:7-9). There is a strong relationship between this metaphor and that of the Church as the
Body of Christ. The following applications may be drawn from the analogy of the Church as Christ's bride:
(1) It provides a pattern for relationship between Christian husbands and wives.
(2) Wives are to be in submission to their husbands as the Church is to Christ, and as believers are one
to another (Eph. 5:21,22), not because the wife is inferior, less worthy, or less capable; responsibility for
spiritual leadership in the home must be established, therefore the husband is assigned that responsibility

291
which he bears with the indispensable support of the wife and mother.
(3) Husbands are to love their wives as Christ loves the Church, as much as they love themselves, and
even enough to die for her (Eph. 5:25-29); if both wives and husbands comply with this pattern, no one is
disadvantaged in the marriage relationship.
(4) This figure portrays the great love which Christ has for His Church as His own bride, and which the
Church experiences waiting for the coming of the Bridegroom.

M. The Church as the Lord's Embassy.


Paul calls himself the Lord's ambassador, I am an ambassador in chains" (Eph. 6:20, NKJV); he also
includes the believers with himself in this ambassadorship, "Now then we are ambassadors for Christ" (2 Cor.
5:20). Several applications may be made from this figure: (1) we are the ambassadors of our King who
dispatches us on a Divine mission of peace (2) as an ambassador delivered on behalf of his sovereign "terms"
for peace (Lk. 14:31,32), likewise the Church announces to the world the terms of reconciliation to God,
which are faith in Christ and surrender to Him as Lord. The Lord has given to the Church the ministry of
reconciliation (2 Cor. 5:18-21).

N. The Church as the Pillar and Ground of Truth.


The Church supports the truth of the Gospel and lifts it on high. Paul wrote to Timothy concerning the
Church: "But in case I am delayed, I write so that you may know how one ought to conduct himself in the
household of God, which is the church of the living God, the PILLAR AND SUPPORT OF THE TRUTH" (1
Tm. 3:15, NASB). In the following verse, Paul went on to give what may have been a poetic doctrinal
expression of the "mystery of godliness" which was widely used in the Early Church (v.16). The Church is to
safeguard sound doctrine and to lift it on high by the proclamation of the Gospel and by exemplary conduct.

O. The Church as the Lord's Sanctuary.


A number of scripture passages support the metaphor of the Church as a SANCTUARY or TEMPLE.
From those passages practical applications are made:
(1) the Lord does not abide in buildings made with hands, but in His people as a Church (Acts 17:24; 1
Cor. 3:16; 1 Kgs. 8:27; Is. 66:1,2);
(2) the Church is the Lord's sanctuary; He dwells where His people are gathered together in His name
(Mt. 18:20);
(3) the temple was a SANCTUARY, a HOLY separated building, dedicated exclusively to the worship
and service of God; likewise the Church is the TEMPLE of the Holy Spirit, the sanctuary where the Lord
dwells; therefore, the members of the Church are called "saints" or "holy ones" (1 Cor. 3:17; Eph. 2:21,22; 1
Pt. 2:4,5).
Peter says of the believers: 'As living stones, are being built up a spiritual house" (1 Pt. 2:5, NASB). In
the figure, stones are part of a building; but they are living stones and therefore part of a household or family;
not just any family or any building, but a sanctuary and dwelling place for the Lord.

P. The Church as Pilgrims.


This metaphor defines the Church's relationship to this present world with the following applications:
(1) believers are not really "at home" in this world, nor are they to be "conformed to this world;" their true
citizenship is in Heaven (Phil. 3:20; Rom. 12:2);
(2) believers are said to sojourn here as pilgrims and strangers (Heb. 11:13);
(3) however, the church members, though pilgrims, are commissioned to witness to this world and to win
from the world citizens for Christ's kingdom (1 Pt. 2:11,12; Col. 1:12-14; Acts 1:8);
(4) the believers' goal is the coming "city of God" (Heb. 13:14): "For here we have no continuing city, but

292
we seek one to come."
Q. The Church as The Way.
In the book of Acts, the life of the Church is called the WAY, and believers are called "those of the
WAY": 'And desired of him letters to Damascus to the synagogues, that if he found any of this WAY,
whether they were men or women, he might bring them bound unto Jerusalem'. (Acts 9:2). The Church as the
Body of Christ is the WAY, for Christ is the WAY, the TRUTH and the LIFE, no one comes to the Father
except by Him Un. 14:6). The following things are stated about the WAY in the book of Acts:
(1) the WAY of God is a persecuted way (22:4);
(2) it is often spoken evil of (19:9);
(3) it is called heresy by some (24:14);
(4) Paul confessed joyfully to Felix that he was of that WAY (24:14);
(5) when the Church is mighty in witness and in power as it was in Ephesus, it will cause 'no small stir,"
for the WAY of God will be a disturbing element in a society ruled over by the powers of darkness: "There
arose no small stir about the WAY" (19:23).

R. The Church as the Lord's Inheritance.


In the first chapter of Ephesians, Paul makes the remarkable statement: "That ye may know what is ... the
glory of HIS INHERITANCE in the saints" (Eph. 1:18). This is often interpreted to refer to OUR inheritance,
but a careful reading shows that the verse refers to the Lord's inheritance which is the saints or the Church. In
verses eleven and fourteen, the same truth is found. Although the King James Version renders verse eleven:
"In whom we have obtained an inheritance'; the Revised Version reads: "In whom we were made a heritage."
The great Greek scholar, B.F Wescott, renders Ephesians 1:11a: "We were also made God's portion."9 The
Living Bible translates verse eleven: 'Because of what Christ has done we have become GIFTS to God that
He delights in." F.F. Bruce, commenting on the RV rendering of verse eleven, says:
'In whom we were made a heritage" - This is a preferable rendering to that of A.V., "in whom we have
obtained an inheritance." Both statements are true, but the apostle is thinking here of "God's own possession"
(verse 14), "His inheritance in the saints" (verse 18). So, in Old Testament days, it was revealed that the
Lord's portion is His people; Jacob is the lot of His inheritance (Deut. 32:9). In Christ, then, we have been
admitted to the ranks of the chosen people, the holy heritage of God.
(See also 1 Pt. 2:9,10; Ex. 19:5,6; Dt. 14:2; 32:9; Ps. 72:2; Mal. 3:17.)

S. The Church as the Lord's Masterpiece.


Since Ephesians is the epistle about the CHURCH, many of the metaphors of the Church will be found in
it. In Ephesians chapter two, Paul states: "For we are His workmanship, created in Christ Jesus unto good
works" (Eph. 2:10a). The Greek word translated "workmanship" is poiema, meaning a "piece of
workmanship, a creation"; it is the word from which we get the English word "poem." The Church is God's
masterpiece of creation. When the Church which is created for good works is perfected, it will portray its
Maker and Creator, Christ Jesus the Lord. 'When He shall appear, we shall be like Him; for we shall see Him
as He is" (1 Jn. 3:2). It should be noted that all the pronouns in Ephesians chapter two are plural: "WE are
God's workmanship." The Church is God's masterpiece, a mosaic of all His people in a designed collective
work. (See also Phil. 1:6; 2:13; Eph. 3:10; Col. 1:28,29; Heb. 13:21; 2 Cor. 5:17.)

T. The Church as the Light of the World.


In the Sermon on the Mount, Jesus said, "Ye are the light of the world, a city that is set on a hill cannot be
hid" (Mt. 5:14-16). The figure of the Church as light suggests the following: (1) the believers who are the
children of light give witness to Christ who is the true Light of the world (Jn. 8:12); (2) therefore, the
believer's light is a reflected light, like the light of the moon; he reflects the Light of Christ; Eph. 5:14 says
literally, "Christ will shine on you" (NIV); (3) the book of Revelation calls the local churches "lampstands"

293
(Rv. 1:20); (4) no matter how blessed it is to minister one to another, believers must not forget that their
primary mission is that of illuminating the darkness of the world (Mt. 5:16); (5) the believer's witness is
twofold: witness by words, and witness by works (1 Pt. 2:12).

U. The Church as the Salt of the Earth.


What did Jesus mean when He said, "Ye are the salt of the earth?" The following applications seem to be
indicated:
(1) Salt preserves; that is, the Church preserves and reinforces the qualities of goodness. honor,.justice
and mercy in a society that tends to corrupt.

294
(2) Salt inhibits corruption; the Church restrains the corrupting influences; the good works of the Church
rebuke evil.
(3) Salt gives zest and flavor; the Church gives a zest and distinctive flavor to its surroundings; however,
it is not said to be the "sugar of the earth"; savor must be important to the figure, for believers are warned not
to lose their savor lest the salt be cast out and trodden under foot (Mt. 5:13).
(4) the Church is not only to "salt" the world, it must also maintain its "saltiness" within itself to restrain
selfish ambition, quarrelsomeness etc. (Mk. 9:49,50; Lk. 14:33).
(5) Paul seems to interpret "salt" to mean "wisdom" or spiritual "zest" in speech, speech that is not dull or
insipid (Col. 4:6).

V. The Church as the Lord's Fishery.


Jesus said to His disciples, "Come after me and I will make you to become fishers of men" (Mk. 1:17).
This figure derives from the fact that the first disciples were fishermen; employing a ready metaphor, He
called them to become FISHERS of men. The Church is commissioned to catch men for Christ's kingdom,
but in a good sense; for, in Luke 5:10 the words "catch men" mean literally to "take men alive." Men caught
for Christ receive a new quality of life. If the Church does not catch men for Christ, Satan will snare them (2
Tin. 2:25,26). The merely nominal church, as in the parable of the dragnet, tends to catch some who are not
true believers (Mt. 13:47). (See Mt. 4:18-20.)

W. The Church as a Crucible.


The life of the Church is a life of FAITH; faith, to be genuine faith, must be tested faith; God lets our faith
be tested and tried in order that He may approve it. God can bless only the faith that has been proved genuine
by testing. In 1 Peter 1:6,7, the phrase "the trial of your faith' is literally 'the approval [by trial] of your faith."
The Greek word for "trial"is dokime (the act of an assayer in testing and approving a precious metal). The
testing and approval of the believer's faith is said to be more precious than the testing and approval of gold.
Like gold, faith must be put in the crucible to be proved and purged by the fire (1 Pt. 4:12-17; Jas. 1:3).
The believer's very life in the Christian fellowship of the Church puts him to a testing: to love all the
brethren, to walk in faith and obedience, to submit to Christ and to one another, and to draw upon the ministry
of the Word in times of adversity (Prv. 17:3; 27:21). Peter declares that judgment begins at the household of
God (1 Pt. 4:17). The Greek words: dokime, dokimazo, dokimos, dokimion (used thirty-nine [391 times in
the New Testament), are words from the work of the assayer with his crucible. In the life of the Church,
believers are in God's crucible, being tested and approved. (See 1 Thes. 2:4; Rom. 16:10; 1 Cor. 12:19; 2 Cor.
10:18; Jas. 1:12.)

X. The Church as the Wild Olive Branch.


The Church as the wild olive branch, has been grafted into the tree of God's redeeming purpose, replacing
rebellious Israel. This is not, however, a permanent displacement; when the Church has been completed, God
will yet deal with and fulfill His promises to the remnant of national Israel (Rom. 11:16-24; Jer. 11:16,17).

295
CHAPTER NINE
THE DOCTRINE OF ANGELS
Angelology

I. Angelology
A. Definition
B. The origin of angels
C. The nature of angels
D. The classifications and organization of angels

II. Demonology
A. The reality of demons
B. The origin of demons
C. The nature of demons
D. The purpose of demons
E. The activities of demons
F. Demon possession

III. Satanology
A. Importance of this doctrine
B. The reality of his existence
C. His personality
D. His origin
E. His character
F. His names and titles
G. His Defeat
H. His Destiny

IV. The believer's course of action regarding Satan

296
The Doctrine of Angels
Angelology

INTRODUCTION

There is an order of celestial beings which occupy a position quite distinct from that of either God or
Man. Far below the Godhead, they nevertheless dwell in an estate above that of fallen Man. According to
A.T. Pierson:
God is the all-presiding, all-pervading, uncreated Spirit. Between Him and man there lies an intermediate
realm, inhabited by a higher order of intelligences, neither pure spirit like God, nor so physically constituted
as man. They are called angels, because they appear in Scripture as messengers of God to man.' And
according to Pearlman:
With lightning speed and noiseless movement they pass from place to place. They inhabit the spaces of
the air above us. Some we know to be concerned with our welfare, others are set on our harm. The inspired
writers draw aside the curtain and give us a glimpse of this invisible world, in order that we may be both
encouraged and warned.
The only source of information which we have of their existence and activities is the Holy Scriptures;
mysticism and philosophy have no word of authority whatever. The Sadducees, a prominent group in the
Jewish Sanhedrin at the time of Christ, did not believe in angels: "For the Sadducees say there is no
resurrection, neither angel, nor spirit. . . " (Acts 23:8). Inasmuch as all our information about them comes
from the Bible, we do well to learn from all that it says about them, but we must not go beyond that which is
revealed. That they occupy a prominent place in God's providential administrations is indicated by the
frequency of their mention in the Bible. The Old Testament refers to them 108 times, while the New
Testament mentions them 165 times. Satan was once a great angel, and we believe that demons are probably
fallen angels. Whether holy, or unholy, the spirit-beings are alike designated "angels." "And there was war in
heaven: Michael and his angels fought against the dragon; and the dragon fought and his angels. . . " (Rv.
12:7). Thus under the general title of Angelology, we will deal with three areas of consideration: holy angels,
fallen angels (demons), and Satan. Thus we will study Angelology, Demonology, and Satanology.

I. ANGELOLOGY
A. Definition.
The word "angel," whether taken from the Hebrew mal'ak of the Old Testament or from the Greek
angelos of the New Testament, means "messenger." The holy angels are messengers of God, while fallen
angels are the messengers of Satan - "The god of this world."

B. The Origin of Angels.


In distinction from God, the angels are created beings; they have not existed from all eternity. "Thou,
even thou, art Lord alone; thou hast made heaven, the heaven of heavens, with all their host ... and the host of
heaven worshippeth thee" (Neh. 9:6). "Praise ye him, all his angels: praise ye him, all his hosts. Let them
praise the name of the Lord: for he commanded, and they were created" (Ps. 148:2,5). "For by him were all
things created, that are in heaven, and that are in earth, visible and invisible, whether they be thrones, or
dominions, or principalities, or powers: all things were created by him, and for him . . . " (Col. 1:16). Angels
indeed are among the "invisible" things which God created. As to exactly when they were created the
Scripture is not explicit. It is believed that it is most probable that they were created on the first day of
Creation immediately after the creation of heaven. Genesis 1:1 says: "In the beginning God created the

297
heaven and the earth." While Job 38:4-7 says that "the sons of God shouted for joy"when He laid the
foundations of the earth. Thus they were there when the earth was created.

C. The Nature of Angels.


1. They are not corporeal.
a) They are spirits. They do not have bodies in the sense that Man does. They are said to be spirits.
"Who maketh his angels spirits; his ministers a flaming fire. . . " (Ps. 104:4). "Are they not all ministering
spirits, sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of salvation? (Heb. 1:14) In Luke 24:37-39, Jesus
said, "a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see me have." But this does not mean that they are not real
individual creatures, both finite and spacial. However, they stand in a freer relation to time and space than
Man. Many can be present at one time in a very limited space. "And Jesus asked him, saying, What is thy
name? And he said, Legion: because many devils were entered into him" (Lk. 8:30). They are certainly not
omnipresent. Each is only in one place at one time.

b) They are not to be worshiped. Except on those very special occasions when God chooses to allow
men to see them, angels are invisible to human sight and men are unconscious of their presence. It has been
suggested that the reason that they are mostly invisible is because of the human tendency to worship them.
The Scripture plainly warns against such a practice. We must not worship the creature rather than the Creator
(Rom. 1:25). "Let no man beguile you of your reward in a voluntary humility and worshiping of angels,
intruding into those things which he hath not seen, vainly puffed up by his fleshly mind.. . " (Col. 2:18). This
is a practice of the Gnostic heresy.
And I fell at his feet to worship him. And he said unto me, See thou do it not; I am thy fellow servant,
and of thy brethren that have the testimony of Jesus: worship God: for the testimony of Jesus is the spirit of
prophecy (Rv. 19:10).
And I John saw these things, and heard them. And when I had heard and seen, I fell down to worship
before the feet of the angel which shewed me these things. Then saith he unto me, See thou do it not: for I am
thy fellow servant, and of thy brethren the prophets, and of them which keep the sayings of this book: worship
God (Rv. 22:8,9).

c) Angels have, on numerous occasions, assumed the form of human bodies. "Be not forgetful to
entertain strangers: for thereby some have entertained angels unawares" (Heb. 13:2). Such a thing as this
verse suggests could not be possible if they did not appear as men. Many occasions when this became a
reality are enumerated throughout the Scriptures. Here are just a few:
And there came two angels to Sodom at even; and Lot sat in the gate of Sodom: and Lot seeing them rose
up to meet them; and he bowed himself with his face toward the ground ... (Gn. 19:1).
And in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God unto a city in Galilee, named Nazareth, to a
virgin espoused to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David; and the virgin's name was Mary
(Lk. 1:26,27).
And seeth two angels in white sitting, the one at the head, and the other at the feet, where the body of
Jesus had lain On. 20:12).
And the angel of the Lord spake unto Philip, saying, Arise, and go toward the south unto the way that
goeth down from Jerusalem unto Gaza ... (Acts 8:26).
And, behold, the angel of the Lord came upon him, and a light shined in the prison: and he smote Peter on
the side, and raised him up, saying, Arise up quickly. And his chains fell off from his hands. And the angel
said unto him, Gird thyself, and bind on thy sandals. And so he did. And he saith unto him, Cast thy garment
about thee, and follow me (Acts 12:7,8).

298
d) The Angel of the Lord. The expression "the angel of the Lord," which is used throughout the Old
Testament, seems to have a very special significance in relation to the presence of God. It would seem that
this person is the Second Person of the Godhead, Christ Himself in preincarnate presence. A few of these
outstanding occasions are here listed.
The angel of the Lord appeared to Hagar as she was fleeing from the house of Abraham (Gn. 16:7-14).
Four times in this passage the expression, "the angel of the Lord" is used, but in verse thirteen we read: "And
she called the name of the Lord that spake unto her, Thou God seest me; for she said, Have I also here looked
upon him that seeth me?" Hagar recognized this "angel of the Lord" as very God.
He appeared to Abraham when he was about to slay his son Isaac (Gn. 22:11-18). It was God who told
Abraham to go offer his son, and when Abraham lifted up the knife to do so "And the angel of the Lord called
unto him out of heaven, and said, Abraham, Abraham ... Lay not thine hand upon the lad, neither do thou any
thing unto him: for now I know that thou fearest God, seeing that thou hast not withheld thy son, thine only
son from me." Definitely the "from me" refers to God.
He appeared to Moses out of the bush which burned, but was not consumed (Ex. 3:2-5). In this passage
we read, in verse two, that "the angel of the Lord" appeared to Moses "in a flame of fire out of the midst of
the bush." In verse four this same Person is called "God": "God called unto him out of the midst of the bush,
and said, Moses, Moses."
He showed himself to Gideon as he was threshing a little wheat behind the winepress, hiding it from the
Midianites (Jgs. 6:11-23). In verse twelve, we read of "the angel of the Lord" appearing to Gideon. In verse
fourteen we are told: "And the Lord looked upon him, and said, Go in this might."
In Judges 13:2-23 is the account of several visits to Manoah and his wife (parents of Samson) of one who
is variously called "the angel of the Lord," "an angel of God," and "the man of God." Twelve times these
expressions are used of this One; but in verse twenty-two: "Manoah said unto his wife, We will surely die,
because we have seen God." As Elijah was fleeing from Jezebel, who had threatened to take his life, he was
weary and slept under a Juniper tree, and the angel of the Lord brought him food (1 Kgs. 19:5-7).
Second Kgs. 19:35 recounts how, as the Assyrian army surrounded the city of Jerusalem, the angel of the
Lord in one night smote 185,000 of the Assyrian soldiers dead.

2. They are a company, not a race.


Angels were all created at one time, and there is no propagation among them. They do not die; thus there
is no increase or decrease in their numbers. Jesus made it quite plain that they do not marry.
And Jesus answering said unto them, The children of this world marry, and are given in marriage: but
they which shall be accounted worthy to obtain that world, and the resurrection from the dead, neither marry,
nor are given in marriage: neither can they die any more: for they are equal unto the angels; and are the
children of God, being the children of the resurrection (Lk. 20:3436).
Angels are referred to in the masculine gender, which is always used of those in whom there is no sexual
distinction. Though we read of the "sons of God" we never read of the "sons of angels."

3. They are vast in number


Their great numbers are indicated in the following scriptures: "But ye are come unto mount Sion, and
unto the city of the living God, the heavenly Jerusalem, and to an innumerable company of angels ... "
(Heb.12:22). 'Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall presently give me more than
twelve legions of angels?" (Mt. 26:53). "And I beheld, and I heard the voice of many angels round about the
throne and the beasts and the elders: and the number of them was ten thousand times ten thousand, and
thousands of thousands. . . " (Rv. 5:11). Ten thousand times ten thousand is one hundred million. Thousands
of thousands could not be less than four million. So you have a minimum total of one hundred and four
million angels! No doubt the main thought being conveyed by all these verses is that within the

299
comprehension of man their number is innumerable. God, who knows all things, knows the number of
angels.

4. Their abode.
While angels are often depicted as ministering in God's behalf to saints here on earth, it seems their main
abode is in heaven (Mt. 22:30). "And suddenly there was with the angel a multitude of the heavenly host
praising God, and saying, Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men. And it
came to pass, as the angels were gone away from them into heaven...... (Lk. 2:13-15). 'And he saith unto
them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels of God ascending and
descending upon the Son of man" (Jn. 1:51).
Jesus spoke of "the angels which are in heaven' (Mk. 13:32), and Paul wrote: "But though we or an angel
from heaven, preach any other gospel unto you" (Gal. 1:8). It would seem that the angels have a special place
in which to dwell in Heaven. Jude writes of 'the angels which kept not their first estate, but left their own
habitation. . . ." (Jude 6).

5. Their personalities.
Angels possess every feature of personality. They are individual beings. They are rational beings: ". . .
My lord is wise, according to the wisdom of an angel of God, to know all things that are in the earth" (2 Sm.
14:20). "Which things the angels desire to look into" (1 Pt. 1:12). They render intelligent worship. "Praise
ye him, all his angels: praise ye him, all his hosts" (Ps. 148:2). They possess emotions: "Likewise, I say unto
you, there is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repenteth" (Lk.15:10). They are
moral beings created with the ability to know, and do, that which is right or wrong. They have been rewarded
for obedience and punished for disobedience: "For if God spared not the angels that sinned, but cast them
down to hell, and delivered them into chains of darkness, to be reserved unto judgment . . . " (2 Pt. 2:4). "And
the angels which kept not their first estate, but left their own habitation, he hath reserved in everlasting chains
under darkness unto the judgment of the great day" (Jude 6). There was a time of probation during which the
angels could choose to obey God or to disobey. Those who disobeyed were cast out, while those who obeyed
were confirmed in their stand for God. We do not read of any angels falling after the period of probation
passed.

6. Their wisdom and power.


The angels are represented as having superhuman wisdom and intelligence. "But of that day and hour
knoweth no man, no, not the angels of heaven, but my Father only" (Mt. 24:36). This implies that angels'
knowledge is above Man's: ". . . My Lord is wise, according to the wisdom of an angel of God, to know all
things that are in the earth" (2 Sm. 14:20); "art thou come to destroy us? I know thee who thou art; the Holy
One of God" (Lk. 4:34). Though the knowledge of angels is great, they are not omniscient. There are certain
things they would like to know: 'which things the angels desire to look into" (1 Pt. 1:12).
Much is said in the Scripture concerning the power and strength of the angels, though nowhere is it
indicated that they are omnipotent. Their power is derived from God. "They are unable to do those things
which are peculiar to Deity - create, act without means, or search the human heart. 113 "Bless the Lord, ye his
angels, that excel in strength, that do his commandments, hearkening unto the voice of his word" (Ps. 103:20).
"Whereas angels, which are greater in power and might, bring not railing accusation against them before the
Lord" (2 Pt. 2:11). "And to you who are troubled rest with us, when the Lord Jesus shall be revealed from
heaven with his mighty angels. . . " (2 Thes. 1: 7). Disciples were delivered from prison by angels. "But
during the night an angel of the Lord opened the doors of the jail and brought them out" (Acts 5:19, NIV).
"Suddenly an angel of the Lord appeared and a light shone in the cell. He struck Peter on the side and woke
him up.'Quick, get up!'he said, and the chains fell off Peter's wrists" (Acts 12:7, NIV). It has been estimated
that the stone which was placed in front of the Lord's tomb could have weighed four tons, yet we read: "There

300
was a violent earthquake, for an angel of the Lord came down from heaven and, going to the tomb, rolled
back the stone and sat on it" (Mt. 28:2, NIV). In Revelation 20:1,2, John tells us: "And I saw an angel come
down from heaven, having the key of the bottomless pit and a great chain in his hand. And he laid hold on the
dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and Satan, and bound him a thousand years." The angels are
spoken of as being subservient to Christ. They are "his mighty angels" (2 Thes. 1:7). "Who is gone into
heaven, and is on the right hand of God; angels and authorities and powers being made subject unto him" (1
Pt. 3:22). 'And ye are complete in him, which is the head of all principality and power... " (Col. 2: 10).

D. The Classifications and Organization of Angels.


Generally speaking all angels may be classified under two headings: good or evil angels. We shall
consider the good, or holy angels.

1. The good angels.


a) An apparent variety among them:
(1) Different positions or offices. Comparing the following three verses of Scripture, it seems there
are five different positions or offices of authority among the angels: thrones, dominions, principalities, au-
thorities and powers. "Far above all principality and power, and might, and dominion. . . " (Eph. 1: 21); "For
by him were all things created, that are in heaven, and that are in earth, visible and invisible, whether they be
thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or powers..." (Col. 1:16); ... angels and authorities and powers being
subject unto him" (I Pt. 3:22). Just what each of these designations indicates is not made clear in the
Scripture. It is not easy for us to comprehend heavenly organization.
All that we know is, that there is foundation for the main idea that there is no dull and sating uniformity
among the inhabitants of heaven - that order and freedom are not inconsistent with gradation or rank - that
there is glory and a higher glory - power and a nobler power - rank and a loftier rank, to be witnessed in the
mighty scale. As there are orbs of dazzling radiance amidst the paler and humbler stars of the sky, so there
are bright and majestic chieftains among the hosts of God, nearer God in position, and like God in majesty,
possessing and reflecting more of the Divine splendor, than their lustrous brethren around them.
The most important point of all, as we consider just what these various ranks may signify, is that Jesus is
high above them all; He has no equal and no superior.
(2) Cherubim. Whether this term indicates a special position or an exalted service rendered by those
who bear this name is uncertain. Cherubim first appear at the entrance to the garden of Eden: ". . . which
turned every way, to keep the way of the tree of life" (Gn. 3:24). Over the Ark of the Covenant, in the Holy
of Holies of the Tabernacle in the wilderness, two golden cherubims were wrought as part of the mercy seat
(Ex. 37:6-9; 2 Kgs. 19:15). They are also said to be woven into the beautiful inner veil of the Tabernacle and
Temple (Ex. 26:1). Ezekiel refers to them nineteen (19) different times. It is believed that they are
synonymous with the "living creatures" (better translation than "beasts" of the KJV) of Revelation 4:6-5;14.
From these and other references it would seem that the cherubims particularly have to do with the
righteousness and majesty of the Throne of God.
(3) Seraphim. The word means the "burning ones." They are mentioned only in Isaiah chapter six. They
are seen by the prophet as standing above the Throne of God, each having six wings. They are occupied with
praising God, crying one to another, "Holy, holy, holy, is the Lord of hosts: the whole earth is full of his
glory." One of the seraphim, in response to Isaiah's confession of the uncleanness of his lips, flew with a live
coal from off the altar and touched the prophet's lips saying, "Lo, this hath touched thy lips; and thine iniquity
is taken away, and thy sin purged" (VV.6,7). This prepared Isaiah for the service to which God was about to
call him. This would appear to be a very significant part of the ministry of the seraphim. Dr. C.I. Scofield, in
his Bible notes on this incident, speaks of the necessity of cleansing before service: "The Cherubim may be
said to have to do with the altar, the Seraphim with the laver".
(4) Michael and Gabriel. These two are distinct among the angel hosts for they are the only two whose

301
names are mentioned. Michael is mentioned on four different occasions in the Scripture. "And at that time
shall Michael stand up, the great prince which standeth for the children of thy people... " (Dn. 12:1).
"Michael" means "Who is like God?" He is spoken of as the one who stands up - probably in defense - of the
people of Israel. "But the prince of the kingdom of Persia withstood me one and twenty days: but, lo,
Michael, one of the chief princes, came to help me.. . " (Dn. 10:13). In this same connection verse twenty-one
speaks of "Michael your prince." If it is true, as many Bible teachers believe, that there are angelic
personalities who oversee certain nations, such as the "Prince of Persia" and the "Prince of Grecia," then
Michael could be thought of as the "Prince of Israel" (Dn. 10:21). In Jude's epistle we read: "Yet Michael the
archangel, when contending with the devil he disputed about the body of Moses, durst not bring against him a
railing accusation, but said, The Lord rebuke thee" (Jude 9). Here Michael is called an archangel. He is the
only one to whom this designation is applied. If he is the only one, then perhaps he will be the one to speak at
the Second Coming of the Lord: "For the Lord himself shall descend from heaven with a shout, with the voice
of the archangel, and with the trump of God . . . " (1 Thes. 4:16). In Revelation 12:7-9 we learn more about
the warring capability of Michael:
And there was war in heaven: Michael and his angels fought against the dragon; and the dragon fought
and his angels, and prevailed not; neither was their place found any more in heaven.
And the great dragon was cast out, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the
whole world: he was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him.
Gabriel, signifying "the mighty one," is never designated in the Bible as an archangel, but he has often
been called one. He is mentioned four times in the Scripture and always as the bearer of great tidings
concerning God's purposes. In Daniel 8:15-27 he informed Daniel of events concerning the end times. In
Daniel 9:20-27 He revealed to Daniel the meaning of the vision he had concerning the seventy weeks. As
Zacharias the priest, and father of John the Baptist, was burning incense in the priest's office, Gabriel
appeared to him and said unto him, ". . . Fear not, Zacharias: for thy prayer is heard; and thy wife Elisabeth
shall bear thee a son, and thou shalt call his name John .... I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God; and
am sent to speak unto thee, and to shew thee these glad tidings" (Lk. 1:13 & 19). Gabriel's preeminent
position is indicated by the words, "that stand in the presence of God." John was to be the forerunner of our
Lord's Coming and the one who should baptize Him in the Jordan. Gabriel's greatest message was his
announcement to the Virgin Mary of the Birth of the Lord Jesus Christ and His part in the kingdom of God,
sitting upon the throne of David. (Lk. 1:26-38)

b) The ministry of the good angels.


(1) In relation to God.
(a) Giving worship and praise. The principal, and possibly most important, ministry of the good
angels is that of worshiping and offering unceasing praise to God. For He is worthy:
And I beheld, and I heard the voice of many angels round about the throne and the beasts and the elders:
and the number of them was ten thousand times ten thousand, and thousands of thousands: saying with a loud
voice, Worthy is the Lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honor,
and glory, and blessing (Rv. 5:11,12).
And again, when he bringeth in the first begotten into the world, he saith, And let all the angels of God
worship him (Heb. 1:6). And one cried unto another, and said, Holy, holy, holy, is the Lord of hosts: the
whole earth is full of his glory (Is. 6:3).
Bless the Lord, ye his angels, that excel in strength, that do his commandments, hearkening unto the voice
of his word. Bless ye the Lord, all ye his hosts; ye ministers of his that do his pleasure (Ps. 103:20,21).
One thing seems to be certain: angels never draw attention to themselves, but always ascribe glory to
God. Angels were present at the time of Creation and joined together in song at this great event: "Where wast
thou when I laid the foundations of the earth? ... when the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God

302
shouted for joy?" (Jb. 38:4-7).
(b) Bringing God's Law to His people - "Who have received the law by the disposition of angels,
and have not kept it" (Acts 7:53). "Wherefore then serveth the law? It was added because of transgressions,
till the seed should come to whom the promise was made; and it was ordained by angels in the hand of a
mediator" (Gal. 3:19). "For if the word spoken by angels was steadfast, and every transgression and
disobedience received a just recompense of reward " (Heb. 2:2).
(c) Executing God's judgments upon His enemies. "And immediately the angel of the Lord smote
him, because he gave not God the glory: and he was eaten of worms, and gave up the ghost" (Acts 12:23).
Thus was Herod smitten after he gave a great oration at Caesarea and the people said, "It is the voice of a god,
and not of a man," and Herod did not give God the glory (Acts 12:22). "And it came to pass that night, that
the angel of the Lord went out, and smote in the camp of the Assyrians an hundred fourscore and five
thousand: and when they arose early in the morning, behold, they were all dead corpses" (2 Kgs. 19:35).
(d) Gathering together God's elect at Christ's Second Coming. And they shall see the Son of man
coming in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory. And he shall send his angels with a great sound
of a trumpet, and they shall gather together his elect from the four winds, from one end of heaven to the other"
(Mt. 24:30,31).
They stand before the gates of the New Jerusalem, which had, a wall great and high; and had twelve
gates, and at the gates twelve angels. . . " (Rv. 21:12). Thiessen suggests that "they will apparently serve as a
kind of honorary body of sentinels, as if to guarantee that nothing that is unclean or defiled will ever enter that
City.116
They are seen pouring out the bowls of wrath in Revelation chapter sixteen: "And I heard a great voice
out of the temple saying to the seven angels, Go your ways, and pour out the vials of the wrath of God upon
the earth" (v.1).
(e) Assisting on the Day of Judgment. "Let both grow together until the harvest: and in the time of
harvest I will say to the reapers, Gather ye together first the tares, and bind them in bundles to burn them: but
gather the wheat into my barn"; "The enemy that sowed them is the devil; and the harvest is the end of the
world; and reapers are the angels" (Mt. 13:30,39). God's angels will be the reapers who will separate the
believers from the unbelievers. They know the difference between the wheat and the tares. "So shall it be at
the end of the world: the angels shall come forth, and sever the wicked from the just, and shall cast them into
the furnace of fire: there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth" (Mt. 13:49,50). "And to you who are
troubled rest with us, when the Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with his mighty angels, in flaming
fire taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. . . "
(2 Thes. 1:7,8). Between chapters seven and twenty of the book of Revelation angels are mentioned as having
part in God's judgments no less than fifty-seven (57) times. If any wonder how God will bring all men to the
judgment, he has only to remind himself of the multitude of mighty angels whom the Lord will use for this
purpose. Nothing can thwart this ministry of the angels, and there will be no mistakes made.
(2) In relation to Christ. The angels have shown, and continue to show a great interest in the Person
and ministry of Jesus Christ. A great deal is involved in the words of Paul when he wrote: "And without
controversy great is the mystery of godliness: God was manifest in the flesh, justified in the Spirit, seen of
angels. . . " (I Tm. 3:16). Some fifteen distinct references, in relation to Jesus Christ, are attributed to angels'
ministrations:
· The birth of His forerunner, John the Baptist, was announced to John's father by an angel (Lk. 1:11-13).
· Mary was informed by the angel Gabriel that she should be the mother of the Savior (Lk. 1:26-38).
· Joseph was assured by an angel that "that which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost" (Mt. 1:20).
· Angels brought the tidings of His Birth to the shepherds in the fields at Bethlehem (Lk. 2:8-15).
· Joseph was warned by an angel to take Mary and the young child to Egypt to escape from Herod (Mt.
2:13).
· Joseph, again directed by an angel, was instructed to return to the land of Israel after the death of Herod
(Mt. 2:19,20).

303
· Angels ministered to our Lord after His wilderness temptation (Mt. 4:11).
· Jesus told Nathaniel that he would see angels ascending and descending upon Himself (Jn. 1:51).
· An angel from Heaven strengthened Him in the Garden of Gethsemane (Lk. 22:43).
· Jesus said He could ask the Father and He would send more than twelve legions of angels to protect Him if
necessary or desirable (Mt. 26:53).
· An angel rolled back the stone from before the sepulcher and spoke to the women who came to the tomb
(Mt. 28:2-7).
· Angels were present at the time of Christ's Ascension (Acts 1:11).
· In His glorified position, angels render Him supreme homage as their Lord (1 Pt. 3:22).
· Angels will accompany the Lord when He comes the second time (Mt. 16:27,25:31).

(3) In relation to believers. It is of the utmost importance that believers understand the ministry of angels
in their behalf, that their faith might be encouraged regarding this gracious provision God has made for them.
It is surprising to find a number of commentators expressing their belief that the ministry of angels to men
ceased at the Ascension of Christ, not to be resumed until His Return to earth. This is difficult to understand
in relation to Hebrews 1:14 where we are told: "Are they not all ministering spirits, sent forth to minister for
them who shall be heirs of salvation?" This certainly applies to believers today.
The following are some of the many ministrations angels have performed in behalf of God's people in Old
Testament times, the time of our Lord's dwelling on earth, and during the Early Church days. There is no
reason not to believe that they continue to do similar things today.
(a) Protecting from accidental harm. "For he shall give his angels charge over thee, to keep thee in
all thy ways. They shall bear thee up in their hands, lest thou dash thy foot against a stone" (Ps. 91:11,12).
When we know as we are known we will understand who it was that delivered us from times of disaster and
harm.
And when the morning arose, then the angels hastened Lot, saying, Arise, take thy wife, and thy two
daughters, which are here; lest thou be consumed in the iniquity of the city. And while he lingered, the men
laid hold upon his hand, and upon the hand of his wife, and upon the hand of his two daughters; the Lord
being merciful unto him: and they brought him forth, and set him without the city (Gn. 19:15,16).
(b) Delivering from their enemies. "The angel of the Lord encampeth round about them that fear
him, and delivereth them" (Ps. 34:7). Elisha and his servant experienced this very blessing:
And when the servant of the man of God was risen early, and gone forth, behold, an host compassed the
city both with horses and chariots. And his servant said unto him, Alas, my master! how shall we do? And he
answered, Fear not: for they that be with us are more than they that be with them. And Elisha prayed, and
said, Lord, I pray thee, open his eyes, that he may see. And the Lord opened the eyes of the young man and
he saw: and, behold, the mountain was full of horses and chariots of fire round about Elisha (2 Kgs. 6:15-17).
Here is a beautiful example of the words: "The chariots of God are twenty thousand, even thousands of
angels. . . " (Ps. 68:17). "My God hath sent his angel, and hath shut the lions' mouths, that they have not hurt
me: forasmuch as before him innocency was found in me; and also before thee, 0 king, have I done no hurt"
(Dn. 6:22). 'And when Peter was come to himself, he said, Now I know of a surety, that the Lord hath sent
his angel, and hath delivered me out of the hand of Herod, and from all the expectation of the people of the
Jews" (Acts 12:11).
(c) Encouraging in times of extreme trial. When Elijah was fleeing from the threats of Jezebel:
"And as he lay and slept under a juniper tree, behold, then an angel touched him, and said unto him, Arise and
eat" (1 Kgs. 19:5). As Jacob was fleeing from the wrath of his brother Esau:
And he dreamed, and behold a ladder set up on the earth, and the top of it reached to heaven: and behold
the angels of God ascending and descending on it. And behold, the Lord stood above it, and said, I am the
Lord God of Abraham thy father, and the God of Isaac: the land whereon thou liest, to thee will I give it, and
to thy seed (Gn. 28:12,13).

304
Twenty years later, as Jacob was returning to meet his brother Esau, he was filled with fear in anticipation
of the reception he might receive from Esau. But we read of a host of angels meeting him, no doubt to greatly
encourage him: "And Jacob went on his way, and the angels of God met him. And when Jacob saw them, he
said, This is God's host: and he called the name of the place Mahanaim [meaning two hosts, or two bands]"
(Gn. 32:1,2). Paul, in the midst of the storm at sea that threatened the lives of all on board, cheered his fellow
sailors with these words:
And now I exhort you to be of good cheer: for there shall be no loss of any man's life among you, but of
the ship. For there stood by me this night the angel of God, whose I am, and whom I serve, saying,
Fear not, Paul; thou must be brought before Caesar: and, lo, God hath given thee all them that sail with
thee (Acts 27:22-24).
(d) Granting wisdom and guidance. Joseph was perplexed regarding giving Mary a bill of
divorcement: "But while he thought on these things, behold, the angel of the Lord appeared unto him in a
dream, saying, Joseph, thou son of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife: for that which is
conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost" (Mt. 1:20). (See also Mt. 2:13,19,20.) Philip was directed to win the
Ethiopian eunuch to the Lord: "And the angel of the Lord spake unto Philip, saying, Arise, and go toward
the south unto the way that goeth down from Jerusalem unto Gaza, which is desert" (Acts 8:26). Cornelius,
the Roman centurion, was praying, and "saw in a vision evidently about the ninth hour of the day an angel of
God coming in to him, and saying unto him, Cornelius ... Thy prayers and thine alms are come up for a
memorial before God. And now send men to Joppa, and call for one Simon, whose surname is Peter" (Acts
10:3-5).
(e) Escorting the soul at death. Concerning Lazarus, the beggar, we are told: "And it came to pass,
that the beggar died, and was carried by the angels into Abraham's bosom: the rich man also died, and was
buried. . . " (Lk. 16:22). Many a great saint of God has testified, at the moment of his departure from this life,
of being conscious of the presence of heavenly beings around him.
(f) Rejoicing over salvation. That the angels are vitally interested in believers is evidenced by their
rejoicing at the repentance of each sinner: "Likewise, I say unto you, there is joy in the presence of the angels
of God over one sinner that repenteth" (Lk. 15:10). No doubt they also rejoice as Jesus confesses the faith of
these believers in the presence of the angels: "Also I say unto you, Whosoever shall confess me before men,
him shall the Son of man also confess before the angels of God: but he that denieth me before men shall be
denied before the angels of God" (Lk. 12:8,9).
(g) Concerning guardian angels. There is no scriptural authority for the age-old idea that each
person, as soon as he is born, is assigned a special guardian angel who will attend and watch over that one
throughout his lifetime. The two verses of scripture that have often been used as evidence do not provide
enough evidence for this notion. "Take heed that ye despise not one of these little ones; for I say unto you,
That in heaven their angels do always behold the face of my Father which is in heaven" (Mt. 18:10). Many
interpretations of this verse have been offered. The following seems to be a plausible explanation, and one
which brings in the other scripture verse often used to support the doctrine of individual guardian angels.
All of course depends on the interpretation of "angel." At the first glance it would seem that these little
ones have angels in heaven. There is a passage in Acts 12:15 which is the key to solve the difficulty here.
When Peter rescued by an angel, led forth miraculously from the prison house, knocked at the door of a
praying assembly and Rhoda maintained that Peter stood outside, they said, "It is his angel." They believed
that Peter had suffered death and that his angel stood outside. What does "angel" mean in this passage? It
must mean the departed spirit of Peter. This fact throws light on the passage before us. If these little ones,
who belong to the kingdom of heaven, depart, their disembodied spirits behold the Father's face in heaven; in
other words, they are saved.
The Scripture is very clear with regard to the ministry of angels in behalf of all believers, but it does not
teach individual guardian angels.
(h) Ministering to the believer. There has been much confusion between the ministry of angels and

305
that of the Holy Spirit toward believers within the church today. Billy Graham has these interesting things to
say:

Angels do not indwell men, the Holy Spirit seals them and indwells them when He has regenerated them.
The Holy Spirit is all knowing, all-present, and all-powerful. Angels are mightier than men, but they are not
gods and they do not possess the attributes of the Godhead. Not angels, but the Holy Spirit convicts men of
sin, righteousness and judgment (John 16:7). He reveals and interprets Jesus Christ to men, while angels
remain messengers of God who serve men as ministering spirits (Heb. 1:14). So far as I know, no Scripture
says that the Holy Spirit ever manifested Himself in human form to men. Jesus did this in His incarnation.
The glorious Holy Spirit can be everywhere at the same time, but no angel can be in more than one place at
any given moment. We know the Holy Spirit as spirit, not flesh, but we can know angels not as spirits alone
but sometimes also in visible form.
It would seem that angel ministrations are especially related to temporal matters, while the Holy Spirit
ministers to believers with regard to spiritual things. Again, according to Billy Graham: "The Holy Spirit not
only guides and directs believers, but also performs a work of grace in their hearts, conforming them to the
image of God to make them holy like Christ. Angels cannot provide this sanctifying power."9
(I) Learning from the Church. Though they are extremely wise, they are not omniscient, and thus
it would be natural to suppose that they are continually learning, especially with regard to the things of God.
This fact is made clear in the Scripture. For ages the angelic host has been worshiping and praising God for
His Holiness and the greatness of His Power in Creation; but with the manifestation of the Gospel of the
Grace of God, a whole new sphere of God's Greatness and Character - His Infinite Love and Marvelous Grace
- has been revealed. Thus the angels desire to know more of this great salvation:
Of which salvation the prophets have enquired and searched diligently ... searching what, or what manner
of time the Spirit of Christ which was in them did signify, when it testified beforehand the sufferings of
Christ, and the glory that should follow. Unto whom it was revealed, that not unto themselves, but unto us
they did minister the things, which are now reported unto you by them that have preached the gospel unto you
with the Holy Ghost sent down from heaven; which things the angels desire to look into (1 Pt. 1:10-12).
Furthermore, God's disciplines and dealings with the Church have provided a marvelous revelation to the
angels of His manifold wisdom: "To the intent that now unto the principalities and powers in heavenly places
might be known by [or through] the church the manifold wisdom of God" (Eph. 3:10). No doubt the angels
will enjoy the prospects revealed in Ephesians 2:7: "That in the ages to come he might shew the exceeding
riches of his grace in his kindness toward us through Christ Jesus."
(j) Availing oneself of the marvelous ministry of angels. Nowhere are we instructed to pray to
angels and request their help. Their ministrations are directed, in our behalf, by the Lord Himself. Thus, if
we would experience the benefits and blessings of these "ministering spirits," we must keep close to our Lord.
The great promise of Psalm chapter 91: "He shall give his angels charge over thee, to keep thee in all thy
ways," is given to those who dwell "in the secret place of the most High," and "abide under the shadow of the
Almighty" (Ps. 91:1). Again, we are instructed by the promise: "The angel of the Lord encampeth round
about them that fear him and delivereth them" (Ps. 34:7). Let us ever reverently fear Him, and abide in His
presence! Remember they are "ministering spirits sent forth to minister to them who are heirs of salvation"
(Heb. 1:14). Let us ever conduct ourselves as those who are children in the household of our heavenly Father:
"And if children, then heirs: heirs of God, and joint-heirs with Christ. . . " (Rom. 8:17).

2. The evil angels.


While it is inspiring, and most encouraging, to learn of God's great guardian angels watching over,
ministering to those who are the redeemed children of the Lord, it is also very important to recognize the
reality and presence, in this area of our spiritual warfare, of a vast host of enemy spirits whose purpose seems
to be to thwart all spiritual progress. One of the fundamental maxims of warfare has always been study the

306
enemy. We would be very unwise if we did not do this in this most important of all areas - that of spiritual
conflict.

a) Their existence. The Bible clearly states the fact of their existence. It contrasts them with those
angels who have continued to do the Will of God: "And the angels which kept not their first estate, but left
their own habitation" (Jude 6). "For if God spared not the angels that sinned, but cast them down to hell" (2
Pt. 2:4). They are recognized as agents of God's judgment upon an evil people; in this case the people of
Egypt: "He cast

upon them the fierceness of his anger, wrath, and indignation, and trouble, by sending evil angels among
them" (Ps. 78:49) They are pictured as in the service of Satan: "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting
fire, prepared for the devil and his angels" (Mt. 25:41). "And there was war in heaven: Michael and his
angels fought against the dragon; and the dragon fought and his angels ... and his angels were cast out with
him" (Rv. 12:7-9).

b) Their identity. There are those who make a difference between evil, or fallen, angels and demons; but
it would seem a great number of Bible teachers have come to believe that the evil angels are the demons of
which the Bible has much to say. We recognize that the Bible is not explicit with regard to this point, but
with what evidence from the Scripture we have, this explanation seems to be the best supported and most
clearly authenticated. With this in mind, we shall consider the subject of demonology.

II. DEMONOLOGY

The subject of demonology occupies a fairly substantial place in the revelations of Holy Scripture. It
would seem wise for us to learn what the Scripture has made clear, without endeavoring to trespass into areas
that God has not revealed. The King James Version has somewhat obscured the subject by a poor translation
of the words daimonion and daimon, rendering them as "devil" or "devils." The Revised, and other later ver-
sions, have properly translated these as "demons". There is only one devil - diabolos, while there are
multitudes of demons.

A. The Reality of Demons.


Jesus recognized their reality. "And if I by Beelzebub cast out demons, by whom do your sons cast them
out? Consequently they shall be your judges. But if I cast out demons by the Spirit of God, then the kingdom
of God has come unto you" (Mt. 12:27,28, NASB). "Heal the sick, raise the dead, cleanse the lepers, cast out
demons; freely you received, freely give" (Mt. 10:8, NASB). "And these signs shall accompany those who
have believed: in My name they shall cast out demons, they shall speak with new tongues" (Mk. 16:17,
NASB).
The seventy believed in their reality. "And the seventy returned with joy, saying, 'Lord, even the demons
are subject unto us in Your name"' (Lk. 10:17, NASB).
The Apostle Paul recognized their reality. "No; But I say that the things which the Gentiles sacrifice, they
sacrifice to demons, and not to God; and I do not want you to become sharers in demons" (1 Cor. 10:20,
NASB). "But the Spirit explicitly says that in later times some will fall away from the faith, paying attention
to deceitful spirits and doctrines of demons" (1 Tm. 4:1, NASB).

B. The Origin of Demons.

307
Inasmuch as God is the Creator of all things, and inasmuch as, after

He had finished His work of Creation, He pronounced that it was all good - "And God saw every thing
that he had made, and, behold, it was very good" (Gn. 1:31) - it seems quite certain that the demons were not
created sinful. If, as we are assuming, the demons are angels "which kept not their first estate, but left their
own habitation . . . ." (Jude 6); and are those referred to when we read: "For if God spared not the angels that
sinned, but cast them down to hell. . . " (2 Pt. 2:4), then we can conclude that they were once perfect, sinless
beings. The cause of their fall and how they became demons has been the subject of much conjecture. Three
principal theories have been advanced, by conservative Christian scholars, endeavoring to demonstrate
scriptural authority.

1. Demons are disembodied spirits of inhabitants of a pre-Adamic earth.


A pre-Adamite race is thought of as existing on the original earth (Gen. 1:1), under the governorship of
Satan in his unfallen state, as "the anointed cherub that covereth" (Ezek. 28:14). This pristine sphere is,
moreover, viewed as the scene of Satan's revolt (Isa. 14:12-14), and the invasion of sin into the moral
universe, resulting in an awful cataclysm which reduced it to chaos (Gen. 1:2). The members of the pre-
Adamite race, whom Pember describes as being "men in the flesh," were somehow involved in the rebellion,
and, in the ensuing catastrophe, suffered the loss of their material bodies, becoming "disembodied spirits," or
demons. The oft recorded fact that demons are continually seizing upon the bodies of men to try to use them
as their own is taken as confirmatory evidence that demons are disembodied spirits, and that their intense
desire for re-embodiment indicates that the intolerable condition of being unclothed, for which they were not
created, is so overpowering that they will even enter the bodies of swine (Luke. 8:32).10

2. Demons are the offspring of angels and antediluvian women.


This theory is based on an interpretation of Genesis 6:1-4:
And it came to pass, when men began to multiply on the face of the earth, and daughters were born unto
them, that the sons of God saw the daughters of men that they were fair; and they took them wives of all
which they chose ... There were giants in those days; and also after that, when the sons of God came in unto
the daughters of men, and they bare children to them, the same became mighty men which were of old, men
of renown.
What some believe is taught here is that there was a totally unnatural cohabitation between evil spirit-
beings and the women of that day. Those who hold this view believe that this sin is the explanation of why
some fallen spirit-beings are confined in chains while others are allowed to go free. Jude speaks of some who
are "reserved in everlasting chains under darkness unto the judgment of the great day" (v.6). The nature of the
sin of which these "angels who kept not their first estate" were guilty is compared to Sodom and Gomorrah
where the sexual sins of these cities caused them to be destroyed by fire and brimstone. Jude 7 goes on to
designate the sins of these evil angels as "fornication." So we know these were sins of the flesh. He further
describes their deeds as "going after strange flesh," referring, it is believed, to the unnatural relationship
between spirits and women. As a result of these great sins, God's wrath was manifest and He sent the Flood
in judgment. The bodies of the monstrous offspring of these unions, according to the theory, were destroyed
in the Flood and their disembodied spirits became demons. This purports to show why demons desire to enter
into human bodies, inasmuch as they have experienced embodiment and are unhappy in their disembodied
state.
If all this could possibly be true, why were the spirits of these who were born to these unholy unions, a]
lowed to go free instead of being consigned to Sheol (same as Hades in the New Testament) as were the other
wicked antediluvians? "The wicked will return to Sheol, even all the nations who forget God" (Ps. 9:17,
NASB). "The rich man also died and was buried. And in Hades he lifted up his eyes, being in torment" (Lk.
16:22,23). "And the sea gave up the dead which were in it, and death and Hades gave up the dead which were

308
in them; and they were judged, every one of them according to their deeds" (Rv. 20:13, NASB). (See also Ez.
32:17-24.)
This position hinges on the meaning of "the sons of God." In the New Testament, this expression refers to
those who have become the sons of God through the New Birth: Jn 1:12; Rom. 8:14-16; 1 Jn. 3:1,2. In the
Old Testament the expression is used five times: twice in Genesis 6:2-4 and three times in Job, where Satan,
an angelic being, is classed with "the sons of God" (Jb. 1:6, 2:1, 38:7). One of the principal objections to this
theory is taken from Jesus' words in Matthew 22:30; Mark 12:25; Luke 21:35,36, where the teaching seems to
be that angel beings are sexless. Jesus said that they neither marry nor are given in marriage. To counteract
this statement of Jesus, it is claimed that this fact may be true of unfallen angels in Heaven, but not of fallen
angels. Unger says that to claim such knowledge "is to assume, it would seem, a degree of knowledge of
fallen angelic nature which man does not possess.""
Many who deny the possibility of interrelationships between the evil spirits and the daughters of the
human race believe that the "sons of God" refer to the descendants of the "godly line" of Seth with the women
of the descendants of Cain. This may well be an over-simplification of the problem, for it raises almost as
many difficulties as it meets. On what basis could the descendants of Seth be called the "sons of God"?
Because of his creation in the image of God, Adam could be well-called a "son of God." But when Adam bore
Seth, it is said he "begat a son in his own likeness, after his image" (Gn. 5:3). Adam was a fallen man - a
sinner - when Seth was born in his likeness. Both Seth and Cain were born outside the garden of Eden to
parents who were sinful by nature. Though in practice Cain may have gone into deeper depths of sin than
Seth, neither, apart from the grace of God, could be called "sons of God." The more obvious difficulty with
this explanation is the reason why the union of these two families would result in the birth of unusual
offspring as suggested by the words, "when the sons of God came in unto the daughters of men, the same
became mighty men which were of old, men of renown" (Gn. 6:4). Also note the words from verse four:
"There were giants in the earth in those days." These are called Nephilim, here and in Numbers 13:33.
3. Demons are fallen angels.
This view comes from the fact that a number of scriptures refer to a great host of spirits who are variously
designated as under the authority of Satan: "Beelzebub, the prince of demons" (Mt. 12:24, NIV); "the devil
and his angels" (Mt. 25:41); "the dragon ... and his angels" (Rv. 12:7,9). Inasmuch as these spirit beings, who
follow under Satan's leadership, must have been created by God (and we know He did not create them evil),
they must have fallen from their created, perfect condition, possibly at the time of Lucifer's revolt. In keeping
with the fact that Satan, in his unfallen position, was called 'the star of the morning" (Is. 14:12, NASB and
others), many have thought that no less than one third of the angels followed in Lucifer's fall and now are the
demon hosts (Rv. 12:4). Some of the angels who "kept not their first estate" (Jude 6), have been cast "down
to hell [Tartarus] and are kept in "chains of darkness, to be reserved unto judgment" (2 Pt. 2:4). Just why
some of these fallen angels are bound while others are free to cooperate with Satan in his opposition to God is
not made clear in the Scripture.
In examining this whole subject, we are forced to recognize difficulties in upholding any of these
positions beyond controversy. We therefore conclude that God has not chosen to reveal the answer to the
question of the origin of demons. There would be no practical, and for that matter no spiritual, purpose in His
so doing. That the Bible makes the fact of their existence very clear is sufficient to make it important for us to
know what it reveals about their nature, their evil designs and methods, as well as our defense against them.
Let us concentrate then on what we do know about them, while not giving them more prominence than their
positions merit.

C. The Nature of Demons.


Many things which have been said about angels' nature are true of demons, in that they appear to be fallen
angels. They are spirit personalities and are incorporeal. From some of their activities it would seem they
desire to indwell men and if not permitted, even choose to enter swine (Mt. 8:31).

309
1. Their strength.
They are strong. It is evident that they are no match for Jesus, but they are stronger than men.
And when he was come out of the ship, immediately there met him out of the tombs a man with an
unclean spirit, who had his dwelling among the tombs; and no man could bind him, no, not with chains:
because that he had been often bound with fetters and chains, and the chains had been plucked asunder by
him, and the fetters broken in pieces: neither could any man tame him (Mk. 5:2-4).

2. Their wisdom.
Though they are far from omniscient, their wisdom is above that of Man's. They do know much
concerning the authority and Deity of Christ, and of their own eternal doom:
And, behold, they cried out, saying, What have we to do with thee, Jesus, thou Son of God? art thou come
hither to torment us before the time? (Mt. 8:29).
And they went into Capernaum; and straightway on the Sabbath day he entered into the synagogue, and
taught... and there was in the synagogue a man with an unclean spirit; and he cried out, Saying, Let us alone;
what have we to do with thee, thou Jesus of Nazareth? art thou come to destroy us? I know thee who thou art,
the Holy One of God (Mk. 1:21-24).
And the evil spirit answered and said, Jesus I know, and Paul I know; but who are you? (Acts 19:15).
Thou believest that there is one God; thou doest well: the demons also believe, and tremble (Jas. 2:19).

3. Their character.
They are wicked, unclean and vicious: "And when he was come to the other side into the country of the
Gergesenes, there met him two possessed with devils, coming out of the tombs exceeding fierce, so that no
man might pass by that way (Mt. 8:28). "And when he had called unto him his twelve disciples, he gave them
power against unclean spirits, to cast them out. . . ." (Mt. 10:1)
There even seem to be degrees of wickedness among them:
When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man, he walketh through dry places, seeking rest, and findeth none.
Then he saith, I will return into my house from whence I came out; and when he is come, he findeth it empty,
swept, and garnished. Then goeth he, and taketh with himself seven other spirits more wicked than himself,
and they enter in and dwell there: and the last state of that man is worse than the first (Mt. 12:43-45).

D. The Purpose of Demons.


The overall purpose of the demons seems to be twofold: they seek to hinder the purposes of God, and to
extend the power of Satan. Satan's desire to rule and to be "like the most High," has not changed from its
initial expression in Isaiah 14:13,14. His conduct in the wilderness temptation of Jesus is a positive evidence
of this arrogant spirit, as he even sought to influence Christ to worship him (Mt. 4:9). Under his control the
hosts of demons are interested in fostering this very plan.

E. The Activities of Demons.


1. Opposing the saints.
They constantly oppose the saints in their endeavors to live godly lives and to serve the Lord. "For our
struggle is not against flesh and blood, but against the rulers, against the authorities, against the powers of this
dark world and against the spiritual forces of evil in the heavenly realms" (Eph. 6:12, NIV). "Wherefore we
would have come unto you, even I Paul, once and again; but Satan hindered us" (1 Thes. 2:18). Inasmuch as
Satan is not omnipresent, many of the activities of the Devil must be carried out by demons.

310
2. Inducing departure from the Faith.
"Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to
seducing spirits, and doctrines of devils [demons]. . ." (1 Tm. 4:1).

3. Encouraging formalism and asceticism as the result of false teaching.


Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to
seducing spirits, and doctrines of devils; speaking lies in hypocrisy; having their conscience seared with a hot
iron; forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received
with thanksgiving of them which believe and know the truth (1 Tm. 4:1-3).

4. Backing all idol worship.


What say I then? that the idol is anything, or that which is offered in sacrifice to idols is any thing? But I
say, that the things which the Gentiles sacrifice, they sacrifice to devils [demons], and not to God: and I
would not that ye should have fellowship with devils [demons]. Ye cannot drink of the cup of the Lord, and
the cup of devils [demons]: ye cannot be partakers of the Lord's table, and of the table of devils [demons] (1
Cor. 10:19-21).
Paul, in discussing the question of offering meats to idols, and whether it was right for Christians to then
eat this meat, has already said ". . . we know that an idol is nothing in the world, and that there is none other
God but one" (1 Cor. 8:4), but he warns that behind the idols is a demon. If the Corinthian Christians ate the
meat which had been offered to the idols, they would be in danger of having fellowship with demons. As one
knows of multiplied millions who have worshiped, and do worship idols, it is difficult to understand how they
could find any spiritual satisfaction in bowing down, and pledging allegiance, to something made by human
hands. But the realization that there are demon spirits behind the idols, makes it clear that there is a spiritual
communion there, and Satan and his hosts have succeeded in deceiving the multitudes. Revelation 9:20 also
points out the association between demons and idolatry: "And the rest of the men which were not killed by
these plagues yet repented not of the works of their hands, that they should not worship devils [demons], and
idols of gold, and silver, and brass, and stone, and of wood: which neither can see, nor hear, nor walk."
5. Causing various physical afflictions.
It is in the power of demons to cause: dumbness (Mt. 9:32,33), blindness (Mt. 12:22), insanity (Lk. 8:26-
35), suicidal mania (Mk. 9:22), personal injuries (Mk. 9:18), and various defects and deformities (Lk. 13:11-
17).

6. Accomplishing God's purposes sometimes, nevertheless. As Unger explains:


Demons are the instruments for executing God's plans for punishing the ungodly (Ps. 78:49). Wicked
Ahab was punished for his crimes by a "lying spirit" which Jehovah put in the mouth of all his prophets to
lead them to disaster at Ramoth Gilead (I Kings 22:23). Demons lure the God-resisting armies of
Armageddon to similar catastrophe (Rev. 16:13-16). Satan and his ministers also effect God's plans for
chastening the godly. Satan's sifting but accomplished the Lord's winnowing, as in the case of Peter (Luke
22:31). Job is brought through Satanic testing to a place of spiritual enlargement and refinement (Job 42:5,6).
The incestuous believer at Corinth is delivered "unto Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit
might be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus" (I Cor. 5:5). Hymenaeus and Alexander are "delivered unto
Satan, that they may be taught not to blaspheme" (I Tim. 1:20).12

F. Demon Possession.
1. The reality of demon possession.

311
Despite the fact that many modem scientists are trying to do away with the idea that demon possession
ever existed, the Bible is explicit that such was the case.

a) As seen in the ministry of Jesus. Demon possessed people were brought to Jesus. He dealt with
them as those who were possessed by casting out the demons:
When the even was come, they brought unto him many that were possessed with devils: and he cast out
the spirits with his word ... (Mt. 8:16).
And when he was come out of the ship, immediately there met him out of the tombs a man with an
unclean spirit ... and the unclean spirits went out, and entered into the swine: and the herd ran violently down
a steep place into the sea.... (Mk. 5:2-13)
As they went out, behold, they brought to him a dumb man possessed with a devil [demon]. And when
the devil [demon] was cast out, the dumb spake: and the multitudes marveled, saying, It was never so seen in
Israel (Mt. 9:32,33).
Jesus most certainly believed that He cast the demons out of those individuals. He made this fact of His
ministry a proof of His Divine mission. When the Pharisees accused Him of casting out demons by
Beelzebub, the prince of demons, He showed them the foolishness of such a claim: "And if Satan cast out
Satan, he is divided against himself-, how shall then his kingdom stand? And if I by Beelzebub cast out
devils [demons], by whom do your children cast them out? therefore they shall be your judges. But if I cast
out devils [demons] by the Spirit of God, then the kingdom of God is come unto you" (Mt. 12:26-28). So
much did He believe that demons were real and that He was casting them out, He warned those who were
criticizing Him for this work that they were bordering on the unpardonable sin.
b) As seen in the ministry of the Early Church. Further scriptural testimony to the reality of demon
possession found in the Apostolic commission which came from the lips of the Lord Himself. "And he said
unto them, Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature ... And these signs shall follow
them that believe; In my name shall they cast out devils [demons] .... (Mk. 16:15
(1) Early Apostles. This was fulfilled in the ministry of the early Apostles: "There came also a
multitude out of the cities round about Jerusalem, bringing sick folks, and them that were vexed with unclean
spirits: and they were healed every one." (Acts 5:16)
(2) Philip the Evangelist. And the people with one accord gave heed unto those things which Philip
spake, hearing and seeing the miracles which he did. For unclean spirits, crying with loud voice, came out of
many that were possessed with them: and many taken with palsies, and that were lame, were healed (Acts
8:6,7).
(3) Apostle Paul. And it came to pass as we went to prayer, a certain damsel possessed with a spirit
of divination met us, which brought her masters much gain by soothsaying: the same followed Paul and us,
and cried, saying, These men are the servants of the most high God, which shew unto us the way of salvation.
And this did she many days, but Paul, being grieved, turned and said to the spirit, I command thee in the
name of Jesus Christ to come out of her. And he came out the same hour (Acts 16:16-18).
The reality of demon possession is clearly evidenced by the dramatic events recorded in Acts 19:13-16.
Here seven professional traveling exorcists sought to use the name of Jesus in casting out demons, as they had
seen Paul do, but they suffered at the hands of the possessed man, departing naked and wounded.

c) In relation to Christ's Redeeming Work. It has been noted that there seems to be an increase of
demon activity during the life and ministry of our Lord Jesus here on earth. This could well be, in that Satan's
avowed opposition is against the Seed of the Woman. (Gn. 3:15) It is also plausible when it is realized just
why Jesus came to earth. This is succinctly summarized by John: "For this purpose the Son of God was
manifested, that he might destroy the works of the devil" (1 Jn. 3:8). There will be a similar increase in the
activity of demons in the world at the close of this age, and on into the Great Tribulation. "Now the Spirit

312
speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits,
and doctrines of devils [demons] . . . " (I Tm. 4:1).

d) Demon possession as contrasted with demon influence. All demon activity does not result in
demon possession. There is a vast difference between demon possession and demon influence. In the former,
the body is entered and a dominating control is gained; while in the latter, a warfare from without is carried on
by suggestion, temptation and influence. These must be "the fiery darts of the wicked" (Eph. 6:16).

e) As opposed to sickness. The Scripture makes it very clear that all sickness, though originally the
result of sin and Satan, is not caused by demon possession, and is not an indication that one is possessed.
Thus the practice of some, who in ministering to the sick always try to cast out a demon, is not biblical
procedure. Note how the Word of God distinguishes between the two, both in cause and in method of
deliverance. In Jesus' ministry: ". . . he cast out the spirits with his word, and healed all that were sick... "
(Mt. 8:16). Again a clear distinction is made in Jesus' message to Herod, "And he said unto them, Go ye, and
tell that fox, Behold, I cast out devils [demons], and I do cures to day and to morrow... " (Lk. 13:32). "Now
when the sun was setting, all they that had any sick with divers diseases brought them unto him; and he laid
his hands on every one of them, and healed them. And devils [demons] also came out of many crying out,
and saying, Thou art Christ the Son of God. And he rebuking them suffered them not to speak. . . " (Lk.
4:40,41). It should be noted that Jesus laid hands on the sick, but He rebuked the demons. Again, the
distinction is clear in His commissioning the Twelve: " . . . and gave them power and authority over all devils
[demons], and to cure diseases" (Lk. 9:1). Demons are expelled; diseases are healed. There is a vast
difference between healing and exorcism.

2. Is there demon possession today?


There seems to be no reason why the Devil should not be as active today through his army of demons as
he has been in former, particularly Bible, days. Dr. John C. Nevius, a Presbyterian missionary to China from
1854 to 1892, made a careful and unbiased study of demon phenomena in Shantung Province and presents
unequivocal evidence of widespread demon possession in modern pagan China. Unger refers to the findings
of Dr. Nevius in the following paragraph:
What is striking in the accounts given by Dr. Nevius is their close correspondence with the cases of
demon possession as recorded in the New Testament. For example, the subject at the time of possession
passes into an abnormal state (cf. Mark 9:18). During the transition he is frequently thrown into a violent
paroxysm, falling senseless on the ground or foaming at the mouth (cf. Mark 9:18; Luke 9:39,42). During
the attack he evidences another personality, his normal personality for the time being wholly or partially dor-
mant (cf. Mark 5:7). The new personality presents traits of character utterly foreign to those characteristic of
the demonized in his normal condition, and this change of character is practically always in the direction of
moral impurity (cf. Luke 8:27). Many people while being demon possessed display a superhuman knowl-
edge. Frequently they appear to know the Lord Jesus as a divine person and show a fear of him (cf. Luke
8:31). They sometimes converse in foreign languages, of which in their normal condition they are totally
ignorant.13
Missionaries from many lands bring similar testimonies.
It may be asked why we do not see this sort of manifestation in the United States more often. Demons are
very wise and able to adapt themselves to the cultural environment of place and age. In an educated and
highly cultured community they do not reveal the grosser aspects of their manifestations. They are able to not
only reveal themselves as a "roaring lion" (1 Pt. 5:8), but also as "an angel of light" (2 Cor. 11:14). Their
presence may be unsuspected, but their purpose in opposing God is often accomplished, even in moral and
exemplary lives. It is possible that some highly educated individuals, who oppose the Word of God in a
sophisticated rationalism, are tools of demons in a more efficient manner than those who suffer the cruder

313
manifestations of demon activity as seen in heathen countries. Many times only the spiritual gift of
"discerning of spirits" (1 Cor. 12:10), can detect their presence.

3. The casting out of demons.


It is not the purpose of this book to go into a detailed study of this phase of ministry. In an excellent
chapter of the book Pentecostal Doctrine (edited and published in England by the Rev. Percy Brewster),
George Canty, evangelist in the Elim Pentecostal Church, says the following:
A Christian service when no demons are cast out is not necessarily a failure as some suggest, which
indicates an obsession with one small aspect of Satanic activity. Nevertheless, Jesus insists that casting out
demons is part of the gospel commission (Mark 16:15-20; Luke 9:1,2; 10:1,17; Matthew 10:8). Remarkably,
nothing is said about this in John's Gospel or in any apostolic letter, though they frequently urge the preaching
of the gospel as a continuation of Christ's own work. He was "manifested to destroy the works of the devil" (I
John 3:8), and "went about doing good, and healing all that were oppressed of the devil" (Acts 10:38), as
should we.
This work, in recent years, has been called for by the increased interest in the occult, spiritism, Satanism
and experiments in magic. The effects upon people have been typical. People become aware of 'presences"
near them in an unpleasant sense, with unnerving apparitions, nightmares, supernatural hauntings, voices,
impulses that cannot be refused, depressions, tendencies to suicide, constant fear, inner urges to commit
violence or murder, fits, unendurable tensions, sexual obsessions, hysteria, and so on. Sheer madness or death
can be the ultimate result. That there is a call to care for those who are in this distressed state is obvious, and
there should be a special alertness to discern such needs.
No precise instructions for dealing with foul spirits are laid down in the New Testament, therefore the
manner in which Christ and the apostles acted has to be our guide. From it we make the following points.
The name of Jesus is the primary secret ... Christ's great commission said, "In my name shall they cast out
devils" (Mark 16:17). Paul rebuked a spirit in the words: "I command thee in the name of Jesus Christ to
come out of her" (Acts 16:18), just as Peter, when healing the lame man, said, "In the name of Jesus Christ of
Nazareth rise up and walk" (Acts 3:6, cf. 3:16; 4:10).
Carefully note, however, that there is danger in tackling spirits with the name of Jesus used merely as a
magic formula, since it could merely provoke them, as in the case of the sons of Sceva. The vital element is
not the formula, but the presence of Jesus in the life of the person casting demons out. He himself should be a
true representative of Christ, a person "in Christ," accepting the Lord's authority.
In that case, the formula is not perhaps so important. The pronunciation of the name over the possessed
person was partly a testimony to those who observed what was happening. The sons of Israel cast out spirits
by various names, so, when the lame man was healed, the authorities at once were curious as to which name
was used (Acts 4:7). The fact is that demons left people when the name of Jesus was not uttered (Acts
5:15,16; 19:11,12). Peter raised Dorcas from the dead without mentioning Jesus (Acts 9:40), just as Paul
brought blindness on Elymas the sorcerer without invoking the name (Acts 13:9-11), and in the same way
healed the cripple at Lystra (Acts 14:9,10). Christ has given us a certain "power of attorney," to act in His
behalf, or "in His name," without necessarily quoting the name constantly. Indeed we are told, "Whatsoever
ye do, in word or deed, do all in the name of the Lord Jesus, giving thanks to God and the Father by him."
Obviously, this does not mean that we must be constantly repeating His name for every act. We act for Him,
on His behalf - "Ye serve the Lord Christ." In the same way, we baptize in the name of Jesus - that is on His
authority. The actual formula to be used is clearly laid down in Matthew 28:19. The casting out of demons
does not require a barrage of words with voluminous repetitions of the word "Jesus" or "Christ." We have
authority, and can use it, as "ambassadors" (II Cor. 5:20), but we must avoid treating it as a "magic"
incantation, like a piece of abracadabra or spell. When we utter "Lord Jesus Christ" it indicates that he is the
Lord of the one who speaks, otherwise we are like the sons of Sceva, unknown to the spirits.
The particular "method" is of very small consequence. Some may lay hands upon the patient; some feel

314
that they should not. There is no actual record of deliverance from demons by the laying on of hands, but
most instances make no mention at all of what was actually done. If it was of any importance, we would have
clear instances or some instructions about it.
In one case, Jesus asked the spirits their name and they replied "Legion" (Mark 5:9). From this, some
have said that it is necessary to do it always, but this rule was not followed by Paul in the cases quoted
already. One wonders what is the use if the spirits are lying spirits? They could lie about their identities for
the sake of putting us off.
There is nothing, either, in Scripture about coughing up or spitting out demons. A demon is a spirit and
as such is invisible. Nor are we given any encouragement to hold conversations with demons. Once they are
known to be there, they should be told to leave. Jesus "suffered not the devils to speak, because they know
Him" and He charged unclean spirits "that they should not make him known" (Mark 1:34; 3:11,12).
Certainly, spirits suffer from egotism and nothing pleases them better than to be the center of interest.
In this connection, nobody was ever given a special gift for "exorcism," only for discernment, as part of
the protection of the Church, chiefly against false teachers with lying and deceitful doctrines of demons.
Nobody manifested a ministry exclusively for dealing with demons. This would draw attention more to Satan
than to Christ. Preoccupation with this sphere of things is a kind of tribute to the power of Satan. "The end of
our conversation" says Hebrews 13:7,8, is 'Jesus Christ the same yesterday, today and for ever," which hardly
can be said of some whose continual thought is about "the powers of darkness."
If "method" does matter, it would be at another level. While it may be possible to cast out a demon, very
often a person needs more than this. They need deeper help, in fact. Life situations, strong temptations,
affecting the willingness of a person to give up their sin, cannot be ignored. Unless sin is forsaken, then, as
Jesus said, the last state of that man may be worse than the first, for the devil will return with several more. It
is the will of a man which makes a way in for the devil, and therefore repentance is required as well as
exorcism. Patient pastoral interest may have to be taken to get down to the roots of a man's trouble, of which
demon possession is not the cause but the result or symptom. It is wrong to assume that a particular evil in a
man's life is the result of demon control. It is more likely that the evil was there first, permitting the entry of
Satanic power.
Again, "method" must not underestimate the power of the Word of God. The preaching of the gospel is
deliverance - it is the power of God in itself "unto salvation" (deliverance). It could well be that great
conversions are sometimes straightforward cases of the Word of God overcoming Satan in a man's life. It
would be absurd to think of a great conversion of a man leaving him with demons still in his heart. Can a
man be saved through faith in the gospel and then need a second experience to save him from Satan? From
what was he saved in the first instance? 'The anointing breaks the yoke."
Discernment should not only detect demons, but also detect when there are no demons. It is quite
common for people to have hypochondriac tendencies. They insist that they have an illness, but they are
really quite well and live to a good old age. There may be psychological motives present, unrealized by the
patient himself, such as finding illness useful for his own schemes or to attract attention or sympathy. That
the condition extends to simulated demon-possession is obviously likely. Where there is a ministry to the
demon-troubled, it automatically suggests to some that they also have such a condition. Their very fear of it
can bring on pseudo-symptoms, especially if they are told that they may be possessed.
For this reason it become extremely dangerous to tell people that they are victims. It is much easier to
create the idea than to get rid of it. Some go from healer to healer wanting deliverance but getting no better,
simply because it is not realized that they are not possessed, but are the victims of suggestion, either auto-
suggestion or imposed by some other person. This again calls for careful counseling. If a person has
sufficient confidence in the counselor, a cure may be wrought by saying directly, "You have no demon."
Demons themselves enjoy having attention paid to them, and tend to turn up where they are talked about a
great deal. Demon-hunters also, exhibiting their fancied powers in some pride, can annoy Satan. He in turn
oppresses those who provoke them by their efforts at exorcism. This is perhaps the modern lesson to be
learned from Jude's warning that even the archangel Michael showed a healthy respect for the dignity of the

315
devil and said merely, "The Lord rebuke thee." Some call Satan names; this is neither Scriptural nor wise.
The powers of hell should not be provoked nor should we dally with them. They should be commanded to
leave if they confront us, and that should be the end of the matter, if we believe God ... That the Church will
be called upon more and more to cleanse people from foul spirits may be likely, but the preaching of the
gospel is the main means, and this should be the prior activity of all God's servants.

4. The occult and demon possession.


Satan has become very bold of recent years and the occult has been receiving a great deal of public
attention. It almost seems incredible that, even in so-called Christian lands, spirit worship should be so
prevalent. Information about such things is obtainable at any book stand. In the Foreword to his book, I
Believe in Satan's Downfall, Michael Green, Rector of St. Aldate's, Oxford, says:
Satan worship, fascination with the occult, black and white magic, astrology and horoscopes, seances and
tarot cards have become the rage. 0uJja boards and levitation are to be found in many schools. Despite our
professed sophistication, there is today in the West a greater interest in the practice than for three centuries. 15
The "occult" means "hidden things," and has to do particularly with magic, fortune-telling and spiritism.
According to Michael Green: "magic is the attempt to bring the spirit world under one's knowledge and
control. It is the precise opposite of religion, which seeks surrender to the divine, not control over it, and
operates by faith not knowledge's Further, it is an endeavor to "conjure up spirits of the universe that are alien
to God Almighty." Such methods as telepathy, clairvoyance, clairaudience,
ESP, automatic writing, charms, and magic healing are employed. Fortune-telling uses palmistry, tarot
cards, crystal gazing, psychometry (the practitioner holds a personal object of the enquirer), and astrology.
Spiritism, falsely called "spiritualism," and identical with ancient necromancy, is the attempt to communicate
with the spirits of the dead.
All of these practices were severely condemned in the Bible: "Do not turn to mediums or spiritists; do not
seek them out to be defiled by them" (Lv. 19:31, NASB). "As for the person who turns to mediums and to
spiritists, to play the harlot after them, I will also set My face against that person and will cut him off from
among his people" U. 20:6, NASB). "There shall not be found among you anyone who makes his son or
daughter to pass through the fire, one who uses divination, one who practices witchcraft, or one who
interprets omens, or a sorcerer, or one who casts a spell, or a medium, or a spiritist, or one who calls up the
dead. For whoever does these things is detestable to the Lord, and because of these detestable things the Lord
your God will drive them out before you" (Dt. 18:10-12, NASB). "And when they say to you, Consult the
mediums and the wizards who whisper and mutter, should not a people consult their God? Should they
consult the dead on behalf of the living?" (Is. 8:19, NASB).
Believers are warned against having anything whatever to do with all such practices, even though some of
them appear outwardly to be quite innocent. There is no doubt that much trickery is practiced in these areas,
but it must be realized that there are demon spirits who ever seek to deceive and to enslave those who give
themselves to such practices.
"Familiar spirits" are simply demons who have been familiar with a person in his lifetime and who
impersonate the departed friend or loved one in the unholy atmosphere of the modem seance. It is not by
accident that witchcraft and immorality are so often mentioned in the same scripture: "Now the works of the
flesh are manifest, which are these; adultery, fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft . . .
" (Gal. 5:19,20). "Neither repented they of their murders, nor of their sorceries, nor of their fornication, nor of
their thefts" (Rv. 9:21). Spiritism was a capital offence in Israel: "You shall not allow a sorceress to live" (Ex.
22:18, NASB).
5. The Christian and demon possession.
Much has been said and written about the possibility of Christians becoming demon possessed. While
one should not blind himself to the presence and power of demonic forces in the world, and be ignorant of
Satan's devices (2 Cor. 2:11), he must not underestimate the great salvation and deliverance which God has

316
wrought for him in Christ Jesus. He must ever encourage and strengthen himself in the fact that Christ
"spoiled principalities and powers," and "made a shew of them openly, triumphing over them in it" (Col.
2:15).
Christ is the Stronger One mentioned in Luke 11:21,22: 'When a strong man armed keepeth his palace, his
goods are in peace: but when a stronger than he shall come upon him, and overcome him, he taketh from him
all his armor wherein he trusted, and divideth his spoils."
When the Lord called Saul of Tarsus on the road to Damascus, He sent him to both Jew and Gentile, "to
open their eyes, and to turn them from darkness to light, and from the power of Satan unto God" (Acts 26:18).
The effect of the Gospel is described: "Who hath delivered us from the power of darkness, and hath
translated us into the kingdom of his dear Son" (Col. 1:13).
John says that if a man has been born of God, "that wicked one toucheth him not" (I Jn. 5:18). Jesus said,
"Behold, I give unto you power to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and
nothing shall by any means hurt you" (Lk. 10:19).Repentance to the acknowledging of the truth," means, says
Paul, that they may recover themselves out of the snare of the devil, who are taken captive by him at his will"
(2 Tm. 2:25,26).
Paul asks: 'What concord hath Christ with Belial? ... And what agreement hath the temple of God with
idols?" Then he assures us: "for ye are the temple of the living God.. . " (2 Cor. 6:15,16). The statement is
that the believer is His temple. Is God going to allow that which is His, and that in which He dwells, to be
occupied by demons of Satan? If the Christian's body is 'the temple of the Holy Ghost which is in you" (1
Cor. 6:19), can a demon and the Holy Spirit dwell in the same house? Would God allow it? Has Christ
provided a great deliverance for us, or has He not? In cases where it is mentioned that sicknesses were caused
by demons (Mt. 4:24; 9:32,33; 101; Mk. 1:32; 3:15; Lk. 6:17,18; 9:1, etc.), there is no indication whatever
that these individuals were in right relation to God.
This does not mean that the child of God is totally immune from Satan's power. We have deliverance
from Satan as long as we live in Christ's victory over him. This we do by faith and obedience. When Jesus
told Peter, 'Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat," He did not pray that he would not
be allowed to do so, but He prayed that Peter's faith would not fail. (Lk. 22:31,32). Disobedience and
persistent waywardness provide the enemy grounds from which He can attack and influence the Christian.
We are admonished, "do not give the devil a foothold" (Eph. 4:27, NIV). Ananias and Sapphira are solemn
examples of those who permitted Satan to fill their heart and "to lie to the Holy Ghost" (Acts 5:3).
The Lord is fully acquainted with the constant wrestling in which the Christian is engaged (Eph. 6:12),
and so He has provided the necessary armor for his constant victory (Eph. 6:13-18). Special note should be
taken of the fact that the armor is of God's provision, and the believer is admonished to "take" the armor, not
to "make" it. The Scripture does not indicate that these spiritual conflicts which the Christian has with the
enemy are the result of demon possession. Satan and his cohorts are external foes, and they are looking for
opportunities to attack us from their dwelling in the atmosphere around us.
Much misunderstanding has arisen from a wrong interpretation of the word "spirit" as it is sometimes
used in the Bible. A statement adopted by the General Presbytery of the Assemblies of God states:
Some, for example, teach that since the Bible speaks of a spirit of cowardly fear, any deliverance from
fear must be by the casting out of an evil spirit or demon of fear. But an examination of the same passage (2
Timothy 1:7) shows it speaks also of a spirit of power, of love, and of a sound mind or self-control. If people
interpret fear to be an evil spirit needing to be cast out, to be consistent they would need to beseech three good
spirits to come in. The fallacy of this reasoning is obvious. Love and self-control are fruits of the Holy Spirit
in our lives. By a spirit of love and of self-control is meant the attitudes that result from our cooperation with
the Holy Spirit. Actually, the word "spirit" in many cases means an attitude or a disposition. David spoke of
a broken spirit (Psalm 51:17); Solomon of a humble spirit (Proverbs 16:19); Paul wanted to come to Corinth,
not with a rod, but with love and a meek or gentle spirit (I Corinthians 4:21). Peter spoke of the adorning of
the heart with the imperishable gift of a meek and quiet spirit (I Peter 3:4), actually meaning a quiet
disposition. This is in line with the frequent use of

317
the word "spirit" for one's own spirit and its expressions (Haggai 1:14; Acts 17:16; 1 Corinthians 2:11,
etc.). Thus, unless the context shows that an independent spirit-being is meant, it seems best to take most
phrases such as a haughty spirit, a hasty spirit, a spirit of slumber, a spirit of jealousy, etc., to be sins of the
disposition or lusts of the flesh (Galatians 6), and not demons. A serious danger in considering all these sins
of the disposition to be demons is that the individual may feel no responsibility for the actions and feel that
the necessity for repentance is removed. Actually, the Bible calls men to repent of these things and to put off
these attitudes. The great conflict within us is not between the Holy Spirit and demons, but between the
indwelling Holy Spirit and the flesh (that is, all the sensory apparatus that tends toward sin).
In concluding this section on Demonology, let it be stated again that demons thrive on publicity. Like
their leader Satan, they are proud and selfish, and seem to delight when attention is paid to them. The wise
servant of God will not publicize their activities, or seek to instill fear in the hearts of Christians concerning
them. To the child of God, who is walking in the light of God's Word, and firmly rejoicing in our Lord's
Victory over them, believing God's promises of triumph, there need to be no fear of demons. They are spirits
of darkness and we are children of light. There is not enough darkness in the whole world to put out one little
light. Let us "walk in the light, as he is in the light"! (1 Jn. 1:7) There are almost 300 references to angels in
the Word of God and only approximately eighty (80) to devils and demons. In other words, there are more
than three times as many references to angels in the Bible, than there are to demons. Why, then, do some
people spend three times as much time talking about demons as they do about angels? The angels are our
friends. Let us think and talk about them, rather than our enemies the demons. Demons are unclean and
impure. Paul admonishes us: "Finally, brethren, whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are lovely,
whatsoever things are of good report; if there be any virtue, and if there be any praise, think on these things"
(Phil. 4:8).

III. SATANOLOGY
A. Importance of this Doctrine.
Though Satan should never be given undue prominence, it is important that the place given to him in
Scripture be realized. No one other individual, except the Father, the Son and the Holy Spirit, is afforded so
prominent a place in the Bible from its very beginning to its end, as the character whom we know as Satan,
the Devil. Of no one else are we so minutely informed concerning his origin, his fall, his character and work,
his influence, and his ultimate judgment and destiny. We can be deeply thankful for this revelation of him
and his host of demons. Heathen lands have been enveloped in the grossest darkness and basest superstitions
and practices because they lack the clear teachings concerning him which the Scriptures afford. We need not
be "ignorant of his devices."

B. The Reality of His Existence.


1. Doubt of his existence.
It has become quite popular to speak of him as a mere "figure of speech,' or a "metaphorical
personification of evil,' or "a delusion of unsound minds." Interestingly, this is true only in Christian lands
where the name of his Conqueror (Jesus) is known. It is certainly to Satan's advantage to have his presence
denied so that he may be enabled to work the more subtly in deceiving Mankind, the easier to disarm their
prejudices and fears. Chafer has well said:
It may be observed that figures of speech are not created angels who sin and serve in realms of darkness
and are doomed to a final and dreadful judgment at the hand of God. A metaphor would hardly enter a herd
of swine and precipitate their instant destruction. Nor would a metaphor offer the kingdoms of this world to
the Lord of glory, asserting that those kingdoms were delivered unto it and that it gave them to whomsoever it
would. 19

318
2 Scriptural record of his existence.
Satan, his Hebrew name, is only mentioned, expressly, on five occasions in the Old Testament. On the
first occasion (Gn. 3:1-15) he is seen in the guise of the serpent who tempted Eve and caused the first sin on
this earth. In I Chronicles 21:1 we read: "And Satan stood up against Israel, and provoked David to number
Israel." He next appears in Job (in the order of the books of the Bible in our versions) on two occasions, where
he is seen "when the sons of God came to present themselves before the Lord, and Satan came also among
them," and there ensued those dramatic confrontations between Satan and God which led to the variety of
trials to which Job was subjected (Jb. 1:6-12; 2:1-7). The final place is in Zechariah 3:1,2:
And he shewed me Joshua the high priest standing before the angel of the Lord, and Satan standing at his
right hand to resist him. And the Lord said unto Satan, the Lord rebuke thee, O Satan; even the Lord that hath
chosen Jerusalem rebuke thee: is not this a brand plucked out of the fire.
However, in the New Testament he is referred to as 'Satan," or the 'devil," about seventy-two (72) times.
This apparent discrepancy between the Old and the New Testaments can probably be accounted for by
Genesis 3:15: "And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed; it shall
bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel." When Christ, the "seed" of the woman, was born of the flesh
and came to accomplish His great Victory over Satan, and purchase Redemption at Calvary, the Devil became
manifestly active in a greater degree than prior to this event.

C. His Personality.
The personality of Satan is a fact which is so pointedly denied by the rationalists of our time, but those
who accept the Bible as the inspired Word of God have no difficulty accepting this truth along with all that
the Scriptures reveal. The Bible speaks of the personality of Satan as fully as of any other person referred to
in it. Indeed, if we did not believe in the personality of Satan, from what the Bible records, it would be
difficult to believe in the personality of the Lord Jesus. Actually, we would not be able to trust the Scriptures
at all. All of the characteristics of personality are ascribed to Satan. He is constantly referred to as a personal
being. Personal pronouns are applied to him - Jb. 1:8,12; 2:2,3,6; Zec. 3:2; Mt. 4:10; Jn. 8:44. Personal
attributes are ascribed to him: Is. 14:13,14 - will; Jb. 1:9,10 - knowledge; and personal acts are performed by
him - Jb. 1:9-11; Mt. 4:1-11; Jn. 8:44; 1 Jn. 3:8; Jude 9; Rv. 12:7-10.

D. His Origin.
Much of the scriptural teaching regarding Satan's origin is covered under the Doctrine of Hamartiology,
which should be studied in this connection. Satan, along with the other angels, as we have noted in a previous
section of this study (See Sec. I., B. of Angelology), was created by God. "Praise ye him, all his angels:
praise ye him, all his hosts... Let them praise the name of the Lord: for he commanded, and they were created"
(Ps. 148:2-5).
God did not create the Devil as we know him today. Everything God made was declared good (Gn. 1:31).
Ezekiel 28:12-19 gives a detailed picture of the beauty and wisdom with which Satan was originally created.
This passage speaks of him as: "full of wisdom, and perfect in beauty... every precious stone was thy
covering ... thou art the anointed cherub that covereth ... thou wast perfect in thy ways from the days that thou
was created." Isaiah 14:12-17 gives us his name before he fell. He was called "Lucifer", which means "the
morning star." It is literally "light bearer." He is pictured to us as the highest angel of God's creation. The
mystery is how such a wise and beautiful being could have fallen to such depths as to now be the vilest being
in the universe.
Isaiah chapter fourteen tells of his fall and the reason for it. It all began when Lucifer lifted his will above
that of God Almighty: ". . . I will ascend into heaven, I will exalt my throne above the stars of God: I will sit
also upon the mount of the congregation, in the sides of the north: I will ascend above the heights of the
clouds; I will be like the most High" (vv.13,14). Heaven had been Heaven because there was only One Who

319
reigned and none thought to oppose His Will. Thus harmony and peace prevailed. Then came the moment of
rebellion, and five times this beautiful anointed cherub voiced his will in opposition to that of God. Chafer
says: "Feeble indeed is the power of the human imagination to picture the crisis in this universe at the moment
when the first repudiation of God took place in heaven.1120 What caused such an unthought of happening?
Pride and selfish ambition!
Paul, in writing to Timothy concerning the qualifications for officers in the Early Church, insists that such
a person must not be a novice, "lest being lifted up with pride he fall into the condemnation of the devil" (I
Tm. 3:6). Lucifer, in his selfish pride, sought to rise above the sphere in which he was created, and above the
purpose and service assigned to him. As a result of this rebellion, Lucifer was cast out of the heavenly realm
and office which he had held. 'Yet thou shalt be brought down to hell, to the sides of the pit" (Is. 14:15).
Thus the prophet cries, "How art thou fallen from heaven, 0 Lucifer, son of the morning! how art thou cut
down to the ground, which didst weaken the nations!" (Is. 14:12)
Jesus said, "I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven" (Lk. 10:18). Some commentators believe that
these words were prophetic and refer to that which is recorded in Revelation 12:9: "And the great dragon was
cast out, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out into
the earth, and his angels were cast out with him." Others hold to the position that these words of Jesus look
back to that historic judgment of Lucifer, when he was expelled from Heaven and became Satan.
As to whether Satan still has access to Heaven, we have noted already: "When the sons of God came to
present themselves before the Lord, Satan came also with them. And the Lord said unto Satan, Whence
comest thou? Then Satan answered the Lord, and said, From going to and fro in the earth, and from walking
up and down in it" (Jb. 1:6,7). The contrast, suggested by the fact Satan had been on the earth walking up and
down, would lead us to believe that he, along with the sons of God, was here before the Lord in Heaven. As
the "accuser of our brethren" he did have access to Heaven (Rv. 12:10). One thing is certain, that after he was
expelled for his wicked pride and rebellion he never had access to his former position of honor and influence.
If the question be pressed as to how a holy being in a holy place could originate the first sin, and himself
suffer such a fall, the reply is that as the Devil he is self-made. In some way unexplained, and possibly
unintelligible to us, he originated his own sin: "Thou hast said in thine heart, I will. . ." (Is. 14:13).

E. His Character.
One of Satan's greatest assets, in opposing the work of the Lord, is his deceptiveness. Down through the
centuries he has posed in roles that have caused men to think of him in any way other than his true character,
thus making it easier for him to lead them away from God. F.C. Jennings has said:
In considering the person of Satan, it may be well first to look at the common, vulgar, popular idea, such
as is still held by the masses of Christendom, and such as is made the basis, or one of the bases, for the
rejection of his very existence by many of the "learned" of the day. The lowest possible, and yet the most
widespread conception we have is in what one may term the stage idea, as we constantly see it on the posters
in our streets. A human form, with leering face, characterized by a grin of low cunning, horns, hoofs, and
forked tail; utterly obscene, and provoking nothing but contempt, ridicule, and disgust.
The Bible certainly does not present such a picture of him. If he came in such a guise, no one would
follow him. Satan's dominant purpose is not, as the popular belief is, to be unlike God. His transcendent
objective is to "be like the most High" (Is. 14:14). The Scriptures give a great number of different names and
descriptive titles to Satan. The following nineteen (19) are listed so that the variety of his approaches may be
seen and much of his true character may be revealed.

F. Names and Titles Given to Satan.


1. Lucifer.
This was his title in Heaven, before his rebellion and fall. "How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer,

320
son of the morning!" (Is. 14:12). The latter phrase is literally, "star of the morning" or "morning star." It
signifies "lightbearer." The Bible indicates that Lucifer occupied an exalted position in the heavens, possibly
second only to the Trinity Itself. It is well to remember this in our thinking of him, for he, no doubt, has not
lost all of the dignity which was his then. We must be warned that he does not come to us as a hideous
creature out of Hell, but as one who formerly occupied the heights. Thus his appeals will sometimes seem to
be high and lofty.

2. Satan.
This name accentuates his activities as the adversary. The name "Satan" is used fifty-six (56) times in the
Old and New Testaments. It pictures his malicious and persistent attempts to hinder God's program. As such,
he is opposed to everything and every person that is good. He is the adversary of both God and Man. 1 Peter
5:8 speaks of "your adversary the devil." Paul writes to the Thessalonian church and tells the saints there:
"Wherefore we would have come unto you, even I Paul, once and again; but Satan hindered us" (1 Thes.
2:18).

3. Devil.
Revelation 20:2 uses four names for Satan: "And he laid hold on the dragon, that old serpent, which is the
Devil, and Satan." The name 'Devil" particularly signifies slander and accuser. Satan is pictured in this role as
he, through the serpent, accuses God to man: "And the serpent said unto the woman, Ye shall not surely die:
for God doth know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods,
knowing good and evil" (Gn. 3:4,5). In Revelation 12:10 we read of Satan as 'the accuser of the brethren"
being "cast down, which accused them before our God day and night." Thus he accuses man to God. "Devil,"
referring to Satan himself, occurs thirty-five (35) times in the New Testament.

4. Serpent.
Satan is first seen in his activity on earth as a serpent (Gn. 3:1-15). Paul, in 2 Corinthians 11:3, says: "But
I fear, lest by any means, as the serpent beguiled Eve, through his subtilty, so your minds should be corrupted
from the simplicity that is in Christ." One must not think of the serpent, as mentioned in Genesis chapter
three, as a slithering, crawling creature as we know it today. This action came only as a result of the curse
upon it, when God said to the serpent, "Because thou hast done this, thou art cursed above all cattle, and
above every beast of the field; upon thy belly shalt thou go, and dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy life"
(Gn. 3:14). Prior to the curse, the serpent must have walked upright and been a most beautiful creature. Nor
must we think of the serpent as a mere animal. This could not be, for he is said to speak, and speech is a
characteristic of the spirit, which a serpent does not possess. We conclude that some spirit, Satan, took
possession of the serpent - speaking, arguing and reasoning. Revelation 12:9 and 20:3 speak of "that old
serpent the Devil." This name denotes crookedness, deceitfulness and guile.

5. Dragon.
In Revelation 20:2 Satan is specifically identified as "the dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and
Satan." Also in Revelation 12:9 we read, "And the great dragon, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan,
which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him." Verse
seven of the same chapter tells us: "there was war in heaven: Michael and his angels fought against the
dragon." The word "dragon" is literally "sea monster." The name is thought to refer to his great power. This
is clearly seen in Revelation 13:2, "And the beast which I saw was like unto a leopard, and his feet were as the
feet of a bear, and his mouth as the mouth of a lion: and the dragon gave him his power, and his seat, and
great authority."

321
6. Beelzebub or Beelzebul.
"If they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call them out of his
household" (Mt. 10:25). Jesus is speaking here of the Pharisees calling Him by this name: "And when the
Pharisees heard it, they said, This fellow doth not cast out devils, but by Beelzebub the prince of the devils"
(Mt. 12:24). The name originally signified "Lord of flies," but the Jews later changed it to "Lord of the
dunghill." As Beelzebub, Satan is particularly seen as"the prince of the demons." This name suggests the vast
host of demon spirits over which Satan rules as their prince.

7. Belial.
This name is often used of evil men who are designated as "children of Belial." (Dt. 13:13; Jgs. 20:13; 1
Sm. 10:27; 30:22). The name means "good for nothing," and indicates worthlessness.

8. Tempter.
"And when the tempter came to him, he said, If thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be
made bread" (Mt. 4:3). "For this cause, when I could no longer forbear, I sent to know your faith, lest by
some means the tempter have tempted you, and our labor be in vain" (1 Thes. 3:5). Whereas God tests men
for their good, so that they may learn and become stronger thereby, Satan tempts men for the purpose of
destroying them. As tempter, he constantly incites men to sin.
9. Wicked, Evil or Lawless One.
Either of these names bears witness to the character of Satan. Though his ways may be varied and
deceiving, they are always for a wicked and evil purpose. "For we know that we are of God, and the whole
world lies in the power of the evil one" (1 Jn. 5:19, NASB). Second Thessalonians 2:8 is variously translated:
"Then shall be revealed the lawless one" (ASV); "Wickedness Incarnate" (TCNT); 'The embodiment of
disobedience" (Gspd.); "Representative of lawlessness" (Wms.). "Then cometh the wicked one, and catcheth
away that which was sown in his heart" (Mt. 13:19). "The field is the world; the good seed are the children of
the kingdom; but the tares are the children of the wicked one" (Mt. 13:38). Writing to "you fathers," John
twice declares: "And ye have overcome the wicked one" (1 Jn. 2:13,14).

10. Prince of this World.


Three times Jesus ascribed this name to Satan: "Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the prince
of this world be cast out" (Jn. 12:31); 'Hereafter I will not talk much with you: for the prince of this world
cometh, and hath nothing in me" (Jn. 14:30); "Of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged" Un.
16:11). This title speaks of Satan's rule and influence over governments of this world - world politics.
Business and society are under his domain. Satan has a throne. "I know where you dwell, where Satan's
throne is" (Rv. 2:13, NASB). During Jesus' temptation in the wilderness, when the Devil offered Him "the
kingdoms of the world, and the glory of them," Jesus did not deny Satan's right to offer these to Him. God
gave Adam dominion over the earth (Gn. 1:26), but by disobeying the word of the Lord, and hearkening to
Satan, Man forfeited his right to rule, and sold his dominion to the devil. In the book of Job, as the Lord
asked Satan where he had been, his reply was, "From going to and fro in the earth, and from walking up and
down in it," as though he ruled over it (Jb. 1:6,7). But let it be clearly noted that Satan is never called "King"
of this world. He is designated "Prince," but he is still under the dominion of God Who reigns Supreme, and
must recognize the One
Who is above him.

11. Prince of the Power of the Air.


This suggests his rulership over those spirit-beings who shared his sin: "When in time past ye walked
according to the course of the world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now

322
worketh in the children of disobedience" (Eph. 2:2). "For our struggle is not against flesh and blood, but
against the rulers, against the powers, against the world-forces of this darkness, against the spiritual forces of
wickedness in the heavenly places" (Eph. 6:12, NASB). (See also Mt. 12:24; 25:41; Rv. 12:7.)

12. God of This World, or Age.


"In whom the god of this world [age] hath blinded the minds of them which believe not, lest the light of
the glorious gospel of Christ, who is the image of God, should shine unto them" (2 Cor. 4:4). The previous
two titles, "Prince of This World," and "Prince of the Power of the Air," refer to powers of rulership,
princeship. Royalty is a civil dignity and political glory. In seeking to be like The Most High, Satan aspired
to religious leadership, and so this title, "God of This Age," speaks of his rulership in this realm. Indeed, it
may be that here is his most devastating attack against God. As a religious leader, a god: he attends religious
gatherings (Jb. 1); he has his teachings, "doctrines of devils" (1 TM. 4:1); his meeting places, "Synagogue of
Satan" (Rv. 2:9); his sacrifices, 'The things which the Gentiles sacrifice, they sacrifice to demons, and not to
God" (1 Cor. 10:20); and "ministers,"'Therefore it is no great thing if his ministers also be transformed as the
ministers of righteousness; whose end shall be according to their works" (2 Cor. 11:15). These "ministers"
sponsor all kinds of materialistic, and humanistic religions, and, no doubt, are responsible for the
multitudinous cults abroad in the world.
We quote an apt passage from F.C. Jennings on this very theme:
In this present system of things looked at morally and away from God, he (Satan) so arranges not merely
the politics of earth, or its immoralities, but its religion - for this is necessarily the force of this title "God" as
in contrast with "prince" - as to suit his own ends. He so weaves the course of this age: its religious forms,
ceremonies, external decencies, respectabilities, and conventionalities to form a thick veil, that entirely hides
"the glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ," which consists in righteous mercy to penitent sinners only.
This veil is not formed by evil-living, depravity, or any form of what passes as evil amongst men; but by cold
formality, heartless decency, proud self-complacency, highly esteemed external respectability, and we must
add, church membership - all without Christ. It is the most fatal of all delusions, the thickest of all veils, and
the most common. It is the way that, because it is religious, respectable, decent "seems right unto a man but
the end thereof is death"; for there is no Christ, no Lamb of God, no Blood of Atonement in it.22

13. Deceiver.
If there is any name appropriate for this arch-enemy of God it is this the deceiver. "And the devil that
deceived them was cast into the lake of fire" (Rv. 20:10). "And the great dragon was cast out, that old
serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out into the earth" (Rv.
12:9). "And he laid hold on the dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and Satan, and bound him a
thousand years, and cast him into the bottomless pit, and shut him up, and set a seal upon him, that he should
deceive the nations no more, till the thousand years should be fulfilled" (Rv. 20:2,3). Having learned nothing
from his one thousand year incarceration in the "bottomless pit" (lit., "the abyss"), Satan, immediately that he
is loosed, goes "out to deceive the nations which are in the four quarters of the earth, Gog and Magog, to
gather them together to battle: the number of whom is as the sand of the sea" (Rv. 20:8). This is his last great
attempt to deceive the nations into thinking they can triumph over God Almighty, and that it will be to their
advantage to follow the "Prince of This World." The only possible way Satan could influence anyone to
forsake God and follow him would be to deceive him. No one would knowingly march under Satan's banner.

14. The Accuser.


"For the accuser of our brethren is cast down, which accused them before our God day and night" (Rv.
12:10). Not satisfied with directing his subtle energies and forces against the saints personally, he even
presumes to accuse them before their God unceasingly. Imagine the arrogance of one who would accuse in
the presence of God Himself, those who have been redeemed through the precious blood of God's own Son.

323
The classic example of this is Job, whom Satan dared to say would curse God to His face, if the hedge
was lifted and he, Satan, be allowed to touch his possessions (Jb. 1:10,11). The Lord knows who are His, and
Christians need never fear that His hand of protection will ever be lifted from them, except, perhaps,
temporarily for their good. Notice the triumphant notes of victory that accompany this great proclamation of
the accuser's downfall: "And I heard a loud voice saying in heaven, Now is come salvation, and strength, and
the kingdom of our God, and the power of his Christ" (Rv. 12:10).

15. Angel of Light.


'For such are false apostles, deceitful workers, transforming themselves into the apostles of Christ. And
no marvel; for Satan himself is transformed into an angel of light. Therefore it is no great thing if his
ministers also be transformed as the ministers of righteousness; whose end shall be according to their works"
(2 Cor. 11:13-15). This is, perhaps, the greatest role of deceptiveness which Satan plays. He poses as a
spiritual helper to lead those who need help out of their darkness. Yet, his only purpose is to guide them into
ever-increasing darkness, deceiving them under the impression that they are coming more and more into the
light. How true the words of Jesus, "If therefore the light that is in thee be darkness, how great is that
darkness" (Mt. 6:23)!

16. Murderer.
Jesus Himself said it to the Jews, "Ye are of your father the devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do.
He was a murderer from the beginning" Un. 8:44). What a contrast to our Lord Who said, "I am come that
they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly" Un. 10:10)! Satan has been a murderer
from the beginning; for he has been the originator of sin, and sin brings death. Thus, in tempting men to sin.
he is promoting death.

17. Father of Lies.


Again in John 8:44 Jesus describes the Devil: "He ... abode not in the truth, because there is no truth in
him. When he speaketh a lie, he speaketh of his own: for he is a liar, and the father of it" Un. 8:44). Again,
the chief characteristic of Satan is seen. He is a deceiver and lies are his favorite devices. Satan does not
specialize in coal black lies that are quite apparent. His stock in trade are the gray-white variety, with just
enough of truth in them to trick the unwary. There was a measure of truth in what he said to Eve. She and
Adam did come to know good and evil; but they had no power to do the good, nor to resist the evil. Satan
will even use Scripture, as he did with Jesus (Mt. 4:6), but always to misquote or misapply it. When you read
something that Satan says, look for the lie in it. He cannot speak the truth.

18. Roaring Lion.


"Be sober, be vigilant; because your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion, walketh about, seeking whom
he may devour" (1 Pt. 5:8). Satan is pictured as a serpent to denote his subtlety, but as a lion to express his
fierceness and strength. The word rendered "roaring" is used especially of the cries of wild beasts when
ravenous with hunger.

19. Destroyer.
"And they had a king over them, which is the angel of the bottomless pit, whose name in the Hebrew
tongue is Abaddon, but in the Greek tongue hath his name Apollyon"(Rv. 9:11). Both of these names,
Abaddon or Apollyon, mean 'destroyer."

G. Satan's Defeat.

324
Though allowed to continue his activities in the earth, Satan is a defeated foe. He has already suffered
much under the hand of the God, Whom he dared to oppose. It is very helpful for the Christian in his daily
conflicts with the world, the flesh and the Devil, to recognize, and rejoice in, the defeats Satan has had to
endure.

1. He was cast out of his exalted position in Heaven.


Immediately after his bold assertions recorded in Isaiah 14:12-14 the seven "I wills" - his fall is
announced: 'Yet thou shalt be brought down to hell [Sheol], to the sides of the pit" (Is. 14:15). It could well
be that Jesus was referring to this event when He said, 'I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven" (Lk.
10:18). Though there is indication in the Scripture that Satan has some access to the presence of God, as he
accuses the brethren (Rv. 12:10), Satan never regained the lofty position he once had.

2. He was cursed in the Garden of Eden.


And the Lord God said unto the serpent, Because thou has done this, thou art cursed above all cattle, and
above every beast of the field; upon thy belly shalt thou go, and dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy life: I
will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed: it shall bruise thy head, and
thou shalt bruise his heel (Gn. 3:14,15).
Though this curse was directed against the creature that Satan had possessed in his approach to Eve, and
the serpent has ever since slithered on its belly, the reference to the enmity certainly goes beyond the creature
to Satan himself. This is a curse against the Devil which has never been lifted, nor ever will be. In spite of all
his boldness, Satan must realize he carries the weight of this curse upon himself at all times.

3. He was defeated by Christ in the wilderness temptation.


Three times the Tempter sought to turn Christ aside from His Divine mission here on earth, and three
times Jesus unsheathed the 'sword of the Spirit," the Word of God, and declared "It is written" (Mt. 4:3-10).
Never would Christ, in any wise, depart from the purposes of God as expressed in His Word. The result was:
"Then the devil leaveth him, and, behold, angels came and ministered unto him" (Mt. 4:11).

4. He was judged at the Cross of Calvary.


Just prior to His condemnation and crucifixion, Jesus said, as He knew He was on His way to the Cross,
'Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the prince of this world be cast out" (Jn. 12:31). Referring to
this same event on Calvary, Jesus prophesied that the Holy Spirit would convict of judgment. Then He
explained, "Of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged" (Jn. 16:11). Through His Death on the
Cross, Jesus destroyed "him that had the power of death, that is, the devil" (Heb. 2:14). Paul speaks in
glowing terms of the Victory over Satan at the Cross: "And having spoiled principalities and powers, he made
a shew of them openly, triumphing over them in it" (Col. 2:15).
If Satan's defeat was so triumphant at Calvary it may be wondered why he is still on the scene, and
allowed the measure of freedom which is his to harass the Church of Jesus Christ. Even after the Cross, Satan
is still called "the prince of the power of the air" (Eph. 2:2), and "the god of this world" (2 Cor. 4:4). There is
a vast difference between a judgment gained and the carrying out of the penalty. There is no doubt of the
judgment rendered against Satan at the Cross; but for good reasons, best known to Himself, God has seen fit
to allow the enemy a degree of freedom. It certainly is not for lack of power that God has not dispensed with
the Devil already. The time for his final dispersal will come; its time has already been set.

H. Satan's Destiny.
1. He is to be finally cast out of Heaven.

325
And there was war in heaven: Michael and his angels fought against the dragon; and the dragon fought
and his angels, and prevailed not; neither was their place found any more in heaven. And the great dragon
was cast out, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out
into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him (Rv. 12:7-9). From this time on, his wickedness will be
confined to this earth.

2. He is to be confined to the Bottomless Pit.


And I saw an angel come down from heaven, having the key of the bottomless pit and a great chain in his
hand. And he laid hold on the dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and Satan, and bound him a
thousand years. And cast him into the bottomless pit, and shut him up, and set a seal upon him, that he should
deceive the nations no more, till the thousand years should be fulfilled: and later that he must be loosed for a
little season (Rv. 20:1-3).
At the beginning of the Millennial Reign of Christ, Satan will be bound in the Bottomless Pit - literally,
"the abyss." It would seem logical to presume that the demon hosts will be there with him. They are cast out
of Heaven with him (Rv. 12:9), so it would seem they would be bound with him in the Abyss. After the
thousand years is finished, he is to be loosed for a little season, at which time he will conduct his last
campaign of deceit. The rebellious army which he will gather will be destroyed with fire from God out of
heaven (Rv. 20:7-9).

3. He will be consigned to the Lake of Fire.


"And the devil that deceived them was cast into the lake of fire and brimstone, where the beast and the
false prophet are, and shall be tormented day and night for ever and ever" (Rv. 20:10). Having ended his
work - the last group of human beings having been tested - Satan will then be consigned by Almighty God to
the Lake of Fire where he will be tormented forever.

I. The Believer's Course of Action Regarding Satan.


1. Recognize Satan's limitations.
It is never wise to underestimate the Devil. He is a sly and skillful foe. He has had almost 6,000 years
experience dealing with Mankind. But neither should one overestimate his abilities. He has certain very
definitive limitations. These should be fully known, so that one will not be overwhelmed by him.

a) He is not omnipotent. He has great power - more than any man. Only our God is All-powerful, and
Satan is no match for Him.
b) He is not omniscient. He has a very keen intellect; and from experience knows many things, far
more than men. Again, only God is All-knowing.

c) He is not omnipresent. Satan has an individual personality and is only in one place at one time.
Because of the great number of the demons under his control, it seems as if the Devil is everywhere at the
same time. Many of the so-called attacks by the Devil are only the activity of one of his assisting demons.
Only God is always everywhere.

d) The Devil cannot bestow life, nor raise anyone from the dead. The Authorized Version's
rendering of Revelation 13:15 reads, concerning the Beast, the Antichrist: "And he had power to give life unto
the image of the beast," is better rendered: "There was given to him to give breath to the image of the beast."
(NASB)

326
2. Realize that Satan's power is limited by the Will of God.
This is clearly seen in the story of Satan, God and Job (Jb. 1:10). "Hast not thou made an hedge about
him, and about his house, and about all that he hath on every side?" Satan could touch none of Job's
possessions, nor his person, until God gave him permission. (See also Jb. 2:4-6.) Jesus said to Peter, "Simon,
Simon, behold, Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat" (Lk. 22:31). The implication is
that Satan could not have Peter for this purpose without the Lord's permission.

3. Realize that he has been conquered.


"For this purpose the Son of God was manifested, that he might destroy the works of the devil" (1 Jn.
3:8). Satan is a conquered foe, overcome by none other than our Lord Jesus Christ. Nowhere are Christians
told to fight the Devil. Our Lord did that once for all on the Cross. Our part is to claim, by faith, and stand, in
His Victory. "Resist the devil' - do not fight him - and he is the one who "will flee from you" (Jas. 4:7). 1
Peter 5:9 explains how this is to be done: "Whom resist steadfast in the faith." Faith in the account of Christ's
Victory over the Devil, and faith in God's promises is the secret of victory. Jesus made Satan's tactics quite
clear in the parable of the Sower and the Seed. Some of the seed, Jesus said, fell by the wayside and the fowls
of the air devoured it. Interpreting this, Jesus explained: "Those by the way side are they that hear; then
cometh the devil, and taketh away the word out of their hearts, lest they should believe and be saved" (Lk.
8:12). The Devil knew that if the Word were allowed to remain in the hearts of the hearers it would bring
forth faith. "So then faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God" (Rom. 10:17). Faith in God's
Word is the secret of the believer's daily triumph. F.C. Jennings sums up this truth when he says:
This then suggests very clearly the root-aim of his attacks: it is always to destroy faith in God; and our
side of the conflict is to maintain that faith in spite of everything he can bring against it. So the apostle Peter
says "whom resist steadfast in the faith;" and our apostle's (Paul's) joyful swan-song is: "I have fought a good
fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith' (II Tim. 4:7); and he passes back the word to us "fight
the good fight of faith" (I Tm.6:12)

4. Remember that the believer has One Who intercedes in his behalf.
This is beautifully illustrated in the following verse: "And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan
hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat: But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not" (Lk.
22:31,32).

5. Practice unceasing vigilance.


"Be sober, be vigilant; because your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion, walketh about, seeking whom
he may devour" (1 Pt. 5:8). The TCNT translates this: "Exercise self control, be watchful." The believer,
knowing Satan's malice, cunning, and power, will make it his supreme concern to be watchful.

6. Deny Satan any foothold in himself.


"Neither give place to the devil" (Eph. 4:27). The admonition is that the believer must not give the Devil
any place within his life where he might gain a place, or opportunity, for attack. Jesus could say, "The prince
of this world cometh, and hath nothing in me" Un. 14:30). There was no place in Jesus where Satan could get
a foothold.

7. Put on the whole armor of God.


Wherefore take unto you the whole armor of God, that ye may be able to withstand in the evil day, and
having done all to stand. Stand therefore, having your loins girt about with truth, and having on the
breastplate of righteousness; and your feet shod with the preparation of the gospel of peace; above all, taking

327
the shield of faith, wherewith ye shall be able to quench all the fiery darts of the wicked. And take the helmet
of salvation, and the sword of the Spirit, which is the word of God: praying always with all prayer and
supplication in the Spirit (Eph. 6:13-18).
The Lord has provided a complete set of armor that the Christian may be protected from every fiery dart
of the Wicked One. But the believer must put on this armor, all of it. The omission of any one part may be
fatal to one's Christian life and testimony.

328
CHAPTER TEN
THE DOCTRINE OF LAST THINGS
Eschatology

Introduction
I. Death
A. Physical death
B. Spiritual death
C. Eternal death
II. The Intermediate State
A. Of the wicked
B. Of the righteous
C. False views of the intermediate state
III. The Second Coming of Christ
A. The importance of His Coming
B. The nature of His Coming
C. The time of His Coming
D. The signs of His Coming
E. The Rapture of the Church
F The Revelation
IV. The Tribulation
A. The word "tribulation" in Scripture
B. Daniel's dream and vision
C. Principal events of the Tribulation
V. The Antichrist
A. The word "antichrist" in Scripture
B. The identity of the Antichrist
C. The titles of the Antichrist
D. The works of the Antichrist
VI. The Resurrection
A. The fact of the Resurrection
B. The nature of the Resurrection
C. The time of the Resurrection
VII. The Millennium
A. Its relation to the Second Coming
B. Its relation to Israel
C. Its relation to the nations
D. Its relation to the Church
E. Life and conditions on earth
VIII. The Judgments
A. Of the believers
B. Of the Gentile nations
C. Of national Israel
D. Of the wicked dead
E. Of Satan and the fallen angels
IX. The Final Destinies
A. The future destiny of the unrighteous
B. The final destiny of Satan, the fallen angels, and the Antichrist
C. The future state of the righteous

329
The Doctrine of Last Things
Eschatology

INTRODUCTION

The term "ESCHATOLOGY" comes from two Greek words eschatos meaning "last" and logos which
means "subject matter"; therefore, ESCHATOLOGY would be the doctrinal study that deals with the last
events of sacred history, including all that is beyond this life and this age, as well as the final events of this
present age. However, the term "eschatological" is frequently applied to this entire age, for:
(1) Peter, on the Day of Pentecost, declared that the Spirit's outpouring fulfilled Joel's prophecy
concerning the "last days" (Acts 2:16-21).
(2) The Church already enjoys certain powers of the kingdom age and the world (age) to come (Lk.
17:21; Mt. 16:19; Heb. 6:5).
(3) Since the Church expects the any-moment Coming of the Lord, every moment is "eschatological"
(Rom. 8:23; 1 Cor. 1:7; Lk. 12:35,36; 1 Thes. 1:10).
(4) Since Christ the Son of God is the "end" or "goal" of all things in God's plan of redemption, the
coming of the Son incarnate introduced the "last days": ". . . hath in these 'last days' spoken unto us by His
Son, whom He hath appointed heir of all things..." (Heb. 1:2).
(5) Since the spirit of antichrist is already working in anticipation of the final conflict, John said:
"Little children it is the last time: and as ye have heard that antichrist shall come, even now there are many
antichrists; whereby we know that it is the 'last time'" (1 Jn. 2:18).
Even though it is important to note that this age is in a real sense an "eschatological" age, the study in this
section will include the present age only in two aspects: that of the present state of the dead, and that of the
latter time signs of the Lord's Coming.

I. DEATH

The Scriptures speak of three kinds of death: (1) physical death (2) spiritual death (3) and the second or
eternal death.

A. Physical Death.
Physical death is the separation of the soul from the body and constitutes the transition from the visible
world to the invisible. For the believer, it marks his entrance into Paradise and into the presence of Christ
Jesus (2 Cor 5:1,8; Phil. 1:23); for the unbeliever, death is his entrance into Hades (Lk. 16:22,23; Mt. 10:28;
Rv. 20:13). Physical death is not the end of existence, but only a change in the state of existence. For the
believer, physical death is the ultimate effect of sin and the last effect of sin to be canceled by Christ's
Redeeming Work (Rom. 5:12-15; 1 Cor. 15:26). Although all men die physically, the atoning Death and
Resurrection of Christ have robbed death of its sting for the believer (1 Cor. 15:54-57; 2 Tm. 1:10; Heb.
2:9,14,15; 9:15); in fact, the Christian can triumphantly declare that, for him, "to die is gain" (Phil. 1:21),

B. Spiritual Death.
Spiritual death is separation from God, both in this world and in the world to come. For example, Adam
"died" as a result of his disobedience in accordance with the warning of God: ". . . For in the day that thou
eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gn. 2:17). However, his death (exclusion from the garden) did not

330
consist of immediate physical decease, even though his state of mortality began; his death was spiritual death.
When Jesus said, "Let the dead bury their dead" (Mt. 8:22), he meant "let the spiritually dead bury the
physically dead"; by the spiritually dead he had reference to those separated from God by unbelief. Paul,
writing to the Ephesians, said: "And you he made alive, who were dead in trespasses and sins" (Eph. 2:1,
NKJV). Formerly, as sinners, they existed in spiritual "death"; when they came to Christ, they were made
alive. When one comes into fellowship with God through faith in Christ, he passes from "death unto life" (I
Jn. 3:14).
At the final "Great White Throne Judgment" of unbelievers, which takes place after the thousand years
(millennium), the wicked dead will still exist and stand before God in judgment; and although they will be
able to stand judgment, their state is called "death" because they are alienated from God (Rv. 20:13-15). (See
also Rv. 3:1; 1 Tm. 5:6)

C. Eternal Death
When those who are "dead in trespasses and sins" die physically and are unrepentant, they enter into the
state of eternal death. James refers to this death, explaining how it may be averted: "Let him know, that he
which converteth the sinner from the error of his way shall SAVE a soul from DEATH.... (Jas. 5:20). Clearly,
eternal death is not cessation of existence; it is an everlasting punishment. Paul warns of this eventuality in 2
Thessalonians:
... The Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with His mighty angels, in flaming fire taking vengeance
on them that know not God, and that obey not the gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall be punished with
everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of His power ... (1:7-9).
At the final "Great White Throne Judgment" all the wicked dead will be cast into the Lake of Fire which
is called the "second death" (Rv. 20:13-15). The eternal death is described in Scripture as eternal or
everlasting fire (Jude 7; Mt. 18:8, 25:41); eternal punishment (Mt. 25:46); eternal judgment (Heb. 6:2);
everlasting destruction (2 Thes. 1:9); and eternal damnation (Mk. 3:29). Although the English words
"everlasting" and "eternal" have slightly different theological meanings, they both have the same meaning as
used in the New Testament; for both words are derived from the same Greek word aionios which means "age-
abiding," "eternal," and "without end"; but it signifies "without beginning or end" when applied to God.

II. THE INTERMEDIATE STATE

The intermediate state is that state of the soul between physical death and the Resurrection. For the
believer, the Resurrection will occur at Christ's Coming: for the unbeliever, it will not occur until after the
Millennium at the Final Judgment.

A. Of the Wicked.
When unbelievers die they go at once to Hades which is the abode of the wicked dead. Before Christ, the
righteous and the wicked went to Sheol which had two compartments separated by an impassable gulf (Lk.
16:22-31; Gn. 37:35; Dt. 32:22; Ez. 32:23,24. See NASB). In the Old Testament, the Hebrew word sheol is
variously translated "hell" and the "grave." In the New Testament, the "lowest part of sheol" is called in Greek
hades. This carries over from the Septuagint version where the Hebrew word sheol is translated with the
Greek word hades. The word in Hebrew for the final state of perdition or "lake of fire' was gehenna, properly
translated "hell" (Mk. 9:43, NASB). (The name gehenna was a figurative term borrowed from the perpetual
fires that burned refuse in the Valley of Hinnom near Jerusalem.) Since the wicked do not go to their final
perdition until after the Last Judgment when they are cast into the Lake of Fire, the word "hell" should not be
used to describe the present state of the wicked dead. As far as is known, no one is at present in Hell, which

331
is the Lake of Fire. The wicked are at the present in Hades, awaiting the Resurrection of Judgment. Hades is,
however, a place of suffering as is seen in the account of the rich man and Lazarus (Lk. 16:23; 1 Pt. 3:19).

B. Of the Righteous.
The intermediate state of the righteous is called "paradise." Jesus said to the dying thief, ". . . To day, shalt
thou be with me in paradise" (Lk. 23:43). After the Resurrection of Jesus, the abode of the righteous was
transferred from Sheol to Paradise. Jesus personally descended into Sheol to "lead captivity captive" (Eph.
4:8). He spent "... three days and three nights in the heart of the earth" (Mt. 12:40 - apparently Sheol is
located in the heart of the earth.) (Also Eph. 4:9, 10; Nm. 16:33). Jesus did not go into the abode of the
wicked in Sheol or Hades, but to the part known as "Abraham's Bosom." He emptied Sheol of the righteous,
taking them with Him to Paradise. (See also Ps. 16:10; Acts 2:27.)
When the righteous die they go immediately to be in the presence of Christ Jesus. Paul spoke of ". . .
having a desire to depart, and to be with Christ; which is far better. . ." (Phil. 1:23). That Paul expected at
death to go at once to the Lord's presence is confirmed by his inspired words to the Corinthians: "We are
confident, I say, and willing rather to be absent from the body, and to be present with the Lord" (2 Cor. 5:8).
When Lazarus died, he went immediately to "Abraham's Bosom," which was the name the Jews gave to the
abode of the departed faithful. Lazarus was conscious and "comforted." The rich man wanted Abraham to
send Lazarus to witness to his living brothers, showing that both were in a state of conscious activity. Perhaps
no thought is more comforting to believers than to know that at death they will go to be with Jesus. The
Apostle spoke the following words of hope: "For God did not appoint us to wrath, but to obtain salvation
through our Lord Jesus Christ, who died for us that ... we should live together with Him. Therefore comfort
each other and edify one another" (1 Thes. 5:9-11, NKJV).

C. False Views of the Intermediate State.


There are several false views of the intermediate state which are widely held; some have no scriptural
basis whatever, others are based upon an incorrect interpretation of Scripture. Three of these will be treated
here.

1. Purgatory.
The Roman Catholic and Greek Orthodox churches teach that those members who have lived imperfect
lives must spend some time in "purgatory" in order that their sins and imperfections may be purged.
Depending upon the seriousness of their offenses, the length of time spent in purgatory may last a few hours
or centuries, terminated only by the Last Judgment. According to the Catholic Church, the time in purgatory
may be shortened by gifts or services rendered to the church or by prayers or masses sponsored by relatives.
The doctrine of purgatory cannot be supported by Scripture. The doctrine is based upon a passage taken from
the Apocrypha, found in 2 Maccabees 12:41-43. The Apocryphal books were not a part of the Canon of
Scripture. They are included in Catholic Bibles, perhaps because of their support of doctrines not supported
by the canonical Scriptures. No reference in Scripture to the intermediate state makes any reference to
purgatorial sufferings. Furthermore, the concept of purgatory violates the plain teaching of Scripture of the
sufficiency of the blood of Christ to cleanse sin, and of salvation by grace through faith. (See Heb. 10:10-23;
Eph. 2:8-10; Rom. 3:24-28; 5:1,2,9,10; 8:1,31-39; 10:8-11; 1 Jn. 2:1,2; 3:1,2.)

2. Soul Sleeping.
This is the teaching that after death the soul rests in an unconscious state until the Resurrection. This
doctrine is held by the Seventh Day Adventists, the Jehovah's Witnesses and several smaller groups. The
arguments advanced to support the doctrine of soul sleep are: (1) the Bible often refers to death as sleep (1
Thes. 4:13,14; Jn. 11:11-14) (2) it is assumed that the soul cannot function apart from the body, and therefore,

332
will not awaken until joined with the body at the Resurrection (3) it seems inappropriate that the righteous
should enjoy heavenly bliss, or the unrighteous suffer in Hades until after the Judgment (Heb. 9:27).
The arguments for soul sleep stated above will be answered in the same order:
a) The use of the term "sleep" to describe death is a figurative and euphemistic expression to
emphasize the fact that the deceased person still lives. W.E. Vine explains:
The metaphorical use of the word "sleep" is appropriate, because of the similarity in appearance of a
sleeping body and a dead body; restfulness and peace normally characterize both. The object of the metaphor
is to suggest that, as the sleeper does not cease to exist while his body sleeps, so the dead person continues to
exist despite his absence from the region in which those who remain can communicate with him.'
Furthermore, the account given by Jesus of the state of the rich man and Lazarus immediately after death
demonstrates clearly that their souls were not sleeping in unconsciousness (Lk. 16:22-31). See also Paul's
statement to the Philippians: ". . . having a desire to depart, and to be with Christ which is FAR BETTER..."
(1:23).
b) That the spirit of man can function apart from the body is made clear by Paul's treatise on
"death" in 2 Corinthians, in which he says:
Therefore, being always of good courage, and knowing that while we are at home in the body we are
absent from the Lord - for we walk by faith; not by sight - we are of good courage, I say, and prefer rather to
be absent from the body and to be at home with the Lord. Therefore, we have as our ambition, whether at
home or absent, to be PLEASING TO HIM (5:6-8, NASB).
He states that "being at home with the Lord" means ABSENCE from the BODY. Furthermore, the
Apostle's "ambition" was to be pleasing to the Lord, whether in the body or absent from it. If being absent
from the body meant "soul sleep," why would he be concerned about being pleasing to the Lord after death - a
sleeper could hardly be unpleasing to Him? If Paul expected to sleep after death, his ambition to please
would have applied only to existence before death. Since he expected to be conscious after death, he
expected to please the Lord by praising Him (Rv. 7:9,10). (See also Heb. 12:23; Rv. 6:9-11; Eccl. 12:7.)
c) Answering the assumption that men must await the Judgment before enjoying bliss or suffering
punishment, Louis Berkhof remarks: "The day ofjudgment is not necessary to reach a decision respecting the
reward or punishment of each man, but only for the solemn announcement of the sentence, and for the
revelation of the justice of God in the presence of men and angels.112 Jesus said: "He who believes in Him is
not JUDGED, he who does not believe has been JUDGED already, because he has not believed in the name
of the only begotten Son of God" (Jn. 3:18, NASB). There will be a Believer's Judgment concerning rewards
for service, but not concerning his salvation; one's salvation is conditioned on faith in Jesus (See 2 Cor. 5:10;
1 Cor. 3:12-15).

3. Spiritism.
Spiritism teaches that the living may communicate with the dead, and the dead with the living, usually
through the agency of a "medium." There is no evidence in the Bible to suggest that there can be legitimate
communication between the living and the dead. In fact, the Scriptures unequivocally forbid any attempt to
do so (Lv. 19:31; 20:6,27; Dt. 18:9-12; Is. 8:19,20; 1 Chr. 10:13,14). There are two explanations for spiritist
phenomena:
(1) they are produced by deceptive manipulations, as has often been proved,
(2) they are produced by "lying spirits" (1 Kgs. 22:22,23; 1 Tm. 4:1).
In Acts chapter sixteen, Paul delivered a girl from a spirit of divination (python) by which she was able to
bring great gain to her exploiters (Acts 16:16-19). Without doubt, evil spirits often deceive people who
consult mediums by imitating the voice or appearance of deceased loved ones. Seeking biblical support,
spiritists often cite the case of the witch of Endor bringing up the spirit of Samuel (1 Sm. 28:7-20). However,
that case can be no encouragement for spiritism, for Saul was punished with death for disobeying the Lord by

333
consulting a familiar spirit (1 Chr. 10:13,14). Some scholars believe that Samuel actually appeared to Saul;
but if he did, it was by a rare special permission of the Lord to pronounce judgment upon Saul for his
disobedience. Moses and Elijah also appeared on the Mount of Transfiguration; but again, by a rare special
permission, in order to represent the Law and the prophets and to confirm that Christ Jesus was the goal of
Old Testament Law and prophecy: "Two men, Moses and Elijah, appeared in glorious splendor, talking with
Jesus. They spoke about His DEPARTURE, which He was about to bring to fulfillment at Jerusalem" (Lk.
9:30,31, NIV). The Greek word for "departure" is exodon, our "exodus." Just as Moses by the exodus from
Egypt delivered Israel from bondage, so Christ by the exodus of the Cross and Resurrection delivered
Mankind from the bondage of sin. The appearance of Moses and Elijah was a token of Messianic fulfillment.
(See Mt. 17:1-8; Mk. 9:2-8.) The Bible lends no encouragement to consultation with the dead. Christ is the
"Lord both of the dead and the living" (Rom. 14:9); if He ever permits the dead to appear, it will be to signal
some strategic event of sacred history. If we need comfort or guidance we have the Word of God and the
Spirit of God.

III. THE SECOND COMING OF CHRIST

For the majority of those who will read and study this book, the subject of the Second Coming of Christ is
a doctrine of major importance. About the Second Coming, the Foursquare Declaration of Faith says:
We believe that the second coming of Christ is personal and imminent; that He will descend from Heaven
in the clouds of glory ... and at this hour, which no man knows beforehand, the dead in Christ shall rise, then
the redeemed that are alive and remain shall be caught up together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord
in the air, and that so shall they ever be with the Lord; that also seeing that a thousand years is as a day with
the Lord, and that no man knows the hour of His appearance, which we believe to be at hand, each day should
be lived as though He were expected to appear at even, yet that in obedience to His explicit command,
"Occupy till I come," the work of spreading the gospel, the sending forth of missionaries, and the general
duties for upbuilding the church should be carried on as diligently, and thoroughly, as though neither ours nor
the next generation should live in the flesh to see that glorious day.

A. The Importance of His Coming,


If the importance of a Bible subject can be judged by the frequency of reference to it, the Second Coming
of Christ is, indeed, a subject of primary importance. Christ's Coming is mentioned more than 300 times in
the New Testament; that means that it is mentioned on the average of once in every twenty five verses. In
Paul's epistles there are more than fifty (50) references to the Second Advent. It has been said that there are
eight times more verses concerning the Second Coming of the Lord than there are those that concern His First
Coming. Whole books (1 and 2 Thessalonians, Revelation), and whole chapters (Matthew 24,25; Mark 13;
Luke 21) are devoted to this subject. Jesus, Himself, often referred to His coming again and urged His
followers to watch and to be ready. In fact, about fifty (50) times in the New Testament believers are urged to
be ready for the Lord to come again. In five New Testament passages the believer's posture is said to be that
of WAITING for the Coming of the Lord: ". . . ye turned to God from idols to serve the living and true God;
and to WAIT for His Son from heaven...." (1 Thes. 1:9b,10a). (See also Rom. 8:23-25; 1 Cor. 1:7; Gal. 5:5;
Jas. 5:7.) The hope of the Second Coming was connected by Jesus with both ordinances of the Church. The
Apostles were commanded to make disciples, baptizing them and teaching them with the assurance: ". . . and,
lo, I am with you always even to the END of the 'AGE' " (Mt. 28:19,20, NASB). Paul, quoting Jesus, gave
the apostolic pattern for the observance of The Lord's Supper saying: "For as often as ye eat this bread, and
drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's death TILL HE COME" (1 Cor. 11:26). (See also Mt. 26:26-29; Lk.
22:17-20.)
The hope of the Second Coming provides the motivation for practical Christian living: (1) for brotherly
love (1 Thes. 3:12,13); (2) for holiness (Rom. 13:12-14; 1 Thes. 3:13; 5:23; 1 Jn. 3:3; Ti. 2:11-13); (3) for

334
faithful meeting together for worship (Heb. 10:25); (4) for faithfulness in Christian service (1 Tm. 4:13-16; 2
Tm. 4:1,2; 1 Pt. 5:2-4); (5) for a continued passion for souls (1 Thes. 1:9,10; 2:11,12,19,20); (6) for comfort in
time of bereavement (1 Thes. 4:14-18). So important is the Second Coming to the Church, the Bride of
Christ, that it is called the BLESSED HOPE: "Looking for that BLESSED HOPE, and glorious appearing of
the great God and our Savior Jesus Christ" (Ti. 2:13).

B. The Nature of His Coming.


How are we to understand the term "second coming?" In what manner will Christ come the second time?
Before answering these questions, it will be helpful to discuss several false explanations of the meaning of the
Second Coming.

1. What the Second Coming is not.


a) It is not the death of the believer. Christ's Coming is at our resurrection, not at our death (1 Thes.
4:16,17). Death is the believer's departure to be with Christ, not His coming for the believer (Phil. 1:23).
Christ's Coming is the defeat of death, not the occurrence of it (1 Cor. 15:51-54). Death is an enemy (1 Cor.
15:26), the Lord's Coming is our blessed hope (Ti. 2:13).

b) Christ's Second Coming is not the coming of the Holy Spirit on the Day of Pentecost. Jesus
promised to send ANOTHER Comforter Un. 14:16); therefore, His Coming and that of the Comforter could
not be identical. Furthermore, most of the references to Christ's Coming were written after Pentecost and
were indicated as being yet future (Acts 3:19-21). None of the phenomena prophesied to accompany Christ's
PAR O USIA happened on the Day of Pentecost.

c) Christ's Second Coming was not the destruction of Jerusalem in A.D. 70. The destruction of
Jerusalem by Titus may have been referred to as a type of latter day events during the tribulation, but there
was no Coming of the Lord to catch up His Church that happened simultaneous with that event. (cf. Mt.
24:15-23 with Lk. 21:24-28.) Titus' destruction of Jerusalem scattered Israel, Christ's Coming will mark the
gathering of Israel (JI. 3:16-18).

d) Christ's Second Coming is not conversion. If this were true, His Coming would not be a second
one, but one of millions of comings. "So Christ was sacrificed once to take away the sins of many people;
and He will appear a SECOND TIME, not to bear sin, but to bring salvation to those who are waiting for
Him" (Heb. 9:28, NIV). According to Paul, the believer waits for the Lord's Coming after conversion, not
before it (1 Thes. 1:9,10). Attention will be directed now to a POSITIVE definition of the nature of the Lord's
Second Coming.

2. What the Second Coming is.


a) The Second Coming of Christ is a LITERAL coming or return. Since the Coming is a SECOND
ONE, it will be as literal as the First Coming. There is no evidence in Scripture that Christ's Return, which
He himself promised, would be a figurative one. The Old Testament has more references to Christ's
SECOND Coming than to His First; prophecies of His First Coming were fulfilled literally, there is no doubt
that the prophecies concerning the Second Coming will be fulfilled literally.

b) The Lord's Coming will be a PERSONAL return. "I go to prepare a place for you. And if I go
and prepare a place for you, I WILL COME AGAIN, and receive you unto MYSELF; that WHERE I AM,

335
there ye may be also" (Jn. 14:2b,3). Christ's Coming cannot be a figurative reference to some other being or
to some spiritual experience of the believer, because the angels said to the disciples when Christ ascended to
Heaven, "This SAME JESUS, which is taken up from you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye
have seen him go into heaven" (Acts 1:11b).

c) From the above quoted reference (Acts 1:11b), it is clear that the Lord's Coming will be a
visible, bodily coming. The angel also said that He would return "IN LIKE MANNER AS YE HAVE SEEN
HIM go into heaven." They saw Him ascend in a glorified yet visible and tangible body; He will return in the
same manner. "Behold He cometh with clouds; and every eye shall see Him.. ." (Rv. 1:7).

C. The Time of His Coming.


Jesus said regarding the time of His Return, "But of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels
of heaven, but my Father only" (Mt. 24:36). Some scholars contend that Jesus and His disciples expected His
Coming to be within the first generation. But in the parable of the talents Jesus said, "After a LONG TIME
the lord of those servants cometh. . . ." (Mt. 25:19). Since the parable was about the coming of the kingdom,
the term "long time" seems to hint of a considerable delay in the Coming. Peter could not have expected an
immediate Coming for he said:
Knowing this first, that there shall come in the last days scoffers ... saying Where is the promise of His
coming? ... beloved, be not ignorant of this one thing, that one day is with the Lord as a thousand years, and a
thousand years as a day. The Lord is not slack concerning His promise ... but is longsuffering to us-ward, not
willing that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance (2 Pt. 3:3-9).
Jesus also said, "And this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world for a witness unto all
nations; and then shall the end come" (Mt. 24:14). When the Thessalonian church became upset by the belief
that The Great Tribulation had already begun, Paul exhorted them not to be soon shaken in mind: "For that
day shall not come except there come a falling away [departure] first.. ." (2 Thes. 2:1-3). On the other hand,
Jesus warned, "Watch therefore: for ye know not what hour your Lord doth come" (Mt. 24:42). Even though
there are clear indications that the Lord's Return would not occur until after an extended period of
evangelization, the Church was taught to be ready for an any-moment appearance of the Heavenly
Bridegroom (Mt. 24:44,48,50; 25:13; Mk. 13:35-37; Ti. 2:12,13; Jn. 3:3). The Apostle Peter, who sat at the
feet of Jesus, strongly urged the recipients of his second epistle to look for ". . . the coming of the day of God"
(2 Pt. 3:12). "Since all these things will be dissolved, what manner of persons ought you to be in holy
conduct and godliness, LOOKING FOR and HASTENING the coming of the day of God" (2 Pt. 3:11,
NKJV). Peter adds the thought that we may actually HASTEN the coming day. The Church certainly is not
to sit by passively waiting for a set day which will end this dispensation. The Church is working together
with the Lord to accomplish His work, which must be done before He returns in glory. Commenting on the
above quoted verse from Peter, Michael Green says:
Christians are expected to look for the coming of the Lord; had not Jesus Himself told them to watch?
But this does not mean pious inactivity. It means action. For wonderful as it may seem, we can actually
"hasten it on" (NEB) (not "hasting unto" as in AV). In other words, the timing of the advent is to some extent
dependent upon the state of the church and of society. What a wonderfully positive conception of the
significance of our time on earth. It is no barren waiting for "finis" to be written. It is intended to be a time of
active cooperation with God in the redemption of society ... The Rabbis had two apt sayings: "It is the sins of
the people which prevent the coming of the Messiah. If Jews would genuinely repent for one day, the
Messiah would come," and "If Israel would perfectly keep the Torah for one day, the Messiah would come ."
Is it possible that God sees time in the terms of tasks accomplished rather than earthly calendars? We cannot
hasten or delay God's program, but it is possible that we may do so in relation to our time frame. In any case,
looking for the Lord does not mean folding our arms, but rather putting our hand to the plow and to the sickle.
While no one knows the time of Christ's Coming, we are given signs by which we may recognize the

336
emergence of the last times.

D. The Signs of His Coming.


In answer to questions put to Him by some of the disciples, Jesus revealed a number of signs of coming
events (Mt. 24; Mk. 13; Lk. 21). Some of the events Jesus described would happen in the first century; some
would come on progressively during the Church age; others would happen just before and during His Coming
in power and glory. A very careful reading of Christ's Olivet discourse, recorded in all three synoptic gospels,
is necessary in order to properly arrange the "sign events" in a time sequence. It is suggested that the readers
consult good evangelical commentaries for detailed exegesis. In the epistles, a number of passages describe
conditions that would prevail in the latter days: I Tm. 4:1-3; 2 Tm. 3:1-7; 1 Thes. 5:1-3; 2 Thes. 2:1-12; Jas.
5:1-8; 2 Pt. 3:1-10. Latter day signs are of two kinds, primary signs and secondary signs; the primary signs
are those that are declared explicitly to be evidences of the near approach of the Day of the Lord; the
secondary signs are inferential, that is, they are events or conditions that would have to precede the explicit
signs in order for them to happen. For instance, in Revelation it is said that the Beast out of the earth
(Antichrist) would cause everyone to receive a "mark" or "number," without which no one could buy nor sell.
In order for such control over humanity to be exercised, there would have to exist a mechanism by which
such total control could be expedited. With half the world's peoples ruled by totalitarian governments, and
with most of the rest of society subject to 'number" identification and computerized records of financial
transactions, the environment now exists for the Beast's appearance. Many students of prophecy view the
present environment as a "sign" of the last days. There are many such inferences drawn from modem
developments, scientific advancement, military capability, and international alignments which are legitimate
indicators of where the hands are on the prophetic time clock. The following are some of the world
conditions that prophetic scholars look for as signs of the latter days:

1. The regathering of Israel in Palestine.


As far back as the time of Moses, God predicted that Israel, if disobedient, would be scattered throughout
all nations (Dt. 28:64); He also predicted that He would regather His people out of all nations, bringing them
back into their land (Dt. 30:3; Is. 11:11-16; 2:2-5; Ez. 36:8,24; 37:11,12; 38:8). In the Old Testament, there
are prophecies concerning two regatherings. They would be regathered from Babylonia after seventy (70)
years captivity (Jer. 25:11,12); but in the first captivity they would not have been scattered throughout all
nations, nor would the return be complete nor permanent. The passages cited above refer to a complete and
permanent regathering ending in a rule of peace and righteousness. The second scattering of Israel into all
nations is prophesied by Jesus in Luke chapter twenty-one: 'And they [Israel] shall fall by the edge of the
sword [A.D. 701, and shall be led away captive into all nations: and Jerusalem shall be trodden down of the
Gentiles, until the times of the Gentiles be fulfilled" (21:24). The phrase "times of the Gentiles" refers to the
period symbolized by the image seen by Nebuchadnezzar in a dream interpreted by Daniel (Dn. 2:24-45), a
period during which a- succession of Gentile rulers would dominate Europe and the Middle-East, including
Palestine. Daniel himself had a dream in which he saw these same Gentile rulers represented by four beasts,
the last of which ruled "until the Ancient of days came ... and the time came for the saints to possess the
kingdom' (Dn. 7:22). Paul seems to refer to the term "times of the Gentiles" in Romans chapter eleven:
For I would not, brethren, that ye should be ignorant of this mystery. . . . that blindness in part happened
to Israel, until the FULNESS OF THE GENTILES be come in. And so all Israel shall be saved: as it is
written, "There shall come out of Sion the Deliverer, and shall turn away ungodliness from Jacob: for this is
my covenant with them, when I shall take away their sins (11:25-27).
On May 14th, 1948, the regathered. Jews declared a portion of Palestine to be the independent state of
Israel. This in itself did not fulfill specifically the prophecies concerning Israel's regathering, for the
regathering has been in unbelief; but after nearly two thousand years of exclusion from their land, Israel's
existence as a state may very well set the stage for the final act.

337
2. Perilous times.
Paul describes social conditions in the "last days":
But realize this, that in the LAST DAYS difficult days will come. For men will be lovers of self, lovers of
money, boastful, arrogant, revilers, disobedient to parents, ungrateful, unholy, unloving, irreconcilable,
malicious gossips, without self-control, brutal, haters of good, treacherous, reckless, conceited, lovers of
pleasure rather than lovers of God; holding to a form of godliness, although they have denied its power ...
among them are those who enter into households and captivate weak women weighed down with sins, led on
by various impulses, always learning and never able to come to the knowledge of the truth (2 Tm. 3:1-7,
NASB).
Of course such men as Paul describes have always existed; but when the depravity that he describes
characterizes a whole society, such a condition signals the approach of the end of this age. When the
conditions prevailing today of selfishness, sexual perversion, crime, violence, lack of conscience, and
rebellion against Bible morality are contemplated, one is not surprised that many Bible scholars view modem
society as a "doomsday" society.

3. The rise of communist Russia.


The prophet Ezekiel, in chapters thirty-eight and thirty-nine, prophetically describes a nation or nations
that will come against Israel when she is regathered in her own land. He says: "Son of man, set your face
toward Gog of the land of Magog, the prince of Rosh, Meshech, and Tubal, and prophesy against him, and
say 'Thus says the Lord God, "Behold I am against you, 0 Gog, prince of Rosh, Meshech and Tubal"'" (Ez.
38:2,3, NASB). The Hebrew Rosh is translated "chief" in the Authorized Version, but Hebrew scholars agree
that in this context it is a proper name and should be rendered as such, as is done in the American Standard,
New American Standard, New King James, and Amplified Versions. It is quite clear that the above is a
reference to Russia. Meshech is Moscow; Tubal is Tobolsk; and Rosh is Russia. Authority for this
identification comes from the Hebrew Lexicon of Dr. William Gesenius, who defines Rosh:
Rosh; Ezekiel 38:2,3; 39:1; proper name of a nor-them nation, mentioned with Tubal and Meshech;
undoubtedly the "Russians," who are mentioned by Byzantine writers of the tenth century, under the name hoi
ros (Greek) dwelling to the north of Taurus, and described by Ibn Fosslan, an Arabic writer of the same age,
as dwelling on the river Wolga.
Russia only became a world power with a goal of world conquest after World War I in 1917. With the
Middle-East being the chief oil source of the world, coveted by Russia, and with Russia at odds with Israel, an
ally of the United States, that Moscow would invade regathered Israel at some near future date is not
impossible nor unthinkable, especially in the light of the prophecy in Ezekiel chapters thirty-eight and thirty-
nine. According to Ezekiel's prophecy, God will send a fire to destroy Russia and the defeat will be so
complete that the massive invader will leave behind weapons of war in such a quantity that it will take seven
years to dispose of them. The dead will be so numerous that it will take Israel seven months to bury them. At
the turn of the century there was no state of Israel, and Russia would have had no motive for invading
Palestine. The rise of modern communist Russia and the establishment of the state of Israel now make
possible the circumstances needed for the fulfillment of Ezekiel's prophecy which was predicted to happen in
"the latter years."

4. The rise of communist China.


In the book of Revelation, chapter sixteen, there is a passage which makes reference to the "kings of the
east": "And the sixth angel poured out his bowl upon the great river, the Euphrates; and its water was dried
up, that the way might be prepared for the kings from the EAST" (Rv. 16:12, NASB). The river Euphrates is
also mentioned in chapter nine of Revelation in connection with a prophecy that an army of two hundred
million (200,000,000) would be released, resulting in the death of a third part of Mankind (Rv. 9:13-21). The

338
river Euphrates was considered the boundary between East and West. Many prophetic scholars see the rise of
modern China, now with nuclear weapons, as an inferential "sign" of the latter days.

5. Armaments and modern war potential.


Just before Jesus returns with His saints to claim His kingdom, the earth will be the scene of the greatest
war of all time, called "Armageddon." It will be the final conflict of this dispensation. At the turn of this
century, a war of the proportion of Armageddon was difficult to conceive. Now with the development of
atomic weapons, the destructive power of which has already been witnessed, another world war would
beyond doubt be the last war, and would bring about the destruction of Mankind. In that sense, the modern
war potential is a latter day sign, because only the Coming of Jesus can prevent total destruction. The Lord
must come to save us from ourselves.

6. Progress in transportation and science.


In the last chapter of Daniel's prophecy is recorded this word of the Lord: "But you, Daniel, shut up the
words and seal the book until the TIME OF THE END; many shall run to and fro and knowledge shall
increase' (Dn. 12:4, NKJV). This prophecy seems to indicate that in end-time there would be a notable
acceleration in travel and in the acquisition of knowledge. Many who write about latter day signs point to
Daniel's prophecy quoted above as a sign that the end is approaching.
Until the nineteenth century, there was very little change in the way people traveled. Abraham could get
from one place to another about as rapidly as Shakespeare could. Until the turn of the twentieth century, the
average person traveled in a vehicle drawn by animals. Today, travelers span continents in jet planes in a
matter of hours; and space travel (already being booked) will offer speeds permitting one to circle the globe
faster than Abraham could get to the next village.
The increase in knowledge has been equally spectacular. Until the invention of the printing press, and the
discovery of the new world, the sum of human knowledge was not appreciably greater than it was in the
Golden Age of Greece and Rome. The Renaissance was really only the rediscovery of the cultures of ancient
Greece, Egypt, Arabia and China. Today's scientists have split the atom, developed nuclear power, explored
human genes, traveled to the moon, photographed the planets at close range, and computerized all statistics
and most of industrial production. It has been estimated that three-fourths of present knowledge has been
acquired in the last fifty (50) years, and that seventy percent of modem medicines and surgical procedures
have been developed since World War II. Three-fourths of all the scientists who have ever lived are alive
today. With the use of computers, in an hour a modem engineer can duplicate the work of a lifetime of an
engineer working before 1940. In an atmosphere of exploding scientific advancement and of declining
morality and ethics, Jesus must come and rule to save us from ourselves
It should be pointed out, however, that only the general inferential signs, and conditions in society are to
be looked for before the Rapture of the Church; the explicit signs are prophesied to happen during the
Tribulation and in connection with the Lord's Return in Judgment. No specific sign must happen before the
Bridegroom comes for the bride; His Appearing, as in the parable of the ten virgins, should be expected at all
times.

E. The Rapture of the Church.


1. Its any-moment occurrence.
A number of events are associated with the end of the age. Jesus promised His disciples, "I will come
again, and receive you unto myself, that where I am, there ye may be also" (Jn. 14:3). Paul wrote: ". . . the
dead in Christ shall rise first; then we which are alive and remain shall be caught up together with them in the
clouds, to meet the Lord in the air.... (1 Thes. 4:16b,17) Jesus spoke also of great tribulation, "For then shall
be great tribulation, such as was not since the beginning of the world to this time, no, nor ever shall be" (Mt.

339
24:21). This Great Tribulation is described in detail in the book of Revelation, chapters six through nineteen.
(See also Dn. 12:1.) The tribulation will be caused by Satan, through the agency of one called variously: "the
beast" (Rv. 13:1), the "antichrist" (I Jn. 2:18), the "man of sin" and the "son of perdition" (2 Thes. 2:3), and
the "little horn" (Dn. 7:8). The Great Tribulation will be concluded by the Battle of Armageddon and the
Revelation of Jesus as King of Kings, who will come with His armies of saints to bring judgment upon the
"beast" and his followers (Rv. 19:11-21). The Great Tribulation is followed by the Millennial Reign of
Christ, the Final Judgment, and the Eternal State (Rv. 20-22).
Which of these events will happen first? Will it be the Coming of Jesus or the revelation of the
Antichrist? If the Bible is to be taken in a natural sense, it seems that the first event for which the believer
waits is the "blessed hope" (Ti. 2:13), or the Rapture of the Church:
Here we have a definite message from the Lord. It is that those who are still living when He comes will
not in any way precede those who have previously fallen asleep [died], one word of command, one shout
from the archangel, one blast from the trumpet of God and the Lord Himself will come down from heaven!
Those who have died in Christ will be the first to rise, and then we who are still living will be swept up with
them into the clouds to meet the Lord in the air. And after that we shall be with Him forever. (1 Thes. 4:15-
18, Phillips)
The Apostle Paul, since he was the apostle to the Gentile church, was given a special revelation from the
Lord Himself regarding the details of the Rapture and its relationship to the Resurrection.
In a passage in I Corinthians, Paul again speaks of the Rapture of the Church together with the bodily
resurrection of deceased believers: "Behold, I tell you a mystery; we shall not all sleep, but we shall all be
changed, in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye, at the last trumpet; for the trumpet will sound, and the dead
will be raised imperishable, and we shall be changed" (15:51,52, NASB). When the Lord comes for His
Church, not only will the living saints be raptured, their bodies will be changed into glorified imperishable
bodies. The believer, body and spirit, will become like Jesus (1 Jn. 3:2,3).
Another reference to the Rapture, by Paul, is found in 2 Thessalonians: "Now we beseech you brethren,
by the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ, and by our GATHERING TOGETHER UNTO HIM..." (2:1), There
is a probable additional reference to the Rapture in the same passage: ". . . that day [the Day of the Lord] shall
not come, except there come a FALLING AWAY first..." (v.3). The Greek word translated "falling away"
may also have the meaning "departure" (see 2 Cor. 12:8, 'depart"). The word in Greek has the definite article,
therefore it refers to an event known by the recipients. Since the whole subject is about the "rapture" and the
concern of the Thessalonians that they were already in the Tribulation, the rendering "departure" is a
reasonable one.9
Without doubt, the New Testament, especially Paul's writings, is very clear about a "rapture" of the living
believers at Christ's Coming. All evangelicals are agreed that a rapture will occur; they are not in agreement
about when the Rapture will occur in relation to the tribulation period described in the book of Revelation.
While this book will identify itself with the Pre-tribulation Rapture position, which is the historic position of
our church, the authors refrain from radical dogmatism in the presentation of the position, recognizing the fact
that godly and scholarly teachers take other positions.

2. Various Rapture theories.


a) The Post-tribulation Rapture Theory. Those who hold this theory believe that the believers will go
through the Tribulation and that the Rapture will occur simultaneously with, or immediately before, the Lord's
Coming in Judgment. They hold that the Rapture of the Church and Christ's Return to Rule are simply
different aspects of a single event which will happen at the end of the Great Tribulation, and just before the
defeat of the Beast and his followers and the beginning of the Millennium. The best contemporary advocates
of the post-tribulation Rapture are: Dr. George E. Ladd, in The Blessed Hope (Eerdmans, 1957); A Theology
of the New Testament (Zondervan, 1977); and J. Barton Payne, in Encyclopedia of Biblical Prophecy (Harper
& Row, 1973).

340
(1) The principal arguments advanced in favor of the post-tribulation Rapture position are as
follows:
(a) The Coming of Christ is variously described, but nowhere said to be two events separated by a
seven (or three and a half) year interval of tribulation.
(b) Jesus' answer to His disciples regarding the signs of the end-time indicated that a period of
unequaled tribulation (Mt. 24:3-22) would precede His Coming. Other passages also predict tribulation for
God's people (Jn. 15:18,19; 16:33).
(c) The Resurrection is identified with the Rapture, yet Revelation 20:4-6 puts the 'first
resurrection" after Christ's Return to Rule and just before the Millennium, therefore the Rapture and
Revelation must happen together. (See also Dn. 12:1,2.)

(2) The following considerations argue against the Post-tribulation Rapture position:
(a) The tribulation period is not a Church period, but is the final week of Daniel's vision
regarding God's dealing with Israel: 'Seventy weeks are determined upon THY people and upon THY HOLY
CITY, to finish the transgression, and to make an end of sins, and to make reconciliation for iniquity, and to
bring in everlasting righteousness. . ." (Dn. 9:24, also 25-27). It is a time of God's dealing with Israel and of
His wrath upon the godless nations (Rv. 6:15-17). The tribulation period is called by Jeremiah "Jacob's
trouble" (Jer. 30:4-7).
(b) Paul declares regarding the Church: 'For God hath not appointed us to wrath, but to obtain
salvation by our Lord Jesus Christ . . .' (1 Thes. 5:9). The Church has suffered and will suffer many trials and
tribulations, but not the Great Day of His Wrath.
(c) The Lord had promised the faithful that they will be kept from that hour of wrath: 'Because
thou hast kept the word of my patience, I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come
upon all the world, to try them that dwell upon the earth" (Rv. 3:10). (See also 2 Pt. 2:9; Lk. 21:34-36.)
(d) Nowhere in the book of Revelation, after chapter four, is the Church mentioned specifically,
until chapter nineteen, where the Church is seen in Heaven as the Bride of Christ. Many scholars identify the
Church with the four and twenty elders who are in Heaven throughout the Apocalypse. The four and twenty
elders are arrayed in white with crowns of victory on their heads, symbols of the Redeemed. The Tribulation
saints (those who are saved during the tribulation and martyred) are seen as a group only in Heaven. The
Righteous who are seen on earth are the 144,000, who are said to be Jews (Rv. 7:1-8; 14:1-5). Furthermore, if
the Church is to be on earth during the Tribulation, why is witnessing assigned to the two witnesses who are
apparently Jews (Moses and Elijah)? (Rv. 11:1-14)
(e) The Rapture and the Final Coming cannot happen simultaneously, nor hardly on the same
day, for two important events separate the Rapture and the Resurrection of the Saints from the Coming to
Earth to Rule. The two events are the believers Bema Judgment of Awards, and the Marriage Supper of the
Lamb (Rv. 19:5-9; 1 Cor. 3:11-15; 2 Cor. 5:9-11).
(f) Since the Church age terminates with the beginning of the tribulation (Daniel's seventieth
week, Dn. 9:27; "the fullness of the Gentiles" Rom. 11:12,25,26,27), the Church plays no more part in earthly
affairs until the Millennium.
(g) Regarding the Resurrection recorded in Revelation chapter twenty, and referred to as the
"first resurrection," careful reading will reveal that the resurrected ones mentioned are those who are
beheaded during the Tribulation no mention is made of the saints of the entire Church age who must have
been raised up at the time of the Rapture before the Great Tribulation. Daniel (12:1,2) places the Resurrection
of the Old Testament saints at the end of the Tribulation, but John does not mention it in Revelation chapter
twenty. Christ is called the "first fruits of them that slept"; at Christ's Resurrection, a number of saints arose
from the dead (Mt. 27:52,53). In Revelation 11:11,12, the two witnesses are resurrected; in Revelation 7:12-

341
17, the Resurrection of the Tribulation saints is recorded. Apparently all those who are resurrected before the
Millenium are a part of the "first resurrection"; those who are raised after the Millenium are raised unto
judgment and perdition (Rv. 20:13,15).
(h) The strongest argument for a pre-tribulation Rapture is the fact that throughout the New
Testament exhortation is given to look for and wait for the Coming of Jesus (Mt. 24:42,43; 25:13; Mk.
13:35; 1 Thes. 5:6; Ti. 2:13; 1 Jn. 3:3; Heb. 9:28; Jn. 14:3). Jesus promised, "And if I go and prepare a place
for you, I will come again, and receive you unto myself-, that where I am there ye may be also" (Jn. 14:3).
Here Jesus' Coming is for the purpose of receiving the Church unto Himself and taking her to a place in the
Father's house; this Coming cannot be the same as His coming with the Church to earth as the post-
tribulationists contend. The blessed hope of an imminent Coming of Jesus is one of the strongest incentives
to practical godliness and diligent service (Ti. 2:12-14; 1 Jn. 3:3). If the Tribulation must come first, with the
manifestation of the Antichrist, before the Rapture, who will look for a Coming of Jesus until many of the
events of the Apocalypse have transpired? The parable of the faithful and unfaithful servants recorded in
Matthew chapter twenty-four teaches the tragic result of saying, "My lord delayeth his coming" (24:44-51).
The principal proponents of the Pre-tribulation position are: Dr. C. 1. Scofield, Scofield Study Bible,
footnotes, (Oxford University Press, 1967); Dr. John F. Walvoord, The Rapture Question (Dunham, 1957);
The Revelation of Jesus Christ (Moody Press, 1972); Dr. Kenneth S. Wuest, Prophetic Light in the Present
Darkness (Eerdmans, 1956); Dr. J. Dwight Pentecost, Prophecy for Today (Zondervan, 1961); Dr. Henry C.
Thiessen, Lectures in Systematic Theology (Eerdmans, 1961); Dr. Mark G. Cambron, Bible Doctrines
(Zondervan, 1973); W. E. Vine, The Epistle to the Thessalonians (Pickering & Inglis); Herbert Lockyer, All
the Doctrines of the Bible (Zondervan, 1964); Dr. Gerald B. Stanton, Kept from the Hour (Zondervan, 1956);
Dr. Charles C. Ryrie, The Ryrie Study Bible (Moody Press, 1978); Dispensationalism Today (Moody Press,
1981).

b) The Mid-tribulation Rapture Theory. As the term "midtribulation" reveals, it describes the
position of those who teach that the Church will be raptured after the first half of Daniel's seventieth (70th)
week (Dn. 9:27). Most of those who hold this view, however, claim to be pre-tribulation rapturists, because
they do not interpret the first half of the seven-year tribulation period as being a time of great tribulation or
wrath.

(1) The principal points of this theory are:


(a) The last trumpet, mentioned in connection with the Rapture in 1 Corinthians 15:52, is
identified with the seventh trumpet sounded in Revelation 11:15 which occurs in the middle of the Tribulation
(Rv. 11:2,3). If the two trumpets are identical, then the Rapture occurs in the middle of the Tribulation.
(b) Since the Church is raptured before the "Great Tribulation" (the last three and one half
years), the Church escapes the "wrath" of 1 Thessalonians 5:9, and the "hour of temptation" of Revelation
3:10.
(c) The resurrection of the two witnesses in Revelation 11:11,12 is declared to be a reference to
the Rapture and Resurrection of the Church, or to happen simultaneously with the Rapture.

(2) The following arguments may be advanced in opposition to the Mid-tribulation Rapture
position:
(a) The trumpets in 1 Corinthians chapter fifteen and Revelation chapter eleven are not the
same. Paul's "trump of God" is a trumpet call of victory over death; John's seventh trumpet is the seventh in a
series of announcements of judgment upon the wicked and final triumph over Satan's reign.
(b) The entire seventieth week of Daniel is Jewish in character, therefore the Church does not
belong in any part of it. God's wrath is also poured out in the first half of the tribulation period (Rv. 6:12-17).

342
(Also 1 Thes. 5:9; Rv. 3:10; 2 Pt. 2:9).
(c) The two witnesses appear to be Jewish from the Old Testament symbols - the temple, olive
trees and lampstands (Zec. 4:3,12), withholding rain, and smiting with plagues (Ex. 7:20; 8:1-12:29; 1 Kgs.
17:1; 18:41-45; 2 Kgs. 1:10-12; Jas. 5:17,18). If the Church were on the earth, why would God assign Jewish
prophets to the mission of witnessing to the nations? Until the end of the Church age, it is the Church's
mission to witness to all nations. Dr. Buswell believes, however, that the Church age and the tribulation
period will overlap three and one half years."
(d) The same objection can be made to the Mid-tribulation Rapture position that is made to the
Post-tribulation position; that is, that the Mid-tribulation position removes the any-moment expectation of
Christ's Coming. The tribulation period begins with the Antichrist's making a covenant with the Jews, an
event that could not be concealed. If the Church is going through any part of the tribulation period, Christ
cannot come for the Church until the Tribulation has begun with Antichrist's covenant to restore the daily
sacrifice (Dn. 9:27). Both of the theories discussed above require us to look for the Antichrist's coming
before Christ's Coming.

c) The Partial Rapture Theory. Those who hold to a partial Rapture base their believe on
passages such as Hebrews 9:28, Luke 21:36; 1 John 2:28, and Matthew 25:1-13; which are interpreted to
mean that believers who are not "looking for Him," who are not "counted worthy," who have something in
their lives that might make them "ashamed before Him at His coming," or that do not have oil (the fullness of
the Spirit) will be left behind to go through the Tribulation. Advocates of this theory believe that only those
believers who are fully worthy will go up in the Rapture. The following considerations argue against the
Partial Rapture Theory:
(1) First Thessalonians 4:16 says: "The dead IN CHRIST shall rise first." If all who have died in
Christ will be resurrected, certainly all who are alive "in Christ" will be raptured. Certainly the Lord will not
wait until the generation alive at His Coming to make distinctions between believers who are "worthy" and
those who are not.
(2) Furthermore, in 1 Corinthians 15:51, Paul says: "Behold, I shew you a mystery; We shall
not all sleep, but we shall ALL be changed." All who are in Christ will be changed at His Coming. This of
course does not include the unregenerate who are only professing Christians.
(3) If only the "worthy" are to be caught up, who will go? Who can claim worthiness in himself?
Our standing with God is based on the Righteousness of Christ, not our righteousnesses which are "filthy
rags" (Is. 64:6).
(4) Every believer ought to be filled with the Spirit, but the purpose of that fullness is not to
make us worthy, which is accomplished by the blood of Jesus, but to equip us with power for service (Acts.
1:8). To interpret the "oil" in the parable of the ten virgins as symbolic of the "fullness of the Spirit" violates
sound principles for the interpretation of parables (both the wise and the unwise had oil at the beginning).
(5) Proponents of the Partial Rapture Theory as well as those who believe that the Church
must go through some or all of the Tribulation, contend that tribulation is necessary to purify the Church
and make her ready for the Bridegroom. This belief contends for a kind of Protestant purgatory. And if the
saints alive at the end of the age need purging by tribulation, it would seem that the Lord would need to
resurrect the dead saints for a period of tribulation previous to their Rapture. An absurd thought, of course!

F. Christ's Return to Rule - the Revelation.


At the Rapture, Christ comes for His saints; at His Revelation, He comes with His saints. At the Rapture,
He comes in the air; at His Revelation, He comes to earth to rule in power and glory. The Rapture is followed
by the Believers' Judgment of Rewards and the Marriage Supper of the Lamb; the Revelation is followed by
the defeat of the Antichrist and the wicked nations, and the establishment of His millennial kingdom (Rv. 19,
20). "And Enoch also, the seventh from Adam, prophesied of these saying, Behold, the Lord cometh with ten

343
thousands of His saints" (Jude 14). (See Dn. 7:9,10,21,22; Is. 11:1-4; 63:1-3.) According to Revelation
chapter nineteen, the steps in Christ's Return to Rule are:
1. The heaven is opened and Christ appears riding on a white horse with a crown on His head and
with garments dipped in blood, His name is announced to be "The Word of God" (vv.11-13; also Jn. 1:1).
2. He is accompanied by armies of saints, also riding on white horses. A sharp sword issues from His
mouth to smite the wicked nations. His title is revealed to be "King of Kings and Lord of Lords" (vv.14-16).
3. An angel announces His readiness for battle against the Beast and his armies which gather to
oppose the Lord.
The Beast's armies are crushed; the Beast, the False prophet and all those who have taken the mark of the
Beast or worshipped his image are cast into the Lake of Fire (vv.19-21; Dn. 8:25).
4. An angel from heaven casts Satan, called "the old serpent," the "dragon" and the "devil," into
the Bottomless Pit where he is imprisoned for a thousand years (Rv. 20:1-3).
5. The Tribulation saints are raised and, together with the Church saints, reign with Christ for a
thousand years (Rv. 20:4; Mt. 25:21; 2 Tm. 2:12; Rv. 5:9,10).

IV. THE TRIBULATION

A. The Word "Tribulation" in Scripture.


In the Bible, the word "tribulation" is used in at least three different ways:

1. To apply to the trials and persecutions that the Christian believers will suffer throughout the
Church age as a result of their identification with Christ: 'In the world ye shall have tribulation: but be of
good cheer; I have overcome the world" (Jn. 16:33).
John, in his first epistle, explains why we suffer with Christ in this world: 'Therefore the world knoweth
us not, because it knew Him not" (1 Jn. 3:1b). (See also 1 Cor. 3:4; 2 Thes. 1:4; Acts 14:22; Rom. 12:12; Eph.
3:13; 2 Cor. 7:4.)
2. To apply to a special period of tribulation for Israel prophesied by Daniel (9:24-27).
Jeremiah also makes reference to the same period calling it "Jacob's trouble" (Jer. 30:7-9). Jesus
describes the Great Tribulation (Mt. 24:21) and confirms its application to Israel by the use of terms such as
'Judea," "the sabbath day," and "the abomination of desolation" (Dn. 9:27) which refers to the desecration of
the altar of the Jewish Temple by the Antichrist.
3. To apply to God's final wrath upon the Antichrist and the Gentile nations that follow him (Rv.
6:12-17), called the "Great Day of His Wrath."
It is very important that the three different applications of the word "tribulation" be clearly distinguished.
The fact that believers must be ready to suffer trials and tribulations throughout the Church age (Acts 14:14)
does not mean that the Church must go through the "Great Tribulation" and the final hour of "God's Wrath."
God has promised to keep the church saints from (Gr., ek, "out Of") the tribulation period (Rv. 3:10; 1 Thes.
5:9). Furthermore, the "Great Tribulation," which is Daniel's "seventieth week" of the seventy week period
determined for dealing with Israel (Dn. 9:24-27; 12:8-13), is not a part of the Church age; when the "fullness
of the Gentiles" comes, as Paul explains in Romans 11:25, the Church will be raptured, and God will turn
again to effect the salvation of national Israel (Rom. 11:24,26; Rv. 7:4-8; Rv. 11,12).

B. Daniel's Dream and Vision.


Daniel also prophesied about times of world domination by Gentile nations (Nebuchadnezzar's Image -

344
Dn. 2:31-44; Daniel's dream of four beasts - Dn. 7:1-14). The four parts of the image and the four beasts
represented four successive Gentile empires, the last of which was to be the Roman Empire. According to the
dream of the image, the Roman Empire would be revived in the form of ten kingdoms, represented by the ten
toes of the image. According to the vision of the four beasts, the fourth would have ten horns from which a
"little horn," symbolizing the Antichrist, would come forth. In both the dream and the vision, the Son of Man
will come in the time of the fourth empire to punish the nations and to set up His everlasting kingdom (Dn.
2:31-35; 7:8-14; 12:1-3). In Matthew chapter twenty-four, and in Luke chapter twenty-one, Jesus makes clear
that the Great Tribulation will include Daniel's seventieth week of God's dealing with Israel and His final
wrath against Satan and the wicked Gentile nations that serve him. (See also Zec. 14:1-4; Rv. 14:20, 16:14-
16, 19:19.)

C. Principal Events of the 'tribulation.


1. The removal of the Church and the Restrainer of evil (2 Thes. 2:1,7,8).
2. Restoration of the daily sacrifice in a rebuilt temple by covenant with the Antichrist (Dn. 9:27).
3. Out pouring of judgments resulting from the opening of the seven seals (Rv. 6:1-8:1).
4. Outpouring of judgments from the sounding of the seven trumpets (Rv. 8:6-11:15).
5. The taking away of the daily sacrifice by the Antichrist, and the setting up of the abomination
of desolation (Dn. 9:27; 12:10,11; Mt. 24:15). (This happens in the middle of the seven years, which are
divided into two parts of three and one half years: Rv. 11:2,3; Dn. 9:27,12:11; Rv. 12:14. The latter half is
considered to be the "Great Tribulation.")
6. Increased persecution of Israel (Rv. 12); 144,000 Jews from the twelve tribes are sealed (Rv. 7:1-
8); an innumerable company of Tribulation saints, from all nations, converted during the Tribulation, are
taken to Heaven (Rv. 7:9-17).
7. Total control by the Beast and the False Prophet, the introduction of the mark of the Beast and his
number, with compulsory worship of the Beast's image (Rv. 13).

8. The judgments resulting from the outpouring of the seven vials of wrath (Rv. 15,16).
9. Judgment upon the Harlot, mystery Babylon (Rv. 17,18), who probably represents apostate
religion.
(After the Rapture of the true Church, organized religion with a "form of godliness but denying the power
thereof" will become increasingly corrupt, even aligning herself with the Beast's government.)
10. Gathering of the kings of the East and armies of the Antichrist (Beast) to make war with the
remnant of Israel, resulting in the Battle of Armageddon (Rv. 12:17,16:12-16).
11. Celebration of the Marriage Supper of the Lamb (Rv. 19:6-9).
12. Christ returns with His armies of saints to confront the Beast and his armies, and the Beast's
armies are destroyed by the brightness of Christ's Coming (Rv. 19:14-21; 2 Thes. 2:8).
13. The Beast and the False Prophet are cast into the Lake of Fire (Rv. 19:20).
14. Satan is cast into the Bottomless Pit (the abyss) for one thousand years (Rv. 20:1-3).

V. THE ANTICHRIST

A. The Word "Antichrist" in Scripture.


The word "antichrist" comes from two Greek words christos meaning 'Christ" or the "anointed one"; and

345
anti meaning in this combination "against"; thus, "the one against Christ, God's anointed." The name
"antichrist" is found only in John's epistles (1 Jn. 2:18,22; 4:3; 2 Jn. 7), where he is described as one coming
in the last time, and one whose spirit is already present in the world. The spirit of antichrist will be embodied
in the "beast" described in Revelation 13:1; 11:7. The first prophetic reference to Antichrist is probably found
in Genesis 3:15: "And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between THY SEED and HER
SEED...." Christ is the SEED of woman. Antichrist is the SEED of Satan or the "Devil," whose name means
"slanderer, " who speaks against Christ and against His Redeemed.

B. The Identity of the Antichrist.


The spirit of antichrist has possessed many enemies of God through the ages, such as "the kings of
Babylon,' a type of Satan (Is. 14:4-17). The name "Mystery Babylon" is borne by the "great harlot" of
Revelation 17:5, for she is the embodiment of anti-God religion. Many anti-Christian rulers and evil men of
power have been identified as the "Antichrist" through history, such as: Nero, Napoleon, Kaisar Wilhelm,
Mussolini, Hitler, Stalin, etc. Some of these were no doubt motivated by the spirit of antichrist, but THE
Antichrist is yet to come. He may be somewhere in the world already, but he will not be revealed until after
the Rapture of the Church; so it is rather futile to try to identify him. The spirit of antichrist will continue to
possess any vehicle yielded to Satan.

C. The Titles of Antichrist.


1. The Beast - Rv. 13:1-4,12-18; 15:2; 16:2; 17:8; 19:19; 20:4,10.
2. The Little Horn - Dn. 7:8; 8:9. He shall rise up from among rulers of the revived Roman Empire.
The "little horn" of Daniel 8:9 is Antiochus Epiphanes (170 B.C.), the Syrian ruler who persecuted the Jews
and defiled the Temple in the time of the Maccabees (Macc. 1:10-47); therefore, he is a type of Antichrist.
3. The Man of Sin - 2 Thes. 2:3. He will be history's vilest embodiment of sin and rebellion.
4. The Son of Perdition - 2 Thes. 2:3. Another title of the Man of Sin. Satan's tool to seduce men and
consign them to the realm of the lost.
5. The Wicked One - 2 Thes. 2:8. "Wicked" is from the Greek, anomos, which means the "lawless one."
He totally opposes every law of God.
6. The Willful King - Dn. 11:36-45. Jesus prayed, "Not my will but thine be done"; the Antichrist will
oppose God's Will and do his own will; he is the inspirer of all those who 'do their own thing."
7. The Foolish Shepherd - Zec. 11:15-17. Jesus is the Good Shepherd who preserves; Antichrist is the
worthless shepherd who devours.

D. The Works of Antichrist.


1. He is the last ruler of the revived Roman empire - Dn. 7:8; Rv. 13:1.
2. He will appear on the scene as a proponent of peace who is tolerant of religion - Dn. 9:27; Rv.
6:2; Dn. 8:25; 1 Thes. 5:3.
3. He will arise after the Rapture of the Church and at the beginning of the seventieth week of
Daniel, when God sets His hand to deal again with national Israel, and he will make a covenant with the Jews
to restore the daily sacrifice - Dn. 9:24-27.
4. After three and one half years, in the middle of the Tribulation, he will cast off all pretense of
toleration, break his covenant with the Jews, cause the daily sacrifice to cease, and begin his persecution of
Israel - Rv. 13:7,8.
5. One of his heads will receive a deadly wound, then be miraculously healed causing the wonderment
and worship of the whole world - Rv. 13:3,4.
6. As the Man of Sin and Lawless One he will blaspheme God, then require the worship of all men

346
with the threat of death - Rv. 13:7,8.
7. The third member of the satanic trinity of the Dragon, the Beast and the False Prophet arises;
the False Prophet exercises miraculous power to deceive, causes men to worship the Beast, creates an image
of the Beast to which he gives life, and causes all men to take a mark or number of the Beast in order to buy
or sell - Rv. 13:11-18.
8. During the Tribulation, the Beast sponsors the great Harlot who represents apostate religion,
but finally the Beast together with the ten kings who rule with the Beast utterly destroy the scarlet woman -
Rv_ 17.
The woman is said to be "that great city that reigneth over the kings of the earth" (Rv. 17:18); the city is
situated on "seven mountains" (17:9). (Scholars are divided as to whether the city is Rome or Babylon.)
9. The Beast gathers his subject nations together to make war with the Lamb at the Battle of
Armageddon, where he is utterly defeated and cast, together with the False Prophet, into the Lake of Fire -
Rv. 16:16; 17:14; 19:19,20.

VI. THE RESURRECTION

Almost all religions teach the immortality of the soul; but the Bible teaches the redemption of and the
survival of the total person - spirit, soul and body. The ancient Greeks believed in life after death for the soul,
but since the body was the source of all evil, release of the soul from the body was desirable. A heretical
Christian sect called 'Gnostics" shared this concept derived from Greek philosophy. The Bible does not teach
that the physical body is the source of evil; the Pauline term "flesh" refers to man's sinful and selfish nature
which, while it manifests itself through actions of the body, derives from a "carnal mind" (Rom. 8:6,7).
Christ's taking our human body (the 'likeness of sinful flesh"), 'condemned sin in the flesh." (Rom. 8:3) Christ
by His Incarnation, Death and Resurrection redeemed the total person who is in Christ, giving him a hope of a
bodily resurrection which will occur at the Rapture of the Church. 'For since by man came death, by man
came also the resurrection of the dead. For as in Adam all die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive. But
every man in his own order: Christ the firstfruits; afterward they that are Christ's at His coming" (1 Cor.
15:21-23).
A. The Fact of the Resurrection.
The fact of the Resurrection is taught in both the Old and the New Testaments:

1. In the Old Testament.


a) By affirmation: "For I know that my Redeemer lives, and He shall stand at last on the earth; and after
my skin is destroyed, this I KNOW that IN MY FLESH I shall see God" (Jb. 19:25, NKJV). "As for me, I
will behold thy face in righteousness: I shall be satisfied, when I awake with thy likeness" (Ps. 17:15). (See
also Ps. 16:9-11; Dn. 12:2.)
b) By prophecy: "Thy dead men shall live, together with my dead body shall they arise. Awake and
sing, ye that dwell in dust: for thy dew is like the dew of herbs, and the earth shall cast out the dead" (Is.
26:19). (Also Hos. 13:14.)
c) By typology: events such as Joseph's deliverance from the pit are typical of death and resurrection
(Gn. 37:20-36), as are Isaac's return from the altar of sacrifice (Gn. 22:5-14), and Jonah's deliverance from the
great fish (commonly called, whale) (Jon. 2; Mt. 12:40).
d) By example: the Old Testament contains several examples of persons who were raised from the dead:
1 Kgs. 17:17-24; 2 Kgs 4:32-35; 13:20,21. While these are cases of resuscitation rather than resurrection (for
those who were raised died natural deaths later), they demonstrate God's power and disposition to restore dead

347
bodies to life.

2. In the New Testament.


a) By affirmation: 'So also is the resurrection of the dead. It is sown in corruption; it is raised in
incorruption: it is sown in dishonor; it is raised in glory: it is sown in weakness; it is raised in power. . ." (1
Cor. 15:42,43) (See also Mt. 22:30-32; Jn. 5:21; Acts 23:6-8; 26:8,23; 2 Tm. 1:10; 1 Pt. 1:3.)
b) By prophecy: "Marvel not at this: for the hour is coming, in which all that are in the graves shall hear
His voice, and shall come forth; they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have
done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation" (Jn. 5:28,29). (See also Jn. 6:39,40,44,54; Lk. 14:13,14;
20:35,36; 1 Cor. 15; Phil. 3:11,21; 1 Thes. 4:1416; Rv. 20:4-6,13-15.)
c) The New Testament also contains examples of persons raised from the dead. They were not
resurrections such as will occur at the Second Coming and at the Last Judgment, for they later died and will
experience the final Resurrection just as others; however, they were prefigures of the final Resurrection.
On the other hand, the Resurrection of Jesus was the true and ideal resurrection. When Jesus arose He
became "the firstfruits of them that slept" (1 Cor. 15:20). His Resurrection was the guarantee of all
resurrections of believers: 'But God ... raised us up together, and made us sit together in heavenly places in
Christ Jesus" (Eph. 2:6). (See Jn. 11:41-44, Lazarus; Lk. 8:41-56, Jairus' daughter; Lk. 7:12-15, the widow's
son; Mt. 27:52,53, Old Testament saints.)

B. The Nature of the Resurrection.


The Resurrection will be universal. All do not have eternal life, but all have eternal existence. All
persons will be resurrected, the just to eternal life, the unjust to eternal condemnation. All will be raised, but
not all at the same time Un. 5:28,29).

1. The Resurrection of Believers (1 Thes. 4:13-18; 1 Cor. 15:50-57; Rv. 20:4-6).


The Resurrection of the Church occurs at the Coming of Jesus, immediately prior to the Rapture (1 Thes.
4:16). The Believers' Resurrection is called the "first resurrection": "Blessed and holy is he that hath part in
the first resurrection: on such the second death hath no power. . . ." (Rv. 20:6). It has been taught by some
that there will be one general resurrection of the dead and one judgment at which just and unjust are judged.
Jesus sometimes mentioned the two resurrections and judgments in the same passage, but a careful reading
will reveal that Jesus was not speaking of one general resurrection: "And shall come forth; they that have
done good unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation" (Jn.
5:29). Notice that one is a resurrection of life while the other is a resurrection of condemnation; they are not
the same, nor do they occur at the same time, as Paul and John both elucidate.
It is normal for prophetic perspective to view several related future events as if they were one event. With
similar prophetic language, the first and second comings of Jesus are merged in the same passage in Old
Testament prophecy (Is. 9:6,7; 61:1-3; Dn. 12:2). New Testament writers sometimes allude to both the
Rapture and Final Coming in the same reference (1 Thes. 3:13). Both Paul and John make it clear that the
Saints' Resurrection (including the saved remnant of Israel and the Tribulation saints) takes place at Christ's
Coming and before the Millennial Reign (1 Cor. 15:51,52; Rv. 20:4-6; Dn. 12:1-2).
That the Saints' Resurrection is selective is seen in a remarkable statement of the Apostle Paul: "that I
may know Him, and the power of His resurrection, and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made
conformable unto His death; if by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead" (Phil. 3:10,11).
If there is only one general resurrection for the just and the unjust, would Paul aspire to attain to it? A more
literal translation reveals Paul's full meaning: ". . . If by any means I might advance to the EARLIER
resurrection, which is FROM AMONG the dead" (Phil. 3:11, Rotherham). The Greek preposition ek means
"out from." Paul desired to be in the group that would be resurrected at the time of the Rapture; those who

348
would be taken selectively "out from among" the general mass of the dead; those who would be raised in the
EARLIER resurrection (the first resurrection, Rv. 20:6). The Greek word for "resurrection" is exanastasis
(used only once in the N.T.) which means "out resurrection"; the double use of the word ek gives added
emphasis to the idea that the Resurrection of the Christian believers is one in which they are selected for a
special awakening. That there will be several orders of resurrection is expressed in another place by Paul:
"But every man in his own order: Christ the firstfruits; afterward they that are Christ's at His coming" (1 Cor.
15:23).
a) It will be a literal bodily resurrection. This is shown by the Resurrection of Jesus. His resurrected
body still bore the prints of the nails and the wound of the sword Un. 20:26-28); after His Resurrection, Jesus
had a body of 'flesh and bones" and even took food (Lk. 24:36-43). On the other hand, the body of Jesus was
sufficiently glorified that His disciples did not always recognize Him at once. His appearances show that His
body was not subject to normal physical limitations (Jn. 20:19,26). That our resurrection will be literal does
not mean that all the same molecules of our dead bodies will be recovered; in fact, our body cells are replaced
a number of times during our life span without our losing personal identity. Of this one may be certain, that
God will recover from the dust a body with a definite relationship to one's earthly body, but transformed and
fashioned to one's new environment (Phil. 3:21).
Paul speaks of death as a sowing of the body as a farmer sows seed. The seed dies, but it contains a life
principle by which nature brings forth a new plant of the same genus, species and variety as the original seed.
At the Resurrection, cemeteries will be turned into harvest fields U Cor. 15:42-44); and out of the planted
earthly bodies, the Lord will raise up resurrection bodies that are identified with the earthly body, but which
are transformed with a likeness to Christ's resurrection body. Believers' bodies will be changed (1 Cor.
15:52), but each will have a relationship to the earthly body. The resurrection body will not be the earthly
body merely resuscitated; but the likeness of the earthly body glorified. It appears from the identification of
Moses and Elijah on the Mount of Transfiguration and of Jesus after His Resurrection that our resurrection
bodies will retain their personal identity.
b) The resurrection body will be God-given. "But God giveth it a body as it hath pleased him. . . ." (1
Cor. 15:38). This is in answer to a hypothetical question". . . How are the dead raised up? and with what body
do they come?" (1 Cor. 15:35). How a dead body can be raised and glorified cannot be conceived by human
intellect. Christ's Resurrection is the great miracle of our Gospel. We do not explain it. We accept it as
Divine revelation. In the same manner we accept bodily resurrection as a miracle of Divine power and
wisdom. If we accept Christ's Resurrection (which is one of the best attested events of history), we should
have no problem with the acceptance of our final resurrection; for we shall be raised up by the same
Omnipotent God who raised up Jesus from the dead.
c) The believer's resurrection body will be immortal and incorruptible (1 Cor. 15:42). The
Scriptures never speak of the immortality of the soul. The believer now has eternal life, but he dwells in a
mortal body. All men have eternal existence. Only believers who shall experience "The First Resurrection"
will receive immortal and incorruptible bodies (1 Cor. 15:42).
d) The resurrection body will be a celestial body (1 Cor. 15:40). Our earthly bodies are suited to this
present earthly environment. The resurrection body will be suited to our new heavenly environment. It will
be equally suited to both the new heavens and the new earth, as well as to the millennial earth. Like the body
of Jesus, it will be able to come and go between Heaven and the earth.
e) The resurrection body will be a powerful body. It is sown in weakness, it is raised in power. . ." (1
Cor. 15:43). The contrast here expressed indicates that the new capacities of the resurrection body will be
inconceivably and inexpressibly greater than those of any earthly human body. The events recorded of angels
are a preview of the capacities of resurrected saints (Mt. 22:29,30).
f) The resurrection body will be a glorious body. "It is sown in dishonor, it is raised in glory. . ." (1
Cor. 15:43). The resurrected body will be as glorious as the decaying earthly body can be inglorious. Jesus
promised, "Then shall the righteous shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father" (Mt. 13:43). The
above words of Jesus suggest for the saints the glory that He manifested on the Mount of Transfiguration:

349
"And was transfigured before them: and His face did shine as the sun, and His raiment was white as the light"
(Mt. 17:2). Jesus prayed for us, "And the glory which Thou gavest me I have given them; that they may be
one, even as we are one.. ." Un. 17:22). After speaking of the Resurrection, Daniel said, "And they that be
wise shall shine like the brightness of the firmament; and they that turn many to righteousness as the stars for
ever and ever" (Dn. 12:3).

2. The Resurrection of Unbelievers (Rv. 20:5,12,13,14; Jn. 5:28,29; Dn. 12:2; Acts 24:15).
The Bible does not reveal specifically the state or nature of the resurrection bodies of the unrighteous; but
it may be assumed that they will be bodies subject to corruption or ruin. Jesus said, "And fear not them which
kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul: but rather him which is able to destroy [Gr., apollumi, "to ruin
utterly"] both BODY and soul in hell [Gr., gehennal" (Mt.10:28). The bodies of the unrighteous dead will
suffer "utter ruin" eternally. (See 2 Thes. 1:8,9.) The unrighteous are not resurrected at the time of Christ's
Second Coming, but after the Millennial Reign of Christ (Rv. 20:5).

C. The Time of the Resurrection.


The order of resurrections is as follows:
1. The Resurrection of Jesus (Mt.28:1-10; Mk.16:1-14; Lk.24:1-39; Jn. 20:1-17).
2. A Resurrection of saints of the Old Testament (Mt. 27:52,53).
3. The Resurrection of the Church saints at the Rapture (Jn. 14:3, 1 Thes. 4:16; 1 Cor. 15:52).
4. The resurrection of the two witnesses of Revelation 11:12, during the tribulation period.

5. The Resurrection of the saints of Israel and of the Tribulation saints who are witnesses for Christ
and who do not worship the Beast (Rv. 20:4-6; Dn. 12:1,2).
6. The Resurrection of the unrighteous. This will occur after the Millennial Reign of Christ. They will
be resurrected to stand before the Great White Throne (Rv. 20:5,11-14).

VII. THE MILLENNIUM

The word "millennium" is not found in the Bible; however, the thousand year period of Christ's rule over
the earth is mentioned six (6) times in the twentieth chapter of Revelation. The word "millennium" is derived
from Latin words which simply mean "thousand years." The Millennium will be a period during which Satan
will be bound in the Abyss: "And he laid hold on the dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and Satan,
and bound him a thousand years" (Rv. 20:2). The binding of Satan prepares the earth for the Millennial Reign
of Christ, who comes to earth, as described in Revelation chapter nineteen, as King of Kings and Lord of
Lords (vv.15,16). The resurrected Church saints together with the Tribulation saints will reign with Christ in
His millennial kingdom: "And they lived and reigned with Christ a thousand years" (Rv. 20:4b); "But they
shall be priests of God and of Christ, and shall reign with him a thousand years" (Rv. 20:6b). (See also Rv.
19:7-10,14.)

A. The Relation of the Millennium to the Second Coming.


There are three theories about the time relationship of the Millennium to the Second Coming:

1. Post-millennialism.

350
This theory puts the Millennium before the Coming of Jesus. According to this theory, based on an
interpretation of the parables of the "leaven" and the "mustard seed," the Church will gradually, through the
preaching of the Gospel and the promotion of social justice, overcome war and evil in the world; after which,
Christ will come. Post-millennarians believe that universal peace and righteousness will be accomplished by
the Church gradually, rather than by the Coming of Christ in power. Two world wars in this century, together
with increasing crime, violence, and the threat of a nuclear holocaust have largely disproved this optimistic
theory.

2. Amillennialism.
Amillennarians spiritualize all references relative to Christ's Reign and apply them to His spiritual rule
over the hearts of believers. The Old Testament prophecies concerning Christ's ruling on the throne of David
are likewise applied to the Church. All promises to Israel are fulfilled by blessing upon the Church, inasmuch
as the Church is the spiritual Israel. According to the Amillennial theory, a national Israel has no further
destiny that differs from that of the other nations. Paul's teaching about the natural and wild branches of the
olive tree in Romans chapter eleven quite clearly refutes the spiritual or figurative interpretation of Israel.

3. Pre-millennialism.
Pre-millennarians interpret Scripture literally, or better, naturally. Differences in the method of
interpretation of prophecy lead to differences in theory. When one departs from a natural interpretation of
Bible prophecy, he then can only speculate. If everything is a symbol rather than a real event, the symbols
can be made to mean anything the interpreter wants them to mean. Taking the book of Revelation and the
kingdom prophecies naturally, the pre-millennarian believes that when Christ comes again, he will then, and
only then, establish His Reign of peace and righteousness over the earth. He believes in a literal rule of Christ
on the promised throne of David, when He, together with the Redeemed of the Church age, will reign over the
regathered and saved remnant of Israel and the righteous Gentile nations. The premillennarian does not
confuse Israel with the Church, nor the Church age with the millennial age; for him the schedule of future
prophetic events is:
a) the Rapture
b) the Tribulation
c) the Final Coming of Christ as King
d) the Millennial Reign of Christ on Earth
e) the Eternal State of a New Heaven and a New Earth.

B. The Relation of the Millennium to Israel.


Among the millennial family of nations, the nation of Israel will occupy the central place: When the Most
High divided to the nations their inheritance, when he separated the sons of Adam, he set the bounds of the
people according to the number of the children of Israel. For the Lord's portion is his people; Jacob is the lot
of His inheritance. He found him ... he led him about, he instructed him, he kept him as the apple of His eye
(Dt. 32:8-10).
It was revealed to Mary, by the angel, that Jesus was destined, as the promised Messiah, to reign upon the
throne of David: He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest; and the Lord God shall give
unto Him the throne of His father David: and He shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of his
kingdom there shall be no end (Lk. 1:32,33).
It is true that the Church has entered into the spiritual blessings first given to Israel (Eph. 1:18, 3:6; 1 Pt.
2:9,10); but that fact does not change God's purpose for national Israel (Is. 61:1-62:4; 66:7-24; Rom. 11:13-
28). It seems clear that Israel will be the ministers and missionaries to all the nations during the Millennium,
directing the Gentile inhabitants of the earth to serve and worship the Lord (Is. 61:4-11). While Israel will

351
have the preeminence among the nations during the Millennial Reign of Christ, the Church in her glorified
state will sit in judgment over the tribes of Israel (Mt. 19:28; Lk. 22:29,30).

C. The Relation of the Millennium to the Nations.


At the Coming of Christ to Reign, there will be a Judgment of Gentile nations, referred to in Matthew as
the "sheep" and "goat" nations (Mt. 25:31-36). The sheep nations are judged apt for kingdom blessing on the
basis of their treatment of the Lord's "brethren' (Israel). That there will be Gentile nations on the millennial
earth is clear from Revelation 20:7,8; Isaiah 2:1-5; 11:5-10; 60:1-5; and Zechariah 14:16-21. It was revealed
to Daniel in a vision that the Christ would have dominion over a kingdom which would include all nations:
I saw in the night visions, and, behold, one like the Son of man came with the clouds of heaven, and came
to the Ancient of days, and they brought him near before him. And there was given him dominion, and glory,
and a KINGDOM, that all people, NATIONS, and languages should serve him: his dominion is an everlasting
dominion which shall not pass away... (Dn. 7:13,14)

D. The Relation of the Millennium to the Church.


The Church will bear a different relationship to the millennial kingdom than either the restored nation of
Israel or the Gentile nations. These latter will be earthly peoples; and even though they will live under the
ideal conditions of an earth freed from the curse, they will have mortal bodies and they will pursue normal
earthly occupations. There will be universal peace, justice and holiness because of the Sovereign Rule of
Christ, but there will not be absolute perfection in the earthly inhabitants (cf. Is. 11:4; 65:20; Zec. 14:17-19.)
On the other hand, the Church and all saints who have had part in the First Resurrection will rule and reign
with Christ (Rv. 2:26,27; 3:21; 5:9,10; 20:6). They will not be confined to the earth, for they have glorified
bodies and they will have access to Heaven and earth (Rv. 19:6-14; Mt. 22:30,31; Lk. 20:35,36). Jesus said to
His disciples, 'In my Father's house are many mansions [abiding places]"; then He added, 'I go to prepare a
place for you, and if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come again, and receive you unto myself . . ." (Jn.
14:3). Paul spoke of his hope of a better place than this earth: '. . . Having a desire to depart, and to be with
Christ; which is FAR BETTER..." (Phil. 1:23). When the Apostle said "for me to die is GAIN," he meant
"gain" over life at its best, not at its worst; for he had just declared, "for to me to live is CHRIST." The
believer, even now, is seated together with Christ in heavenly places (Eph. 2:6); therefore, in our resurrected
state we will always occupy heavenly places even while we are sharing rule over the earth with Christ (Mt.
25:21; Lk. 19: 17-19). That the Church saints will be equipped for both heavenly and earthly environments is
suggested by three things:
(1) The saints in the resurrected state will be like the angels (Lk. 20:35-38); and angels often
ministered to men on earth.
(2) Jesus after His Resurrection appeared to His followers on earth for forty days.
(3) At the Death of Jesus, many saints arose from their graves and appeared unto many persons (Mt.
27:52,53).

E. Life and Conditions on the Millennial Earth.


1. Christ's Millennial Reign will be characterized by universal justice and righteousness (Jer.
23:5,6; Is. 11:3-5; 52:1,16; Ps. 72:1-8).
2. All the earth will be under the righteous discipline of King Jesus; and all who disobey will be
disciplined (Zec. 14:16-21).
3. There will be peace among all the nations during the Millennial Rule of Christ (Ps. 72; Is. 2:4;
9:5,6; 32:1,17,18; Mi. 5:4,5).
4. There shall be happiness and joy in His kingdom (Is.9:2-4;25:6-9; 35:10).

352
5. In Christ's kingdom, the people of the nation of Israel will enjoy health and longevity (Is. 35:5,6;
65:20-22).
6. On the millennial earth there will be great material prosperity ( Ps. 72:15,16; Am. 9:13-15; Zec.
3:10; 8:12).
7. Under Christ's Reign, the earth will be freed from the curse (Rom. 8:19-22; Is. 55:13; 41:18,19).
With the removal of the curse, wild animals will lose their ferocity (Is. 11:6-9; 65:25; Ez. 34:25,28; Hos.
2:18).

VIII. THE JUDGMENTS

All men will stand before the judgment bar of God in order that His Righteousness may be vindicated:
'And it is appointed unto men once to die, but after this the judgment" (Heb. 9:27). The Psalmist declared:
'Righteousness and justice are the foundation of Thy throne" (Ps. 89:14, NASB). God's Holiness and Justice
require that all sin be punished, and that all right be upheld: "Far be it from Thee to do such a thing, to slay
the righteous with the wicked, so that the righteous and the wicked are treated alike. Far be it from Thee!
Shall not the Judge of all the earth deal JUSTLY' (Gn. 18:25, NASB). Man's conscience witnesses to the fact
all good and evil are known by God and recorded in His indelible record: "These ... shew the work of the law
written in their hearts, their conscience also bearing witness, and their thoughts the mean while accusing or
excusing one another; in the day when God shall JUDGE the secrets of men by Jesus Christ according to my
gospel" (Rom. 2:15,16). All men have sinned (Rom. 3:10-23), therefore all are deserving of condemnation.
The clearest picture of the demands of God's Holiness and Justice is seen in the Cross. God is also a God of
Love; but in order for His Mercy to be bestowed upon sinners, their sins had to be laid upon His Redeemer
Son, and there upon the Cross be judged and punished. The Infinite Savior bore the sinners' guilt in order that
believing ones identified with Jesus might be freed from condemnation (Rom. 8:1).
There is an erroneous idea held by some that there will be one general day of reckoning on which all
beings just or unjust will be judged. The Bible speaks of a number of judgments. The Scofield Bible (Oxford
University Press, 1967), in the footnotes for Revelation 20:12, lists seven (7) separate judgments. In the
following section these judgments will be treated under five categories: (1) The Judgment of the Believer (2)
The Judgment of the Nations (3) The Judgment of National Israel (4) The Judgment of the Wicked Dead and
(5) the Judgment of Satan and the Fallen Angels.

A. The Judgment of the Believers.


There are three aspects to the believer's judgment. His first judgment took place at the Cross: "Now is the
judgment of this world: now shall the prince of this world be cast out. And 1, if I be lifted up from the earth,
will draw all men unto me" (Jn. 12:31,32). In reality, the Cross is the judgment of all sin and of all sinners,
including Satan. At the Cross the believer pleads guilty, confesses his sin, and identifies himself with Jesus,
his Substitute and Savior: "If we confess our sins, He is faithful and just to forgive us our sins and to cleanse
us from all unrighteousness" (1 Jn. 1:9). Having been judged at the Cross, the faithful will not stand judgment
relative to their salvation, only relative to their rewards for service (Jn. 3:18; 5:24; Rom. 8:1,33; 1 Thes. 5:9).
The second aspect of the believers' judgment is his continuing self-judgment; Paul wrote: "For if we would
judge ourselves, we should not be judged. But when we are judged, we are chastened of the Lord, that we
should not be condemned with the world" (1 Cor. 11:31,32). This is a part of the sanctifying work of the
Holy Spirit in the believer's life (Rom. 15:16; 1 Thes. 5:14-23; 2 Thes. 2:13; 1 Jn. 1:7-2:2).
The believer's judgment before the Judgment Seat of Christ is not a judgment of condemnation, but that of
determining the believer's awards. It will take place at the Coming of Christ (cf. 1 Cor. 4:5). Two passages
give details relative to the believer's judgment:

353
Every man's work shall be made manifest: for the day shall declare it, because it shall be revealed by fire;
and the fire shall try every man's work of what sort it is. If any man's work abide which he hath built
thereupon, he shall receive a reward. If any man's work shall be burned, he shall suffer loss: but he himself
shall be saved; yet so as by fire (I Cor. 3:13-15).
For we must all appear before the judgment seat of Christ; that every one may receive the things done in
his body, according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad [worthless] (2 Cor. 5:10). In his life and
service, each believer is building upon the foundation of Christ Jesus. He must answer before Christ's tribunal
(the Bema Judgment) to have his works tested as a basis for recompense. His service may be revealed to be
gold, silver, precious stones; or to be hay, wood and stubble; the latter will not stand the test in the crucible of
Christ's Glory. If what he has built on the foundation of Christ Jesus is "worthless," he will be saved, because
salvation is by faith not works; but his works will bring him no awards or crowns: "Look to yourselves, that
we lose not those things which we have wrought, but that we receive a full reward" (2 Jn. 8). (See also 1 Jn.
2:28; Rv. 3:11). If what he builds on Christ is "good," he will receive a reward and the "well done thou good
and faithful servant." It seems clear that the believer's Bema Judgment occurs at the time of the Rapture, for
The Marriage Supper of the Lamb takes place before Christ returns with the saints (Rv. 19:7-9), and the voice
from the throne declares of the Bride, "His wife hath made herself READY." Her "readiness" indicates that
she has passed beyond judgment.
The believer's special rewards are called crowns. They are four in number:

1. The Crown of Rejoicing.


"For what is our hope, or joy, or crown of rejoicing? Are not even ye in the presence of our Lord Jesus
Christ at his coming? For ye are our glory and joy" (1 Thes. 2:19,20). Paul considered his converts his crown
of rejoicing. Note that he expected to receive his crown at the Coming of Jesus. This is the soul winner's
crown.

2. The Crown of Righteousness.


This crown Paul expected to receive as a reward for his "good fight," his "faith kept" and "course
finished" (2 Tm. 4:7,8). This is the winner's crown from the "athletic metaphor." (See also 1 Cor. 9:25-27:
"But I keep under my body ... lest ... when I have preached to others, I myself should be a castaway" N.271.)

3. The Crown of Life.


"Blessed is the man that perseveres under trial; for once he has been approved, he will receive the crown
of LIFE" (Jas. 1:12). This is the martyr's crown for it is promised to those who are faithful unto death (Rv.
2:10); but those who live prepared to die for their witness receive it also.

4. The Crown of Glory.


This is the crown for pastors and elders: "And when the chief Shepherd shall appear, ye shall receive a
crown of glory that fadeth not away (1 Pt. 5:4). The Greek word for "crown" is stephanos, which is the crown
awarded at the games; it was made of olive or laurel and soon faded. The crown of glory which the Lord will
give to His under-shepherds will outlast the ages.

B. The Judgment of the Gentile Nations.


In Matthew chapter twenty-five, Jesus declares that He will gather all nations before Him to be judged at
the time of His Coming (Mt. 25:31-46). At the end of the Tribulation, and before He begins His Millennial
Reign, Jesus will separate the nations as a shepherd would separate sheep from goats. It seems from what
follows in the same context, that the basis of judgment will be the treatment rendered to His "brethren," the

354
righteous remnant of Israel who will be Christ's witnesses during the Tribulation (Rv. 7; 11:1-12). These will
be the Gentiles who survive the Tribulation, who do not bow to the Beast. They will become the nations that
the Old Testament prophets predicted would inhabit the earth during the kingdom age (Is. 11:10).

C. The Judgment of National Israel.


The Old Testament prophets predict a time of trial and judgment for the remnant of Israel in preparation
for the kingdom (cf. Ez. 20:33-38; Dn. 12:1,2). Jesus, in Matthew chapter twenty-four, speaks of the Great
Tribulation as a time of trial and judgment for Israel. Since the Tribulation, which will be Daniel's seventieth
week, will be an ordeal for Israel, it will constitute a final judgment upon the nation to meet out justice and to
purge a remnant for the Messiah's Reign upon the throne of David. (See Dn. 9:24-27; Rv. 12).

D. The Judgment of the Wicked Dead.


This is known as the "Great White Throne Judgment." It will not take place until after the Millennial
Reign of Christ.
And I saw a great white throne, and him that sat on it, from whose face the earth and the heaven fled
away; and there was found no place for them. And I saw the dead, small and great, stand before God; and the
books were opened; and another book was opened, which is the book of life: and the dead were judged out of
those things which were written in the books, according to their works.
And the sea gave up the dead which were in it; and death and hell delivered up the dead which were in
them: and they were judged every man according to their works. And death and hell were cast into the lake of
fire. This is the second death (Rv. 20:11-14).
This describes the Final Judgment of all the wicked dead. The judge will be Christ Jesus to whom God
has assigned all judgment (Acts 17:31). The judged are the wicked dead who did not have part in the First
Resurrection, which took place at the time of the Rapture of the saints (1 Thes. 4:16; 1 Cor. 15:52). The
judgment is on the basis of works. There will be a difference in the severity of judgment (Lk. 12:46-48).
However, the mildest degree of being lost is a dreadful fate. These will have spurned every offer of God's
Mercy in Christ Jesus. Therefore, their names are not found written in the Book of Life.

E. The Judgment of Satan and the Fallen Angels.


At the end of Christ's thousand-year reign, Satan will be released from his prison for a brief season. He
will go forth to deceive the nations, which rebellion (his last) will end with the fiery destruction of the rebels
and Satan's being cast into the Lake of Fire forever (Rv. 20:10). Several Bible passages refer to a final
judgment of fallen angels (Is. 24:21,22; 2 Pt. 2:4; Jude 6). It is usually assumed that the fallen angels will be
judged at the same time Satan is judged. According to Paul, the Saints will participate in the angels 'judgment
(1 Cor. 6:3).

IX. THE FINAL DESTINIES

No teaching is clearer than that of a final destiny for all men beyond this present life on earth: And these
go away into everlasting punishment, but the righteous into eternal life (Mt. 25:46, NKJV).
And I give unto them eternal life; and they shall never perish.... (Jn. 10:28).
In flaming fire taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the gospel of our Lord
Jesus Christ; who shall be punished with everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the
glory of His power ... (2 Thes. 1:8,9).
Quite clearly the righteous will enjoy everlasting life and bliss in the presence of the Lord; the

355
unrighteous will suffer everlasting punishment and separation from the Lord. The future abode of the
righteous will be Heaven (2 Cor. 5:1, 1 Pt. 1:4). The future abode of the unrighteous will be Hell (gehenna)
(Mk. 9:43,44; Rv. 20:14).

A. The Future Destiny of the Unrighteous.


The Authorized Version refers to the final abode of the unbeliever as "hell." The English word "hell"
translates several Hebrew and Greek words which have reference to different stages of existence after death.
It sometimes designates the place of departed spirits or the intermediate state, which in Hebrew is called
sheol, and in Greek is called hades. In the New Testament, "hell" more often translates gehenna, which
symbolizes the final eternal perdition. Gehenna was the refuse dump in the Valley of Hinnom, where fires
burned unendingly. The wicked are kept in Hades until the Final Judgment after which they are cast into the
Lake of Fire. "Hell" once translates tartaroo, where the wicked angels were cast (2 Pt. 2:4). After the
Millennium, all the wicked dead are resurrected, and after the Great White Throne Judgment are cast into the
Lake of Fire (Rv. 19:20; 20:10,14, 15; 21:7,8).

1. The final condition of the wicked is presented in the following descriptions:


a) Separation from God (Lk. 13:25,28; 2 Thes. 1:9).
b) Outer darkness (Mt. 22:13; 2 Pt. 2:4,17; Jude 6,13).
c) Eternal or unquenchable fire (Mt. 18:8; Mk. 9:43,45,48; 2 Pt. 3:7; Jude 7).
d) Everlasting contempt (Dn. 12:2).
e) Everlasting torment (Rv. 14:10,11).
f) Eternal punishment (Mt. 25:46).
g) Everlasting destruction or perdition (ruin) (2 Thes. 1:8,9; Phil. 3:18,19; Mt. 7:13; Rom. 9:22; 2
Pt. 3:7).
h) Where the worm dies not (Mk. 9:44).
I) The wrath of God (Rom. 2:5,8,9; 1 Thes. 1:10).
j) Retribution (punishment proportionate to the evil) (2 Cor. 11:14,15; 2 Tm. 4:14; Rv. 18:6; 22:12).
k) The second death (Rv. 20:14; 21:8).

2. Several theories have been proposed which deny that the punishment of the wicked is unending:
a) Annihilationism. According to this theory, the wicked are punished for an age and then are
annihilated. Annihilationists contend that the Greek word aionios, derived from aion, which means "age," has
the meaning of "age long" rather than "everlasting." However, alonios is the strongest word in the Greek
language to express the idea of endlessness. Furthermore, aionios is the very word used to express the
"eternity" of God, of the Holy Spirit, and of the life of the believer. By the reasoning of the annihilationist, if
punishment of the wicked is only an age long, then the life of God and of the believer is only age long. In
Matthew 25:46, the punishment of the unrighteous and the life of the righteous is expressed by the same
word, aionios. At the beginning of the thousand years, the Beast and False Prophet are cast into the Lake of
Fire; at the end of the thousand years, Satan is cast into the same Lake of Fire: "where the beast and false
prophet are and [they, pl.1 shall be tormented day and night forever and ever [lit., into the ages of the ages]"
(Rv. 20:10). They have spent the millennial age in perdition and after that they share Satan's doom "into the
ages of the ages"; obviously, their punishment is more than an "age long."
b) Universalism. According to universalists, punishment will bring about a change of heart on the part
of the wicked and finally they, including Satan himself, will be saved. After a millennium in the Abyss, when
released, Satan immediately leads a rebellion against God and against His saints. A thousand years of
imprisonment does not change the Deceiver one iota. The Beast and False Prophet do not change after a

356
millennium in the Lake of Fire (Rv. 19:20,20: 10). The rich man in Hades finds a great gulf fixed between
himself and Abraham's Bosom, and he pleads for a messenger from the realms of the dead to warn his
brothers of the dangers of Hell; but he is told that the Law and the prophets are their only avenue of salvation,
and that if his brothers rejected God's Word, no messenger from the dead would be able to avert their same
destruction (Lk. 16:22-31).
However frightening the prospect of eternal perdition may be, we may be certain that God's Righteous
Judgment will be vindicated. This is assured by the great extent to which God went in sending His Son to die
for us. The Grace and Love of God are beyond measure; if there had been a way for men to be saved without
the ordeal of the Cross, God would not have subjected His Son to it. The Cross demonstrates not only the
Love and Mercy of God, but also the sinfulness of sin. The wicked are consigned to Hell only after a
Judgment in which the books are opened and just sentences are pronounced. The severity of perdition will
not be the same for all. The punishments of the wicked will vary in severity, just as the rewards of the
righteous will differ in glory (Lk. 12:47, 48; 1 Cor. 3:12-15). Every man's conscience will witness to the
"rightness" of God's final judgments.

B. The Final Destiny of Satan, the Fallen Angels and the Antichrist.
Inasmuch as the final destiny of Satan, the wicked angels and the Antichrist has already been treated
under the section on their judgment, and under the final destiny of the wicked, it will not be necessary to give
further treatment to their final fates, other than to cite the passages of Scripture where the subject is revealed:
Mt. 25:41; Jude 6; 2 Pt. 2:4; Rv. 19:20; 20:1,2,3,10; Is. 14:14,15; 24:21.

C. The Future State of the Righteous.


The eternal state of the believer is LIFE through and with the Lord Jesus Christ: "And this is the record,
that God hath given to us ETERNAL LIFE, and this life is in His Son. He that hath the Son hath LIFE; and
he that hath not the Son hath not life" (1 Jn. 5:11,12). Eternal life is not merely eternal existence; all men
righteous and unrighteous will exist eternally. Eternal "life" refers not merely to the duration of life, but
rather to the quality of life. The believer has Christ's life (Gal. 2:20), because he has Christ within (Col. 1:27).
Life in Christ is the present possession of the believer as well as his future hope; it is spoken of as the future
state of the believer only in the sense that when Christ comes eternal LIFE is beyond forfeiture (1 Jn. 3:2; Rv.
2:10).
Whether in Paradise, reigning with Christ in His millennial kingdom, or inhabiting the New Jerusalem,
the believer will abide in the presence of Jesus in his Father's house. Life in the Father's house is assured by
the promise of Christ to prepare a place for us there (Jn. 14:2,3); the preparation that made a place for us was
Christ's Atoning Work on Calvary's Cross. The eternal abode of the believer then, is a home in HEAVEN;
but what kind of place did Jesus prepare?

1. Heaven is the place where Jesus our Savior is (Jn. 14:2,3; Acts. 7:56; Lk. 1:2; 2 Cor. 5:2; Phil. 1:23).
2. Heaven is an ample place. "In my Father's house are MANY mansions [abiding places]." On. 14:2,3).
3. Heaven is a better place (Heb. 10:34; 11:16).
4. Heaven is an ideal place. We are taught to pray, "Thy will be done on earth as it is in heaven." (Mt.
6:10).
5. Heaven is a place of inheritance. The believer will receive an inheritance because he is a joint-heir
with
Christ (I Pt. 1:4; Rom. 8:17).
6. Heaven is a place of reward (Mt. 5:12; 6:20; 19:21; Lk. 12:33; Col. 1:5; 2 Tm. 4:8).
7. Heaven is a place of praise (Rv. 19:1).

357
8. Heaven is a place of beauty, splendor and glory (Rv. 21,22).
9. Heaven is a joyful place (Rv. 21:4; Mt. 25:21,23; Lk. 15:7,10; Heb. 12:2).
10. It is a place of personal identity. After death, the rich man and Lazarus retained their personal
identity. Moses and Elijah still were identifiable when they appeared to Jesus on the Mount of
Transfiguration (Mt. 17:2,3). After the Resurrection, Jesus was recognized by His followers. Our names are
written in the Book of Life; and names signify identity and personality (Phil. 4:3). The fact that believers will
have their resurrected bodies in Heaven demonstrates that God's Redeeming Work extends to the total person.
We will not lose personal identity in Heaven; on the contrary, our personalities will be raised to the highest
level of personal being. The best of earth's relationships in the Body of Christ will endure in heavenly life.

I Jesus have sent mine angel to testify unto you these things in the churches.
I am the root and the offspring of David, and the bright and morning star
And the Spirit and the bride say, Come.
And let him that heareth say, Come. And let him that is athirst come.
And whosoever will, let him take the water of life freely.
He which testifieth these things saith, Surely I come quickly.
Amen.

Even so, come, Lord Jesus.

REVELATION 22: 16, 17, 20

358

You might also like